Selected quad for the lemma: end_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
end_n judgement_n psal_n verse_n 1,502 5 10.3105 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A16736 The doctrine of the Gospel By a plaine and familiar interpretation of the particular points or articles thereof: with the promises, comforts, and duties, seuerally belonging to the same. VVhereunto is added, a declaration of the danger of not knowing, not beleeuing, or not obeying any one of them. Likewise, a rehearsal of the manifold heresies, wherein many haue erred contrary to them all. Diuided into three bookes. The first whereof, is of beliefe in God the Father ... Allen, Robert, fl. 1596-1612. 1606 (1606) STC 364; ESTC S106811 1,499,180 1,052

There are 114 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

die_v their_o death_n num._n 23.10_o so_o yea_o much_o more_o no_o doubt_n when_o the_o revenge_a hand_n of_o god_n fall_v upon_o he_o will_v he_o have_v wish_v to_o have_v be_v as_o the_o least_o among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n to_o wit_n when_o the_o sword_n come_v against_o he_o in_o the_o slaughter_n of_o the_o midianite_n num._n 31.8_o and_o thus_o questionless_a will_v all_o the_o wicked_a desire_n when_o they_o be_v terrify_v by_o the_o vengeance_n of_o god_n break_v forth_o against_o they_o like_v as_o be_v note_v before_o concern_v the_o egyptian_n at_o that_o time_n when_o the_o water_n begin_v to_o return_v forcible_o upon_o they_o thus_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o wicked_a be_v many_o way_n profitable_a and_o comfortable_a to_o the_o godly_a now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o those_o fruit_n and_o benefit_n which_o the_o child_n of_o god_n do_v in_o time_n reap_v to_o their_o comfort_n from_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o themselves_o while_o they_o do_v live_v in_o their_o sin_n and_o after_o that_o also_o by_o his_o chastisement_n from_o the_o time_n that_o they_o begin_v to_o repent_v and_o to_o turn_v unto_o he_o question_n and_o first_o what_o be_v the_o comfortable_a fruit_n or_o benefit_n proceed_v from_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o they_o while_o they_o lie_v in_o their_o sin_n and_o be_v not_o move_v to_o repentance_n or_o to_o say_v the_o most_o be_v only_o enter_v into_o it_o answer_n while_o the_o child_n of_o god_n be_v in_o this_o estate_n god_n use_v his_o judgement_n or_o punishment_n as_o effectual_a help_n first_o to_o humble_v they_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o their_o sin_n by_o a_o taste_n of_o that_o horrible_a wrath_n and_o misery_n which_o be_v in_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n due_a unto_o they_o second_o to_o stir_v they_o up_o to_o seek_v for_o mercy_n and_o forgiveness_n three_o to_o make_v their_o deliverance_n and_o salvation_n the_o more_o sweet_a and_o precious_a unto_o they_o final_o that_o by_o the_o recordation_n and_o call_v to_o mind_n of_o the_o same_o their_o former_a punishment_n they_o be_v once_o turn_v to_o god_n may_v thenceforth_o take_v warning_n that_o they_o do_v never_o return_v to_o their_o former_a wickedness_n again_o proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n you_o say_v well_o that_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v effectual_a help_n to_o the_o end_v you_o have_v rehearse_v for_o it_o please_v god_n for_o the_o better_a expedition_n and_o more_o speedy_a effect_n of_o his_o work_n to_o add_v unto_o the_o threaten_n of_o his_o word_n the_o execution_n of_o his_o curse_n in_o some_o measure_n even_o upon_o his_o own_o elect_a child_n who_o he_o find_v to_o be_v by_o nature_n child_n of_o wrath_n and_o know_v that_o they_o have_v need_n of_o such_o vehement_a awake_n and_o rouse_a up_o out_o of_o their_o dead_a sleep_n of_o sin_n to_o this_o purpose_n read_v in_o the_o book_n of_o job._n cha_n 33._o verse_n 17_o etc._n etc._n where_o af●er_o that_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o sundry_a affliction_n wherewith_o god_n do_v humble_a his_o child_n prepare_v they_o first_o by_o his_o bodily_a chastisement_n and_o then_o send_v the_o instruction_n of_o his_o word_n unto_o they_o then_o say_v elihu_n to_o job_n verse_n 2d_o 30._o lo_o all_o these_o thing_n will_v god_n work_v twice_o or_o thrice_o with_o a_o man_n that_o he_o may_v turn_v back_o his_o soul_n from_o the_o pit_n to_o be_v illuminate_v with_o the_o light_n of_o the_o live_n that_o be_v that_o he_o have_v his_o life_n prolong_v may_v learn_v the_o way_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o hereof_o we_o have_v the_o most_o wicked_a king_n manasses_n for_o a_o notable_a example_n 2._o chron._n 33.12_o 13._o of_o who_o it_o be_v write_v that_o howsoever_o he_o exceed_v in_o wickedness_n and_o despise_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o prophet_n which_o be_v send_v unto_o he_o yet_o when_o god_n cast_v he_o into_o tribulation_n that_o be_v give_v he_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o king_n of_o ashur_n who_o put_v he_o in_o fetter_n and_o bind_v he_o in_o chain_n and_o carry_v he_o to_o babel_n than_o he_o pray_v to_o the_o lord_n his_o god_n and_o humble_v himself_o great_o before_o the_o god_n of_o his_o father_n and_o he_o pray_v to_o god_n god_n of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n be_v entreat_v of_o he_o and_o hear_v his_o prayer_n and_o bring_v he_o again_o to_o jerusalem_n into_o his_o kingdom_n and_o then_o as_o the_o text_n say_v manasses_n know_v that_o be_v he_o acknowledge_v the_o lord_n to_o be_v god_n to_o this_o purpose_n also_o it_o be_v well_o observe_v by_o a_o godly_a learned_a man_n that_o by_o affliction_n as_o by_o a_o special_a help_n god_n use_v common_o to_o call_v they_o who_o he_o will_v save_v and_o make_v instrument_n of_o his_o salvation_n to_o other_o to_o the_o which_o end_n he_o allege_v the_o example_n of_o paul_n from_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o from_o ecclesiastical_a story_n the_o example_n of_o constantine_n the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n and_o of_o edwine_n the_o first_o christian_a king_n of_o northumberland_n of_o the_o which_o edwine_n thus_o he_o write_v that_o notwithstanding_o he_o have_v marry_v a_o christian_a woman_n the_o daughter_n of_o ethelbert_n a_o christen_v king_n of_o kent_n who_o persuade_v with_o he_o all_o that_o she_o can_v and_o paulinus_n also_o a_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n yet_o can_v he_o not_o be_v win_v till_o god_n have_v bumble_v he_o by_o sundry_a affliction_n no_o not_o till_o at_o the_o last_o he_o be_v sore_o wound_v by_o a_o wicked_a and_o desperate_a ●●t_n throat_n who_o be_v suborn_v to_o kill_v he_o this_o be_v the_o observation_n of_o mr._n fox_n in_o the_o history_n of_o king_n edwine_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 630._o where_o also_o he_o allege_v to_o the_o same_o end_n the_o late_a example_n of_o martin_n luther_n who_o spiritual_a conflict_n and_o agony_n be_v many_o before_o he_o can_v be_v make_v fit_a to_o preach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o christ_n open_o and_o so_o say_v he_o bo_o all_o they_o most_o common_o which_o come_v to_o any_o lively_a feel_n or_o sensible_a work_n of_o christ_n the_o lord_n in_o they_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o this_o confession_n be_v hear_v often_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n after_o that_o they_o be_v once_o true_o and_o effectual_o humble_v unto_o he_o bless_a be_v god_n for_o such_o a_o sharp_a check_n that_o i_o have_v for_o such_o a_o loss_n for_o such_o a_o disgrace_n for_o such_o a_o imprisonment_n for_o such_o or_o such_o a_o danger_n for_o such_o a_o languish_a sickness_n for_o such_o a_o painful_a or_o loathsome_a disease_n for_o such_o a_o wound_n for_o such_o a_o terrible_a fear_n in_o a_o grievous_a thunder_n and_o lightning_n etc._n etc._n for_o if_o i_o have_v not_o be_v thus_o or_o thus_o afflict_v &_o humble_v i_o have_v not_o know_v myself_o i_o have_v not_o regard_v god_n word_n i_o have_v never_o come_v to_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n i_o have_v perish_v in_o my_o sin_n etc._n etc._n if_o i_o have_v not_o lose_v such_o or_o such_o a_o friend_n or_o worldly_a stay_n i_o shall_v not_o have_v depend_v upon_o god_n providence_n as_o now_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n i_o see_v that_o i_o ought_v to_o do_v thus_o much_o therefore_o for_o the_o two_o former_a use_n of_o affliction_n or_o punishment_n or_o judgement_n howsoever_o we_o do_v think_v good_a to_o call_v they_o now_o three_o how_o the_o bitterness_n of_o such_o judgement_n or_o affliction_n send_v of_o god_n do_v make_v the_o salvation_n of_o god_n and_o his_o tender_a mercy_n the_o more_o sweet_a and_o comfortable_a i_o need_v not_o to_o speak_v see_v no_o man_n can_v true_o discern_v what_o sweetness_n mean_v unless_o he_o have_v taste_v before_o what_o the_o sour_a be_v final_o touch_v the_o last_o point_n it_o can_v be_v doubt_v but_o that_o special_a judgement_n of_o god_n be_v send_v to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v leave_v behind_o they_o a_o memorable_a impression_n of_o his_o reverend_a fear_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o child_n and_o so_o to_o nourish_v in_o they_o a_o continual_a care_n of_o duty_n answerable_a to_o the_o first_o entrance_n of_o their_o call_n remember_v always_o that_o the_o anger_n of_o god_n against_o sin_n be_v as_o great_a as_o any_o fear_n that_o be_v ever_o apprehend_v of_o us._n psal_n 90.11_o who_o know_v the_o power_n of_o thy_o wrath_n for_o according_a to_o thy_o fear_n be_v thy_o anger_n the_o practice_n of_o this_o memorial_n be_v commend_v unto_o we_o lament_v chapter_n 3._o verse_n 19_o 20_o 21._o in_o these_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n remember_v my_o affliction_n and_o my_o mourning_n the_o wormwood_n
our_o creation_n and_o herein_o let_v we_o all_o consider_v earnest_o what_o we_o be_v but_o one_o hundred_o of_o year_n ago_o yea_o a_o great_a deal_n less_o and_o as_o for_o many_o of_o we_o what_o be_v we_o but_o even_o a_o tewe_a year_n since_o where_o be_v we_o in_o all_o the_o world_n what_o be_v we_o be_v we_o not_o just_a nothing_o our_o own_o creation_n therefore_o may_v just_o be_v a_o strong_a argument_n unto_o we_o of_o the_o creation_n of_o all_o other_o thing_n and_o of_o the_o world_n itself_o for_o see_v that_o god_n by_o his_o almighty_a power_n have_v make_v ourselves_o in_o this_o our_o time_n as_o all_o other_o in_o ●heir_a age_n why_o shall_v it_o be_v strange_a to_o we_o to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o teach_v we_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v create_v of_o nothing_o sure_o that_o creature_n who_o have_v reason_n shall_v call_v into_o question_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o creation_n it_o be_v not_o only_o without_o reason_n but_o also_o even_o unnatural_a for_o a_o create_a nature_n have_v reason_n and_o not_o be_v pervert_v in_o itself_o must_v needs_o easy_o see_v and_o feel_o as_o it_o be_v acknowledge_v even_o from_o the_o own_o state_n the_o creation_n of_o all_o other_o creature_n we_o therefore_o put_v away_o all_o doubt_n herein_o let_v we_o proceed_v to_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o creation_n as_o the_o lord_n himself_o have_v of_o the_o same_o his_o most_o gracious_a goodness_n make_v it_o know_v unto_o us._n question_n how_o be_v that_o answer_n all_o thing_n at_o the_o beginning_n that_o be_v so_o soon_o as_o time_n itself_o have_v any_o be_v they_o be_v create_v and_o begin_v to_o take_v their_o be_v only_o by_o the_o word_n and_o commandment_n of_o god_n according_a to_o his_o own_o eternal_a decree_n in_o this_o behalf_n proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n this_o be_v indeed_o the_o t●●e_a meaning_n of_o the_o first_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a bible_n even_o of_o the_o first_o word_n of_o the_o first_o book_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n in_o the_o beginning_n say_v the_o prophet_n moses_n who_o have_v this_o testimony_n of_o god_n that_o he_o be_v very_o faithful_a heb_fw-mi ●_o 5._o god_n create_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o beginning_n that_o be_v to_o say_v e●en_o so_o soon_o as_o there_o be_v any_o beginning_n of_o any_o creature_n do_v the_o creation_n of_o all_o thing_n begin_v yea_o even_o so_o soon_o a●_n time_n itself_o begin_v the_o which_o time_n god_n make_v also_o as_o the_o measure_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o creature_n and_o work_n in_o regard_n of_o their_o first_o be_v when_o they_o begin_v and_o also_o of_o their_o continuance_n as_o they_o be_v former_a or_o latter_a even_o to_o the_o last_o end_n of_o the_o long_a time_n that_o may_v be_v of_o this_o short_a and_o transitory_a world_n according_a to_o that_o psal_n 102_o 2d_o ●6_n 27_o they_o shall_v perish_v but_o thou_o shall_v endure_v etc._n etc._n and_o 1._o cor_n 7.29_o the_o time_n be_v short_a and_o verse_n 30._o the_o fashion_n of_o this_o world_n go_v away_o and_o 1._o pet_n 4.7_o the_o end_n of_o all_o thing_n be_v at_o hand_n but_o touch_v the_o new_a heaven_n and_o the_o new_a earth_n which_o shall_v be_v establish_v the_o time_n of_o the_o continuance_n of_o this_o present_a evil_a and_o sinful_a world_n once_o end_v as_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o a_o more_o excellent_a estate_n so_o shall_v their_o continuance_n for_o ever_o be_v measure_v by_o another_o kind_n of_o measure_n even_o above_o measure_n that_o be_v by_o time_n as_o it_o be_v timeless_a for_o ever_o and_o ever_o even_o by_o time_n and_o time_n time_n without_o end_n as_o revel_v 21_o 23._o the_o city_n shall_v have_v no_o need_n of_o the_o sun_n etc._n etc._n neither_o be_v there_o any_o night_n there_o etc._n etc._n of_o the_o which_o enough_o for_o this_o time_n wherefore_o that_o we_o may_v proceed_v it_o be_v true_a also_o that_o you_o have_v answer_v that_o the_o only_a immediate_a cause_n efficient_a of_o the_o creation_n be_v the_o word_n and_o commandment_n of_o god_n without_o all_o instrument_n and_o mean_n which_o the_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a epicure_n and_o atheist_n of_o the_o world_n mock_o ask_v after_o according_a to_o the_o holy_a testimony_n of_o the_o divine_a scripture_n ps_n 33.6_o as_o it_o have_v be_v allege_v before_o and_o again_o psal_n 148.5_o he_o command_v and_o they_o be_v create_v even_o according_a to_o the_o historical_a narration_n of_o moses_n in_o this_o our_o first_o chapter_n or_o go_v god_n say_v let_v there_o be_v light_n and_o there_o be_v light_a let_v there_o be_v a_o firmament_n or_o spread_v out_o of_o the_o airy_n region_n etc._n etc._n and_o all_o be_v present_o so_o as_o god_n speak_v and_o command_v question_n but_o i_o pray_v you_o do_v you_o understand_v this_o so_o as_o if_o god_n utter_v any_o sound_n of_o word_n and_o that_o by_o the_o virtue_n thereof_o he_o create_v all_o thing_n answer_n i_o have_v be_v teach_v to_o understand_v they_o otherwise_o then_o so_o proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n there_o be_v good_a reason_n thereof_o for_o hitherto_o there_o be_v no_o use_n of_o vocal_a and_o sound_a speech_n see_v there_o be_v yet_o no_o creature_n to_o hear_v it_o nor_o instrument_n to_o sound_v it_o or_o place_n whether_o the_o sound_n thereof_o shall_v be_v carry_v no_o nor_o air_n wherein_o it_o shall_v be_v sound_v i_o mean_v at_o the_o first_o instant_n of_o the_o creation_n question_n how_o then_o have_v you_o learned_a to_o understand_v the_o speech_n and_o commanmandement_n of_o god_n at_o the_o first_o beginning_n and_o so_o forth_o in_o the_o whole_a work_n of_o creation_n answer_n it_o note_v the_o execution_n of_o his_o eternal_a decree_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o time_n decree_n locutus_fw-la est_fw-la deus_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la inquit_fw-la caluinus_fw-la aeternum_fw-la suum_fw-la decretum_fw-la protulit_fw-la comment_fw-fr in_o gen._n 1.11_o god_n have_v speak_v say_v caluin_n that_o be_v he_o have_v perform_v his_o eternal_a decree_n according_a as_o eternal_o and_o before_o all_o time_n without_o beginning_n he_o purpose_v in_o himself_o to_o accomplish_v his_o work_n by_o his_o son_n together_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v eternal_o and_o without_o all_o beginning_n the_o essential_a wisdom_n and_o power_n of_o god_n proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n thus_o indeed_o concern_v the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v the_o holy_a evangelist_n john_n most_o divine_o expound_v this_o create_a word_n chap_n 1.1_o etc._n etc._n in_o the_o beginning_n say_v he_o be_v the_o word_n and_o the_o word_n be_v god_n the_o same_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n with_o god_n all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o it_o and_o without_o it_o be_v make_v nothing_o that_o be_v make_v in_o it_o be_v life_n and_o the_o life_n be_v the_o light_n of_o man_n etc._n etc._n and_o verse_n 10._o the_o world_n be_v make_v by_o he_o etc._n etc._n and_o thenceforth_o he_o proceed_v to_o show_v that_o as_o the_o world_n be_v at_o the_o first_o make_v by_o he_o and_o set_v in_o good_a estate_n so_o it_o be_v pervert_v by_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n it_o be_v again_o renew_v &_o deliver_v from_o vanity_n and_o corruption_n by_o he_o etc._n etc._n 2._o cor._n 5.17_o and_o touch_v the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o he_o be_v as_o the_o hand_n and_o even_o the_o very_a power_n of_o god_n in_o this_o mighty_a work_n of_o his_o creation_n moses_n himself_o express_o affirm_v it_o in_o the_o second_o verse_n of_o his_o first_o chapter_n so_o then_o by_o the_o testimony_n and_o interpretation_n of_o the_o evangelist_n john_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o as_o well_o the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n at_o the_o first_o instant_n as_o afterward_o the_o whole_a disposition_n of_o they_o and_o the_o creation_n of_o all_o the_o other_o earthly_a and_o visible_a creature_n out_o of_o they_o be_v create_v by_o the_o word_n or_o speech_n and_o commandment_n of_o god_n in_o such_o sense_n as_o have_v be_v already_o expound_v question_n do_v you_o not_o see_v this_o to_o be_v plain_a from_o the_o testimony_n and_o interpretation_n of_o the_o evangelist_n john_n it_o be_v very_o clear_a and_o plain_a and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n also_o do_v as_o clear_o confirm_v the_o same_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o colos_n chap_n 1.15.16_o and_o 17._o verse_n rehearse_v you_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v they_o question_n who_o that_o be_v the_o dear_a son_n of_o god_n who_o he_o have_v mention_v a_o little_a before_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n answer_v the_o first_o beget_v of_o every_o creature_n that_o be_v eternal_o beget_v and_o have_v his_o personal_a subsistence_n from_o god_n the_o father_n before_o there_o be_v any_o
prayer_n give_v good_a king_n and_o prince_n proof_n explicatio_fw-la &_o proof_n forgive_v sin_n give_v everlasting_a life_n all_o which_o be_v work_n of_o divine_a government_n so_o there_o be_v several_a &_o express_a proof_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o they_o also_o let_v we_o therefore_o come_v to_o these_o several_a proof_n that_o we_o may_v call_v to_o mind_v some_o of_o they_o question_n and_o first_o what_o proof_n have_v you_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n do_v call_v gather_v into_o one_o and_o sanctify_v the_o church_n together_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n answer_n in_o the_o 49._o chapter_n of_o isaiah_n verse_n 6._o he_o be_v in_o this_o respect_n call_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o god_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n that_o be_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n and_o from_o the_o one_o end_n thereof_o to_o the_o other_o read_v also_o psal_n 110.2.3_o and_o chap_v 3._o verse_n 3._o and_o john_n 10.16_o other_o sheep_n have_v i_o also_o which_o be_v not_o of_o this_o fold_n they_o also_o must_v i_o bring_v and_o they_o shall_v hear_v my_o voice_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o sheep_n fold_n and_o one_o shepherd_n hereunto_o also_o tend_v that_o pprophecy_n of_o caiphas_n chap_v 11.51.52_o and_o ephes_n 5.25.26_o christ_n love_v the_o church_n &_o give_v himself_o for_o it_o that_o he_o may_v sanctify_v it_o etc._n etc._n question_n let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o next_o point_n what_o proof_n have_v you_o that_o our_o saviour_n do_v by_o divine_a authority_n institute_v a_o holy_a ministry_n answer_v in_o the_o 15._o chapter_n of_o john_n verse_n 16._o you_o have_v not_o choose_v i_o say_v our_o saviour_n to_o his_o disciple_n but_o i_o have_v choose_v you_o and_o ordain_v you_o that_o you_o go_v and_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n and_o that_o your_o fruit_n shall_v remain_v proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n this_o fruit_n be_v the_o fruit_n of_o that_o ministry_n which_o our_o saviour_n have_v ordain_v to_o that_o end_n &_o whereunto_o he_o make_v especial_a choice_n of_o those_o his_o disciple_n the_o ordination_n be_v more_o plain_o autorize_v and_o that_o not_o only_o for_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o also_o to_o all_o posterity_n matth_n cha_n 28.18.19.20_o and_o ephes_n 4_o 8._o etc._n etc._n question_n now_o what_o proof_n have_v you_o that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o deliver_v be_v divine_a and_o that_o even_o from_o his_o own_o authority_n answer_n math_n 7._o the_o last_o verse_n of_o the_o chapter_n he_o teach_v say_v the_o evangelist_n as_o one_o have_v authority_n and_o not_o as_o the_o scribe_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o with_o great_a authority_n than_o ever_o any_o other_o do_v whether_o moses_n or_o any_o of_o the_o prophet_n person_n compare_v with_o person_n or_o call_v with_o call_v so_o that_o well_o may_v the_o officer_n say_v and_o profess_v john_n 7.46_o never_o man_n speak_v like_o this_o man_n for_o the_o which_o read_v further_o heb_fw-mi chap_n 1._o vers_fw-la 2._o etc._n etc._n and_o chap_v 3._o verse_n 6.11_o etc._n etc._n and_o chap_a 12_o 25.26_o etc._n etc._n it_o will_v be_v too_o long_o for_o you_o to_o answer_v to_o all_o the_o point_n and_o to_o bring_v forth_o proof_n for_o they_o i_o will_v therefore_o more_o brief_o recite_v they_o that_o our_o saviour_n do_v by_o divine_a power_n work_v his_o miracle_n read_v matth_n 12.28_o and_o luke_n 11.20_o and_o therefore_o be_v these_o work_n of_o our_o saviour_n call_v the_o work_n of_o the_o father_n john_n 5.36_o and_o chap_v 10._o verse_n 25._o and_o verse_n 37.38_o and_o chap_n 14.10_o the_o father_n that_o dwell_v in_o i_o he_o do_v the_o work_n and_o luke_n 6.19_o virtue_n go_v out_o of_o he_o and_o he_o heal_v all_o and_o chap_v 8.8.24.25_o he_o rebuke_v the_o wind_n and_o the_o water_n and_o they_o obey_v he_o but_o of_o the_o miracle_n more_o afterward_o that_o he_o ordain_v sacrament_n not_o as_o moses_n by_o faith_n &_o as_o a_o servant_n only_o heb_fw-mi 11.28_o but_o by_o divine_a authority_n it_o be_v evident_a in_o that_o he_o command_v baptism_n in_o his_o own_o name_n &_o appoint_v the_o holy_a supper_n in_o a_o memorial_n of_o himself_o that_o he_o send_v forth_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o his_o own_o autorite_n it_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o place_n before_o allege_v matth_n 28.19_o etc._n etc._n read_v also_o before_o that_o chap_v 10.5_o &c_n &c_n and_o verse_n 16._o etc._n etc._n and_o chap_v 23.24_o that_o he_o furnish_v the_o same_o his_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n with_o spiritual_a gift_n and_o grace_n we_o may_v see_v it_o in_o the_o first_o institution_n matth_n 10.1_o &_o verse_n 7.8_o and_o luke_n 21.15_o i_o will_v give_v you_o a_o mouth_n and_o wisdom_n wher-against_a all_o your_o adversary_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o speak_v nor_o resist_v and_o john_n 20._o verse_n 22.23_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n experience_n also_o show_v it_o to_o be_v so_o even_o to_o this_o day_n though_o not_o in_o so_o extraordinary_a and_o miraculous_a a_o manner_n according_a to_o that_o ephes_n 4.11.12_o etc._n etc._n that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v by_o the_o ministry_n and_o preach_v of_o his_o gospel_n effectual_o inlighten_v regenerate_v guide_n comfort_n and_o strengthen_v the_o hearer_n of_o it_o the_o same_o place_n last_o allege_v may_v be_v a_o notable_a proof_n of_o it_o read_v also_o act_v 26.18_o and_o the_o place_n before_o allege_v john_n 15._o ver_fw-la 16._o day_o experience_n confirm_v it_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o this_o day_n mark_v 16.20_o and_o 1._o corinth_n 14.3_o he_o that_o prophesi_v speak_v unto_o man_n to_o edify_v and_o to_o exhortation_n and_o to_o comfort_v and_o 2._o tim_n 3.16.17_o that_o our_o saviour_n have_v a_o divine_a knowledge_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v the_o thing_n that_o he_o foretold_v while_o he_o be_v here_o on_o earth_n do_v sufficient_o testify_v matth_n 24._o and_o chap_v 25._o and_o after_o his_o ascension_n act_n 9_o verse_n 15.16_o and_o revelat_fw-la 1._o verse_n 1._o and_o chap_v 22.16_o i_o jesus_n have_v send_v my_o angel_n to_o testify_v unto_o you_o these_o thing_n in_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n that_o the_o same_o our_o saviour_n hear_v prayer_n it_o be_v evident_a not_o only_o in_o that_o god_n hear_v we_o pray_v in_o his_o name_n like_v as_o we_o be_v also_o baptize_v in_o his_o name_n but_o also_o because_o faithful_a christian_n be_v describe_v to_o be_v such_o as_o make_v their_o prayer_n unto_o he_o 1._o corinth_n 1._o verse_n 2._o that_o he_o give_v good_a king_n and_o prince_n for_o the_o defence_n and_o comfort_n of_o his_o church_n read_v prou_z 8.15.16_o by_o i_o king_n reign_n and_o prince_n decree_v justice_n by_o i_o prince_n rule_v and_o the_o noble_n and_o all_o judge_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o he_o forgive_v sin_n it_o be_v likewise_o evident_a in_o that_o baptism_n the_o seal_n and_o assurance_n of_o forgiveness_n be_v minister_v in_o his_o name_n for_o so_o it_o be_v express_o sa●d_v that_o baptism_n be_v appoint_v of_o god_n to_o that_o end_n mark_n 1.4_o act_n 2.38_o &_o ch_z 22.16_o it_o be_v likewise_o evident_a matth_n 9.6_o the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v authority_n to_o forgive_v sin_n in_o earth_n now_o have_v have_v that_o power_n on_o earth_n no_o doubt_n but_o he_o have_v it_o in_o heaven_n moreover_o john_n 1.12_o he_o give_v power_n to_o such_o as_o believe_v in_o he_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o cha_n 8.34_o etc._n etc._n whosoever_o commit_v sin_n be_v the_o servant_n of_o sin_n etc._n etc._n but_o if_o the_o son_n make_v you_o free_a you_o shall_v be_v free_a in_o deed_n and_o act_n 7_o 6●_n stephen_n pray_v to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n that_o he_o will_v not_o lay_v the_o sin_n of_o his_o persecutor_n to_o their_o charge_n final_o that_o our_o saviour_n have_v power_n to_o give_v everlasting_a life_n he_o himself_o assure_v we_o john_n 5.21_o say_v as_o the_o father_n raise_v up_o the_o dead_a &_o quicken_v they_o so_o the_o son_n quicken_v who_o he_o will_n and_o chap_v 6.40_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n and_o chap_v 10.27.28_o my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n etc._n etc._n and_o i_o give_v they_o eternal_a life_n read_v also_o philipp_n 3.20.21_o now_o therefore_o see_v all_o these_o work_n both_o of_o creation_n and_o also_o of_o government_n general_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n &_o more_o special_o over_o the_o church_n with_o all_o the_o gracious_a prerogative_n and_o gratuity_n thereof_o which_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o power_n &_o bounty_n of_o the_o godhead_n be_v ascribe_v
evangelist_n s_o matthew_n record_n and_o that_o with_o some_o enlargement_n in_o some_o point_n and_o therefore_o we_o will_v here_o set_v down_o his_o word_n also_o which_o be_v these_o then_o the_o soldier_n of_o the_o governor_n take_v jesus_n into_o the_o common_a hall_n or_o praetorium_n that_o be_v as_o we_o may_v perceive_v by_o the_o word_n of_o s._n mark_v the_o hall_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o praetor_n or_o roman_a governor_n and_o they_o gather_v about_o he_o the_o whole_a band_n and_o they_o strip_v he_o and_o put_v upon_o he_o a_o scarlet_a robe_n like_a enough_o it_o be_v a_o dark_a or_o sad_a scarlet_n incline_v to_o purple_a or_o a_o very_a bright_a purple_a incline_v to_o scarlet_a and_o therefore_o be_v call_v purple_a by_o s._n mark_n &_o scarlet_a by_o s._n matthew_n it_o matter_a not_o great_o what_o the_o very_a proper_a colour_n of_o the_o garment_n be_v and_o they_o plait_v a_o crown_n of_o thorn_n and_o put_v it_o upon_o his_o head_n and_o as_o s._n matthew_n add_v moreover_o and_o above_o that_o we_o read_v in_o s._n mark_v a_o reed_n in_o his_o right_a hand_n and_o bow_v their_o knee_n before_o he_o they_o mock_v he_o say_v god_n save_o thou_o or_o hale_v thou_o o_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o spit_v upon_o he_o they_o take_v the_o reed_n &_o smite_v he_o on_o the_o head_n thus_o when_o they_o have_v mock_v he_o they_o take_v the_o robe_n from_o he_o &_o put_v his_o own_o raiment_n on_o he_o and_o lead_v he_o away_o to_o crucify_v he_o these_o most_o vile_a &_o unworthy_a abuse_n pilate_n soldier_n thus_o record_v by_o both_o the_o euang_n s._n matthew_n &_o mark_n may_v worthy_o be_v account_v as_o a_o appendix_n or_o shut_v uppe_o of_o the_o act_n of_o our_o saviour_n his_o unjust_a condemnation_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o pilate_n who_o have_v so_o often_o already_o and_o even_o immediate_o before_o he_o give_v sentence_n justify_v he_o and_o further_o howsoever_o these_o evangelist_n do_v so_o write_v as_o if_o our_o saviour_n be_v now_o first_o of_o all_o thus_o ill_o entreat_v as_o it_o may_v seem_v by_o that_o they_o write_v that_o the_o soldier_n at_o this_o time_n strip_v our_o most_o bless_a saviour_n etc._n etc._n yet_o by_o the_o evangelist_n john_n we_o have_v see_v expresslie_o already_o that_o as_o our_o saviour_n be_v scourge_v before_o he_o be_v condemn_v so_o also_o he_o be_v in_o like_a manner_n thus_o abuse_v since_o which_o time_n also_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v plain_a by_o the_o same_o evangelist_n john_n chap_v 19.5_o that_o the_o crown_n of_o thorn_n and_o purple_a garment_n once_o put_v on_o be_v not_o take_v of_o till_o he_o have_v be_v the_o second_o time_n most_o contemptuous_o reproach_v the_o two_o former_a evangelist_n therefore_o do_v note_v the_o second_o contempt_n in_o the_o due_a place_n but_o not_o the_o first_o disguise_v of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o time_n thereof_o like_v as_o the_o evangelist_n john_n record_v the_o former_a also_o write_v nothing_o of_o the_o latter_a so_o that_o we_o be_v by_o due_a and_o reverend_a conference_n to_o understand_v the_o one_o by_o the_o other_o and_o from_o they_o all_o to_o learn_v one_o and_o the_o same_o truth_n of_o the_o whole_a matter_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o reveal_v it_o unto_o we_o by_o they_o all_o and_o thus_o we_o have_v the_o whole_a history_n of_o the_o condemnation_n of_o our_o saviour_n before_o we_o with_o all_o thing_n appertain_v thereunto_o both_o immediate_o go_v before_o and_o also_o immediate_o follow_v after_o as_o the_o proper_a appurtenance_n of_o the_o same_o the_o order_n of_o which_o thing_n be_v this_o first_o the_o place_n from_o whence_o pilate_n give_v sentence_n second_o the_o time_n when_o it_o be_v give_v john_n chap_n 19_o vers_fw-la 13.14_o thirdlie_o the_o message_n which_o pilate_n wife_n send_v her_o husband_n when_o he_o be_v set_v down_o upon_o the_o judgement_n seat_n matth_n chap_v 27.19_o fourthlie_o the_o contention_n of_o pilate_n against_o the_o jew_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v have_v quiet_v &_o stay_v they_o from_o their_o enterprise_n yet_o at_o the_o last_o joh_n 19.14.15_o fiftlie_o the_o most_o furious_a and_o desperate_a obstinacy_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o their_o persist_v in_o the_o same_o 15._o verse_n and_o luke_n 23.27_o sixth_o pilate_n wash_v of_o his_o hand_n matth_n 27._o verse_n 24._o and_o upon_o this_o the_o extreme_a madness_n and_o impiety_n of_o the_o jew_n renew_v verse_n 25._o seventh_o the_o sentence_n itself_o luke_n 23._o verse_n 24.25_o and_o final_o the_o most_o licentious_a profane_a and_o impious_a petulancy_n of_o the_o soldier_n in_o their_o abuse_n of_o our_o saviour_n of_o these_o thing_n therefore_o let_v we_o i_o pray_v you_o stand_v a_o while_n to_o consider_v in_o the_o same_o course_n and_o order_n that_o we_o have_v now_o rehearse_v they_o and_o first_o concern_v the_o place_n from_o whence_o our_o saviour_n be_v condemn_v by_o pilate_n the_o chief_a magistrate_n and_o governor_n over_o the_o jew_n under_o the_o roman_a emperor_n it_o be_v describe_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o evangelist_n john_n by_o two_o name_n the_o one_o in_o the_o greek_a language_n the_o other_o in_o the_o hebrewe_n the_o greek_a be_v lithostroton_n signify_v that_o it_o be_v a_o place_n curious_o pave_v and_o lay_v with_o stonework_n the_o hebrewe_n name_n be_v gabbatha_n come_v of_o gabbah_n which_o signify_v to_o lift_v up_o give_v to_o understand_v that_o it_o be_v a_o place_n build_v in_o stately_a manner_n to_o the_o use_n of_o give_v judgement_n out_o of_o the_o same_o the_o which_o be_v so_o diligent_o note_v by_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n it_o must_v in_o no_o wise_n be_v neglect_v not_o only_o for_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o history_n but_o also_o for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n in_o so_o much_o as_o god_n will_v to_o singular_a purpose_n have_v our_o saviour_n condemn_v to_o death_n as_o also_o after_o to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n not_o secret_o &_o obscure_o or_o tumultuouslie_o as_o stephen_n be_v stone_v but_o in_o a_o solemn_a manner_n from_o a_o theatre_n as_o it_o be_v to_o the_o view_n of_o all_o the_o world_n both_o of_o jew_n and_o gentile_n that_o all_o may_v see_v in_o our_o saviour_n christ_n his_o condemnation_n first_o the_o deserve_a condemnation_n of_o we_o all_o and_o then_o that_o we_o have_v no_o other_o mean_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v clear_v and_o acquit_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o almighty_a god_n but_o through_o he_o alone_o the_o like_a be_v to_o be_v observe_v concern_v the_o time_n which_o be_v as_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n do_v of_o purpose_n expresslie_o mention_v at_o the_o preparation_n of_o the_o passeover_n that_o be_v on_o the_o day_n wherein_o the_o jew_n prepare_v themselves_o and_o make_v preparation_n every_o family_n for_o to_o eat_v their_o lamb_n at_o the_o evening_n in_o thankful_a remembrance_n of_o their_o most_o favourable_a deliverance_n out_o of_o egypt_n at_o such_o time_n as_o god_n smite_v all_o the_o first_o bear_v of_o the_o egyptian_n with_o death_n all_o in_o one_o night_n both_o of_o man_n &_o beast_n so_o that_o the_o condemnation_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v at_o such_o a_o time_n as_o the_o jew_n make_v their_o special_a resort_n to_o jerusalem_n out_o of_o all_o their_o tribe_n yea_o and_o like_a enough_o many_o proselyte_n out_o of_o other_o nation_n wherein_o also_o it_o may_v the_o more_o lively_o appear_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v now_o in_o prepare_v for_o the_o offer_v up_o of_o his_o most_o holy_a sacrifice_n upon_o the_o cross_n be_v the_o true_a lamb_n ordain_v of_o god_n &_o the_o true_a passeover_n unto_o all_o that_o shall_v believe_v in_o his_o name_n to_o turn_v away_o the_o everlasting_a wrath_n of_o god_n from_o they_o &_o to_o procure_v and_o purchase_v they_o his_o eternal_a salvation_n thus_o the_o time_n of_o the_o condemnation_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o well_o as_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o be_v most_o open_a &_o famous_a to_o singular_a end_n &_o purpose_n by_o the_o most_o holy_a counsel_n &_o appointment_n of_o god_n yea_o &_o herein_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o refuse_v to_o defer_v the_o execution_n of_o his_o counsel_n in_o this_o behalf_n a_o day_n long_o than_o his_o appointment_n be_v that_o the_o passeover_n shall_v have_v be_v celebrate_v by_o reason_n that_o the_o jew_n by_o their_o abusive_a custom_n have_v alter_v the_o day_n as_o be_v heretofore_o observe_v when_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o time_n wherein_o our_o saviour_n do_v celebrate_v the_o passeover_n with_o his_o disciple_n which_o be_v the_o evening_n b●fore_o moreover_o as_o touch_v the_o time_n of_o the_o condemnation_n of_o our_o saviour_n the_o evangelist_n john_n do_v yet_o mo●e_n particular_o express_v
he_o go_v up_o into_o heaven_n thus_o in_o many_o place_n and_o in_o more_o than_o have_v be_v now_o rehearse_v the_o new_a testament_n be_v plentiful_a in_o the_o confirmation_n and_o open_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n concern_v the_o come_n of_o our_o saviour_n from_o heaven_n to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a but_o that_o we_o may_v consider_v of_o this_o article_n in_o as_o commodious_a a_o manner_n as_o we_o may_v question_n in_o what_o order_n may_v we_o inquire_v into_o it_o answer_n first_o of_o all_o as_o i_o have_v hear_v you_o teach_v we_o may_v from_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n commodious_o consider_v of_o the_o time_n of_o our_o saviour_n come_v to_o judgement_n second_o of_o the_o sign_n that_o shall_v go_v before_o his_o come_n three_o of_o the_o place_n from_o whence_o and_o whether_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o give_v judgement_n four_o of_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o come_n five_o of_o the_o person_n who_o he_o shall_v judge_v six_o of_o the_o order_n of_o his_o proceed_n to_o judgement_n seventh_o of_o the_o sentence_n and_o judgement_n itself_o what_o it_o shall_v be_v and_o according_a to_o what_o rule_n or_o law_n it_o shall_v be_v give_v final_o of_o the_o present_a execution_n of_o the_o sentence_n or_o judgement_n so_o soon_o as_o it_o shall_v be_v award_v and_o give_v ex._n in_o this_o order_n indeed_o as_o i_o suppose_v we_o may_v well_o consider_v of_o the_o ground_n and_o warrant_v of_o this_o article_n from_o those_o manifold_a proof_n &_o testimony_n which_o it_o have_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o thing_n well_o observe_v we_o may_v thenceforth_o easy_o gather_v both_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o article_n and_o also_o the_o promise_n together_o with_o the_o comfort_n and_o duty_n belong_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o it_o and_o last_o of_o all_o what_o the_o danger_n be_v of_o not_o believe_v this_o article_n let_v we_o therefore_o hold_v ourselves_o to_o this_o order_n first_o of_o all_o therefore_o that_o we_o may_v begin_v with_o the_o time_n proof_n question_n answer_n explication_n &_o proof_n when_o shall_v our_o saviour_n come_v to_o execute_v this_o last_o judgement_n he_o will_v come_v again_o to_o this_o end_n &_o purpose_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n &_o not_o before_o so_o indeed_o do_v diverse_a place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n express_o affirm_v and_o namely_o matth._n 13.39_o 40._o the_o harvest_n be_v that_o be_v it_o represent_v the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o reaper_n to_o be_v the_o angel_n as_o then_o the_o tare_n be_v gather_v &_o burn_v in_o the_o fire_n to_o wit_n at_o the_o harvest_n so_o shall_v it_o be_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v concern_v the_o wicked_a as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o parable_n and_o again_o verse_n 49._o so_o shall_v it_o be_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o angel_n shall_v go_v forth_o and_o sever_v the_o bad_a from_o among_o the_o just_a and_o 1._o cor._n 15.24_o then_o shall_v be_v the_o end_n when_o he_o have_v deliver_v up_o the_o kingdom_n to_o god_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o he_o will_v not_o come_v till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v evident_a from_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o angel_n act._n 1.10_o 11._o and_o of_o the_o apostle_n peter_n chap._n 3.21_o of_o the_o same_o history_n but_o the_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o we_o will_v chief_o stay_v upon_o to_o this_o purpose_n as_o also_o for_o the_o sign_n go_v before_o his_o come_n &_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o point_n to_o be_v observe_v concern_v this_o article_n be_v the_o 24._o &_o 25._o chap._n of_o s._n matt._n with_o who_o accord_n the_o evangelist_n mark_v ch_n 13._o &_o luk._n 17.23_o &c_n &c_n and_n chap._n 21._o here_o therefore_o let_v we_o stay_v and_o as_o it_o be_v pitch_n and_o fasten_v the_o stake_n of_o our_o tent_n till_o we_o may_v finish_v this_o so_o necessary_a and_o notable_a a_o doctrine_n insomuch_o as_o our_o saviour_n in_o these_o place_n as_o a_o most_o wise_a and_o careful_a shepherd_n as_o he_o be_v compapare_v jer._n 31.10_o 11_o 12._o and_o ezek._n chap._n 34.1_o &c_n &c_n verse_n 22_o 23_o 24._o and_o as_o he_o do_v compare_v himself_o diverse_a time_n in_o the_o holy_a gospel_n lead_v we_o into_o a_o very_a sweet_a and_o battlesome_a pasture_n in_o special_a manner_n prepare_v for_o we_o to_o the_o same_o very_a end_n and_o purpose_n question_n and_o first_o what_o do_v our_o saviour_n teach_v we_o in_o these_o holy_a scripture_n concern_v the_o time_n of_o his_o come_n to_o judgement_n answer_n in_o the_o 24._o of_o matthew_n verse_n 3._o the_o disciple_n of_o our_o saviour_n desire_v he_o to_o tell_v they_o what_o sign_n there_o shall_v be_v of_o his_o come_n end_n of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n he_o answer_v so_o as_o he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o satisfy_v they_o according_a to_o their_o demand_n as_o he_o do_v teach_v they_o what_o use_v both_o they_o and_o we_o also_o be_v to_o make_v of_o so_o huge_a and_o fearful_a a_o judgement_n of_o god_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n it_o be_v true_a and_o it_o be_v well_o worthy_a to_o be_v observe_v that_o as_o the_o disciple_n do_v join_v both_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n which_o our_o saviour_n have_v immediate_o foretold_v and_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n together_o because_o in_o their_o conceit_n the_o world_n be_v like_a to_o end_v with_o the_o desolation_n of_o the_o temple_n it_o be_v so_o goodly_a &_o firm_a a_o building_n so_o do_v our_o saviour_n link_v and_o intermix_v the_o answer_n to_o the_o one_o with_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o other_o as_o we_o may_v perceive_v verse_n 4._o and_o so_o forth_o to_o the_o 14._o yet_o so_o as_o afterward_o he_o do_v somewhat_o more_o distinct_o answer_v unto_o they_o namely_o to_o the_o former_a question_n concern_v the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n from_o the_o 15._o verse_n to_o the_o 29._o and_o to_o the_o latter_a question_n concern_v the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n from_o that_o 29._o verse_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chap._n and_o likewise_o in_o the_o 25._o chap._n and_o yet_o again_o he_o do_v not_o answer_v so_o distinct_o but_o that_o there_o be_v some_o speech_n interchangeable_o intermix_v which_o concern_v the_o other_o rather_o than_o that_o which_o be_v most_o what_o speak_v of_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v make_v the_o use_n of_o either_o of_o they_o mutual_o more_o effectual_a as_o we_o shall_v perceive_v by_o the_o course_n of_o the_o text_n let_v we_o therefore_o come_v to_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o first_o more_o general_o concern_v the_o argument_n of_o either_o question_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o chapter_n to_o the_o 15._o verse_n qu._n which_o be_v they_o an._n 1_o jesus_n say_v the_o evangelist_n matthew_n go_v out_o and_o depart_v from_o the_o temple_n and_o his_o disciple_n come_v to_o he_o to_o show_v he_o the_o build_n of_o the_o temple_n 2_o and_o jesus_n say_v unto_o they_o see_v you_o not_o all_o these_o thing_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v here_o leave_v a_o stone_n upon_o a_o stone_n conceit_n our_o saviour_n last_o farewell_n to_o the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n f_o we_o common_a calamity_n to_o be_v expect_v in_o the_o world_n 1._o seducement_n by_o false_a christ_n 2._o war_n 3._o famine_n 4._o plague_n or_o pestilence_n 5._o earthquake_n saint_n luke_n add_v a_o sixth_o even_o great_a ●ignes_n from_o heaven_n chap._n 21.11_o five_o grievous_a trial_n or_o tentation_n more_o proper_a to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n 1._o rigorous_a proceed_v of_o prince_n and_o ruler_n against_o christian_n by_o whip_v imprison_a and_o kill_v of_o they_o 2._o a_o general_a hatred_n of_o all_o not_o convert_v to_o the_o gospel_n against_o they_o 3._o persecution_n and_o betray_n by_o false_a brethren_n &_o near_a kinsman_n 4._o false_a prophet_n 5._o weak_a and_o loose_a proses●●urs_n such_o as_o god_n call_v luke_o warm_a our_o thought_n ought_v obedient_o to_o attend_v upon_o the_o ministry_n and_o not_o turn_v a●de_v to_o any_o of_o our_o own_o carnal_a conceit_n that_o shall_v not_o be_v cast_v down_o 3_o and_o as_o he_o sit_v upon_o the_o mount_n of_o olive_n his_o disciple_n come_v to_o he_o apart_o say_v tell_v we_o when_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v &_o what_o sign_n shall_v be_v of_o thy_o come_n &_o of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 4_o and_o jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o they_o take_v heed_n that_o no_o man_n deceive_v you_o 5_o for_o many_o shall_v come_v in_o my_o name_n say_v i_o be_o christ_n and_o shall_v deceive_v many_o 6_o and_o you_o shall_v hear_v of_o war_n and_o rumour_n of_o
it_o be_v evident_a from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n already_o interpret_v it_o shall_v not_o be_v needful_a to_o stand_v upon_o any_o further_a confirmation_n of_o it_o promise_n the_o promise_n likewise_o also_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o come_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o his_o last_o judgement_n have_v be_v sufficient_o confirm_v from_o the_o same_o scripture_n which_o have_v already_o be_v allege_v and_o interpret_v and_o namely_o in_o that_o our_o saviour_n himself_o have_v express_o assure_v we_o that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o be_v that_o he_o himself_o both_o shall_v and_o will_v come_v in_o his_o glory_n to_o this_o very_a end_n and_o purpose_n math._n 24.30_o and_o chap._n 25_o 31._o and_o again_o john_n 14.3_o and_o chapter_n 21._o verse_n 22._o and_o in_o sundry_a place_n beside_o moreover_o the_o apostle_n peter_n in_o his_o 2._o ep._n chapter_n 3_o do_v mighty_o confirm_v it_o against_o the_o mocker_n of_o these_o last_o day_n of_o the_o world_n of_o who_o he_o prophesy_v long_o before_o that_o they_o will_v contemptuous_o reject_v this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o second_o come_v of_o our_o saviour_n say_v where_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o his_o come_n the_o apostle_n peter_n i_o say_v do_v there_o mighty_o confirm_v that_o the_o same_o promise_n shall_v most_o assure_o be_v perform_v to_o the_o intolerable_a terror_n and_o smart_n of_o all_o such_o prophage_n and_o ungodly_a atheist_n the_o lord_n say_v he_o be_v not_o slack_a concern_v his_o promise_n as_o some_o man_n count_v slackness_n but_o he_o be_v patient_a towards_o we_o and_o will_v have_v no_o man_n to_o perish_v but_o will_v all_o man_n to_o come_v to_o repentance_n but_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n will_v come_v as_o a_o thief_n in_o the_o night_n comfort_n the_o comfort_n thus_o therefore_o insomuch_o as_o the_o promise_n be_v so_o evident_a from_o that_o which_o have_v already_o be_v observe_v let_v we_o without_o any_o further_a delay_n come_v to_o the_o use_n of_o this_o article_n question_n and_o first_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o require_v yet_o some_o further_a explication_n what_o may_v be_v from_o hence_o the_o comfort_n thereof_o answer_n the_o comfort_n hereof_o be_v exceed_v great_a to_o all_o true_a believer_n even_o in_o the_o expectation_n of_o it_o but_o infinite_o much_o more_o comfortable_a shall_v it_o be_v when_o this_o promise_n of_o his_o come_n to_o judgement_n shall_v be_v perform_v and_o that_o in_o diverse_a respect_n question_n it_o both_o be_v and_o shall_v be_v thus_o comfortable_a in_o deed_n diverse_a way_n show_v therefore_o how_o this_o may_v be_v which_o be_v those_o diverse_a respect_n that_o you_o speak_v of_o answer_n first_o it_o be_v very_o comfortable_a as_o touch_v the_o expectation_n so_o often_o as_o we_o think_v of_o it_o insomuch_o as_o no_o other_o shall_v be_v our_o judge_n but_o he_o that_o have_v love_v we_o so_o dear_o that_o he_o have_v give_v his_o life_n for_o we_o and_o will_v for_o ever_o be_v our_o most_o merciful_a saviour_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n this_o consideration_n minister_v very_o great_a comfort_n in_o deed_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n it_o be_v that_o as_o we_o have_v see_v before_o our_o saviour_n after_o that_o he_o have_v speak_v at_o large_a of_o those_o fearful_a sign_n the_o forerunner_n of_o his_o come_n to_o judgement_n he_o do_v nevertheless_o comfort_v his_o disciple_n say_v as_o we_o may_v remember_v luk_n 21.28_o etc._n etc._n when_o these_o thing_n begin_v to_o come_v to_o pass_v then_o look_v up_o and_o lift_v up_o your_o head_n for_o your_o redemption_n draw_v near_o to_o the_o which_o purpose_n also_o serve_v that_o sweet_a parable_n which_o he_o use_v to_o describe_v the_o greatness_n of_o this_o comfort_n in_o that_o all_o the_o fearful_a sign_n of_o his_o come_n shall_v be_v but_o as_o the_o token_n of_o a_o most_o welcome_a summer_n after_o the_o cold_a and_o troublesome_a storm_n of_o winter_n for_o then_o say_v our_o saviour_n know_v you_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v near_o yea_o even_o that_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n and_o felicity_n wherein_o all_o the_o faithful_a shall_v not_o only_o be_v deliver_v from_o all_o reproach_n and_o misery_n but_o also_o be_v partaker_n of_o all_o happiness_n and_o glory_n so_o that_o like_a as_o the_o faithful_a subject_n of_o a_o love_a prince_n be_v great_o comfort_v against_o the_o present_a oppression_n and_o crucity_n which_o any_o rise_v up_o in_o rebellion_n do_v exercise_n upon_o than_o and_o their_o good_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o hear_v that_o their_o prince_n haste_v to_o come_v with_o his_o royal_a army_n to_o suppress_v the_o rebel_n yea_o though_o their_o trouble_n continue_v yet_o many_o day_n before_o all_o thing_n can_v be_v well_o quite_v so_o likewise_o yea_o infinite_o much_o more_o comfortable_a to_o the_o godly_a may_v the_o expectation_n of_o the_o come_n of_o our_o most_o gracious_a and_o mighty_a king_n and_o saviour_n be_v which_o here_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o prophet_n malachi_n chap._n 4._o verse_n 3._o compare_v this_o time_n to_o the_o comfortable_a rise_n of_o the_o sun_n for_o behold_v say_v he_o the_o day_n come_v that_o shall_v burn_v as_o a_o even_o and_o all_o the_o proud_a yea_o and_o all_o that_o do_v wicked_o shall_v be_v stubble_n etc._n etc._n but_o unto_o you_o that_o fear_v my_o name_n shall_v the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n arise_v and_o health_n shall_v be_v under_o his_o wing_n etc._n etc._n and_o psal_n 49._o verse_n 14._o as_o the_o verse_n be_v common_o distinguish_v the_o same_o time_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v compare_v to_o the_o cheerful_a morning_n after_o a_o tedious_a dark_a and_o uncomfortable_a night_n for_o then_o say_v the_o holy_a prophet_n shall_v the_o righteous_a have_v dominion_n over_o the_o wicked_a in_o that_o morning_n ido_n mané_fw-fr upon_o which_o word_n f._n jun_n note_v as_o much_o as_o be_v say_v before_o in_o the_o allegation_n of_o the_o prophet_n malachi_n hillo_o inquit_fw-la manè_fw-la quo_fw-la resurgunt_fw-la pij_fw-la quasi_fw-la ex_fw-la nocte_fw-la sepulchri_fw-la cum_fw-la videlicet_fw-la sol_fw-la iustitiae_fw-la orietur_fw-la christus_fw-la secundo_fw-la svo_fw-la adventu_fw-la mal._n 4._o in_o that_o morning_n say_v he_o in_o the_o which_o the_o godly_a do_v rise_v again_o as_o it_o be_v from_o the_o night_n of_o the_o grave_n that_o be_v to_o say_v at_o such_o time_n as_o christ_n the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n shall_v arise_v at_o his_o come_n and_o upon_o the_o same_o word_n master_n caluin_n say_v likewise_o aduentus_fw-la domini_fw-la iustar_fw-la aurorae_fw-la erit_fw-la qua_fw-la tam_fw-la electi_fw-la quam_fw-la reprobi_fw-la svo_fw-la modo_fw-la evigilent_a priores_fw-la seilicet_fw-la quia_fw-la excussa_fw-la tarditate_fw-la &_o pigritia_fw-la discussis_fw-la etiam_fw-la nebulis_fw-la claro_fw-la intuitu_fw-la fancy_n adfaciem_fw-la christum_fw-la solemn_a iustitiae_fw-la &_o in_o co_fw-la plenum_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la fulgorem_fw-la cernent_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v like_o the_o break_n of_o the_o day_n in_o the_o which_o as_o well_o the_o elect_v as_o the_o reprobate_n shall_v awake_v after_o their_o differ_a manner_n to_o wit_n the_o former_a have_v shake_v off_o all_o sluggishness_n and_o scatter_v away_o all_o cloud_n they_o shall_v clear_o behold_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o righteousness_n face_n to_o face_n and_o in_o he_o the_o full_a brightness_n of_o life_n etc._n etc._n the_o apostle_n peter_n call_v this_o time_n the_o time_n of_o refresh_v from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o time_n of_o the_o restore_n of_o all_o thing_n act._n 3.19_o 20._o the_o apostle_n paul_n speak_v of_o it_o as_o of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n what_o manner_n of_o one_o they_o shall_v be_v at_o their_o enjoy_n of_o the_o full_a fruit_n not_o only_o of_o the_o redemption_n of_o their_o soul_n but_o also_o of_o their_o body_n rom._n 8_o 18_o etc._n etc._n 23._o read_v also_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n philip._n 3.20_o 21._o colos_n 3.4_o and_o the_o apostle_n john_n 1._o epist_n 3.2_o likewise_o revel_v 21.1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7._o and_o verse_n 9.10_o etc._n etc._n it_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o time_n of_o a_o most_o joyful_a marriage_n and_o at_o that_o day_n the_o faithful_a not_o only_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n but_o also_o all_o other_o shall_v be_v crown_v with_o the_o crown_n of_o immortal_a glory_n 1._o pet._n 5.4_o and_o 1._o thes_n 2.19_o 20_o and_o 2._o tim._n 4.8_o they_o shall_v also_o be_v endue_v with_o a_o most_o rich_a and_o everlasting_a heavenly_a inheritance_n together_o with_o the_o same_o eternal_a glory_n and_o praise_n 1._o pet._n 1.3_o 4_o 7._o final_o as_o be_v declare_v before_o at_o this_o time_n all_o the_o godly_a though_o special_o the_o apostle_n
field_n moreover_o in_o that_o he_o compare_v it_o to_o a_o crown_n revel_v 2.10_o yea_o to_o a_o incorruptible_a crown_n of_o glory_n 1._o pet_n 5.4_o now_o all_o these_o thing_n as_o we_o know_v they_o be_v matter_n of_o great_a reckon_n here_o among_o man_n i_o mean_v riches_n and_o possession_n special_o the_o inheritance_n and_o posse_fw-la sion_fw-la of_o a_o kingdom_n and_o therefore_o most_o just_o may_v the_o durable_a riches_n and_o inheritance_n of_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v of_o most_o precious_a account_n with_o us._n but_o beside_o these_o let_v we_o come_v to_o our_o own_o person_n and_o see_v what_o they_o shall_v be_v of_o the_o which_o it_o be_v say_v first_o concern_v our_o body_n that_o in_o this_o everlasting_a life_n they_o shall_v be_v make_v glorious_a and_o immortal_a to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v meet_a receptacle_n and_o habitation_n for_o our_o soul_n wherefore_o see_v our_o body_n shall_v shine_v like_o the_o star_n of_o the_o firmament_n dan_o 12_o 3._o yea_o like_v to_o the_o sun_n mat_n 13.43_o yea_o see_a our_o body_n shall_v be_v make_v like_o to_o the_o glorious_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n philip_n 3.21_o how_o great_a then_o shall_v be_v the_o excellency_n and_o glory_n of_o our_o soul_n at_o that_o day_n we_o shall_v no_o doubt_n at_o that_o time_n be_v as_o a_o bright_a shine_a temple_n for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o dwell_v in_o for_o ever_o and_o ever_o our_o body_n be_v now_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n through_o our_o saviour_n christ_n though_o they_o be_v yet_o mortal_a and_o sinful_a 1._o cor_n 6.19_o much_o more_o therefore_o shall_v they_o be_v so_o at_o the_o resurrection_n our_o estate_n and_o condition_n as_o it_o shall_v be_v then_o be_v compare_v to_o a_o perpetual_a sabbath_n and_o bless_a rest_n with_o the_o lord_n to_o rejoice_v before_o he_o in_o all_o spiritual_a duty_n which_o he_o have_v prepare_v for_o we_o to_o exercise_v ourselves_o in_o according_a to_o that_o which_o be_v write_v isai_n 66.21.22.23_o revel_v 5.11.12_o etc._n etc._n and_o chap_n 7._o verse_n 10._o and_o chap_n 14.2_o thus_o much_o for_o the_o meaning_n of_o this_o article_n question_n now_o in_o the_o next_o place_n what_o promise_n have_v we_o that_o the_o inheritance_n of_o this_o everlasting_a life_n belong_v to_o every_o true_a and_o faithful_a member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n answer_n in_o the_o 11._o chap_n of_o saint_n john_n verse_n 25.26_o our_o saviour_n say_v to_o martha_n i_o be_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o though_o he_o be_v dead_a yet_o shall_v he_o live_v and_o whosoever_o live_v and_o believe_v in_o i_o shall_v never_o die_v believe_v thou_o this_o say_v our_o saviour_n explication_n explication_n in_o this_o scripture_n after_o that_o martha_n have_v make_v profession_n of_o her_o faith_n to_o our_o saviour_n concern_v the_o general_a resurrection_n at_o the_o last_o day_n according_a to_o the_o common_a faith_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n as_o have_v be_v declare_v before_o but_o yet_o not_o be_v able_a perfect_o to_o believe_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n can_v present_o raise_v up_o her_o brother_n lazarus_n who_o have_v be_v dead_a four_o day_n in_o his_o grave_n he_o do_v by_o this_o speech_n of_o he_o relieve_v the_o weakness_n of_o her_o faith_n in_o this_o particular_a by_o set_v down_o a_o general_a doctrine_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o his_o divine_a power_n not_o only_o touch_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n and_o therewithal_o of_o the_o reunit_n of_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n together_o but_o also_o concern_v the_o continuance_n of_o the_o life_n of_o the_o same_o body_n together_o with_o the_o soul_n for_o ever_o to_o this_o purpose_n he_o say_v first_o in_o this_o text_n i_o be_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n that_o be_v he_o by_o who_o both_o merit_n of_o death_n and_o also_o efficacy_n of_o divine_a power_n the_o body_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a both_o man_n and_o woman_n shall_v be_v raise_v up_o again_o to_o everlasting_a life_n according_a as_o else_o where_o it_o be_v write_v that_o life_n be_v in_o he_o and_o that_o he_o quicken_v who_o he_o will_v john_n 1_o 4._o and_o chap_n 5_o 21._o and_o 1._o ep_v 5.20_o that_o he_o together_o with_o the_o father_n be_v very_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o very_a author_n and_o giver_n of_o eternal_a life_n to_o all_o that_o do_v belong_v unto_o he_o then_o in_o the_o next_o place_n our_o saviour_n show_v further_a by_o what_o instrument_n everlasting_a life_n be_v apprehend_v and_o obtain_v from_o he_o namely_o by_o faith_n that_o be_v by_o a_o persuasion_n of_o his_o power_n and_o good_a will_v herein_o according_a to_o the_o divine_a promise_n of_o god_n by_o the_o which_o faith_n also_o our_o saviour_n give_v to_o understand_v that_o everlasting_a life_n be_v begin_v even_o in_o this_o life_n yea_o so_o begin_v that_o death_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o it_o as_o be_v declare_v before_o for_o though_o the_o body_n die_v yet_o the_o soul_n shall_v live_v and_o wait_v for_o the_o raise_n up_o of_o the_o body_n to_o live_v for_o ever_o with_o it_o and_o this_o benefit_n say_v our_o saviour_n be_v general_a to_o all_o how_o many_o soever_o shall_v believe_v in_o i_o insomuch_o as_o none_o of_o those_o shall_v never_o die_v to_o wit_n the_o second_o death_n revel_v 2_o 11._o and_o john_n 8.51_o and_o luke_n 20_o 36._o after_o the_o resurrection_n they_o can_v die_v no_o more_o final_o our_o saviour_n by_o ask_v martha_n whether_o she_o do_v believe_v that_o which_o he_o have_v say_v he_o do_v thereby_o stir_v up_o her_o heart_n to_o give_v credit_n to_o his_o word_n as_o though_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v it_o be_v thy_o part_n martha_n without_o all_o doubt_v to_o be_v thorough_o establish_v in_o the_o belief_n of_o that_o which_o i_o say_v the_o which_o be_v speak_v by_o our_o saviour_n to_o martha_n for_o her_o instruction_n and_o confirmation_n it_o be_v likewise_o to_o be_v take_v and_o apply_v to_o ourselves_o for_o our_o instruction_n and_o confirmation_n who_o do_v hear_v and_o read_v that_o which_o be_v thus_o write_v and_o record_v concern_v this_o article_n but_o unto_o this_o one_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n we_o may_v add_v many_o other_o every_o where_o repeat_v in_o the_o bible_n of_o god_n as_o for_o example_n 1._o john_n chap_n 2._o verse_n 25._o this_o be_v the_o promise_n which_o the_o father_n have_v promise_v we_o even_o eternal_a life_n and_o titus_n 1._o verse_n 1.2.3_o god_n that_o can_v lie_v have_v promise_v it_o before_o the_o world_n begin_v read_v also_o 1._o tim_n 1_o 16_o 17._o this_o be_v a_o true_a or_o faithful_a say_v and_o worthy_a to_o be_v receive_v by_o all_o mean_n or_o worthy_a all_o allowance_n that_o jesus_n christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o save_v sinner_n yea_o to_o save_v all_o that_o shall_v believe_v in_o he_o with_o a_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o chap_n 4_o 8._o godliness_n have_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o life_n present_a and_o of_o that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v and_o 2._o ep_v 4_o 8._o henceforth_o say_v the_o same_o apostle_n be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o the_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n which_o the_o lord_n the_o righteous_a judge_n will_v give_v i_o at_o that_o day_n and_o not_o to_o i_o only_o but_o unto_o all_o they_o also_o which_o love_n his_o appear_v and_o 2_o cor_n 13.4_o we_o shall_v live_v with_o christ_n through_o the_o power_n of_o god_n here_o also_o call_v to_o mind_n again_o psal_n 22_o 27._o your_o heart_n shall_v live_v for_o ever_o and_o dan_o 7_o verses_z 26_o 27._o the_o judgement_n shall_v sit_v and_o they_o shall_v take_v away_o his_o dominion_n that_o be_v the_o dominion_n of_o every_o tyrant_n and_o persecuter_n of_o the_o church_n to_o consume_v and_o to_o destroy_v it_o to_o the_o end_n and_o the_o kingdom_n and_o dominion_n and_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o kingdom_n under_o the_o whole_a heaven_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o holy_a people_n of_o the_o most_o high_a who_o kingdom_n be_v a_o everlasting_a kingdom_n and_o all_o power_n shall_v serve_v and_o obey_v he_o question_n but_o how_o may_v we_o know_v that_o we_o be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o that_o people_n to_o who_o this_o everlasting_a life_n do_v belong_v answer_n we_o may_v know_v it_o by_o the_o begin_n of_o it_o in_o our_o heart_n here_o in_o this_o life_n by_o true_a faith_n and_o repentance_n by_o our_o longing_n after_o it_o by_o our_o joy_n in_o the_o hope_n and_o expectation_n of_o it_o and_o final_o by_o our_o holy_a labour_a and_o strive_v after_o it_o proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n to_o such_o no_o doubt_n the_o promise_n of_o
good_a duty_n that_o any_o of_o we_o shall_v content_v ourselves_o to_o know_v god_n only_o far_o off_o and_o aloof_o as_o we_o may_v say_v as_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o most_o be_v but_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n most_o careful_o to_o prepare_v ourselves_o to_o draw_v near_o to_o he_o in_o the_o reverend_a fear_n of_o his_o most_o gracious_a majesty_n we_o must_v grow_v from_o faith_n to_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v from_o one_o age_n of_o christianity_n to_o another_o from_o childhood_n to_o man_n estate_n etc._n etc._n we_o must_v serve_v god_n both_o outward_o and_o inward_o with_o body_n and_o with_o soul_n even_o from_o the_o most_o secret_a and_o hide_a power_n and_o inclination_n thereof_o these_o be_v brief_o the_o excellent_a instruction_n contain_v in_o these_o holy_a scripture_n in_o the_o urge_v whereof_o i_o be_v and_o now_o be_o still_o the_o more_o earnest_a because_o whereas_o every_o one_o seem_v to_o lay_v ready_a hold_n on_o this_o that_o god_n be_v good_a and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o merciful_a god_n as_o he_o be_v indeed_o very_o few_o make_v conscience_n to_o reason_n from_o his_o mercy_n to_o provoke_v themselves_o thereby_o to_o be_v more_o careful_a to_o serve_v and_o obey_v he_o yea_o so_o much_o the_o rather_o have_v i_o be_v the_o more_o earnest_n as_o my_o duty_n bind_v i_o because_o the_o most_o part_n of_o people_n do_v most_o undutiful_o and_o ungratious_o abuse_v all_o the_o goodness_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n to_o embolden_v themselves_o to_o security_n yea_o to_o a_o great_a licentiousness_n in_o their_o sin_n which_o no_o doubt_n be_v a_o most_o grievous_a and_o horrible_a sin_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o can_v but_o very_o fearful_o endanger_v all_o such_o graceless_a person_n to_o the_o most_o heavy_a wrath_n of_o god_n question_n now_o therefore_o in_o the_o last_o place_n what_o proof_n have_v you_o for_o the_o danger_n of_o general_a unbelief_n answer_n and_o disobedience_n to_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n verse_n 1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o thus_o write_v the_o apostle_n 1_o wherefore_o we_o ought_v diligent_o to_o give_v heed_n to_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v hear_v lest_o at_o any_o time_n we_o shall_v let_v they_o slip_v 2_o for_o if_o the_o word_n speak_v by_o angel_n be_v steadfast_a and_o every_o transgression_n and_o disobedience_n receive_v a_o just_a recompense_n of_o reward_n 3_o how_o shall_v we_o escape_v if_o we_o neglect_v so_o great_a salvation_n which_o at_o the_o first_o begin_v to_o be_v preach_v by_o the_o lord_n and_o afterward_o be_v confirm_v to_o we_o by_o they_o that_o hear_v he_o 4_o god_n bear_v witness_n thereunto_o both_o with_o sign_n and_o wonder_n and_o with_o diverse_a miracle_n and_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n according_a to_o his_o own_o wil._n explication_n explication_n here_o we_o have_v a_o three_o fold_v comparison_n one_o betwixt_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n another_o betwixt_o the_o chief_a instrument_n which_o god_n use_v to_o publish_v his_o law_n to_o wit_n his_o holy_a angel_n and_o the_o chief_a publisher_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o of_o infinite_a excellency_n and_o authority_n above_o all_o angel_n the_o three_o betwixt_o the_o contrary_a use_n and_o end_n of_o the_o one_o and_o of_o the_o other_o the_o law_n by_o reason_n of_o sin_n arm_v the_o curse_n through_o the_o righteous_a judgement_n of_o god_n but_o the_o gospel_n offer_v salvation_n to_o all_o true_a believer_n through_o the_o free_a grace_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n all_o of_o these_o comparison_n agree_v in_o this_o general_o to_o declare_v the_o exceed_a great_a danger_n of_o not_o believe_v &_o of_o not_o obey_v the_o gospel_n insomuch_o as_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n most_o gracious_o and_o most_o honourable_o offer_v thereby_o even_o to_o the_o eternal_a salvation_n of_o all_o such_o as_o will_v thankful_o receive_v it_o be_v most_o wretched_o despise_v and_o reject_v through_o unbelief_n we_o know_v also_o what_o our_o saviour_n the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o have_v most_o fearful_o pronounce_v matth_n chap._n 11.20_o 21_o &c_n &c_n namely_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v easy_a for_o the_o citizen_n of_o tyrus_n and_o sidon_n and_o for_o they_o of_o the_o land_n of_o sodom_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n then_o for_o such_o as_o neglect_v his_o gospel_n ratify_v and_o confirm_v by_o so_o many_o miracle_n as_o he_o wrought_v to_o the_o same_o end_n read_v also_o heb._n chap._n 10.26_o etc._n etc._n and_o chap._n 12.18_o etc._n etc._n 29._o the_o like_a amplification_n of_o the_o greatness_n of_o this_o sin_n agreeable_a to_o the_o former_a testimony_n and_o declaration_n in_o the_o second_o chapter_n it_o be_v a_o most_o fearful_a say_n which_o we_o read_v 2._o thes_n 1.7_o 8_o 9_o 10._o where_o the_o apostle_n affirm_v that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v show_v himself_o from_o heaven_n with_o his_o mighty_a angel_n in_o flame_a fire_n render_v vengeance_n unto_o they_o that_o do_v not_o know_v god_n and_o which_o obey_v not_o unto_o the_o gospel_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o shall_v be_v punish_v with_o everlasting_a perd_a tion_n from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o from_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o power_n when_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o be_v glorify_v in_o his_o saint_n and_o to_o be_v make_v marvellous_a in_o all_o they_o that_o believe_v likewise_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n of_o peter_n chap._n 4._o verse_n 17_o 18._o the_o time_n be_v come_v say_v the_o apostle_n that_o judgement_n must_v begin_v at_o the_o house_n of_o god_n if_o it_o first_o begin_v at_o we_o what_o shall_v be_v the_o end_n of_o they_o which_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n of_o god_n and_o if_o the_o righteous_a be_v scarce_o save_v where_o shall_v the_o ungodly_a and_o the_o sinner_n appear_v the_o greatness_n and_o consequent_o the_o danger_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o unbelief_n be_v notable_o express_v by_o the_o apostle_n john_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n chap._n 5._o verse_n 10._o in_o that_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v even_o as_o much_o as_o if_o one_o shall_v go_v about_o to_o make_v god_n a_o liar_n which_o be_v most_o horrible_a once_o to_o think_v read_v also_o 2._o epist_n verses_z 8_o 9_o look_v to_o yourselves_o say_v he_o to_o that_o elect_a lady_n to_o who_o he_o write_v and_o to_o her_o child_n that_o we_o lose_v not_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v do_v but_o that_o we_o may_v receive_v a_o full_a reward_n whosoever_o transgress_v and_o abide_v not_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n have_v not_o god_n but_o contrariwise_o as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o verse_n he_o that_o continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n he_o have_v both_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n if_o you_o believe_v not_o say_v the_o prophet_n isaiah_n chap._n 7.9_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v establish_v it_o be_v a_o general_a sentence_n to_o show_v that_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n be_v always_o uncertain_a and_o restless_a further_a than_o it_o be_v settle_v by_o faith_n to_o repose_v itself_o whole_o in_o the_o live_a god_n final_o for_o the_o danger_n of_o unbelief_n and_o disobedience_n to_o the_o gospel_n read_v the_o fearful_a but_o most_o true_a doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n john_n 3._o verse_n 18_o 19.20_o 21._o he_o that_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n shall_v not_o be_v condemn_v but_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o be_v condemn_v already_o because_o he_o believe_v not_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n and_o this_o be_v the_o condemnation_n that_o light_n be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o man_n love_v darkness_n rather_o than_o light_n because_o their_o deed_n be_v evil_a for_o every_o man_n that_o do_v evil_a hate_v the_o light_n neither_o come_v he_o to_o the_o light_n lest_o his_o deed_n shall_v be_v reprove_v but_o he_o that_o do_v truth_n come_v to_o the_o light_n that_o his_o deed_n may_v be_v make_v manifest_a that_o they_o be_v wrought_v according_a to_o god_n and_o again_o verse_n 36._o he_o that_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n say_v john_n the_o baptist_n have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o he_o that_o obey_v not_o the_o son_n shall_v not_o see_v life_n but_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n abide_v on_o he_o thus_o we_o see_v the_o exceed_a great_a danger_n of_o unbelief_n and_o disobedience_n to_o the_o gospel_n plentiful_o confirm_v unto_o us._n god_n of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n give_v we_o grace_n to_o make_v our_o best_a use_n and_o profit_n by_o the_o gracious_a admonition_n and_o warning_n which_o be_v give_v we_o against_o the_o same_o now_o for_o a_o general_a conclusion_n of_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o our_o christian_n belief_n one_o thing_n yet_o further_o i_o desire_v to_o deliver_v and_o
nostras_fw-la concutere_fw-la acsi_fw-la aliunde_fw-la quàm_fw-la ex_fw-la lege_fw-la &_o euangelio_fw-la petenda_fw-la sit_fw-la gratiae_fw-la dei_fw-la certitudo_fw-la who_o god_n have_v make_v a_o skilful_a fisher_n of_o man_n in_o his_o church_n have_v in_o the_o 9_o chap_a of_o his_o little_a book_n of_o aphorism_n or_o common_a place_n abridge_v they_o in_o 19_o several_a aphorism_n e●ther_o of_o which_o book_n be_v in_o our_o english_a tongue_n and_o therefore_o i_o do_v the_o rather_o forbear_v to_o set_v down_o either_o the_o reason_n or_o aphorism_n here_o nevertheless_o one_o notable_a say_v or_o two_o of_o m_o cal._n out_o of_o some_o other_o part_n of_o his_o writing_n i_o will_v not_o omit_v first_o upon_o ●he_n 38._o verse_n of_o the_o 5._o ch_z of_o john_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o same_o god_n say_v he_o have_v not_o speak_v in_o vain_a by_o moses_n &_o the_o prophet_n neither_o do_v moses_n intend_v any_o other_o thing_n then_o to_o call_v all_o direct_o unto_o christ_n whence_o say_v he_o further_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o whosoever_o refuse_v christ_n they_o be_v none_o of_o moses_n disciple_n beside_o how_o shall_v he_o have_v the_o word_n of_o life_n abide_v in_o he_o who_o thrust_v away_o he_o that_o be_v the_o life_n itself_o how_o shall_v he_o understand_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n who_o as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o he_o destroy_v the_o life_n of_o the_o law_n for_o the_o law_n without_o christ_n be_v of_o no_o force_n to_o wit_n as_o touch_v life_n &_o salvation_n neither_o be_v there_o without_o he_o any_o sound_a comfort_n to_o be_v find_v in_o it_o wherefore_o by_o how_o much_o any_o have_v learned_a to_o know_v christ_n more_o familiar_o by_o so_o much_o have_v he_o profit_v more_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o again_o upon_o the_o 39_o verse_n of_o the_o same_o chapter_n whosoever_o aim_v not_o at_o this_o mark_n let_v he_o tire_v himself_o as_o much_o as_o he_o will_v all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o lif●_n yet_o shall_v he_o never_o attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n hitherto_o m._n caluin_n worthy_a also_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n be_v that_o say_n of_o justinus_n martyr_n impleta_fw-la martyr_n lexestevamgelium_fw-la praenuntiatum_fw-la euangelium_fw-la autem_fw-la lex_fw-la impleta_fw-la the_o law_n be_v the_o gospel_n speak_v of_o before_o &_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o law_n fulfil_v after_o in_o respect_n of_o this_o friendly_a harmony_n &_o consent_n the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n many_o time_n honour_v with_o the_o name_n of_o the_o gracious_a covenant_n of_o god_n as_o exo._n 19.5_o deu._n 4.13_o &_o v._o 23._o &_o ch_n 5.2_o &_o ch_z 9_o v._n 9_o &_o again_o v._o 15._o hos_fw-la 8.1_o likewise_o the_o ark_n wherein_o the_o law_n even_o the_o table_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n be_v keep_v it_o be_v usual_o call_v the_o ark_n of_o the_o testimony_n or_o witness_v of_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n which_o he_o make_v with_o his_o people_n israel_n yea_o in_o respect_n of_o christ_n no_o doubt_n nevertheless_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o the_o same_o covenant_n one_o in_o substance_n both_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n and_o also_o of_o the_o gospel_n be_v to_o be_v distinguish_v in_o respect_n of_o some_o grave_n and_o weighty_a circumstance_n not_o only_o of_o time_n in_o that_o it_o be_v call_v either_o old_a or_o new_a but_o otherwise_o also_o for_o first_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v more_o dark_a through_o the_o veil_n of_o many_o figure_n and_o ceremony_n as_o it_o be_v restrain_v to_o the_o israelite_n yea_o and_o even_o the_o moral_a law_n itself_o also_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o dulness_n of_o man_n understanding_n yea_o though_o both_o it_o and_o all_o thing_n else_o be_v visible_o sprinkle_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o covenant_n as_o exod._n chap._n 24.7.8_o where_o thus_o we_o read_v moses_n take_v the_o book_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o read_v it_o in_o the_o audience_n of_o the_o people_n who_o say_v all_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v we_o will_v do_v and_o be_v obedient_a then_o he_o take_v the_o blood_n and_o sprinkle_v it_o on_o the_o people_n and_o say_v behold_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o covenant_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v with_o you_o concern_v all_o these_o thing_n and_o heb._n 9_o we_o read_v express_o that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n be_v sprinkle_v with_o blood_n the_o which_o blood_n of_o the_o sacrifice_a beast_n be_v as_o we_o all_o know_v a_o evident_a type_n of_o the_o bloodshed_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n for_o the_o redemption_n and_o justification_n of_o all_o the_o elect_a people_n of_o god_n verse_n 18.19_o etc._n etc._n of_o the_o same_o 9_o chap._n but_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o it_o be_v enlarge_v to_o the_o gentile_n according_a as_o it_o be_v former_o enter_v with_o abraham_n yea_o or_o rather_o with_o noah_n and_o the_o same_o also_o according_a to_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n make_v to_o adam_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n immediate_o after_o his_o fall_n it_o be_v ever_o since_o the_o manifestation_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o flesh_n and_o by_o the_o death_n of_o his_o cross_n make_v most_o clear_a for_o the_o veil_n of_o all_o figurative_a ceremony_n be_v thereby_o remoove_v and_o abolish_v the_o covenant_n be_v now_o most_o authentical_o sprinkle_v yea_o seal_a and_o confirm_v for_o ever_o by_o the_o very_a true_a blood_n of_o the_o messiah_n himself_o who_o be_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o lord_n our_o righteousness_n who_o have_v fulfil_v the_o law_n for_o we_o &c_n &c_n as_o it_o be_v further_o declare_v in_o the_o same_o 9_o chap._n to_o the_o hebr._n verse_n 12.13.14.15.16_o and_o chap._n 13.20_o and_o 1._o pet._n 1.1.2_o and_o verse_n 18.19_o &_o ro._n 3.25_o ephes_n 1.17_o colos_n 1.14_o and_o 1._o joh._n 1.7_o and_o chap._n 5.6_o all_o according_a to_o the_o pprophecy_n of_o zech._n cha_n 9.11_o thou_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o thy_o covenant_n and_o jer._n 23.6_o this_o be_v the_o name_n whereby_o they_o shall_v call_v he_o the_o lord_n our_o righteousness_n in_o regard_n of_o which_o clearness_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o more_o bright_a light_n of_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n shine_v now_o in_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o gospel_n above_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v thus_o 2._o cor._n 3.13_o we_o be_v not_o as_o moses_n who_o put_v a_o veil_n upon_o his_o face_n that_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n can_v not_o look_v to_o the_o end_n of_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v abolish_v etc._n etc._n read_v also_o jer._n 31._o verse_n 3á_fw-la 32.33.34_o they_o shall_v know_v i_o etc._n etc._n and_o isay_n chap._n 11.9_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v full_a of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o the_o water_n that_o cover_v the_o sea_n and_o cha_n 54_o 13._o all_o thy_o child_n shall_v be_v teach_v of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o same_o again_o allege_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n john_n cha_n 6.45_o read_v also_o 1._o cor._n 2.9.10_o and_o 1._o john_n 2.27_o these_o therefore_o be_v the_o former_a difference_n in_o the_o circumstance_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o covenant_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n first_o that_o the_o old_a be_v more_o restrictive_a towards_o the_o jew_n the_o new_a enlarge_v to_o all_o nation_n both_o of_o jew_n and_o gentile_n second_o that_o the_o old_a be_v more_o obscure_a and_o dark_a the_o new_a more_o bright_a and_o clear_a thirdlie_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o ministration_n thereof_o be_v mix_v with_o a_o certain_a terror_n and_o servitude_n through_o the_o burden_n of_o ceremony_n and_o by_o the_o often_o kill_v and_o slay_v of_o beast_n but_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v full_a of_o liberty_n and_o freedom_n and_o be_v grace_v every_o way_n with_o more_o spiritual_a glory_n and_o comfort_n the_o proof_n whereof_o we_o may_v read_v rom._n 8.15.16.17_o and_o gal._n 4.1.2.3.6.7.9_o and_o verse_n 24._o etc._n etc._n and_o cha_n 5.1_o read_v also_o matth._n 11.29.2.30_o and_o act._n 15.10_o and_o 1._o john_n 5.3_o so_o then_o for_o the_o issue_n of_o this_o point_n let_v we_o well_o observe_v that_o the_o contrariety_n of_o the_o law_n or_o old_a testament_n yea_o even_o of_o the_o moral_a law_n of_o god_n as_o it_o bear_v the_o figurative_a sprinkle_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n &_o so_o point_v we_o to_o he_o after_o that_o it_o have_v humble_v we_o in_o ourselves_o the_o contrariety_n i_o say_v of_o it_o and_o of_o the_o gospel_n or_o new_a testament_n it_o be_v not_o in_o themselves_o and_o in_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n as_o touch_v his_o elect_a
of_o the_o flesh_n be_v enmity_n against_o god_n the_o issue_n whereof_o be_v death_n to_o those_o that_o follow_v it_o as_o it_o be_v in_o t●e_v former_a verse_n and_o pro._n 14.12_o read_v also_o 1_o cor._n 3.18_o let_v no_o man_n deceive_v himself_o if_o any_o man_n among_o you_o seem_v to_o be_v wise_a in_o this_o world_n let_v he_o be_v a_o fool_n that_o he_o may_v be_v wise_a proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o second_o duty_n read_v deu._n 4_o 6_o 7_o 8_o and_o jer._n 8._o ver_fw-la 9_o and_o ch_n 9_o verse_n 23_o 24._o as_o before_o in_o the_o comfort_n for_o the_o three_o read_v ro._n 11_o 33._o and_o eccles_n 3_o 11._o he_o have_v make_v every_o thing_n beautiful_a in_o the_o time_n and_o season_n thereof_o etc._n etc._n yet_o no_o man_n can_v find_v out_o the_o work_n that_o god_n have_v wrought_v from_o the_o begin_n even_o to_o the_o end_n and_o chap._n 7_o 15_o 16._o etc._n etc._n for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o four_o duty_n read_v psal_n 34.17_o 18_o 19.20_o and_o 68.20.1_o cor._n 10.13_o eccles_n 7_o 28._o read_v also_o psal_n 25.10_o the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v strength_n to_o the_o utright_o man_n in_o which_o respect_n well_o say_v our_o learned_a interpreter_n via_fw-la domini_fw-la est_fw-la per_fw-la invia_fw-la that_o be_v god_n make_v way_n where_o there_o be_v no_o way_n for_o the_o last_o duty_n of_o give_v god_n the_o glory_n for_o the_o gift_n of_o all_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n read_v exod._n 31_o 1_o 2_o 3.4.5.6_o 1_o sam_n 18.14_o and_o isai_n 28.23_o etc._n etc._n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n read_v also_o prou._n 6.6.7.8_o and_o cha_n 30.24.25.26_o 27.28_o jer_z 8._o ●_o and_o yet_o more_o principal_o read_v dan._n 2_o 19.20_o 21_o 22_o 23_o and_o in_o the_o ep_n of_o jude_n verse_n 25._o to_o god_n only_o wise_a our_o saviour_n be_v glory_n and_o majesty_n and_o dominion_n and_o power_n both_o now_o and_o for_o ever_o amen_n the_o duty_n belong_v furthermore_o to_o the_o comfort_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o god_n and_o general_o touch_v the_o work_n of_o creation_n and_o government_n we_o do_v here_o of_o purpose_n omit_v as_o we_o do_v before_o in_o the_o comfort_n because_o we_o shall_v afterward_o have_v a_o special_a occasion_n to_o consider_v of_o the_o same_o we_o come_v to_o the_o duty_n of_o faith_n concern_v the_o long_a suffering_n &_o patience_n yea_o the_o infinite_a mercy_n and_o goodness_n of_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n question_n which_o be_v they_o answer_n by_o how_o much_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n be_v more_o abundant_a towards_o we_o by_o so_o much_o ought_v we_o first_o of_o all_o to_o take_v the_o more_o diligent_a heed_n that_o we_o do_v not_o in_o any_o wise_a despise_v or_o light_o esteem_v they_o second_o that_o we_o do_v not_o distrust_v or_o despair_v of_o the_o same_o his_o mercy_n as_o if_o there_o be_v any_o defect_n or_o fail_v in_o they_o three_o that_o we_o do_v not_o in_o any_o case_n presume_v or_o wax_v wanton_a against_o they_o albeit_o god_n be_v easy_o entreat_v and_o ready_a to_o forgive_v such_o as_o offend_v he_o proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n these_o evil_n even_o as_o very_o wicked_a extremity_n be_v careful_o to_o be_v avoid_v yea_o to_o be_v accurse_v and_o abhor_v of_o every_o true_a believer_n for_o they_o be_v most_o contrary_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o true_a faith_n against_o the_o first_o whereof_o read_v rom._n 2.4_o despise_v thou_o the_o riches_n of_o god_n bountifulness_n and_o patience_n and_o long_o suffer_v we_o must_v take_v heed_n therefore_o that_o we_o be_v not_o like_o those_o graceless_a subject_n or_o child_n which_o be_v ready_a to_o despise_v the_o clemency_n and_o lenity_n of_o their_o gentle_a prince_n and_o parent_n against_o the_o second_o read_z jer_z lamen_n ch_n 3.22_o his_o compassion_n fail_v not_o read_v also_o isai_n 1.18_o and_z ch_z 40._o 28._o 29._o 30._o 31._o and_o rom_n 5.20_o though_o sin_n abound_v yet_o grace_n abound_v much_o more_o and_o 1_o tim_n 1_o 15._o against_o the_o three_o read_v rom_n 6_o 1_o etc._n etc._n what_o shall_v we_o say_v then_o shall_v we_o continue_v still_o in_o sin_n that_o grace_n may_v abound_v god_n forbid_v etc._n etc._n read_v ep_v jude_n 1_o 4._o though_o god_n be_v perfect_o merciful_a yet_o we_o must_v know_v that_o he_o be_v not_o so_o merciful_a but_o that_o he_o be_v just_a also_o we_o may_v not_o think_v god_n to_o have_v but_o one_o eye_n as_o it_o be_v as_o he_o have_v a_o eye_n of_o mercy_n so_o he_o have_v a_o eye_n of_o justice_n as_o he_o know_v how_o to_o pity_v humble_v sinner_n and_o repent_v sinner_n &c_n &c_n so_o will_v he_o sure_o punish_v severe_o every_o obstinate_a and_o presumptuous_a transgressor_n and_o rebel_n he_o will_v deal_v well_o with_o these_o that_o be_v well_o dispose_v &c_n &c_n but_o he_o will_v deal_v rough_o with_o those_o that_o be_v froward_a according_a to_o that_o which_o we_o read_v psal_n 18.25.26_o this_o have_v god_n himself_o with_o so_o loud_a a_o voice_n proclaim_v of_o himself_o as_o we_o see_v before_o that_o we_o need_v to_o speak_v the_o less_o of_o it_o now_o question_n but_o be_v there_o no_o other_o duty_n belong_v to_o that_o singular_a comfort_n which_o faith_n take_v in_o the_o infinitnes_n of_o god_n mercy_n but_o only_o that_o we_o abuse_v they_o not_o answer_n yes_o it_o be_v on_o the_o contrary_a the_o most_o bind_a duty_n of_o every_o one_o of_o we_o whosoever_o do_v believe_v in_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n to_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o loath_a to_o displease_v he_o in_o any_o thing_n yea_o rather_o to_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o careful_a and_o studious_a to_o please_v he_o in_o all_o holy_a obedience_n by_o how_o much_o he_o be_v not_o only_o more_o loath_a to_o enter_v into_o judgement_n against_o we_o but_o also_o more_o ready_a every_o way_n to_o do_v we_o the_o most_o and_o great_a good_a proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n thus_o general_a indeed_o be_v the_o duty_n or_o as_o we_o may_v rather_o say_v the_o dutifulness_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o comfort_n of_o god_n abundant_a yea_o infinite_a mercy_n the_o mercy_n of_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n aught_o to_o be_v esteem_v of_o we_o as_o the_o most_o precious_a and_o dainty_a jewel_n that_o we_o have_v to_o deal_v withal_o and_o according_o they_o be_v most_o chary_o &_o holy_o to_o be_v deal_v with_o of_o us._n for_o if_o we_o shall_v profane_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n what_o refuge_n or_o sanctuary_n shall_v be_v safe_a for_o we_o to_o fly_v unto_o for_o rescue_n against_o the_o hot_a and_o fierce_a pursuit_n of_o his_o justice_n for_o the_o proof_n whereof_o read_v rom._n 2.4_o the_o bountifulness_n of_o god_n lead_v thou_o to_o repentance_n and_o ch_z 12.1.2_o i_o beseech_v you_o therefore_o brother_n by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n that_o you_o give_v up_o your_o body_n a_o live_a sacrifice_n holy_a and_o acceptable_a unto_o god_n which_o be_v your_o reasonable_a serve_v of_o god_n and_o fashion_v not_o yourselves_o like_a unto_o this_o world_n etc._n etc._n read_v also_o 2_o cor_n 7_o 1._o and_o 1._o sam._n 12._o ●●_o ●nd_v isai_n 5.1_o etc._n etc._n moreover_o call_v to_o mind_n mat._n 4.17_o 1._o john_n 3.8.9.10_o and_o gen._n 29.9_o and_o psal_n 100l_n 4_o mercy_n be_v with_o thou_o o_o lord_n that_o thou_o may_v be_v fear_v and_o psal_n ●_o 7_o in_o the_o multitude_n of_o thy_o mercy_n i_o will_v come_v into_o thy_o house_n and_o in_o thy_o fear_n will_v i_o worship_v towards_o thy_o holy_a temple_n yea_o we_o ought_v to_o serve_v the_o lord_n with_o joyfulness_n and_o with_o a_o good_a heart_n for_o the_o abundance_n of_o all_o thing_n deut._n 28.47_o and_o psal_n 119_o 64._o the_o earth_n o_o lord_n be_v full_a of_o thy_o mercy_n teach_v i_o thy_o statute_n but_o show_v you_o yet_o something_o more_o particular_o if_o you_o can_v what_o some_o of_o the_o duty_n of_o faith_n be_v which_o do_v belong_v to_o the_o comfort_n of_o god_n infinite_a mercy_n and_o goodness_n towards_o us._n question_n which_o may_v some_o of_o they_o be_v answer_n see_v the_o lord_n our_o god_n be_v so_o abundant_a in_o mercy_n to_o we_o that_o he_o forgive_v we_o all_o our_o sin_n though_o never_o so_o great_a and_o grievous_a so_o often_o as_o we_o do_v true_o repent_v and_o turn_v unto_o he_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o be_v ready_o affect_v to_o forgive_v one_o another_o our_o mutual_a offence_n and_o both_o to_o admit_v &_o seek_v reconciliation_n how_o often_o &_o in_o how_o great_a matter_n soever_o we_o have_v ●ust_z occasion_n even_o so_o far_o as_o they_o concern_v one_o another_o moreover_o see_v the_o lord_n our_o
in_o thy_o nativity_n when_o thou_o be_v bear_v thy_o navel_n be_v not_o cut_v etc._n etc._n and_o when_o i_o pass_v by_o thou_o i_o see_v thou_o pollute_v in_o thy_o own_o blood_n and_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o when_o thou_o be_v in_o thy_o blood_n thou_o shall_v live_v even_o when_o thou_o be_v in_o thy_o blood_n i_o say_v unto_o thou_o thou_o shall_v live_v i_o cause_v thou_o to_o multiply_v as_o the_o bud_n of_o the_o field_n etc._n etc._n who_o due_o consider_v this_o forlorn_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o every_o member_n of_o it_o as_o the_o lord_n find_v it_o and_o the_o great_a pittle_n which_o he_o take_v on_o it_o and_o the_o manifold_a blessing_n which_o he_o bestow_v upon_o it_o who_o i_o say_v du_o consider_v these_o thing_n can_v do_v less_o than_o acknowledge_v that_o god_n be_v most_o high_o to_o be_v honour_v and_o praise_v for_o ever_o therein_o and_o that_o the_o forgetfulness_n thereof_o be_v a_o most_o heinous_a sin_n and_o herewith_o also_o how_o can_v it_o be_v think_v but_o that_o it_o must_v be_v one_o bind_a duty_n to_o love_v the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o a_o singular_a love_n in_o so_o much_o as_o god_n be_v not_o our_o father_n but_o by_o mean_n of_o he_o according_a to_o that_o which_o our_o saviour_n christ_n himself_o say_v john_n 8.42_o if_o god_n be_v your_o father_n then_o will_v you_o love_v i_o and_o likewise_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o love_v the_o child_n of_o god_n for_o god_n cause_n who_o be_v their_o father_n 1._o john_n 5.1.2_o every_o one_o that_o love_v he_o which_o beget_v love_v he_o also_o which_o be_v beget_v etc._n etc._n secondlie_o that_o this_o reason_n ought_v effectual_o to_o move_v we_o to_o withdraw_v ourselves_o from_o the_o lust_n of_o sin_n &c_n &c_n the_o apostle_n john_n tell_v we_o plain_o say_v 1._o epi_n 2.15.16_o that_o the_o love_n of_o the_o father_n can_v be_v in_o they_o that_o love_v the_o world_n &_o the_o lust_n thereof_o etc._n etc._n and_o ch_n 3._o verse_n 3._o that_o every_o one_o that_o have_v the_o hope_n of_o everlasting_a life_n and_o glory_n through_o the_o mercy_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n purge_v himself_o that_o be_v more_o and_o more_o indevour_v after_o it_o by_o use_v all_o good_a and_o holy_a mean_n appoint_v of_o god_n consider_v that_o god_n our_o heavenly_a father_n be_v pure_a and_o that_o no_o unclean_a thing_n can_v have_v any_o abide_n with_o he_o read_v also_o verse_n 9_o whosoever_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n sin_v not_o &c_n &c_n that_o be_v he_o do_v not_o give_v himself_o over_o to_o sin_n but_o earnest_o resist_v it_o etc._n etc._n moreover_o read_v deuteron_n 14.1.2_o joshua_n 24.1.2_o etc._n etc._n read_v also_o 2._o corinth_n 6.14_o etc._n etc._n the_o want_n of_o this_o care_n in_o the_o people_n of_o god_n who_o glory_n in_o this_o that_o god_n be_v their_o father_n it_o be_v no_o less_o justly_o then_o vehementlie_o reprove_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o deuteron_n 32.4.5.6_o isai_n chap_v 1._o verse_n 2.3.4_o and_o jerem_n chap_n 2.26.27.28_o and_o chap_n 3._o verse_n 2.3.4.5_o and_o verse_n 19.20.21.22_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o answer_n rest_v upon_o as_o good_a reason_n and_o be_v a_o consequent_a of_o the_o former_a for_o wherefore_o be_v undutifulnes_n reproove_v but_o to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o child_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v stir_v up_o to_o care_n and_o conscience_n of_o all_o good_a duty_n to_o this_o purpose_n therefore_o let_v we_o think_v often_o of_o the_o holy_a and_o zealous_a exhortation_n of_o the_o apost_n pet_n 1._o epist_n chap_n 1._o verse_n 13_o 14_o 15_o 16._o etc._n etc._n in_o these_o word_n wherefore_o gird_v up_o the_o loin_n of_o your_o mind_n etc._n etc._n as_o obedient_a child_n &c_n &c_n as_o he_o which_o have_v call_v you_o be_v holy_a so_o be_v you_o holy_a etc._n etc._n and_o if_o you_o call_v he_o father_n who_o judge_v without_o respect_n of_o person_n etc._n etc._n let_v no_o word_n of_o so_o weighty_a and_o pre●ious_a a_o exhortation_n be_v unweighed_a and_o unvalued_a of_o us._n read_v also_o john_n 4.23_o the_o hour_n come_v and_o now_o be_v say_v our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n when_o the_o true_a worshipper_n shall_v worship_v the_o father_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n for_o the_o father_n require_v even_o such_o to_o worship_v he_o and_o 2._o cor._n chap_n 7.1_o the_o holy_a apostle_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v make_v mention_n of_o the_o most_o gracious_a promise_n of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v be_v a_o father_n to_o all_o such_o as_o shall_v forsake_v idolatry_n and_o the_o fellowship_n of_o idolater_n he_o thereupon_o infer_v this_o his_o earnest_a exhortation_n see_v than_o we_o have_v these_o promise_n dear_o belove_v let_v we_o cleanse_v ourselves_o from_o all_o filthiness_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n and_o grow_v up_o unto_o full_a holiness_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n read_v also_o 2._o epist_n of_o john_n verse_n 4.9_o and_o malipiero_n cha_n 1.6_o a_o son_n honour_v his_o father_n say_v the_o lord_n by_o his_o prophet_n and_o a_o servant_n his_o master_n if_o then_o i_o be_v a_o father_n where_o be_v my_o honour_n and_o if_o i_o be_v a_o master_n where_o be_v my_o fear_n say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n etc._n etc._n in_o all_o these_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n we_o see_v how_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n call_v for_o all_o manner_n of_o good_a duty_n towards_o god_n in_o this_o respect_n especial_o that_o he_o be_v a_o most_o gracious_a and_o honourable_a father_n above_o all_o other_o and_o he_o do_v it_o most_o justly_o for_o see_v there_o be_v no_o natural_a parent_n which_o do_v not_o or_o which_o may_v not_o of_o good_a right_n look_v for_o ready_a and_o constant_a duty_n from_o their_o child_n while_o they_o themselves_o perform_v the_o care_n of_o good_a parent_n towards_o they_o and_o on_o the_o contrary_a if_o child_n shall_v stubbornelie_o refuse_v to_o yield_v good_a duty_n to_o their_o parent_n they_o a●e_v so_o far_o from_o take_v delight_n to_o heat_v their_o child_n to_o call_v they_o father_n that_o they_o rather_o enter_v into_o purpose_n to_o cast_v they_o off_o and_o to_o refuse_v to_o take_v they_o for_o their_o child_n infinite_o much_o more_o may_v the_o lord_n god_n our_o heavenly_a father_n cast_v off_o all_o such_o as_o hypocriticallie_o call_v he_o father_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n deny_v the_o obedience_n of_o child_n unto_o he_o for_o in_o very_a truth_n they_o show_v themselves_o not_o to_o be_v the_o k●ndely_a child_n of_o god_n but_o the_o base_a bear_v of_o their_o father_n the_o devil_n as_o we_o shall_v have_v further_a occasion_n to_o observe_v and_o to_o produce_v some_o proof_n of_o it_o by_o and_o by_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n for_o the_o shut_n up_o of_o this_o point_n worthy_a be_v the_o example_n of_o he_o who_o our_o saviour_n christ_n describe_v for_o the_o common_a imitation_n of_o every_o true_a child_n of_o god_n that_o after_o former_a neglect_n of_o his_o duty_n shall_v return_v to_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o child_n again_o father_n say_v he_o and_o so_o be_v every_o one_o of_o we_o to_o say_v in_o remembrance_n of_o our_o former_a undutifulnes_n i_o have_v sin_v against_o heaven_n and_o against_o thou_o i_o be_o not_o worthy_a to_o be_v call_v thy_o son_n etc._n etc._n now_o further_o as_o touch_v the_o four_o branch_n of_o the_o answer_n which_o show_v that_o it_o be_v require_v of_o every_o true_a child_n of_o god_n that_o he_o be_v a_o imitator_n of_o god_n himself_o in_o all_o goodness_n and_o helpfulnes_n towards_o other_o read_v matth_n 5.43_o etc._n etc._n and_o luk_n 6.35.36_o and_o ephes_n chap_a 5.1.2_o be_v you_o therefore_o follower_n of_o god_n as_o dear_a child_n and_o walk_v in_o love_n etc._n etc._n and_o coloss_n ●_o 12_o now_o therefore_o as_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n holy_a and_o belove_a put_v on_o tender_a mercy_n kindness_n etc._n etc._n and_o 1._o john_n ●_o 10_o in_o this_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n know_v and_o the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n whosoever_o do_v not_o righteousness_n be_v not_o of_o god_n neither_o he_o that_o love_v not_o his_o brother_n for_o this_o be_v the_o message_n that_o you_o hear_v from_o the_o beginning_n that_o we_o shall_v love_v one_o another_o not_o as_o cain_n who_o be_v of_o the_o wicked_a and_o slay_v his_o brother_n etc._n etc._n read_v a_o so_o in_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o john_n chap_n 8.44_o they_o that_o do_v the_o lust_n of_o the_o devil_n as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v they_o be_v not_o the_o child_n of_o god_n but_o of_o their_o father_n the_o devil_n to_o conclude_v this_o four_o branch_n that_o the_o household_n of_o faith_n
be_v in_o so_o much_o as_o it_o be_v cover_v with_o most_o thick_a darkness_n in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o the_o first_o day_n and_o yet_o still_o remain_v rude_a and_o cover_v with_o the_o deep_a water_n until_o this_o three_o day_n wherefore_o as_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o visible_a heaven_n be_v note_v by_o the_o spread_a of_o they_o out_o so_o this_o clear_n and_o dry_v of_o the_o earth_n be_v reckon_v for_o the_o create_v and_o make_v of_o it_o for_o the_o use_n of_o habitation_n to_o man_n &_o to_o all_o other_o earthly_a creature_n though_o as_o touch_v the_o substance_n of_o it_o it_o be_v make_v and_o create_v of_o nothing_o before_o read_v psal_n 136.6_o the_o lord_n have_v stretch_v out_o the_o earth_n upon_o the_o water_n or_o rather_o as_o we_o shall_v read_v it_o above_o the_o water_n for_o his_o mercy_n endure_v for_o ever_o so_o before_o in_o the_o 24._o psalm_n verse_n 2._o bamaijm_fw-la gnal_n bamaijm_fw-la he_o have_v found_v it_o above_o the_o sea_n and_o establish_v it_o above_o the_o flood_n for_o natural_o use_v and_o ●o_o likewise_o p●al_v 57_o verse_n 5._o be_v the_o same_o preposition_n use_v as_o the_o first_o creation_n show_v and_o as_o have_v be_v already_o allege_v out_o of_o the_o 104._o psal_n they_o will_v stand_v above_o the_o mountain_n but_o at_o thy_o rebuke_n say_v the_o holy_a ps_n they_o flee_v at_o the_o voice_n of_o thy_o thunder_n that_o be_v when_o thou_o as_o it_o be_v thunder_v out_o thy_o commandment_n they_o have_v away_o and_o the_o mountain_n ascend_v and_o the_o valley_n descend_v to_o the_o place_n which_o thou_o have_v establish_v for_o they_o thou_o have_v set_v they_o a_o bind_v which_o they_o shall_v not_o pass_v they_o shall_v not_o return_v to_o cover_v the_o earth_n and_o job_n 38.10.11_o the_o lord_n himself_o say_v that_o he_o have_v establish_v his_o commandment_n concern_v it_o and_o have_v set_v bar_n and_o door_n and_o say_v hitherto_o shall_v thou_o come_v and_o no_o further_o and_o here_o shall_v the_o bank_n stay_v thy_o proud_a wave_n read_v also_o jer_n ●_o 22_o fear_v you_o not_o i_o say_v the_o lord_n and_o will_v you_o not_o be_v afraid_a at_o my_o presence_n who_o have_v place_v the_o sand_n for_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o sea_n by_o a_o perpetual_a decree_n that_o it_o can_v pass_v it_o and_o though_o the_o wave_n thereof_o rage_n yet_o they_o can_v prevail_v though_o they_o roar_v yet_o can_v they_o not_o pass_v over_o it_o that_o be_v beyond_o the_o limit_n of_o god_n decree_n and_o appointment_n so_o that_o the_o water_n which_o be_v natural_o above_o the_o earth_n they_o be_v by_o a_o overrule_a power_n of_o god_n make_v under_o the_o earth_n as_o exod_a 20.4_o the_o water_n under_o the_o earth_n and_o for_o the_o streatch_n out_o as_o it_o be_v of_o the_o earth_n by_o this_o remove_n of_o the_o water_n read_v further_o isai_n 42.5_o where_o the_o lord_n god_n by_o his_o holy_a prophet_n describe_v himself_o to_o be_v that_o god_n who_o beside_o that_o he_o have_v create_v the_o heaven_n and_o spread_v they_o abroad_o have_v also_o stretch_v forth_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o bud_n thereof_o that_o be_v all_o whatsoever_o spring_v out_o of_o it_o and_o again_o chap_n 44.24_o the_o lord_n that_o make_v all_o thing_n who_o alone_o spread_v out_o the_o heaven_n and_o by_o himself_o likewise_o stretch_v out_o the_o earth_n and_o 2._o pet_n 3.5_o the_o earth_n have_v the_o be_v of_o it_o from_o the_o water_n and_o in_o the_o water_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n wherefore_o just_o be_v he_o celebrate_v to_o be_v the_o god_n that_o make_v not_o only_o the_o heaven_n but_o also_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o sea_n exod_n 20.11_o act_n 4.24_o and_o psal_n 95.3.4.5_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o great_a god_n and_o a_o great_a king_n above_o all_o god_n in_o who_o hand_n be_v the_o deep_a place_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o height_n of_o the_o mountain_n be_v he_o to_o who_o the_o sea_n belong_v for_o he_o make_v it_o and_o his_o hand_n prepare_v the_o dry_a land_n etc._n etc._n this_o work_n of_o god_n be_v worthy_o commend_v by_o the_o lord_n himself_o to_o be_v good_a and_o commodious_a for_o so_o it_o be_v indeed_o a_o very_a gracious_a work_n a_o fruit_n of_o his_o mercy_n which_o endure_v for_o ever_o as_o be_v alldge_v before_o from_o the_o 5._o verse_n of_o the_o 136._o ps_n it_o be_v also_o a_o very_a mighty_a work_n in_o that_o the_o water_n be_v thus_o against_o kind_n tumble_v together_o as_o it_o be_v on_o a_o heap_n and_o lay_v up_o in_o the_o storehouse_n of_o the_o lord_n ps_n 33.7_o and_o all_o this_o for_o our_o benefit_n the_o turn_n of_o a_o little_a part_n of_o the_o red_a sea_n into_o dry_a land_n for_o a_o while_n be_v justly_o record_v to_o be_v a_o great_a work_n of_o god_n and_o a_o testimony_n of_o his_o favour_n towards_o his_o people_n the_o child_n of_o israel_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o great_a nor_o so_o general_a nor_o so_o durable_a a_o work_n as_o this_o of_o the_o first_o creation_n be_v for_o the_o constant_a benefit_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o all_o mankind_n from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n how_o can_v we_o therefore_o sufficient_o praise_n god_n for_o the_o earth_n and_o our_o so_o commodious_a and_o kind_o a_o habitation_n therein_o the_o which_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o 16._o verse_n of_o the_o 115._o psalm_n he_o have_v give_v to_o the_o son_n of_o man_n let_v we_o therefore_o more_o &_o more_o bless_v and_o praise_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n who_o have_v make_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n the_o sea_n and_o all_o that_o be_v in_o they_o from_o this_o time_n forth_o and_o for_o evermore_o amen_n consider_v also_o the_o greatness_n of_o this_o work_n wrought_v in_o one_o day_n by_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o slow_a abate_n of_o the_o water_n after_o the_o drown_n of_o the_o world_n gen_n ch_n 8._o 1._o 2._o 3._o 4._o 5._o and_o furhe_a touch_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o which_o our_o good_a god_n have_v create_v in_o so_o infinite_a variety_n both_o herb_n plant_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o tree_n with_o their_o several_a fruit_n for_o present_a use_n at_o the_o very_a first_o beginning_n and_o with_o their_o several_a seed_n for_o future_a propagation_n and_o increase_n o_o how_o can_v we_o possible_o magnify_v the_o goodness_n and_o bounty_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v very_o this_o one_o and_o manifold_a work_n be_v every_o way_n very_o gracious_a and_o admirable_a for_o as_o touch_v the_o creation_n of_o all_o herb_n plant_n and_o tree_n with_o their_o just_a stature_n and_o ripe_a fruit_n and_o that_o at_o one_o instant_a or_o at_o the_o most_o in_o the_o space_n of_o one_o day_n grow_v whereas_o natural_o it_o will_v as_o we_o have_v experience_n have_v require_v the_o space_n of_o many_o year_n although_o all_o the_o best_a help_n and_o furtherance_n which_o god_n have_v set_v in_o nature_n be_v grant_v for_o the_o cherish_n of_o tree_n and_o many_o day_n and_o week_n for_o the_o cherish_n up_o of_o the_o least_o herb_n to_o the_o natural_a perfection_n thereof_o o_o how_o wonderful_a a_o piece_n of_o work_n be_v this_o also_o and_o the_o rather_o because_o as_o yet_o no_o rain_n nor_o so_o much_o as_o a_o mist_n have_v fall_v upon_o the_o earth_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o man_n to_o till_o it_o as_o it_o be_v express_o note_v genes_n chap_v 2._o verse_n 5.6_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o sun_n or_o sunshine_n to_o vegetate_v and_o warm_v they_o etc._n etc._n nevertheless_o in_o one_o day_n and_o as_o it_o be_v at_o one_o instant_a be_v the_o garden_n of_o eden_n tha●_n be_v the_o most_o pleasant_a and_o excellent_a garden_n wherein_o adam_n be_v place_v so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v create_v from_o the_o very_a beginning_n adorn_v with_o all_o tree_n and_o herb_n pleasant_a for_o sight_n and_o wholesome_a for_o meat_n in_o the_o which_o also_o be_v the_o tree_n of_o life_n &c_n &c_n as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o chap_a verse_n 8.9.10_o &c_n &c_n with_o goodly_a freshwater_n spring_v &_o river_n etc._n etc._n ps_n 104.10_o and_o with_o the_o silver_n vein_n of_o the_o earth_n job_n 28.1.2_o etc._n etc._n all_o therefore_o do_v wondrous_o preach_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n yea_o let_v we_o but_o lay_v together_o and_o consider_v a_o few_o of_o the_o least_o seed_n of_o thing_n if_o ever_o we_o have_v mark_v they_o with_o the_o interchangeable_a variety_n of_o they_o in_o form_n in_o colour_n &c_n &c_n but_o special_o if_o we_o weigh_v in_o our_o mind_n the_o quality_n and_o virtue_n of_o they_o and_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o tree_n &c_n &c_n yea_o but_o in_o one_o
and_o job_n 5.23_o so_o then_o this_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v always_o for_o a_o firm_a principle_n god_n make_v man_n righteous_a but_o they_o have_v seek_v to_o themselves_o many_o invention_n eccles_n chap_n 7.31_o all_o evil_a be_v come_v upon_o man_n from_o man_n himself_o let_v no_o man_n therefore_o be_v so_o wicked_o bold_a as_o to_o frame_v any_o the_o least_o cavil_n against_o any_o of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n creation_n nay_o on_o the_o contrary_a let_v we_o for_o a_o most_o just_a and_o well_o beseem_v conclusion_n take_v the_o whole_a blame_n of_o all_o evil_a to_o ourselves_o and_o groan_n under_o the_o burden_n of_o our_o sin_n as_o the_o true_a and_o proper_a cause_n thereof_o according_a to_o the_o last_o branch_n of_o the_o answer_n and_o thus_o through_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n we_o have_v renew_v the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o holy_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o work_n of_o god_n most_o wise_a mighty_a and_o gracious_a creation_n the_o excellent_a perfection_n whereof_o god_n have_v most_o solemn_o confirm_v by_o his_o sanctify_v of_o the_o seven_o day_n wherein_o he_o cease_v from_o any_o further_a work_n of_o creation_n to_o the_o end_n that_o mankind_n may_v worship_v god_n their_o creator_n in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o same_o his_o divine_a wisdom_n power_n and_o goodness_n which_o be_v most_o perfect_o manifest_v thereby_o the_o which_o holy_a doctrine_n according_a to_o the_o most_o faithful_a and_o true_a history_n thereof_o every_o christian_a must_v believe_v or_o else_o he_o can_v right_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n as_o the_o article_n of_o our_o belief_n teach_v we_o to_o do_v and_o now_o touch_v the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o wisdom_n and_o power_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n in_o they_o it_o be_v evident_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o every_o true_a believer_n while_n according_a to_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o ponder_v in_o his_o mind_n both_o the_o manner_n and_o also_o the_o order_n which_o god_n take_v in_o perform_v the_o work_n of_o his_o creation_n and_o first_o concern_v the_o manner_n if_o we_o consider_v how_o the_o lord_n begin_v in_o darkness_n deformity_n and_o confusion_n as_o touch_v the_o great_a world_n and_o in_o baseness_n and_o deadness_n when_o he_o create_v man_n the_o little_a world_n do_v nevertheless_o perfect_o and_o at_o a_o instant_a cause_n light_a to_o shine_v out_o of_o darkness_n and_o in_o a_o short_a space_n of_o time_n turn_v deformity_n to_o beauty_n vacancy_n and_o voidenes_n to_o all_o sufficient_a furniture_n and_o plenty_n deadness_n to_o life_n discomfort_n to_o comfort_n and_o baseness_n to_o glory_n to_o that_o according_a to_o this_o begin_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n the_o common_a proverb_n may_v well_o take_v beginning_n in_o that_o we_o common_o say_v a_o hardor_n uncomfortable_a beginning_n make_v a_o good_a end_n thus_o i_o say_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o creation_n manife_v the_o wisdom_n power_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n the_o like_a will_v be_v evident_a if_o we_o shall_v well_o observe_v the_o order_n which_o god_n take_v in_o the_o dispose_n of_o his_o work_n for_o he_o creat_v his_o spiritual_a and_o invisible_a creature_n in_o heaven_n before_o the_o visible_a and_o bodily_a upon_o the_o earth_n the_o simple_a element_n before_o compound_a body_n the_o fiery_a region_n before_o the_o airy_n he_o clear_v the_o low_a region_n of_o the_o air_n before_o he_o empti_v and_o clear_v the_o earth_n from_o the_o water_n thereof_o he_o make_v grass_n for_o cattle_n before_o he_o make_v cattle_n themselves_o the_o fowl_n of_o the_o air_n and_o fish_n of_o the_o sea_n before_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o earth_n final_o all_o other_o creature_n before_o he_o make_v mankind_n insomuch_o as_o it_o please_v god_n to_o make_v all_o thing_n for_o the_o comfort_n of_o man_n that_o so_o by_o he_o they_o may_v be_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o own_o most_o holy_a name_n and_o yet_o again_o he_o do_v so_o break_v that_o which_o we_o will_v think_v shall_v have_v be_v the_o best_a order_n that_o he_o do_v in_o most_o excellent_a wisdom_n take_v all_o glory_n from_o the_o creature_n themselves_o and_o make_v it_o so_o much_o the_o more_o clear_a and_o plain_a as_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o all_o the_o praise_n both_o of_o wisdom_n and_o power_n and_o goodness_n do_v belong_v only_o to_o he_o for_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o god_n make_v light_a before_o he_o make_v the_o sun_n cause_v tree_n to_o bring_v forth_o ripe_a fruit_n before_o any_o shower_n or_o dew_n have_v fall_v upon_o the_o earth_n and_o also_o make_v all_o earthly_a creature_n and_o govern_v they_o in_o perfect_a order_n before_o he_o appoint_v man_n to_o be_v the_o ruler_n and_o orderer_n of_o they_o who_o therefore_o among_o all_o man_n yea_o how_o can_v all_o mankind_n though_o they_o be_v as_o dutiful_o affect_v to_o god_n as_o may_v be_v how_o i_o say_v can_v they_o for_o all_o that_o sufficient_o praise_v his_o most_o glorious_a name_n for_o his_o so_o great_a wise_a mighty_a gracious_a and_o glorious_a work_n yea_o if_o it_o be_v but_o for_o our_o own_o creation_n alone_o for_o our_o outward_a sense_n and_o the_o excellent_a gift_n of_o speech_n etc._n etc._n and_o for_o our_o inward_a understanding_n and_o memory_n etc._n etc._n let_v every_o one_o of_o we_o therefore_o conclude_v with_o the_o holy_a prophet_n thou_o o_o lord_n possesse_v my_o reins_n that_o be_v i_o be_o by_o good_a right_n altogether_o and_o entire_o thou_o thou_o do_v cover_v i_o in_o my_o mother_n womb_n i_o will_v praise_v thou_o for_o i_o be_o draw_v into_o admiration_n by_o consider_v thy_o reverend_a work_n yea_o i_o will_v praise_v thy_o wonderful_a work_n as_o much_o as_o my_o soul_n can_v attain_v unto_o my_o bone_n or_o strength_n it_o be_v not_o hide_v from_o thou_o from_o the_o time_n that_o i_o be_v make_v in_o a_o secret_a place_n and_o skilful_o fashion_v as_o in_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n thy_o eye_n do_v see_v i_o when_o i_o be_v without_o form_n for_o in_o thy_o book_n be_v all_o thing_n write_v even_o from_o the_o time_n that_o they_o be_v first_o fashion_v yea_o while_o as_o yet_o there_o be_v none_o of_o they_o at_o all_o o_o how_o dear_a therefore_o or_o precious_a be_v thy_o thought_n to_o i_o o_o mighty_a god_n o_o how_o great_a be_v the_o sum_n of_o they_o i_o will_v count_v they_o but_o they_o be_v more_o than_o the_o sand_n i_o will_v awake_v that_o be_v i_o will_v stand_v diligent_o upon_o my_o watch_n that_o i_o may_v still_o abide_v with_o thou_o psal_n 139.13.14.15.16.17.18_o trem_fw-la &_o junio_n interp._n but_o of_o the_o duty_n whereby_o we_o stand_v bind_v unto_o god_n for_o his_o mercy_n towards_o we_o in_o our_o creation_n more_o afterward_o hitherto_o our_o purpose_n have_v be_v to_o gather_v together_o and_o interpret_v the_o holy_a doctrine_n of_o creation_n according_a to_o the_o historical_a narration_n and_o report_n of_o it_o from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o god_n the_o only_a faithful_a and_o incorrupt_a witness_n thereof_o the_o which_o also_o as_o you_o know_v have_v be_v set_v down_o to_o your_o hand_n in_o a_o few_o verse_n to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v happy_o be_v thereby_o make_v so_o much_o the_o more_o familiar_a and_o if_o it_o may_v be_v also_o the_o more_o easy_a to_o be_v remember_v of_o you_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o therefore_o as_o i_o think_v here_o to_o make_v rehearsal_n of_o they_o question_n which_o be_v those_o verse_n answer_n they_o be_v these_o which_o follow_v 1._o gen._n ch_n 1._o the_o world_n six_o day_n in_o make_v be_v as_o moses_n true_o say_v god_n will_v not_o only_o show_v his_o power_n verse_n verse_n but_o likewise_o help_v our_o faith_n 1._o in_o first_o of_o six_o both_o heaven_n and_o earth_n a_o substance_n they_o receive_v 2._o though_o formless_a and_o unfurnished_a the_o earth_n with_o water_n cover_v and_o darkness_n be_v upon_o the_o deep_a as_o high_a as_o heaven_n do_v reach_v the_o holy_a ghost_n these_o depth_n uphold_v 3._o the_o father_n by_o his_o speech_n not_o sound_a of_o voice_n but_o mighty_a power_n with_o wisdom_n even_o his_o son_n command_a light_n so_o light_n break_v forth_o and_o whole_a day_n whole_a either_o because_o the_o world_n begin_v at_o the_o equinoctial_a or_o to_o speak_v according_a to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o always_o account_v twelve_o hour_n for_o the_o day_n according_a to_o that_o of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n john_n ch_n 11.9_o be_v there_o not_o twelve_o hour_n in_o the_o day_n twelve_o hour_n shine_v 4._o yet_o darkness_n be_v not_o quite_o cut_v off_o but_o sunder_v from_o the_o light_n it_o take_v his_o turn_n the_o light_n give_v place_n
question_n which_o may_v be_v the_o comfort_n hereof_o answer_n the_o comfort_n hereof_o may_v be_v consider_v either_o as_o they_o be_v more_o general_a or_o else_o more_o special_a question_n let_v it_o be_v so_o in_o the_o first_o place_n therefore_o which_o be_v the_o more_o general_a answer_n first_o this_o be_v general_o very_o comfortable_a that_o we_o know_v that_o the_o most_o wise_a and_o gracious_a providence_n and_o government_n of_o god_n over_o all_o his_o creature_n be_v most_o near_o and_o indissoluble_o link_v to_o the_o most_o wise_a and_o mighty_a creation_n of_o they_o second_o there_o be_v a_o other_o great_a comfort_n issue_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o creation_n insomuch_o as_o the_o creation_n be_v believe_v we_o be_v from_o thence_o more_o easy_o induce_v to_o believe_v all_o the_o like_a wonderful_a work_n of_o god_n most_o holy_a providence_n and_o government_n comfort_n the_o comfort_n yea_o even_o those_o which_o be_v in_o themselves_o more_o hard_a to_o be_v believe_v namely_o our_o eternal_a redemption_n and_o by_o the_o grace_n thereof_o our_o restore_n and_o the_o restore_n of_o all_o creature_n to_o a_o more_o happy_a and_o glorious_a estate_n than_o adam_n be_v set_v in_o at_o the_o beginning_n by_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o creation_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n these_o be_v general_o very_o great_a comfort_n indeed_o and_o they_o have_v very_o good_a warrant_n from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o first_o general_a comfort_n the_o apostle_n peter_n 1_o epist_n ch_z 4._o 19_o verse_n assure_v we_o that_o god_n be_v a_o faithful_a creator_n from_o whence_o he_o prove_v that_o his_o faithful_a child_n may_v just_o and_o that_o also_o in_o special_a manner_n be_v trust_v he_o with_o themselves_o and_o their_o whole_a estate_n nothing_o doubt_v but_o he_o will_v have_v a_o very_a vigilant_a and_o tender_a care_n over_o they_o likewise_o in_o the_o book_n of_o job_n chap_n 10._o verse_n 8.9_o etc._n etc._n job_n use_v a_o speech_n take_v from_o a_o familiar_a similitude_n of_o the_o dairy_n woman_n who_o when_o she_o have_v take_v all_o her_o pain_n in_o milk_v in_o set_v of_o her_o milk_n in_o break_v she_o cure_v in_o press_v her_o cheese_n etc._n etc._n she_o will_v in_o no_o wise_n throw_v it_o aside_o that_o the_o hog_n or_o dog_n shall_v spoil_v it_o but_o she_o lay_v it_o up_o careful_o and_o reserve_v it_o to_o the_o best_a use_n that_o may_v be_v much_o more_o therefore_o do_v job_n comfort_v himself_o that_o see_v god_n have_v make_v he_o as_o it_o be_v the_o cheese_n out_o of_o the_o milk_n that_o he_o will_v not_o destroy_v he_o thy_o hand_n say_v he_o have_v make_v i_o and_o fashion_v i_o whole_o round_o about_o and_o will_v thou_o destroy_v i_o remember_v i_o pray_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v make_v i_o as_o the_o clay_n and_o wil●_n thou_o bring_v i_o into_o dust_n again_o have_v thou_o not_o pour_v i_o out_o as_o milk_n and_o turn_v i_o to_o c●rde●_n like_o cheese_n thou_o have_v clothe_v i_o with_o skin_n and_o flesh_n and_o join_v i_o together_o with_o hon●●_n and_o sinew_n this_o therefore_o give_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n good_a and_o comfortable_a trust_n in_o hope_n of_o preservation_n from_o untimely_a and_o miserable_a death_n read_v also_o psal_n 89.47_o but_o for_o the_o general_a care_n of_o god_n over_o all_o his_o work_n which_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o general_a comfort_n and_o that_o which_o we_o do_v present_o inquire_v after_o read_v ps_n 33.4_o etc._n etc._n all_o the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v faithful_a where_o also_o the_o holy_a psalmist_n linck_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n with_o his_o creation_n and_o psal_n 146.6_o he_o have_v make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o all_o that_o therein_o be_v he_o keep_v his_o fidelity_n for_o ever_o hence_o therefore_o as_o be_v answer_v in_o the_o second_o place_n very_o comfortable_o may_v we_o just_o be_v induce_v to_o believe_v that_o more_o special_a goodness_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n concern_v our_o redemption_n and_o the_o restore_n of_o all_o the_o creature_n which_o lose_v the_o dignity_n of_o their_o creation_n through_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n for_o the_o proof_n whereof_o read_v isai_n chap_n 4●_n verse_n 26.27_o etc._n etc._n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chap_n lift_v up_o your_o eye_n on_o high_a and_o behold_v who_o have_v create_v these_o thing_n and_o bring_v out_o their_o army_n by_o number_n and_o call_v they_o all_o by_o name_n by_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o power_n and_o mighty_a strength_n nothing_o fail_v why_o say_v thou_o o_o jaakob_n and_o speak_v o_o israel_n my_o way_n be_v hide_v from_o the_o lord_n and_o my_o judgement_n be_v pass_v over_o of_o my_o god_n know_v thou_o not_o or_o have_v thou_o not_o hear_v that_o the_o everlasting_a god_n the_o lord_n have_v create_v the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n he_o neither_o faint_v nor_o be_v weary_a etc._n etc._n but_o he_o give_v strength_n to_o he_o that_o faint_v and_o unto_o he_o that_o have_v no_o strength_n he_o increase_v power_n etc._n etc._n and_o they_o that_o wait_v upon_o the_o lord_n shall_v renew_v their_o strength_n etc._n etc._n read_v also_o chap_n ●3_n verse_n 1.7.15.16_o and_o chap_n 44.24_o and_o 45.8_o and_o 50_o 1.2_o etc._n etc._n and_o 51_o 12.1●_n likewise_o jere_n 31_o verse_n 31_o 32_o 33_o 34_o 35._o etc._n etc._n and_o again_o chap_n 33_o 1●_n etc._n etc._n thus_o say_v the_o lord_n if_o you_o can_v break_v my_o covenant_n of_o the_o day_n and_o my_o covenant_n of_o the_o night_n that_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v day_n and_o night_n in_o their_o season_n then_o may_v my_o covenant_n be_v break_v with_o david_n my_o servant_n and_o ps_n 89._o v._n 36.37_o read_v also_o ps_n 11●_n v._o 89_o 90_o 91_o 92._o o_o lord_n thy_o word_n endure_v for_o ever_o in_o heaven_n thy_o truth_n be_v from_o generation_n to_o generation_n thou_o have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n &_o it_o abide_v etc._n etc._n final_o touch_v the_o last_o point_n of_o this_o second_o branch_n to_o wit_n that_o from_o faith_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o god_n we_o do_v the_o more_o easy_o proceed_v to_o believe_v the_o restore_n of_o all_o thing_n it_o stand_v with_o good_a reason_n insomuch_o as_o they_o do_v both_o belong_v to_o one_o and_o the_o same_o almighty_a power_n and_o because_o if_o we_o believe_v not_o the_o lesser_a how_o shall_v we_o believe_v the_o great_a if_o not_o this_o which_o stand_v more_o with_o the_o light_n of_o natural_a reason_n how_o then_o shall_v we_o believe_v that_o which_o be_v above_o all_o humane_a conceit_n or_o understanding_n thus_o much_o for_o the_o more_o general_a comfort_n of_o faith_n touch_v the_o creation_n question_n the_o more_o special_a or_o particular_a do_v follow_v in_o what_o order_n have_v you_o learned_a that_o we_o may_v commodious_o inquire_v of_o they_o answer_v they_o be_v either_o such_o as_o arise_v in_o respect_n of_o other_o creature_n or_o else_o from_o the_o considerati_fw-la of_o our_o own_o creation_n it_o shall_v be_v profitable_a for_o we_o therefore_o in_o this_o order_n to_o inquire_v of_o they_o and_o insomuch_o as_o of_o creature_n beside_o ourselves_o as_o we_o have_v see_v before_o some_o be_v invisible_a and_o other_o visible_a like_a to_o ourselves_o let_v we_o inquire_v of_o the_o invisible_a first_o namely_o of_o the_o invisible_a heaven_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a and_o elect_a angeles_n question_n what_o therefore_o may_v our_o comfort_n be_v from_o this_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v a_o heaven_n infinite_o more_o excellent_a and_o glorious_a than_o these_o heaven_n be_v which_o we_o see_v with_o our_o eye_n answer_n the_o comfort_n hereof_o may_v just_o be_v exceed_v great_a to_o every_o true_a believer_n insomuch_o as_o god_n have_v not_o only_o make_v the_o heaven_n which_o be_v yet_o invisible_a unto_o we_o that_o they_o may_v be_v as_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o divine_a majesty_n to_o represent_v his_o glory_n in_o they_o and_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v a_o habitation_n and_o dwell_a place_n to_o the_o elect_a angel_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o for_o ever_o but_o also_o that_o we_o ourselves_o may_v in_o the_o time_n appoint_v of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o natural_a life_n once_o end_v have_v our_o most_o sweet_a and_o comfortable_a abide_a place_n there_o to_o behold_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o to_o enjoy_v a_o estate_n like_a to_o the_o glorious_a estate_n of_o the_o holy_a angel_n even_o for_o ever_o and_o ever_o proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n this_o may_v just_o be_v exceed_o comfortable_a indeed_o according_a to_o that_o of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n john_n chap_n 14._o verse_n 1.2.3_o let_v not_o your_o heart_n be_v trouble_v you_o believe_v in_o god_n believe_v also_o in_o
of_o all_o the_o work_n of_o god_n creation_n against_o all_o such_o as_o speak_v evil_a of_o any_o one_o of_o they_o to_o any_o the_o least_o reproach_n and_o ●●shonour_n of_o his_o most_o holy_a and_o reverend_a name_n final_o faith_n concern_v the_o work_n of_o creation_n and_o the_o comfort_n of_o they_o teach_v all_o true_a believer_n to_o humble_v themselves_o unfeigned_o before_o god_n the_o most_o gracious_a and_o almighty_a creator_n of_o they_o proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n here_o again_o let_v we_o call_v to_o mind_n that_o of_o duty_n belong_v to_o god_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o work_n of_o creation_n some_o pertain_v to_o judgement_n other_o to_o affection_n some_o to_o speech_n and_o some_o to_o the_o action_n of_o life_n now_o that_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n first_o of_o all_o to_o esteem_v of_o all_o the_o work_n of_o god_n creation_n very_o reverendly_a yea_o even_o of_o those_o that_o be_v the_o least_o and_o base_a of_o they_o in_o comparison_n of_o other_o it_o stand_v with_o very_o good_a reason_n in_o so_o much_o as_o the_o same_o god_n who_o make_v thou_o one_o he_o make_v the_o other_o also_o he_o that_o create_v the_o great_a create_v also_o the_o least_o the_o base_a as_o well_o as_o the_o most_o noble_a the_o most_o deform_a as_o we_o account_v deformity_n as_o well_o as_o the_o most_o comely_a and_o beautiful_a as_o we_o esteem_v of_o beauty_n they_o have_v all_o one_o and_o the_o same_o author_n and_o maker_n and_o therefore_o well_o may_v we_o reason_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n creation_n as_o the_o apostle_n james_n do_v for_o the_o authority_n of_o every_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n because_o one_o god_n and_o lawgiver_n give_v they_o all_o chap_n 2.11_o read_v psalm_n 104.24_o and_o 1.39.14.15.16.17.18_o read_v also_o prou._n 6._o ver_fw-la 6.7_o etc._n etc._n and_o chap._n 30.24_o etc._n etc._n yea_o and_o the_o lord_n have_v of_o purpose_n put_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o creature_n and_o creature_n that_o the_o excellency_n and_o beauty_n of_o the_o one_o may_v the_o rather_o appear_v by_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o other_o the_o lesser_a with_o the_o great_a the_o weak_a with_o the_o strong_a the_o slow_a with_o the_o swift_a the_o light_a with_o the_o heavy_a the_o cold_a with_o the_o hot_a etc._n etc._n and_o all_o this_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v so_o for_o a_o more_o perfect_a declaration_n of_o his_o manifold_a divine_a wisdom_n according_a to_o that_o psalm_n 104.24_o o_o lord_n how_o manifold_a be_v thy_o work_n in_o wisdom_n have_v thou_o make_v they_o all_o the_o earth_n be_v full_a of_o thy_o riches_n etc._n etc._n read_v also_o roman_n 1.19.20_o etc._n etc._n acts._n 17.24_o etc._n etc._n for_o even_o to_o this_o end_n god_n make_v the_o world_n and_o all_o thing_n therein_o that_o by_o the_o creation_n thereof_o his_o eternal_a power_n and_o godhead_n be_v consider_v in_o his_o work_n may_v be_v make_v manifest_a to_o all_o man_n that_o they_o may_v seek_v he_o yea_o and_o sensible_o find_v he_o etc._n etc._n and_o thus_o also_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o glorify_v and_o praise_n god_n in_o all_o his_o work_n according_a to_o that_o notable_a admonition_n which_o we_o read_v job_n chap._n 36.24.25.26_o remember_v that_o thou_o magnify_v his_o work_n which_o man_n behold_v all_o man_n see_v it_o and_o man_n behold_v it_o a_o far_o off_o behold_v god_n be_v excellent_a etc._n etc._n and_o according_a to_o the_o general_a exhortation_n of_o the_o 148._o psalm_n where_o all_o creature_n be_v stir_v up_o to_o praise_n god_n even_o in_o this_o respect_n that_o they_o be_v his_o creature_n read_v also_o revelation_n chap._n 14.7_o the_o exhortation_n of_o the_o holy_a angel_n there_o and_o the_o rather_o be_v we_o thus_o to_o glorify_v god_n in_o his_o creature_n because_o they_o be_v the_o work_n of_o his_o hand_n do_v make_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o he_o and_o all_o false_a god_n jer._n 10.16_o and_o act_n 17.23.24_o etc._n etc._n wherefore_o according_a to_o the_o three_o branch_n of_o the_o answer_n it_o be_v further_a manifest_a that_o as_o we_o must_v for_o our_o own_o part_n esteem_v reverendly_a of_o all_o the_o work_n of_o god_n and_o according_o glorify_v his_o name_n therein_o yea_o in_o such_o manner_n that_o even_o those_o that_o be_v pudenda_fw-la and_o a_o cause_n of_o shamefulnes_n and_o blush_v to_o we_o by_o reason_n of_o our_o sin_n aught_o to_o be_v account_v honourable_a as_o they_o proceed_v from_o the_o most_o wise_a and_o just_a god_n so_o must_v we_o have_v care_n to_o cause_n other_o as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o we_o to_o do_v the_o like_a for_o who_o look_v upon_o the_o frog_n or_o caterpillar_n or_o little_a fly_n or_o poor_a disdain_a louse_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o remember_v that_o god_n do_v even_o by_o these_o his_o creature_n confound_v one_o of_o the_o proud_a and_o cruel_a king_n and_o people_n of_o the_o world_n even_o the_o egyptian_n who_o i_o say_v consider_v this_o can_v but_o praise_v god_n in_o this_o respect_n that_o god_n shall_v by_o such_o base_a and_o contemptible_a creature_n work_v so_o glorious_a a_o work_n according_a to_o that_o psalm_n 78.45.46_o etc._n etc._n 105.29.30.34.35_o and_o as_o we_o must_v of_o duty_n speak_v honourable_o of_o god_n for_o they_o so_o may_v we_o not_o endure_v to_o hear_v any_o thing_n speak_v to_o the_o contrary_a dishonour_n of_o his_o most_o bless_a name_n well_o have_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n word_n as_o we_o read_v in_o ancient_a record_n zealous_o reproove_v and_o condemn_v those_o blasphemous_a heretic_n who_o have_v ascribe_v any_o part_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n creation_n to_o the_o devil_n such_o as_o the_o heretic_n call_v paternian_o e●●omians_n and_o ethicoprucopta_n be_v report_v to_o have_v be_v who_o fear_v not_o to_o affirm_v that_o the_o inferior_a part_n of_o the_o body_n of_o ●●en_o and_o woman_n be_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n likewise_o well_o have_v they_o reprove_v and_o condemn_v the_o heretic_n call_v seu●riani_n who_o condemn_v wine_n as_o not_o be_v a_o creature_n of_o god_n and_o with_o they_o well_o also_o have_v they_o condemn_v the_o marcionite_n who_o account_v this_o whole_a world_n to_o be_v a_o work_n unworthy_a to_o be_v ascribe_v unto_o god_n the_o like_a reproof_n and_o zealous_a condemnation_n be_v to_o be_v continue_v and_o maintain_v of_o all_o faithful_a minister_n of_o the_o holy_a word_n of_o god_n and_o of_o all_o faithful_a christian_n against_o the_o same_o and_o all_o other_o the_o like_o blasphemous_a maligner_n and_o railer_n against_o any_o of_o the_o work_n of_o our_o god_n god_n himself_o no_o doubt_n will_v take_v our_o part_n herein_o and_o justify_v himself_o against_o all_o their_o blasphemous_a derogation_n book_n theatre_n of_o god_n judgement_n chap._n 31_o concern_v blasphemer_n m._n perkins_n expel_v sy●_n speak_v of_o god_n omnipotency_n mornaeus_n cap_n 11._o de_fw-la verit_fw-la religionis_fw-la act_n &_o m●●u_n in_o his_o collection_n of_o god_n severe_a judgement_n against_o blasphemer_n a_o little_a before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o book_n whatsoever_o they_o may_v be_v and_o very_o worthy_o also_o have_v other_o the_o good_a servant_n of_o god_n to_o the_o same_o end_n record_v the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n against_o such_o lewd_a and_o wicked_a person_n from_o time_n to_o time_n against_o some_o for_o reproach_v his_o thunder_n and_o against_o other_o for_o other_o their_o devilish_a and_o licentious_a calumniation_n and_o contempt_n and_o namely_o right_o worthy_o be_v it_o record_v against_o a_o king_n of_o spain_n alphonsus_n the_o nine_o that_o he_o bear_v his_o punishment_n from_o the_o just_a hand_n of_o god_n because_o he_o presume_v to_o say_v that_o if_o he_o have_v be_v at_o the_o creation_n he_o can_v have_v dispose_v of_o the_o world_n in_o a_o better_a manner_n than_o now_o it_o be_v read_v the_o notable_a admonition_n of_o m._n fox_n to_o beware_v of_o blaspheme_v of_o god_n wisdom_n or_o work_v any_o way_n from_o a_o example_n of_o a_o fearful_a judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o a_o girl_n about_o 12._o year_n old_a the_o grave_a father_n upon_o a_o special_a occasion_n make_v a_o very_a notable_a and_o large_a admonition_n worthy_a to_o be_v diligent_o read_v attend_v and_o obey_v of_o all_o that_o shall_v read_v the_o same_o the_o which_o for_o their_o sake_n who_o have_v not_o that_o book_n yea_o and_o to_o the_o end_n that_o such_o as_o have_v the_o book_n may_v yet_o have_v so_o necessary_a and_o worthy_a a_o admonition_n more_o near_a hand_n and_o in_o their_o present_a view_n i_o will_v not_o think_v it_o tedious_a to_o copy_n out_o at_o large_a both_o it_o and_o the_o occasion_n of_o it_o as_o the_o godly_a father_n himself_o have_v set_v it_o down_o the_o
thanksgiving_n which_o he_o have_v before_o acquaint_v they_o withal_o luke_n 24.30.35_o moreover_o that_o we_o be_v to_o bless_v god_n in_o the_o behold_n of_o the_o sun_n &c_n &c_n the_o 8._o psalm_n may_v teach_v all_o that_o account_n themselves_o scholar_n in_o the_o schoolehouse_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o for_o the_o renew_n of_o the_o creature_n when_o we_o behold_v they_o what_o our_o duty_n be_v we_o may_v learn_v from_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n in_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n their_o offering_n of_o the_o first_o fruit_n to_o god_n read_v deut_n 26.1.2_o etc._n etc._n and_o by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o song_n of_o thanksgiving_n for_o the_o renew_n of_o the_o pasture_n and_o of_o the_o sheep_n and_o of_o corn_n by_o the_o seasonable_a shower_n of_o heaven_n while_o yet_o they_o grow_v in_o the_o field_n psalm_n 65.9_o etc._n etc._n and_o by_o the_o example_n of_o hezekiah_n and_o his_o prince_n who_o bless_a god_n for_o the_o heap_n which_o they_o see_v chamber_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o god_n worship_n and_o for_o the_o minister_n thereof_o 2._o chron_n 31.8_o final_o that_o we_o may_v end_v with_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o answer_n read_v rom_n chap_v 15._o verse_n 12.13.14_o and_o 1._o corin_n 6.12.13_o and_o chap_n 7.29.30.31_o and_o ephes_n 5.17_o etc._n etc._n be_v you_o not_o unwise_a but_o understand_v what_o the_o will_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v and_o be_v not_o drunken_a with_o wine_n wherein_o be_v excess_n but_o be_v fulfil_v with_o the_o spirit_n speak_v to_o yourselves_o in_o psalm_n and_o hymn_n etc._n etc._n thus_o then_o all_o the_o creature_n and_o ordinance_n of_o god_n marriage_n and_o whatsoever_o do_v most_o affect_v the_o sense_n and_o the_o natural_a man_n they_o must_v all_o and_o every_o of_o they_o be_v so_o use_v and_o in_o the_o use_n so_o moderate_v that_o we_o take_v heed_n that_o by_o the_o use_n of_o they_o we_o be_v further_v and_o not_o hinder_v in_o the_o holy_a worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n our_o heavenly_a father_n for_o otherwise_o as_o we_o have_v learn_v before_o out_o of_o the_o 1._o epist_n chap_n 2._o of_o the_o apostle_n john_n the_o love_n of_o the_o father_n can_v remain_v with_o us._n let_v this_o suffice_v for_o the_o duty_n of_o faith_n concern_v the_o comfort_n of_o other_o the_o visible_a creature_n of_o god_n question_n let_v we_o come_v to_o ourselves_o and_o see_v what_o our_o duty_n be_v in_o respect_n of_o our_o own_o creation_n and_o in_o the_o first_o place_n what_o duty_n be_v belong_v to_o the_o comfort_n of_o this_o that_o god_n have_v create_v our_o body_n to_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n here_o in_o this_o life_n and_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o just_a at_o the_o last_o day_n to_o everlasting_a happiness_n and_o glory_n answer_n insomuch_o as_o our_o body_n be_v in_o themselves_o no_o better_o than_o dust_n from_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v nevertheless_o by_o the_o fatherlie_a goodness_n of_o god_n thus_o high_o advance_v it_o be_v our_o most_o bind_a duty_n so_o much_o the_o rather_o to_o yield_v they_o whole_o and_o every_o member_n thereof_o to_o the_o service_n of_o his_o heavenly_a majesty_n and_o to_o this_o end_n to_o pray_v earnest_o to_o god_n for_o holy_a wisdom_n and_o understanding_n according_a to_o that_o we_o read_v psalm_n 119._o verse_n 73._o thy_o hand_n have_v make_v i_o and_o facion_v i_o give_v i_o understand_v therefore_o that_o i_o may_v learn_v thy_o commandment_n in_o this_o respect_n also_o be_v we_o very_o lively_a and_o sensible_o admonish_v to_o consider_v and_o acknowledge_v our_o own_o humane_a frailty_n and_o for_o ever_o to_o humble_v ourselves_o under_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n by_o who_o power_n alone_o we_o line_n move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n teach_v us._n act_n 17.28_o proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n it_o be_v very_o true_a poor_a soul_n that_o we_o be_v the_o potsherd_a with_o the_o pot-sheardes_a of_o the_o earth_n say_v the_o prophet_n isai_n ch_n 45.9_o that_o be_v one_o in_o this_o respect_n be_v no_o better_a than_o another_o the_o king_n be_v even_o as_o the_o poor_a man_n the_o strong_a as_o the_o weak_a &c_n &c_n according_a to_o that_o psal_n 62.9_o the_o child_n of_o man_n be_v vanity_n yea_o even_o in_o their_o best_a estate_n plalm_v 39.5_o and_o again_o isai_n chap_n 40.6_o all_o flesh_n be_v grass_n for_o so_o great_a be_v our_o humane_a frailty_n even_o in_o our_o best_a and_o most_o healthful_a estate_n that_o every_o sixth_o hour_n we_o be_v fain_o to_o seek_v relief_n from_o other_o the_o poor_a and_o frail_a creature_n of_o god_n even_o such_o as_o the_o earth_n from_o whence_o we_o ourselves_o be_v take_v send_v forth_o and_o cherish_v to_o wit_n corn_n flesh_n fruit_n of_o the_o tree_n butter_n from_o the_o kine_n etc._n etc._n we_o can_v one_o hour_n forbear_v apparel_n in_o the_o cold_a season_n of_o the_o year_n and_o this_o we_o borrow_v from_o the_o fleece_n of_o the_o silly_a sheep_n or_o from_o the_o poor_a silly_a worm_n etc._n etc._n how_o little_a a_o distemper_n will_v put_v we_o into_o a_o fit_n of_o a_o ague_n how_o little_a a_o thing_n will_v offend_v our_o queisie_n stomach_n who_o can_v make_v his_o own_o heart_n so_o much_o as_o to_o pant_v in_o his_o body_n or_o his_o pulse_n to_o beat_v in_o the_o wrist_n of_o his_o arm_n half_n our_o life_n time_n we_o pass_v away_o in_o sleep_v and_o if_o we_o want_v but_o a_o little_a of_o our_o ordinary_a sleep_n our_o sense_n be_v great_o dull_v we_o be_v ever_o and_o anon_o out_o of_o tune_n in_o one_o part_n or_o other_o we_o be_v like_o the_o instrument_n of_o music_n which_o though_o it_o be_v exquisitelie_o and_o fine_o make_v yet_o it_o must_v be_v often_o new_a set_v etc._n etc._n and_o within_o a_o short_a time_n all_o will_v be_v out_o of_o frame_n and_o hasten_v to_o a_o utter_a dissolution_n till_o the_o time_n of_o restore_v do_v come_v according_a to_o that_o excellent_a description_n of_o our_o bodily_a and_o earthly_a frailty_n eccles_n chap_v 12.1.2.3.4.5.6.7.8_o etc._n etc._n ch_n 3.20_o and_o job_n 34.15_o ps_n 146.3.4_o frail_a creature_n be_v we_o therefore_o as_o be_v say_v and_o so_o let_v we_o acknowledge_v ourselves_o and_o humble_a ourselves_o unto_o the_o lord_n by_o who_o power_n we_o live_v etc._n etc._n hereof_o we_o have_v abraham_n for_o a_o notable_a example_n gen_n 18.27_o read_v also_o job._n 4_o 19_o and_o 10.9_o psal_n 103.14_o and_o 2._o corin_n 5.1_o hence_o come_v this_o phrase_n god_n raise_v out_o of_o the_o dust_n 1._o sam_n 2.8_o 1._o king_n 16.2_o psalm_n 113.7_o hence_o also_o be_v the_o ancient_a ceremony_n of_o sprinkle_v dust_n upon_o the_o head_n job._n chap_v 2.12_o lament_v ch_n 2._o verse_n 10._o &_o ch_n 3.29_o the_o afflict_a put_v his_o mouth_n in_o the_o dust_n if_o there_o may_v be_v hope_n read_v also_o ezek._n 27.30_o and_o micah_n 1.10_o roll_v thyself_o in_o the_o dust_n now_o therefore_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v find_v favour_n with_o god_n and_o be_v support_v by_o his_o good_a hand_n for_o that_o short_a time_n which_o we_o have_v here_o to_o live_v let_v we_o use_v our_o member_n as_o weapon_n and_o servant_n to_o righteousness_n according_a to_o the_o excellent_a instruction_n of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n rom_n 6_o 13._o etc._n etc._n read_v also_o psalm_n 24.8.9.10_o singular_a preparation_n be_v to_o be_v make_v to_o give_v entertainment_n to_o the_o majesty_n of_o so_o glorious_a a_o king_n and_o luk_n chapter_n 3_o 4_o 5_o 6._o but_o who_o be_v he_o that_o have_v not_o great_a cause_n to_o lament_v the_o abuse_n of_o his_o body_n and_o of_o the_o member_n thereof_o so_o that_o he_o may_v just_o say_v i_o have_v look_v upon_o that_o with_o my_o eye_n which_o i_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v see_v i_o have_v hearken_v with_o my_o ear_n to_o hear_v that_o which_o i_o shall_v not_o have_v hear_v i_o have_v speak_v with_o my_o mouth_n such_o word_n as_o i_o shall_v not_o have_v speak_v i_o have_v put_v forth_o my_o hand_n to_o that_o which_o i_o shall_v not_o have_v meddle_v with_o etc._n etc._n very_o the_o more_o we_o boast_v ourselves_o of_o the_o creature_n as_o of_o apparel_n etc._n etc._n the_o more_o do_v we_o abase_v ourselves_o and_o our_o own_o body_n the_o more_o we_o seek_v to_o delight_v ourselves_o with_o delicate_a fare_n the_o more_o costly_a medecine_n and_o preseruative_n we_o use_v &c_n &c_n by_o so_o much_o the_o more_o we_o preach_v our_o own_o frailty_n but_o with_o no_o good_a use_n or_o profit_n till_o we_o learn_v thereby_o to_o humble_v ourselves_o and_o our_o body_n to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n and_o
for_o one_o man_n according_a to_o that_o which_o we_o read_v malipiero_n 2.15_o when_o he_o can_v have_v make_v many_o woman_n for_o one_o man_n but_o also_o he_o make_v the_o woman_n cut_v of_o man_n the_o like_a whereof_o he_o do_v not_o in_o the_o make_n and_o produce_v of_o any_o other_o creature_n but_o i_o desire_v that_o you_o shall_v express_v and_o declare_v by_o your_o answer_n the_o special_a providence_n of_o god_n touch_v that_o special_a manner_n of_o the_o propagation_n of_o mankind_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v appoint_v question_n how_o have_v you_o learned_a to_o answer_v to_o this_o point_n answer_n god_n give_v plain_o to_o understand_v that_o he_o will_v not_o hold_v it_o lawful_a that_o man_n and_o woman_n shall_v come_v together_o wander_o to_o satisfy_v their_o natural_a lust_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o bruit_n and_o unreasonable_a creature_n and_o therefore_o it_o please_v god_n even_o from_o the_o beginning_n to_o ordain_v and_o sanctify_v the_o holy_a estate_n of_o marriage_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v have_v a_o bless_a and_o holy_a posterity_n propagate_v and_o bear_v of_o they_o proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n this_o be_v that_o which_o our_o most_o bless_a saviour_n have_v respect_n unto_o mat_n chap_n 2.14.15_o mal._n 2.14.15_o 19.4_o yea_o which_o he_o do_v verbatim_o even_o word_n for_o word_n repeat_v and_o open_v the_o holy_a will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n to_o have_v be_v always_o constant_a therein_o as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o 19_o chap_n verse_n 5._o and_o 6._o have_v you_o not_o read_v say_v our_o saviour_n that_o he_o which_o make_v they_o at_o the_o beginning_n make_v they_o male_a and_o female_a and_o say_v for_o this_o cause_n shall_v a_o man_n leave_v father_n and_o mother_n and_o clean_a unto_o his_o wife_n and_o they_o twain_o shall_v be_v one_o flesh_n wherefore_o they_o be_v no_o more_o twain_o but_o one_o flesh_n let_v not_o man_n therefore_o put_v a_o sunder_o that_o which_o god_n have_v couple_v together_o thus_o then_o we_o have_v sufficient_a ground_n for_o the_o holy_a providence_n of_o god_n both_o in_o the_o uphold_v and_o for_o the_o continue_n as_o also_o for_o the_o order_n and_o govern_v of_o his_o creature_n as_o well_o more_o general_o as_o also_o more_o particular_o now_o last_o of_o all_o what_o ground_n have_v you_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o those_o end_n which_o god_n in_o his_o divine_a providence_n have_v likewise_o propound_v to_o himself_o in_o the_o same_o work_n of_o his_o creation_n both_o general_o towards_o a●l_o visible_a and_o earthly_a creature_n and_o more_o particular_o towards_o mankind_n for_o as_o touch_v the_o angel_n we_o have_v already_o consider_v so_o much_o as_o we_o have_v any_o ground_n for_o before_o what_o ground_n question_n i_o say_v therefore_o have_v you_o for_o those_o end_n which_o god_n have_v propound_v to_o himself_o even_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o creation_n yea_o rather_o before_o the_o world_n be_v even_o from_o all_o eternity_n answer_n the_o ground_n of_o the_o end_n of_o god_n divine_a providence_n in_o all_o the_o visible_a work_n of_o his_o creation_n it_o be_v comprehend_v in_o that_o most_o memorable_a narration_n which_o be_v set_v down_o gen_n ch_z 2._o from_o the_o 8._o verse_n to_o the_o 18._o as_o have_v be_v once_o mention_v not_o long_o before_o i_o remember_v it_o well_o nevertheless_o to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o resume_v the_o work_n in_o the_o due_a place_n thereof_o may_v carry_v all_o so_o much_o the_o more_o commodious_o before_o we_o let_v we_o repeat_v the_o same_o here_o again_o so_o far_o as_o may_v serve_v to_o our_o present_a purpose_n and_o namely_o concern_v the_o special_a providence_n of_o god_n towards_o mankind_n question_n what_o be_v that_o answer_n god_n create_v all_o thing_n for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o mankind_n especial_o above_o all_o earthly_a creature_n for_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o most_o bountiful_a riches_n of_o his_o goodness_n and_o mercy_n upon_o they_o to_o their_o everlasting_a happiness_n and_o glory_n upon_o condition_n they_o will_v continue_v constant_a in_o their_o holy_a faith_n and_o obedience_n unto_o he_o question_n be_v it_o so_o but_o what_o if_o as_o it_o fall_v out_o indeed_o and_o that_o not_o long_o after_o mankind_n shall_v fall_v away_o from_o their_o good_a and_o gracious_a god_n their_o creator_n and_o maker_n he_o further_o purpose_v upon_o that_o occasion_n to_o magnify_v the_o severity_n of_o his_o most_o holy_a and_o high_a justice_n even_o to_o the_o everlasting_a condemnation_n and_o torment_v of_o all_o such_o as_o shall_v continue_v without_o repentance_n in_o their_o rebellion_n against_o his_o most_o sovereign_a and_o divine_a majesty_n and_o refuse_v to_o seek_v their_o deliverance_n by_o that_o mean_v only_o which_o he_o mind_v to_o tender_v and_o offer_v unto_o they_o question_n how_o may_v it_o appear_v from_o the_o text_n which_o you_o allege_v that_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n divine_a providence_n towards_o mankind_n be_v from_o the_o beginning_n such_o as_o you_o have_v in_o your_o answer_n affirm_v answer_n by_o that_o tree_n of_o life_n which_o god_n have_v plant_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o garden_n or_o orchyard_n of_o heden_n a_o most_o pleasant_a plot_n of_o ground_n for_o the_o exceed_a fruitfulness_n and_o delicacy_n of_o it_o according_a to_o the_o signification_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o country_n heden_n where_o it_o be_v situate_v the_o lord_n of_o his_o most_o gracious_a goodness_n give_v adam_n and_o eve_n assurance_n both_o for_o themselves_o and_o their_o posterity_n of_o everlasting_a happiness_n and_o glory_n if_o they_o will_v faithful_o and_o constant_o serve_v and_o obey_v he_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a if_o they_o shall_v disloial_o break_v the_o commandment_n of_o their_o sovereign_n namely_o by_o eat_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o that_o tree_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a which_o be_v likewise_o plant_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o same_o garden_n and_o be_v the_o only_a tree_n which_o be_v forbid_v unto_o they_o god_n do_v as_o certain_o threaten_v the_o everlasting_a curse_n both_o of_o b●die_n and_o soul_n against_o they_o and_o all_o their_o posterity_n and_o that_o also_o without_o any_o hope_n of_o recovery_n for_o ever_o for_o any_o thing_n that_o he_o do_v for_o the_o present_a let_v they_o understand_v or_o have_v any_o the_o least_o inkling_n to_o the_o contrary_n proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n all_o that_o you_o have_v answer_v be_v very_o true_a as_o the_o text_n do_v plain_o give_v every_o attentive_a reader_n to_o understand_v and_o it_o be_v further_o confirm_v most_o evident_o by_o the_o effect_n itself_o which_o follow_v according_a to_o that_o which_o the_o prophet_n moses_n have_v record_v gen_n 3._o the_o two_o last_o verse_n of_o the_o chapter_n for_o so_o soon_o as_o adam_n and_o eve_n have_v eat_v of_o the_o same_o forbid_a fruit_n they_o be_v for_o ever_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o garden_n of_o heden_n and_o may_v not_o be_v suffer_v thenceforth_o once_o to_o eat_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n and_o thus_o bereave_v themselves_o of_o all_o former_a solace_n and_o com●ort_n they_o do_v also_o make_v themselves_o through_o their_o own_o sin_n altogether_o naked_a destitute_a and_o forlorn_a in_o the_o which_o estate_n also_o shall_v they_o have_v continue_v for_o ever_o yea_o increase_v more_o and_o more_o according_a to_o the_o further_a increase_n of_o their_o sin_n have_v not_o god_n of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n give_fw-mi they_o the_o promise_n of_o such_o a_o remedy_n and_o relief_n as_o they_o themselves_o can_v never_o have_v think_v upon_o and_o thus_o have_v we_o also_o together_o with_o the_o conclusion_n of_o that_o which_o we_o have_v to_o observe_v concern_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n b●fore_o the_o fall_n of_o mankind_n we_o have_v i_o say_v herewithal_o make_v a_o entrance_n upon_o the_o other_o part_n or_o proceed_v of_o god_n holy_a providence_n which_o we_o be_v now_o in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o consider_v of_o touch_v the_o fall_n of_o mankind_n question_n let_v we_o therefore_o proceed_v unto_o it_o and_o herein_o first_o what_o be_v we_o to_o understand_v by_o the_o fall_n of_o mankind_n answer_n we_o be_v to_o understand_v by_o this_o word_n fall_v first_o their_o unfaithfulnes_n and_o disloyalty_n to_o god_n in_o break_v his_o most_o holy_a and_o gracious_a commandment_n second●y_o the_o loss_n of_o that_o good_a and_o bless_a estate_n wherein_o they_o be_v by_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n create_v and_o set_v third●y_o all_o the_o misery_n and_o confusion_n both_o of_o soul_n and_o body_n which_o they_o pull_v upon_o themselves_o and_o their_o posterity_n yea_o all_o that_o they_o pull_v down_o upon_o the_o very_a earth_n the_o which_o god_n do_v just_o accurse_v for_o their_o sake_n proof_n explication_n
hurt_v and_o annoy_v us._n proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n these_o indeed_o be_v familiar_a confirmation_n of_o god_n holy_a gracious_a &_o fatherly_a providence_n for_o without_o such_o his_o favourable_a moderation_n &_o restrain●_n we_o may_v learn_v further_o of_o what_o exceed_v great_a force_n tempest_n may_v be_v usual_o as_o sometime_o they_o have_v be_v and_o still_o be_v according_a to_o that_o which_o we_o read_v psal_n 29.3_o etc._n etc._n and_o josh_n ch_n 10._o v._n 11._o at_o what_o time_n the_o lord_n destroy_v more_o of_o the_o enemy_n of_o his_o people_n with_o hailstone_n from_o heaven_n than_o they_o themselves_o slay_v with_o the_o sword_n read_v also_o exod_a 9.22.23.24.25.26_o where_o it_o be_v record_v that_o the_o lord_n do_v exceed_o punish_v the_o egyptian_n by_o hail_n with_o lightning_n and_o thunder_n and_o be_v it_o not_o a_o plain_a demonstration_n that_o god_n rule_v the_o heaven_n see_v it_o be_v in_o his_o power_n to_o make_v they_o as_o it_o be_v brass_n over_o our_o head_n as_o he_o do_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o wicked_a k_o ahab_n so_o that_o it_o rain_v not_o for_o the_o space_n of_o three_o year_n and_o six_o month_n together_o 1._o king_n 17_o 1.2_o &_o ch_z 18.1.41_o etc._n etc._n james_n 5.17.18_o and_o see_v he_o can_v cause_v it_o of_o his_o mercy_n to_o rain_v in_o one_o city_n and_o because_o of_o his_o displeasure_n not_o to_o rain_v in_o the_o city_n next_o unto_o it_o yea_o see_v he_o can_v &_o do_v at_o his_o pleasure_n send_v rain_n upon_o one_o field_n &_o not_o upon_o the_o next_o as_o amos._n ch_z 4.7_o and_o be_v it_o not_o plain_a in_o that_o it_o be_v write_v ps_n 65.9.10_o that_o it_o be_v god_n who_o visit_v the_o earth_n and_o water_v it_o at_o his_o pleasure_n and_o psal_n 68.9_o he_o send_v his_o gracious_a rain_n to_o refresh_v the_o earth_n he_o refresh_v it_o when_o it_o be_v weary_a etc._n etc._n and_o mat_n 5.45_o it_o be_v god_n that_o send_v rain_n and_o moreover_o be_v not_o the_o same_o manifest_a in_o that_o as_o touch_v the_o wind_n he_o be_v say_v to_o draw_v they_o out_o of_o his_o treasure_n psal_n 135.7_o and_o in_o that_o he_o use_v they_o to_o singular_a mercy_n when_o so_o it_o seem_v good_a unto_o he_o as_o gen_n ch_n 8.1_o and_o exod_a 14_o 21._o and_o 1._o king_n 18.45_o and_o also_o for_o great_a judgement_n and_o punishment_n against_o the_o wicked_a as_o in_o the_o former_a place_n of_o exod_a and_o chap._n 15.8.10_o read_v also_o jonah_n ch_n 1.4_o and_z ch_z 4.8_o be_v not_o all_o these_o i_o pray_v you_o evident_a proof_n and_o demonstration_n of_o god_n holy_a providence_n in_o the_o rule_n and_o govern_v of_o these_o his_o creature_n no_o doubt_v they_o be_v and_o therefore_o worthy_o be_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n celebrate_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o this_o behalf_n psal_n 147._o v._n 15.16.17.18_o final_o to_o this_o purpose_n read_v that_o notable_a scripture_n in_o the_o book_n of_o job_n chap_n 37_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o chapter_n to_o the_o 19_o verse_n thus_o much_o concern_v the_o work_n of_o the_o second_o day_n question_n now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n in_o govern_v the_o work_n of_o the_o three_o day_n what_o proof_n can_v you_o show_v for_o this_o answer_n the_o drown_n of_o the_o world_n before_o mention_v in_o that_o all_o the_o fountain_n of_o the_o great_a deep_a do_v then_o break_v up_o at_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n as_o we_o read_v gen_n chap_n 7.11_o and_o likewise_o the_o clear_n or_o empty_v of_o the_o earth_n again_o within_o a_o few_o day_n after_o they_o be_v very_o plain_a sinsible_a and_o famous_a demonstration_n of_o it_o for_o ever_o the_o breach_n also_o which_o the_o sea_n do_v sundry_a time_n attempt_v and_o make_v do_v easy_o show_v what_o they_o will_v do_v if_o they_o be_v not_o restrain_v and_o hold_v in_o by_o the_o almighty_a and_o most_o gracious_a overruling_a power_n of_o god_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n these_o be_v so_o plain_a proof_n indeed_o as_o all_o but_o they_o that_o will_v not_o see_v must_v needs_o acknowledge_v the_o evidence_n of_o they_o we_o may_v read_v the_o same_o also_o testify_v psal_n 89.9_o thou_o rule_a the_o rage_a of_o the_o sea_n when_o the_o wave_n thereof_o arise_v thou_o still_a they_o and_o ps_n 93.3.4_o &_o 107.23.24.25.26.27.28.29_o thus_o therefore_o the_o providence_n of_o our_o god_n evidenty_n appear_v in_o the_o order_n of_o the_o sea_n and_o of_o the_o dry_a land_n so_o far_o as_o concern_v the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o three_o day_n creation_n show_v likewise_o some_o proof_n of_o the_o same_o provident_a government_n of_o god_n concern_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o which_o also_o god_n create_v the_o same_o day_n question_n what_o proof_n have_v you_o hereof_o answer_n in_o this_o respect_n thus_o we_o read_v psal_n 74.17_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v summer_n and_o winter_n and_o psal_n 104._o verse_n 13_o 14_o 15._o god_n water_v the_o mountain_n from_o his_o chamber_n and_o the_o earth_n be_v fill_v with_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o work_n he_o cause_v grass_n to_o grow_v for_o cattle_n and_o herb_n for_o the_o use_n of_o man_n that_o he_o may_v bring_v forth_o bread_n out_o of_o the_o earth_n and_o wine_n that_o make_v glad_a the_o heart_n of_o man_n &_o oil_n to_o make_v the_o face_n to_o shine_v and_o bread_n that_o strengthen_v man_n heart_n this_o one_o testimony_n be_v so_o plain_a and_o plentiful_a that_o it_o may_v well_o stand_v in_o stead_n of_o many_o proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n to_o testify_v the_o fatherly_a goodness_n and_o bounty_n of_o god_n in_o this_o behalf_n read_v also_o 2._o king_n 19.29_o and_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v as_o clear_v that_o god_n for_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n make_v the_o earth_n barren_a and_o unfruitful_a send_v dearth_n and_o famine_n etc._n etc._n as_o we_o read_v joel_n ch_n first_o and_o second_o likewise_o amos._n 4.6.7.8.9_o yea_o so_o that_o god_n do_v even_o turn_v abundance_n into_o want_n &_o curse_v the_o very_a plenty_n of_o those_o that_o do_v abuse_v it_o according_a to_o the_o threaten_n of_o god_n deut_n 28.17.22_o 23.38.39.40.41.42_o let_v this_o suffice_v concern_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n in_o govern_v the_o creature_n create_v in_o the_o three_o day_n question_n what_o proof_n can_v you_o now_o allege_v concern_v the_o work_n create_v in_o the_o four_o day_n to_o show_v that_o god_n do_v likewise_o rule_v &_o govern_v they_o this_o also_o may_v be_v make_v manifest_a answer_v from_o record_n of_o ancient_a experience_n in_o that_o at_o the_o prayer_n of_o joshua_n god_n stay_v the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o moon_n by_o the_o space_n of_o a_o whole_a day_n yea_o so_o that_o the_o day_n of_o this_o stay_n of_o the_o sun_n be_v as_o long_o as_o two_o day_n ordinary_o proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n this_o do_v the_o lord_n to_o the_o end_n his_o people_n may_v avenge_v themselves_o or_o rather_o that_o they_o may_v execute_v the_o vengeance_n of_o the_o lord_n upon_o his_o enemy_n the_o more_o effectual_o so_o we_o read_v josh_o chap_n 10._o verse_n 12.13.14_o day_n f●ue_a hour_n in_o go_v ng_z back_o and_o ti●e_v in_o go_v forward_o again_o the_o choice_n ●f_n the_o sig●e_n be_v offer_v to_o the_o king_n about_o the_o use_v time_n of_o the_o day_n and_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o good_a k._n hezekiah_n the_o lord_n cause_v the_o sun_n to_o go_v back_o ten_o degree_n 2._o king_n chap_n 20_o 11._o and_o isai_n 38_o 8._o so_o that_o the_o day_n of_o this_o go_v back_o of_o the_o sun_n be_v lengthen_v the_o space_n of_o ten_o hour_n so_o that_o it_o be_v two_o and_o twenty_o hour_n long_o as_o some_o do_v probable_o esteem_v the_o degree_n of_o the_o dial_n to_o be_v every_o half_a hour_n four_o and_o twenty_o in_o all_o the_o same_o providence_n of_o god_n be_v manifest_v also_o by_o a_o like_a unwonted_a course_n concern_v the_o darkness_n the_o which_o god_n continue_v upon_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n by_o the_o space_n of_o three_o day_n together_o and_o that_o also_o in_o so_o palpable_a a_o manner_n that_o the_o egyptian_n see_v not_o glimpse_n of_o light_n either_o from_o sun_n or_o moon_n or_o any_o star_n for_o all_o that_o while_n exod_n 10_o 22.23_o the_o like_a be_v to_o be_v say_v concern_v the_o darkness_n which_o be_v at_o the_o crucify_a of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o we_o read_v mat_n chap_n 27_o 45._o so_o that_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v b●t_o must_v needs_o be_v grant_v that_o the_o lord_n have_v open_o avouch_v his_o providence_n and_o government_n over_o his_o heavenly_a
in_o the_o same_o chapter_n from_o the_o 4._o verse_n the_o same_o be_v give_v to_o be_v consider_v of_o we_o concern_v the_o wild_a goat_n the_o wild_a ass_n the_o hind_n and_o the_o unicorn_n in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o the_o king_n chapter_n 13.26_o god_n deliver_v a_o certain_a prophet_n to_o be_v slay_v of_o a_o lion_n which_o meet_v he_o by_o the_o appointment_n of_o god_n to_o the_o same_o end_n because_o he_o have_v disobey_v his_o commandment_n nevertheless_o god_n so_o limit_v and_o restrain_v the_o lion_n that_o he_o do_v not_o devour_v any_o part_n of_o he_o verse_n 24.25_o and_o dan_o chap_a 6.22_o it_o be_v record_v that_o god_n do_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o holy_a angel_n so_o shut_v the_o hungry_a lion_n mouth_n to_o who_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n be_v throw_v that_o they_o can_v do_v he_o no_o hurt_n at_o all_o because_o he_o believe_v in_o god_n that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o deliver_v he_o but_o 2._o king_n ch_n 2._o verse_n 24._o god_n send_v two_o bear_n out_o of_o a_o wood_n and_o give_v they_o power_n to_o destroy_v and_o tear_v in_o piece_n two_o and_o forty_o of_o those_o wicked_a child_n that_o mock_v the_o holy_a prophet_n of_o god_n elisha_n and_o thus_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n reach_v to_o the_o government_n of_o every_o wild_a beast_n question_n now_o of_o the_o brute_n beast_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o kind_n only_o be_v behind_o which_o creep_v upon_o the_o earth_n what_o proof_n have_v you_o that_o they_o also_o be_v rule_v and_o govern_v by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n answer_n we_o read_v in_o the_o 21._o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o number_n verse_n 6._o that_o god_n send_v fiery_a serpent_n among_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n which_o sting_v they_o so_o that_o many_o of_o they_o die_v of_o the_o inflammation_n of_o the_o poison_n because_o of_o their_o murmur_a against_o god_n and_o his_o faithful_a servant_n moses_n proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n the_o providence_n of_o god_n and_o his_o government_n over_o this_o kind_n of_o creature_n even_o to_o the_o least_o of_o they_o may_v evident_o be_v argue_v from_o hence_o that_o it_o please_v he_o to_o preserve_v a_o remnant_n of_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v drown_v in_o the_o general_a deluge_n or_o flood_n as_o we_o read_v gen_n 7._o verse_n 8.14.17_o we_o may_v likewise_o perceive_v it_o evident_o from_o those_o punishment_n which_o god_n lay_v upon_o the_o egyptian_n by_o send_v frog_n and_o lice_n and_o grasshopper_n which_o we_o may_v well_o enough_o reckon_v among_o the_o creep_a thing_n as_o be_v near_o of_o kind_n unto_o they_o moreover_o we_o may_v understand_v it_o to_o be_v so_o by_o this_o that_o as_o he_o threaten_v so_o he_o send_v many_o time_n the_o caterpillar_n and_o other_o worm_n for_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o people_n joel._n chapter_n 1_o 4._o as_o also_o in_o that_o upon_o their_o repentance_n he_o take_v they_o away_o again_o as_o chap_a 2.25_o and_o malac_n chap_v 3.11_o this_o part_n of_o god_n providence_n be_v not_o to_o be_v neglect_v of_o us._n for_o it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o derogate_a from_o the_o honour_n of_o it_o as_o we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n hereafter_o to_o observe_v further_o that_o it_o do_v on_o the_o contrary_a most_o lively_o set_v out_o the_o absolute_a perfection_n of_o it_o in_o so_o much_o as_o it_o extend_v itself_o even_o to_o the_o most_o wise_a just_a and_o exact_a order_n of_o the_o least_o and_o base_a worm_n thar_z creep_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o now_o we_o come_v to_o the_o last_o and_o great_a work_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o six_o day_n to_o wit_n the_o make_n of_o mankind_n who_o as_o god_n create_v by_o his_o special_a wisdom_n so_o he_o govern_v they_o with_o their_o whole_a posterity_n with_o a_o principal_a and_o most_o provident_a care_n and_o regard_n above_o all_o other_o of_o the_o earthly_a creature_n from_o time_n to_o time_n not_o only_o before_o the_o fall_n as_o we_o have_v already_o see_v but_o also_o ever_o since_o the_o fall_n as_o we_o be_v henceforth_o to_o inquire_v the_o which_o that_o we_o may_v do_v in_o some_o commodious_a course_n we_o must_v necessary_o proceed_v by_o some_o division_n or_o distribution_n of_o part_n or_o member_n such_o as_o be_v to_o be_v distinguish_v in_o this_o argument_n for_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o mankind_n some_o as_o reprobate_n be_v just_o leave_v in_o their_o sin_n wherein_o also_o they_o do_v willing_o continue_v yea_o and_o harden_v their_o heart_n against_o all_o holy_a mean_n tend_v to_o the_o contrary_n other_o be_v elect_v according_a to_o the_o free_a grace_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n they_o harken_v to_o god_n repent_v of_o their_o sin_n and_o dutiful_o embrace_v all_o mean_n and_o help_n which_o god_n vouchsafe_v they_o for_o their_o furtherance_n to_o everlasting_a happiness_n and_o salvation_n wherefore_o let_v we_o according_o inquire_v of_o these_o part_n of_o god_n most_o provident_a government_n as_o well_o concern_v the_o one_o as_o the_o other_o and_o herein_o also_o not_o only_o concern_v the_o body_n and_o outward_a estate_n but_o principal_o concern_v the_o government_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o spirit_n of_o man_n neither_o yet_o let_v we_o inquire_v of_o particular_a person_n alone_o but_o also_o of_o family_n and_o whole_a state_n city_n nation_n and_o kingdom_n for_o all_o be_v most_o wise_o and_o exact_o rule_v and_o govern_v not_o by_o a_o general_a and_o confuse_a providence_n but_o even_o by_o a_o particular_a and_o vigilant_a care_n every_o way_n first_o therefore_o concern_v the_o wicked_a what_o ground_n have_v you_o that_o god_n by_o his_o divine_a providence_n govern_v and_o rule_v or_o rather_o over-ruleth_a and_o bridle_v they_o wherein_o also_o see_v we_o be_v to_o begin_v with_o particular_a person_n concern_v their_o outward_a and_o private_a estate_n question_n what_o ground_n have_v you_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o providence_n of_o the_o lord_n god_n herein_o answer_n wicked_a cain_n the_o first_o man_n after_o the_o fall_n may_v be_v a_o notable_a example_n hereof_o in_o that_o the_o lord_n god_n mind_v to_o make_v he_o to_o be_v in_o the_o fight_n of_o all_o man_n a_o visible_a and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o brand_a example_n of_o his_o temporal_a punishment_n here_o in_o this_o world_n for_o his_o unnatural_a and_o cruel_a fratricide_n or_o murder_v of_o his_o godly_a brother_n he_o grant_v he_o therefore_o the_o protection_n of_o his_o life_n so_o that_o none_o shall_v take_v it_o away_o from_o he_o though_o indeed_o god_n do_v this_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o his_o life_n have_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o it_o the_o continual_a discomfort_n and_o fear_v of_o death_n yea_o and_o therewithal_o through_o the_o guiltenes_n of_o a_o most_o evil_a conscience_n a_o expectation_n of_o a_o most_o woeful_a judgement_n to_o fall_v upon_o he_o afterward_o proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n so_o indeed_o the_o holy_a history_n itself_o give_v plain_o to_o every_o advise_v and_o attentive_a reader_n to_o understand_v genes_n chapter_n 4.11.12_o etc._n etc._n from_o the_o which_o decree_n of_o god_n concern_v the_o safeguard_n of_o this_o wicked_a man_n life_n so_o long_o as_o it_o be_v his_o pleasure_n for_o example_n sake_n to_o continue_v the_o same_o we_o may_v just_o affirm_v that_o the_o life_n of_o all_o the_o wicked_a be_v so_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n that_o none_o can_v take_v life_n away_o from_o they_o till_o the_o time_n appoint_v of_o god_n be_v come_v but_o when_o that_o time_n be_v once_o come_v god_n himself_o will_v root_v they_o out_o according_a to_o their_o desert_n and_o prosper_v every_o mean_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v prepare_v to_o that_o end_n moreover_o as_o god_n maintain_v the_o life_n of_o every_o wicked_a man_n so_o long_o as_o he_o think_v good_a to_o let_v they_o live_v so_o he_o allow_v unto_o they_o the_o outward_a mean_n and_o natural_a comfort_n of_o this_o natural_a life_n matth._n 5.45_o and_o psal_n 17.14_o the_o which_o their_o allowance_n from_o god_n the_o godly_a be_v warn_v that_o they_o do_v not_o envy_v or_o repine_v against_o they_o for_o it_o as_o we_o read_v psalm_n 37.1_o and_o in_o diverse_a other_o place_n the_o wicked_a be_v partaker_n also_o of_o bodily_a health_n which_o be_v a_o good_a gift_n of_o god_n yet_o so_o as_o when_o they_o have_v abuse_v this_o gift_n to_o the_o full_a measure_n of_o their_o sin_n god_n take_v away_o both_o health_n &_o life_n as_o job_n 21.7_o etc._n etc._n and_o ps_n 73.3.4_o etc._n etc._n read_v also_o 1._o sam_n 5.6_o and_o 2._o chron_n 21.12.14.15_o act_n 12.23_o isai_n chap_v 37._o verse_n 36.37.38_o nevertheless_o let_v we_o herewithal_o observe_v that_o the_o lord_n do_v
call_v to_o mind_n and_o diligent_o peruse_v again_o read_v also_o as_o belong_v to_o the_o lord_n covenant_n concern_v the_o wild_a beast_n on_o our_o behalf_n upon_o condition_n that_o we_o will_v faithful_o believe_v and_o obey_v he_o psalm_n 91.13_o allege_v not_o long_o before_o and_o isai_n chap._n 11.6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o though_o from_o hence_o a_o further_a blessing_n be_v signify_v by_o that_o allusion_n the_o wolf_n also_o shall_v dwell_v with_o the_o lamb_n and_o the_o leopard_n shall_v lie_v with_o the_o kid_n and_o the_o calf_n and_o the_o lion_n and_o the_o fat_a beast_n together_o and_o a_o little_a child_n shall_v lead_v they_o and_o the_o kow_n and_o the_o bear_n shall_v feed_v their_o young_a one_o shall_v lie_v together_o and_o the_o lion_n shall_v eat_v straw_n like_o the_o bullock_n and_o the_o suck_a child_n shall_v play_v upon_o the_o hole_n of_o the_o asp_z and_o the_o wean_a child_n shall_v put_v his_o hand_n upon_o the_o cockatrice_n hole_n then_o shall_v none_o hurt_v nor_o destroy_v in_o the_o mountain_n of_o my_o holiness_n for_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v full_a of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o the_o water_n that_o cover_v the_o sea_n read_v also_o mark_v cha_n 16.18_o the_o like_a promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o the_o same_o confirm_v in_o part_n by_o a_o example_n of_o god_n gracious_a providence_n act._n 28.3_o 4_o 5_o 6._o the_o viper_n be_v restrain_v from_o stingng_n of_o paul_n hand_n sure_o it_o be_v our_o own_o wickedness_n and_o not_o want_v of_o vigilancy_n or_o mercy_n in_o the_o lord_n which_o do_v as_o it_o be_v arm_n and_o enrage_v the_o wild_a beast_n against_o us._n for_o otherwise_o by_o the_o virtue_n &_o grace_n of_o this_o promise_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v be_v at_o peace_n yea_o willing_o subject_n unto_o us._n but_o in_o so_o much_o as_o we_o rebel_v against_o god_n and_o break_v our_o covenant_n with_o he_o it_o be_v just_a with_o god_n that_o they_o shall_v rebel_v against_o we_o and_o break_v that_o covenant_n which_o he_o upon_o condition_n of_o our_o obedience_n to_o god_n have_v by_o the_o law_n of_o his_o creation_n make_v with_o they_o for_o us._n and_o so_o god_n himself_o have_v threaten_v levit_fw-la 26.21.22_o and_o deut_n 28._o verse_n 26._o a_o example_n whereof_o also_o we_o have_v see_v before_o concern_v those_o 42._o child_n which_o two_o bear_n do_v tear_v in_o piece_n because_o they_o mock_v the_o prophet_n elisha_n yea_o this_o judgement_n do_v not_o only_o fall_v upon_o those_o that_o be_v very_o wicked_a but_o sometime_o also_o even_o upon_o those_o that_o have_v some_o desire_n to_o serve_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o time_n of_o some_o common_a calamity_n according_a to_o that_o we_o read_v psal_n 79.2_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o thy_o servant_n have_v they_o give_v to_o be_v meat_n unto_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o heaven_n and_o the_o flesh_n of_o thy_o saint_n to_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o earth_n nevertheless_o in_o such_o case_n the_o lord_n know_v how_o eternal_o to_o save_v his_o own_o when_o he_o reject_v the_o ungodly_a for_o ever_o and_o for_o the_o full_a clear_n of_o the_o lord_n gracious_a promise_n this_o way_n if_o we_o will_v and_o can_v faithful_o keep_v covenant_n with_o he_o we_o may_v plentiful_o inform_v our_o mind_n from_o that_o which_o he_o have_v by_o his_o holy_a prophet_n moses_n record_v at_o large_a as_o well_o deut_n chap_n 28._o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o chapter_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 14._o verse_n as_o levit_fw-la chap_n 26._o from_o the_o 3._o verse_n to_o the_o 14._o of_o the_o same_o let_v we_o therefore_o for_o our_o instruction_n in_o this_o point_n read_v these_o notable_a text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o consider_v diligent_o of_o they_o and_o first_o of_o that_o in_o levit_fw-la question_n how_o read_v you_o there_o answer_n in_o the_o 26._o chap_n of_o leviticus_fw-la thus_o we_o read_v if_o you_o wa●ke_v in_o my_o ordinance_n and_o keep_v my_o commandment_n and_o ●●e_v they_o say_v the_o lord_n i_o will_v then_o send_v you_o rain_n in_o due_a season_n and_o the_o land_n shall_v yield_v her_o increase_n and_o the_o tree_n of_o the_o field_n shall_v give_v their_o fruit_n etc._n etc._n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n this_o be_v a_o notable_a place_n contain_v as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o through_o read_v of_o it_o in_o our_o bibles_n promise_v of_o all_o sort_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a for_o soul_n and_o body_n public_a &_o private_a etc._n etc._n and_o like_v to_o this_o be_v that_o other_o of_o deuteronomie_n let_v it_o not_o seem_v unnecessary_a or_o a_o lose_a labour_n for_o we_o to_o rehearse_v &_o consider_v of_o that_o excellent_a scripture_n likewise_o for_o it_o shall_v be_v to_o our_o further_a benefit_n as_o we_o may_v well_o trust_v through_o the_o goodness_n of_o our_o god_n i_o pray_v you_o therefore_o let_v we_o read_v this_o also_o yea_o and_o if_o it_o may_v be_v commit_v it_o so_o to_o memory_n that_o we_o do_v never_o forget_v it_o question_n how_o therefore_o do_v you_o read_v answer_n it_o be_v thus_o write_a deut_n ch_n 28._o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o chapter_n if_o thou_o will_v obey_v diligent_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o observe_v and_o do_v all_o his_o commandment_n which_o i_o command_v thou_o this_o day_n than_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n will_v set_v thou_o on_o high_a above_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o all_o these_o blessing_n shall_v come_v on_o thou_o and_o overtake_v thou_o if_o thou_o will_v obey_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n blessed_n shall_v thou_o be_v in_o the_o city_n and_o bless_v also_o in_o the_o field_n bless_v shall_v be_v the_o fruit_n of_o thy_o body_n etc._n etc._n proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n this_o place_n be_v as_o a_o second_o notable_a witness_n of_o god_n gracious_a promise_n and_o of_o his_o very_a true_a purpose_n to_o exercise_v a_o most_o fatherly_a and_o favourable_a providence_n towards_o all_o his_o faithful_a servant_n and_o child_n touch_v all_o kind_n of_o prosperity_n and_o blessing_n while_o they_o walk_v faithful_o and_o dutiful_o before_o he_o and_o although_o peradventure_o some_o will_v object_v and_o say_v that_o these_o promise_n be_v legal_a promise_n and_o so_o not_o of_o faith_n or_o belong_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o we_o also_o do_v grant_v it_o to_o be_v so_o according_a to_o the_o first_o use_n of_o the_o law_n which_o be_v to_o discover_v sin_n and_o to_o convict_v those_o of_o extreme_a vanity_n whosoever_o seek_v to_o be_v justify_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n nevertheless_o this_o we_o add_v therewithal_o and_o constant_o affirm_v that_o to_o such_o as_o have_v learned_a to_o humble_v themselves_o before_o god_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o have_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o faith_n to_o rely_v upon_o the_o fatherly_a providence_n of_o god_n through_o our_o lord_n je_fw-fr christ_n they_o be_v according_a to_o a_o other_o use_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o be_v to_o guide_v and_o encourage_v all_o true_a believer_n in_o the_o right_a way_n of_o obedience_n to_o god_n our_o heavenly_a father_n they_o be_v i_o say_v the_o same_o with_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o according_o they_o be_v just_o to_o be_v apprehend_v &_o believe_v by_o faith_n as_o no_o vain_a encouragement_n to_o godliness_n of_o life_n like_v as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n affirm_v 1._o tim_n 4.8_o godliness_n have_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o life_n present_a and_o of_o that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v and_o according_a to_o that_o 2._o cor_n 1.20_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v in_o christ_n yea_o and_o amen_o likewise_o according_a to_o that_o psal_n 34.9.10_o fear_v the_o lord_n you_o his_o saint_n comfort_n the_o comfort_n for_o nothing_o want_v to_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o the_o lion_n lack_n and_o suffer_v hunger_n but_o they_o who_o seek_v the_o lord_n shall_v want_v nothing_o that_o be_v good_a read_v also_o psal_n 91.14.15.16_o because_o he_o have_v love_v i_o therefore_o will_v i_o deliver_v he_o i_o will_v exalt_v he_o because_o he_o have_v know_v my_o name_n etc._n etc._n and_o psalm_n 121.1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o and_o so_o forth_o as_o be_v allege_v before_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v indeed_o but_o insomuch_o as_o the_o best_a of_o all_o fail_v in_o obedience_n to_o god_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n james_n in_o many_o thing_n we_o sin_v all_o and_o they_o that_o be_v strong_a in_o faith_n have_v their_o weakness_n so_o as_o they_o have_v need_v to_o pray_v lord_n increase_v our_o faith_n and_o further_o also_o insomuch_o as_o it_o be_v the_o pleasure_n of_o god_n upon_o holy_a and_o just_a
lord_n shall_v stand_v for_o ever_o and_o the_o thought_n of_o his_o heart_n throughout_o all_o age_n as_o balaam_n say_v that_o he_o can_v not_o speak_v but_o as_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v he_o numb_a 24.13_o so_o it_o be_v general_o affirm_v that_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o tongue_n be_v of_o the_o lord_n prou_z chap_n 16.1_o the_o ordinary_a cure_n which_o the_o lord_n work_v concern_v all_o sort_n of_o disease_n they_o be_v in_o effect_n the_o same_o and_o in_o number_n infinite_o more_o than_o his_o miraculous_a cure_n have_v be_v all_o proceed_v from_o one_o and_o the_o same_o mercy_n of_o god_n towards_o his_o people_n whether_o he_o work_v by_o mean_n or_o without_o mean_n in_o some_o process_n and_o tract_n of_o time_n or_o more_o speedy_o in_o a_o moment_n psalm_n 103._o verse_n 3_o 4._o as_o god_n direct_v the_o lot_n to_o find_v out_o achan_n jonathan_n jonah_n mathias_n so_o by_o the_o same_o providence_n of_o god_n the_o whole_a disposition_n of_o every_o lot_n be_v of_o the_o lord_n though_o to_o our_o think_n it_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o lap_n as_o it_o be_v by_o hap_n hazard_n prou_z 16.33_o final_o as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n can_v not_o be_v apprehend_v and_o put_v to_o death_n until_o the_o time_n come_v appoint_v of_o the_o lord_n so_o the_o time_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o god_n be_v in_o his_o hand_n to_o dispose_v of_o they_o as_o it_o please_v he_o all_o the_o contrary_a endeavour_n of_o the_o wicked_a notwithstanding_o as_o 2._o chron_n 16_o 9_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o lord_n behold_v all_o the_o earth_n to_o show_v himself_o strong_a with_o they_o that_o be_v of_o perfect_a heart_n towards_o he_o great_a therefore_o be_v the_o comfort_n of_o faith_n in_o god_n fatherly_a providence_n to_o every_o one_o that_o true_o believe_v in_o he_o according_a to_o this_o second_o consideration_n and_o the_o rather_o will_v this_o consideration_n be_v comfortable_a if_o we_o observe_v that_o god_n do_v not_o at_o this_o day_n so_o tie_v himself_o to_o ordinary_a course_n but_o so_o often_o as_o he_o think_v meet_v he_o send_v extraordinary_a succour_n to_o his_o distress_a servant_n according_a as_o it_o be_v credible_o report_v that_o god_n have_v in_o these_o our_o day_n strange_o direct_v his_o servant_n sometime_o to_o prevent_v the_o apprehension_n of_o their_o persecutor_n &_o sometime_o to_o escape_v after_o they_o have_v be_v apprehend_v though_o they_o have_v be_v narrow_o watch_v according_a also_o as_o at_o the_o siege_n of_o rochel_n it_o be_v report_v that_o when_o the_o poor_a sort_n want_v bread_n &_o victual_n god_n do_v send_v they_o in_o the_o river_n a_o kind_n of_o fish_n call_v surdone_n every_o day_n so_o long_o as_o the_o siege_n last_v in_o great_a abundance_n and_o that_o they_o cease_v the_o same_o day_n that_o the_o siege_n break_v up_o act_n and_o monum_fw-la at_o the_o very_a end_n of_o the_o book_n thus_o much_o concern_v the_o second_o help_n to_o far_o &_o enlarge_v our_o comfort_n in_o the_o fatherly_a providence_n of_o god_n three_o to_o the_o same_o end_n serve_v the_o experience_n and_o testimony_n of_o other_o concern_v the_o same_o such_o as_o be_v the_o testimony_n and_o experience_n of_o joshua_n concern_v himself_o and_o the_o people_n in_o his_o time_n ch_n 21.45_o there_o have_v nothing_o fail_v say_v he_o of_o all_o the_o good_a thing_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v to_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n but_o all_o come_v to_o pass_v and_o again_o ch_n 23.14.15_o as_o it_o be_v upon_o his_o deathbed_n behold_v say_v he_o this_o day_n do_v i_o enter_v into_o the_o way_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o you_o know_v in_o all_o your_o heart_n and_o in_o all_o your_o soul_n that_o nothing_o have_v fail_v of_o all_o the_o good_a thing_n which_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n promise_v you_o but_o all_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v unto_o you_o nothing_o have_v fail_v thereof_o likewise_o king_n solomon_n 1._o king_n 8.15_o bless_a be_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n say_v he_o who_o speak_v with_o his_o mouth_n unto_o david_n my_o father_n &_o have_v with_o his_o hand_n fulfil_v it_o etc._n etc._n and_o so_o k._n david_n before_o he_o psa_n 18.4_o etc._n etc._n the_o sorrow_n of_o death_n compass_v i_o etc._n etc._n but_o in_o my_o trouble_n i_o call_v upon_o the_o lord_n &_o cry_v unto_o my_o god_n he_o hear_v my_o voice_n out_o of_o his_o temple_n &_o my_o cry_n do_v come_v before_o he_o into_o his_o ear_n etc._n etc._n and_o ps_n 34.2_o etc._n etc._n my_o soul_n shall_v glory_v in_o the_o lord_n the_o humble_a shall_v hear_v it_o and_o be_v glad_a etc._n etc._n i_o seek_v the_o lord_n and_o he_o hear_v i_o yea_o he_o deliver_v i_o out_o of_o all_o my_o fear_n they_o shall_v therefore_o look_v unto_o he_o and_o run_v to_o he_o and_o their_o face_n shall_v not_o be_v ashamed_a say_v this_o poor_a man_n cry_v and_o the_o lord_n hear_v he_o and_o save_v he_o out_o of_o all_o his_o trouble_n and_o ps_n 37.25_o i_o have_v be_v young_a and_o be_o old_a yet_o i_o never_o see_v the_o righteous_a forsake_v nor_o his_o seed_n beg_v bread_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_n touch_v the_o wicked_a verse_n 35.36_o i_o have_v see_v the_o wicked_a say_v he_o strong_a and_o spread_a himself_o like_o a_o green_a bay_n tree_n or_o as_o the_o word_n hezrach_n arbour_n indigena_fw-la signify_v a_o tree_n in_o his_o native_a soil_n yet_o he_o pass_v away_o and_z lo_o he_o be_v go_v &_o i_o seek_v he_o but_o he_o can_v not_o be_v find_v but_o that_o we_o may_v return_v again_o to_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o prophet_n concern_v his_o own_o experience_n read_v psal_n 66_o 16_o etc._n etc._n come_v say_v he_o and_o hearken_v all_o you_o that_o fear_v god_n and_o i_o will_v tell_v you_o what_o he_o have_v do_v to_o my_o soul_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o ps_n 116.5.6_o etc._n etc._n to_o the_o further_a of_o this_o comfort_n it_o be_v to_o singular_a purpose_n that_o we_o do_v thorough_o acquaint_v ourselves_o with_o those_o holy_a history_n of_o the_o bible_n wherein_o god_n himself_o have_v of_o special_a purpose_n most_o lively_o manifest_v the_o most_o gracious_a virtue_n of_o his_o providence_n as_o be_v notable_o in_o the_o history_n record_v concern_v jaakob_n joseph_n david_n job_n and_o such_o like_a who_o end_n and_o issue_n out_o of_o their_o manifold_a and_o great_a trouble_n we_o be_v will_v to_o consider_v to_o the_o comfort_v of_o ourselves_o against_o our_o own_o affliction_n and_o trial_n james._n chap_n 5._o 10._o 11._o four_o our_o own_o experience_n from_o time_n past_a faithful_o record_v in_o our_o heart_n will_v be_v very_o helpefull_a to_o the_o increase_n of_o our_o comfort_n for_o all_o time_n to_o come_v and_o therefore_o we_o be_v exhort_v diligent_o to_o mark_v the_o lord_n gracious_a deal_n with_o his_o servant_n as_o psal_n 37._o verse_n 37._o mark_v the_o upright_a man_n and_o behold_v the_o just_a for_o the_o end_n of_o that_o man_n be_v peace_n thus_o every_o one_o of_o we_o shall_v keep_v a_o diligent_a register_n of_o all_o god_n merciful_a deal_n towards_o our_o godly_a friend_n and_o acquaintance_n both_o concern_v their_o life_n &_o their_o death_n all_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v so_o many_o encouragement_n to_o confirm_v we_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o like_o godly_a course_n that_o they_o have_v walk_v in_o and_o so_o to_o hope_v for_o the_o like_a good_a end_n which_o they_o have_v make_v according_a to_o that_o heb_fw-mi 13_o 7._o the_o sewne_n of_o such_o kind_n of_o observer_n of_o god_n providence_n be_v note_v to_o their_o reproof_n ps_n 107.23_o but_o as_o touch_v those_o that_o be_v diligent_a observer_n of_o it_o the_o fruit_n be_v note_v to_o be_v singular_a even_o in_o the_o same_o verse_n insomuch_o as_o they_o shall_v understand_v to_o wit_n to_o their_o comfort_n how_o great_a the_o kindness_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v contrariwise_o all_o profane_a neglect_n whether_o of_o the_o mercy_n or_o of_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o lord_n it_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o just_a displeasure_n &_o vengeance_n of_o god_n ps_n 28.5_o very_o if_o we_o will_v diligent_o call_v to_o mind_n we_o shall_v easy_o remember_v that_o god_n have_v show_v we_o much_o mercy_n in_o our_o life_n time_n in_o save_v we_o from_o many_o hurt_n and_o mischief_n sometime_o from_o break_v a_o leg_n or_o a_o arm_n sometime_o from_o drown_v or_o burn_a sometime_o from_o the_o loss_n of_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o body_n or_o from_o the_o loss_n of_o the_o spiritual_a eye_n of_o our_o understanding_n whereby_o we_o shall_v have_v fall_v into_o this_o or_o that_o heresy_n of_o soul_n yea_o if_o we_o will_v careful_o call_v thing_n to_o mind_n we_o shall_v easy_o remember_v
altogether_o profane_a and_o abuse_v the_o bless_a and_o glorious_a word_n and_o gospel_n of_o god_n and_o our_o saviour_n christ_n it_o be_v most_o just_a that_o god_n shall_v take_v severe_a vengeance_n upon_o they_o by_o give_v they_o over_o to_o strong_a delusion_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v lie_n &c_n &c_n according_a to_o the_o holy_a menace_n of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n 2._o thessalon_n 2.10.11.12_o for_o see_v it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o it_o be_v just_a with_o god_n severelie_o to_o punish_v the_o heathen_a for_o their_o smother_n of_o the_o dim_a light_n of_o natural_a understanding_n which_o be_v remain_v in_o they_o as_o we_o read_v rom_n 1._o verse_n 18_o etc._n etc._n much_o more_o must_v it_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o most_o pure_a justice_n of_o god_n to_o double_v his_o wrath_n against_o those_o that_o despise_v the_o perfect_a light_n of_o his_o gospel_n and_o do_v rebel_n against_o his_o most_o holy_a spirit_n which_o shine_v forth_o most_o gracious_o and_o admirable_o towards_o they_o in_o the_o same_o now_o therefore_o for_o the_o conclusion_n of_o all_o objection_n against_o the_o fatherlie_a providence_n of_o our_o good_a god_n let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o last_o question_n which_o be_v this_o how_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o lord_n of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n grant_v his_o child_n the_o mean_n of_o their_o salvation_n and_o most_o vigilantlie_o watch_v over_o their_o salvation_n yet_o some_o of_o the_o most_o dear_a and_o best_o belove_v of_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o leave_v to_o themselves_o that_o they_o shall_v at_o any_o time_n fall_v into_o some_o grievous_a sin_n or_o other_o as_o king_n david_n and_o king_n solomon_n do_v peter_n also_o and_o many_o more_o when_o as_o god_n can_v by_o the_o gracious_a power_n of_o his_o spirit_n have_v preserve_v they_o from_o such_o grievous_a fall_n question_n how_o therefore_o may_v this_o be_v perceive_v to_o accord_v with_o his_o fatherlie_a providence_n and_o government_n answer_n the_o lord_n do_v hereby_o justly_o and_o yet_o also_o in_o exceed_v great_a mercy_n chastise_v some_o former_a f●●e_n either_o of_o negligence_n or_o it_o may_v be_v of_o some_o degree_n of_o presumption_n to_o make_v the_o humane_a corruption_n and_o infirmity_n of_o all_o man_n without_o exception_n every_o way_n more_o full_o know_v for_o the_o common_a instruction_n and_o admonition_n of_o all_o and_o also_o to_o this_o gracious_a end_n among_o the_o rest_n that_o the_o rejoice_v of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n may_v neither_o rest_n in_o themselves_o nor_o upon_o any_o other_o creature_n but_o only_o in_o and_o upon_o the_o lord_n himself_o who_o alone_o be_v the_o only_a constant_a and_o never-failing_a direction_n strength_n and_o salvation_n of_o his_o people_n moreover_o even_o in_o this_o wonderful_a be_v the_o fatherlie_a goodness_n of_o god_n who_o never_o suffer_v any_o of_o his_o child_n final_o to_o perish_v in_o their_o fall_n but_o he_o raise_v they_o up_o again_o by_o repentance_n and_o renew_v the_o joy_n of_o their_o salvation_n unto_o they_o we_o be_v to_o wonder_v at_o it_o in_o deed_n and_o with_o admiration_n to_o bless_v and_o praise_v his_o most_o holy_a gracious_a and_o bless_a name_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n the_o whole_a answer_n be_v evident_a from_o the_o example_n even_o now_o allege_v to_o the_o which_o purpose_n also_o let_v we_o hearken_v to_o the_o prophet_n jeremiah_n chap_n 9_o 23._o 24._o let_v not_o the_o wise_a man_n glory_n in_o his_o wisdom_n etc._n etc._n but_o let_v he_o that_o glori_v glory_n in_o this_o that_o he_o know_v i_o say_v the_o lord_n for_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n which_o do_v show_v mercy_n judgement_n and_o righteousness_n in_o the_o earth_n for_o in_o these_o thing_n i_o do_v delight_n say_v the_o lord_n likewise_o the_o apostle_n paul_n 2._o cor_n 1.30.31_o let_v he_o that_o rejoice_v rejoice_v in_o the_o lord_n thus_o therefore_o for_o the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o discourse_n let_v we_o resolve_v ourselves_o upon_o the_o undoubted_a acknowledgement_n of_o the_o fatherlie_a providence_n of_o our_o most_o gracious_a and_o merciful_a god_n against_o all_o the_o cavil_n that_o may_v by_o any_o be_v object_v against_o it_o for_o by_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o answer_v already_o allege_v we_o may_v with_o like_a facility_n answer_v every_o other_o whatsoever_o they_o may_v be_v but_o what_o though_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a through_o to_o discern_v the_o reason_n of_o some_o of_o god_n divine_a proceed_n and_o judgement_n towards_o any_o other_o of_o his_o child_n or_o towards_o our_o own_o self_n shall_v it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a reason_n for_o we_o to_o call_v into_o question_n the_o providence_n of_o god_n god_n forbid_v excellentlie_o well_o say_v m._n caluine_n that_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a exercise_n of_o our_o faith_n to_o be_v humble_v under_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o with_o silence_n to_o rest_v quiet_o in_o his_o judgement_n sciamus_fw-la inquit_fw-la unum_fw-la esse_fw-la expraecipuis_fw-fr exercitijs_fw-la fidei_fw-la nostrae_fw-la humiliari_fw-la sub_fw-la forti_fw-la dei_fw-la manu_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la silentio_fw-la acquiescere_fw-la eius_fw-la indicijs_fw-la in_o psalm_n 39_o vers_fw-la 1●_n alas_o we_o poor_a wretch_n through_o our_o negligence_n do_v not_o know_v many_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o both_o might_n and_o ought_v to_o know_v how_o then_o may_v we_o presume_v or_o once_o imagine_v that_o we_o may_v attain_v to_o know_v the_o reason_n of_o every_o secret_a work_n and_o judgement_n of_o god_n the_o mercy_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v the_o holy_a prophet_n reach_v to_o the_o heaven_n and_o his_o faithfulness_n to_o the_o cloud_n his_o righteousness_n be_v like_o the_o mighty_a or_o huge_a mountain_n his_o judgement_n be_v like_o the_o great_a deep_a ps●_n ●6_n vers_fw-la 5.6_o read_v also_o job_n ch_n 33._o ve_fw-la s_o 1●_n 1●.14_n behold_v say_v elihu_n to_o job_n in_o this_o thou_o have_v not_o do_v right_o i_o will_v answer_v thou_o that_o god_n be_v gre●ter_a than_o man_n why_o do_v thou_o strive_v against_o he_o for_o he_o do_v not_o give_v account_n of_o all_o his_o matter_n for_o god_n speak_v once_o or_o twice_o and_o one_o see_v it_o not_o etc._n etc._n to_o wit_n until_o he_o open_v the_o ear_n of_o man_n even_o by_o their_o correction_n which_o he_o have_v seal_v as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o 16._o verse_n and_o again_o chapt●●_n 36._o 22._o etc._n etc._n behold_v god_n exalt_v by_o his_o power_n what_o teacher_n be_v like_a unto_o he_o who_o have_v appoint_v to_o he_o his_o way_n or_o who_o can_v say●_n thou_o have_v do_v wicked_o remember_v that_o thou_o magnify_v his_o work_n which_o man_n behold_v all_o man_n see_v it_o and_o behold_v it_o a_o far_o off_o behold_v god_n be_v excellent_a above_o that_o we_o can_v know_v etc._n etc._n it_o be_v meet_v therefore_o that_o every_o one_o of_o we_o do_v reverence_n and_o with_o holy_a admiration_n glorify_v and_o adore_v that_o in_o the_o divine_a counsel_n and_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n god_n whereof_o we_o in_o our_o shallow_a conceit_n can_v apprehend_v no_o reason_n that_o may_v satisfy_v our_o curious_a and_o carnal_a mind_n to_o our_o like_n it_o ought_v abundant_o to_o suffice_v all_o that_o be_v godly_a and_o dutiful_o mind_v towards_o god_n that_o it_o have_v please_v he_o to_o reveal_v unto_o we_o in_o his_o holy_a scripture_n so_o much_o as_o it_o be_v meet_v for_o we_o for_o to_o desire_v to_o know_v and_o the_o rather_o also_o for_o that_o he_o do_v therewithal_o vouchsafe_v accord_o to_o give_v we_o good_a experience_n if_o we_o will_v open_v our_o eye_n to_o see_v it_o that_o he_o guide●●_n and_o dispose_v of_o all_o thing_n both_o mercy_n and_o judgement_n as_o they_o do_v most_o ex_fw-la ●●isitelie_o serve_v in_o the_o end_n to_o the_o manifold_a profit_n and_o comfort_n of_o all_o his_o elect_a child_n and_o people_n unto_o these_o manifold_a profit_n and_o comfort_n therefore_o let_v we_o now_o henceforth_o settle_v our_o mind_n and_o call_v they_o altogether_o away_o from_o such_o haughty_a speculation_n as_o be_v too_o high_a and_o unseem_o for_o we_o to_o climb_v unto_o for_o this_o be_v the_o second_o of_o those_o two_o latter_a point_n mention_v among_o the_o observation_n set_v down_o before_o the_o which_o as_o you_o answer_v do_v serve_v to_o the_o more_o full_a open_n of_o the_o comfort_n which_o be_v furthermore_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o god_n fatherlie_a providence_n and_o that_o to_o very_o good_a purpose_n for_o if_o we_o can_v find_v out_o this_o that_o all_o judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o wicked_a and_o likewise_o that_o all_o his_o affliction_n &_o most_o sharp_a chasticement_n upon_o his_o own_o child_n do_v tend_v to_o their_o singular_a profit_n and_o
resurrection_n and_o life_n and_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o who_o we_o be_v seal_v up_o against_o the_o day_n of_o our_o full_a redemption_n even_o the_o redemption_n of_o our_o body_n to_o live_v again_o reunite_v to_o our_o soul_n and_o to_o be_v make_v incorruptible_a and_o glorious_a so_o to_o abide_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o four_o death_n ought_v to_o be_v comfortable_a unto_o we_o at_o the_o time_n which_o god_n our_o heavenly_a father_n have_v appoint_v what_o kind_n of_o bodily_a death_n soever_o it_o may_v be_v because_o it_o set_v our_o soul_n at_o liberty_n to_o enjoy_v the_o most_o sweet_a and_o comfortable_a society_n of_o the_o bless_a soul_n and_o spirit_n of_o all_o our_o reverend_a father_n dear_a brother_n and_o faithful_a friend_n whosoever_o have_v die_v in_o the_o lord_n before_o we_o consider_v also_o that_o all_o true_a believer_n and_o faithful_a servant_n of_o god_n who_o we_o shall_v leave_v behind_o we_o and_o be_v now_o dear_a unto_o we_o in_o the_o lord_n whether_o magistrate_n or_o minister_n of_o the_o worde_n wife_n or_o child_n husband_n or_o friend_n father_n or_o mother_n shall_v short_o in_o their_o season_n follow_v after_o we_o and_o be_v gather_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o saint_n final_o it_o may_v justly_o be_v no_o small_a comfort_n unto_o we_o that_o god_n have_v appoint_v his_o holy_a angel_n immediate_o upon_o our_o death_n to_o take_v and_o convey_v our_o soul_n honourable_o into_o the_o heavenly_a place_n of_o our_o most_o bless_a and_o glorious_a rest_n see_v the_o death_n of_o the_o godly_a be_v thus_o comfortable_a no_o marvel_n though_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v pronounce_v all_o those_o forthwith_o bless_v who_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n even_o because_o as_o the_o same_o spirit_n assure_v we_o they_o rest_v from_o their_o labour_n and_o their_o work_n follow_v they_o revel_v chap._n 14._o verse_n 13._o well_o also_o say_v a_o godly_a learned_a man_n according_a to_o this_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n death_n be_v good_a because_o it_o bring_v rest_v better_o because_o it_o renew_v we_o best_o because_o it_o put_v we_o out_o of_o all_o danger_n of_o any_o fall_n or_o misery_n for_o ever_o after_o the_o comfort_n of_o death_n therefore_o to_o the_o godly_a may_v well_o be_v account_v a_o special_a comfort_n see_v it_o contain_v as_o we_o may_v say_v all_o the_o degree_n of_o comparison_n good_a better_a and_o best_a of_o all_o but_o let_v we_o consider_v more_o particular_o of_o the_o proof_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o several_a branch_n of_o the_o answer_n and_o first_o that_o all_o suffering_n special_o unto_o death_n for_o godliness_n sake_n do_v warrantise_n the_o truth_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o obedience_n to_o god_n it_o may_v be_v confirm_v from_o that_o which_o be_v say_v concern_v the_o perfection_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n his_o faith_n and_o obedience_n argue_v by_o his_o death_n and_o suffering_n philip._n 2.8_o and_o heb._n 5.8_o read_v also_o 1._o joh._n 3.16_o 17_o 18_o 19_o and_o in_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o john_n chap._n 15._o verse_n 13._o this_o doubtless_o be_v a_o essential_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o true_a servant_n of_o god_n and_o hypocrite_n or_o hireling_n the_o one_o sort_n abide_v faithful_a to_o the_o end_n the_o other_o fall_v away_o when_o affliction_n and_o trial_n come_v matthew_z chapter_n 13._o verse_n 2d_o 21_o 22_o etc._n etc._n and_o john_n chapter_n 10._o verse_n 11_o 12_o 13_o 14_o 15_o 16_o 17_o 18._o it_o be_v a_o small_a matter_n as_o one_o true_o say_v to_o court_v the_o gospel_n in_o the_o time_n of_o peace_n and_o prosperity_n very_o we_o can_v have_v no_o comfort_n concern_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o faith_n if_o it_o hold_v not_o out_o in_o the_o time_n of_o affliction_n and_o trial_n it_o be_v faith_n of_o no_o value_n that_o be_v of_o no_o valour_n second_o that_o to_o the_o godly_a death_n be_v a_o abolish_n of_o all_o evil_a so_o as_o it_o can_v never_o cumber_v they_o any_o more_o it_o be_v plain_a because_o the_o death_n of_o the_o body_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o sleep_n till_o the_o day_n of_o the_o resurrection_n isai_n 26.19_o and_o chap._n 57.2_o and_o 1._o thessalonian_o 4.15_o and_o touch_v the_o life_n of_o the_o soul_n it_o be_v a_o most_o bless_a life_n so_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v part_v from_o the_o body_n as_o we_o see_v before_o and_o as_o it_o be_v further_a evident_a in_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o lazarus_n be_v carry_v by_o the_o angel_n into_o abraham_n bosom_n and_o from_o the_o promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o the_o thief_n repent_v on_o the_o cross_n say_v this_o day_n shall_v thou_o be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n also_o because_o it_o be_v write_v that_o all_o trouble_n from_o thenceforth_a be_v forget_v and_o remember_v no_o more_o and_o that_o every_o tear_n shall_v be_v wipe_v from_o the_o eye_n etc._n etc._n revel_v ●1_n 4._o the_o reason_n be_v because_o then_o all_o sin_n the_o cause_n of_o all_o evil_a shall_v for_o ever_o cease_v heb._n 12.23_o three_o that_o death_n bail_v we_o for_o ever_o out_o of_o the_o prison_n or_o to_o speak_v the_o best_a out_o of_o a_o base_a cottage_n of_o the_o body_n read_v 2._o cor._n 5.1_o etc._n etc._n 9_o call_v to_o mind_n also_o john_n 14.1_o 2_o 3._o and_o that_o we_o die_v unto_o god_n and_o so_o to_o our_o own_o benefit_n read_v roman_n chapter_n 14._o verse_n 7_o 8_o 9_o whether_o we_o live_v or_o die_v we_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o that_o it_o be_v best_o for_o we_o to_o die_v that_o so_o we_o may_v go_v to_o christ_n with_o who_o our_o life_n be_v hide_v in_o god_n etc._n etc._n read_v philippian_n have_v 2._o verse_n 23._o colossian_n chap._n 3._o verse_n 3._o and_o john_n chapter_n 11._o verse_n 25._o and_o that_o we_o be_v seal_v up_o against_o the_o day_n of_o our_o full_a redemption_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n read_v ephesian_n 4.30_o and_o rom._n 8.23_o wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o we_o shall_v then_o have_v so_o much_o the_o great_a comfort_n of_o his_o divine_a presence_n by_o how_o much_o we_o shall_v less_o that_o be_v not_o at_o all_o grieve_v he_o by_o our_o sin_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v all_o just_a and_o perfect_v in_o the_o heaven_n hebr._n 12.23_o as_o be_v even_o now_o allege_v and_o as_o nothing_o can_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n neither_o tribulation_n nor_o anguish_n nor_o persecution_n nor_o famine_n nor_o nakedness_n nor_o peril_n nor_o sword_n neither_o death_n itself_o etc._n etc._n so_o shall_v nothing_o be_v able_a to_o separate_v we_o from_o the_o most_o comfortable_a fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o his_o love_n rom._n 8.35_o etc._n etc._n four_o touch_v the_o comfort_n of_o death_n in_o that_o it_o set_v we_o at_o liberty_n to_o have_v our_o communion_n with_o the_o faithful_a depart_v read_v again_o hebrew_n chapter_n 12._o verse_n 23_o 24._o you_o be_v come_v to_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o first_o bear_v which_o be_v write_v in_o heaven_n and_o to_o god_n the_o judge_n of_o all_o and_o to_o the_o spirit_n of_o just_a and_o perfect_a man_n and_o to_o jesus_n the_o mediator_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o to_o the_o blood_n of_o sprinkle_v which_o speak_v better_a thing_n then_o that_o of_o abel_n so_o that_o great_a be_v the_o excellency_n of_o the_o condition_n and_o estate_n of_o true_a believe_a christian_n even_o here_o in_o this_o life_n but_o as_o touch_v that_o perfection_n which_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o righteous_a have_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n we_o can_v attain_v unto_o it_o here_o in_o this_o world_n and_o therefore_o as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o nine_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o epistle_n verse_n 27_o 28._o god_n have_v appoint_v unto_o man_n that_o they_o shall_v once_o die_v and_o after_o that_o come_v the_o judgement_n so_o christ_n be_v once_o offer_v to_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o many_o and_o unto_o they_o that_o look_v for_o he_o he_o shall_v appear_v the_o second_o time_n without_o sin_n unto_o salvation_n without_o sin_n that_o be_v he_o shall_v appear_v without_o any_o more_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n and_o even_o quite_o and_o clean_o to_o abolish_v sin_n out_o of_o our_o nature_n by_o his_o glorious_a and_o perfect_a save_v grace_n and_o power_n this_o comfort_n therefore_o to_o wit_n that_o by_o death_n we_o shall_v have_v our_o sweet_a society_n with_o all_o the_o faithful_a depart_v both_o former_a &_o latter_a and_o with_o all_o that_o be_v dear_a to_o we_o in_o the_o day_n that_o they_o live_v here_o with_o we_o in_o this_o world_n it_o be_v very_o sensible_a to_o those_o that_o have_v and_o spiritual_a sense_n and_o affection_n in_o they_o to_o mind_v heavenly_a thing_n the_o
which_o also_o we_o have_v nedde_z to_o think_v often_o upon_o to_o draw_v our_o mind_n away_o from_o the_o inordinate_a love_n of_o this_o life_n and_o that_o we_o may_v by_o faith_n encourage_v ourselves_o against_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n the_o which_o be_v natural_o exceed_v sensible_a and_o full_a of_o discomfort_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o both_o king_n david_n and_o also_o king_n hezekiah_n and_o so_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o faithful_a die_v comfortable_o when_o the_o time_n be_v come_v and_o that_o they_o have_v serve_v the_o counsel_n of_o god_n in_o do_v his_o holy_a will_n nevertheless_o until_o they_o be_v thus_o prepare_v and_o be_v by_o faith_n and_o the_o comfort_n thereof_o make_v ripe_a as_o it_o be_v unto_o death_n the_o thought_n and_o fear_n of_o death_n be_v very_o uncomfortable_a unto_o they_o as_o we_o may_v see_v psalm_n 6._o and_o isaiah_n chapter_n ●8_o verse_n 2_o 3._o and_o from_o the_o ten_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o eighteen_o verse_n the_o diligence_n of_o those_o be_v very_o commendable_a who_o have_v earnest_o bend_v their_o mind_n to_o meditate_v and_o find_v out_o comfort_n against_o all_o natural_a fear_n of_o death_n from_o that_o ground_n of_o comfort_n which_o we_o have_v in_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n let_v we_o here_o call_v such_o meditation_n to_o mind_n namely_o that_o death_n be_v to_o the_o true_a christian_a but_o as_o a_o serpent_n which_o have_v lose_v both_o poison_n and_o sting_v yea_o or_o rather_o a●_n a_o dead_a serpent_n or_o bare_a sign_n of_o a_o serpent_n hang_v up_o before_o the_o gate_n of_o a_o goodly_a inn_n that_o death_n be_v as_o a_o safe_a arrive_v or_o land_v at_o the_o haven_n after_o a_o long_a tedious_a and_o dangerous_a voyage_n yea_o like_v to_o that_o safe_a land_n which_o set_v a_o man_n in_o his_o own_o long_o desire_v and_o native_a country_n that_o it_o be_v as_o the_o lord_n midwife_n to_o remove_v we_o out_o of_o the_o strain_n of_o this_o world_n to_o the_o large_a possession_n of_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n or_o as_o the_o mother_n take_v home_o of_o her_o child_n from_o a_o unkind_a and_o churlish_a nurse_n that_o it_o be_v as_o the_o new_a cast_n of_o a_o precious_a vessel_n of_o gold_n to_o make_v it_o pure_a from_o all_o dross_n that_o it_o may_v be_v beautiful_a to_o the_o fine_a that_o it_o be_v to_o the_o soul_n as_o the_o break_n of_o the_o eggshell_n when_o the_o chicken_n be_v ready_a to_o be_v hatch_v that_o it_o be_v to_o the_o body_n as_o the_o sow_v of_o the_o corn_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o lord_n field_n that_o so_o it_o may_v take_v root_n and_o spring_v up_o against_o the_o time_n of_o the_o resurrection_n which_o shall_v be_v as_o the_o lord_n most_o joyful_a harvest_n final_o that_o death_n as_o the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o be_v a_o sweet_a sleep_n till_o the_o morning_n of_o our_o a_o wake_n and_o refresh_v to_o eternal_a life_n and_o thus_o our_o encounter_n against_o death_n under_o the_o b●nner_n of_o o●r_a saviour_n christ_n here_o in_o this_o frail_a life_n of_o o●rs_n it_o be_v a_o comfortable_a fight_n see_v we_o know_v before_o hand_n that_o our_o enemy_n be_v very_o weak_a what_o brag_v soever_o he_o make_v he_o therefore_o that_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o die_v when_o god_n call_v for_o he_o out_o of_o this_o world_n to_o come_v to_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n he_o deal_v as_o foolish_o as_o one_o be_v dangerous_o toss_v in_o the_o sea_n duty_n the_o duty_n shall_v refuse_v to_o take_v the_o benefit_n of_o a_o most_o commodious_a and_o comfortable_a land_n or_o as_o one_o that_o be_v shut_v up_o in_o prison_n shall_v not_o accept_v of_o liberty_n and_o enlargement_n offer_v unto_o he_o etc._n etc._n now_o touch_v the_o last_o branch_n of_o the_o answer_n to_o wit_n the_o honourable_a conveyance_n of_o your_o soul_n to_o heaven_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o holy_a angel_n immediate_o after_o that_o they_o be_v loosen_v from_o the_o body_n it_o may_v be_v prove_v from_o that_o which_o be_v a_o while_n since_o allege_v concern_v the_o soul_n of_o lazarus_n which_o be_v so_o convey_v for_o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n why_o the_o soul_n of_o all_o other_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v so_o convey_v as_o well_o as_o the_o soul_n of_o lazarus_n see_v the_o one_o be_v as_o precious_a unto_o god_n as_o the_o other_o and_o none_o be_v of_o itself_o more_o able_a to_o ascend_v and_o break_v the_o heaven_n that_o it_o may_v go_v to_o god_n than_o any_o other_o or_o then_o the_o soul_n of_o lazarus_n be_v and_o beside_o in_o so_o much_o as_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o god_n commit_v the_o gather_v together_o of_o the_o body_n of_o his_o servant_n at_o the_o last_o day_n to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o holy_a angel_n matth._n 24.31_o it_o need_v not_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o he_o use_v their_o ministry_n for_o the_o gather_n of_o their_o soul_n before_o hand_n see_v they_o be_v the_o more_o excellent_a and_o precious_a part_n of_o the_o person_n of_o his_o servant_n and_o further_a also_o see_v as_o have_v be_v already_o declare_v the_o angel_n be_v god_n minister_n for_o the_o comfort_n of_o his_o child_n in_o this_o life_n how_o can_v we_o doubt_v but_o that_o they_o be_v likewise_o employ_v for_o the_o further_a of_o their_o happiness_n and_o felicity_n at_o the_o time_n of_o their_o death_n and_o thus_o by_o the_o gracious_a goodness_n and_o assistance_n of_o our_o good_a god_n and_o most_o gracious_a heavenly_a father_n we_o have_v gather_v together_o the_o chief_a profit_n and_o comfort_n of_o all_o affliction_n in_o general_a and_o of_o death_n itself_o more_o special_o and_o all_o this_o principal_o indeed_o that_o it_o may_v be_v manifest_a unto_o we_o how_o the_o fatherly_a providence_n of_o god_n may_v be_v justify_v towards_o all_o his_o child_n against_o all_o malignant_a objection_n that_o be_v make_v to_o the_o obscure_n and_o darken_v of_o the_o same_o but_o not_o only_o to_o this_o end_n but_o that_o therewith_o also_o we_o may_v be_v animate_v &_o encourage_v to_o the_o willing_a endure_v and_o joyful_a pass_v through_o all_o affliction_n and_o trial_n whatsoever_o it_o shall_v please_v the_o same_o our_o good_a god_n and_o heavenly_a father_n to_o try_v we_o withal_o yea_o even_o to_o death_n itself_o according_a to_o his_o own_o most_o holy_a and_o bless_a will_n remember_v always_o what_o he_o by_o his_o own_o good_a spirit_n assure_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o apostle_n james_n chap._n 1.12_o in_o that_o he_o pronounce_v the_o man_n bless_v that_o endure_v tentation_n and_o that_o when_o he_o be_v try_v he_o shall_v receive_v the_o crown_n of_o life_n the_o which_o as_o the_o apostle_n write_v the_o lord_n have_v promise_v to_o they_o that_o love_v he_o nevertheless_o this_o we_o must_v understand_v that_o though_o the_o comfort_n arise_v from_o faith_n in_o god_n fatherly_a providence_n be_v many_o and_o the_o same_o also_o very_o great_a yet_o they_o can_v be_v obtain_v without_o earnest_n and_o victorious_a strife_n against_o all_o contrary_a discomfort_n whatsoever_o bid_v battle_n against_o the_o same_o our_o faith_n and_o now_o let_v we_o according_a to_o the_o course_n and_o order_n of_o our_o inquiry_n from_o the_o comfort_n proceed_v to_o consider_v what_o the_o duty_n be_v such_o as_o follow_v upon_o that_o manifold_a and_o most_o beneficial_a comfort_n which_o arise_v to_o the_o faithful_a from_o this_o article_n of_o belief_n in_o god_n the_o father_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o fatherly_a providence_n towards_o we_o and_o towards_o all_o thing_n else_o for_o our_o benefit_n and_o comfort_n but_o to_o prevent_v all_o question_n this_o will_v we_o first_o say_v that_o as_o all_o our_o comfort_n lie_v ground_v and_o as_o it_o be_v lap_v up_o in_o the_o fatherly_a providence_n of_o god_n so_o the_o open_n and_o enlarge_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o all_o good_a duty_n whatsoever_o to_o the_o glorify_v of_o the_o most_o gracious_a and_o glorious_a name_n of_o god_n our_o heavenly_a father_n do_v most_o bounden_o belong_v thereunto_o this_o observe_v we_o will_v for_o the_o present_a stand_v only_o to_o inquire_v of_o those_o duty_n some_o of_o they_o at_o the_o least_o which_o do_v most_o proper_o and_o principal_o belong_v to_o this_o article_n so_o near_o as_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o give_v we_o grace_n to_o discern_v which_o be_v they_o that_o do_v so_o first_o and_o fore-most_a it_o be_v our_o duty_n from_o the_o comfort_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o fatherlie_a providence_n of_o god_n our_o heavenly_a father_n question_v even_o at_o once_o utter_o to_o renounce_v and_o cast_v away_o as_o well_o wander_a opinion_n and_o conceit_n of_o blind_a fortune_n and_o chance_n
be_v no_o other_o saviour_n but_o god_n as_o god_n himself_o do_v very_o often_o affirm_v by_o his_o holy_a prophet_n isaiah_n and_o likewise_o in_o many_o other_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o that_o we_o may_v see_v into_o the_o ground_n of_o this_o mystery_n more_o clear_o let_v we_o more_o particular_o inquire_v after_o some_o proof_n first_o that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o second_o person_n in_o the_o bless_a trinity_n i●_n god._n second_o that_o he_o be_v man_n and_o th●rdly_o that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o union_n of_o the_o humane_a nature_n to_o the_o divine_a one_o divine_a person_n both_o god_n and_o man_n and_o so_o a_o meet_a mediator_n betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n question_n fi●st_v therefore_o what_o proof_n have_v you_o that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n o●_n god_n be_v very_o true_a god_n ans_fw-fr the_o proof_n as_o i_o have_v learn_v be_v diverse_a first_o those_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o do_v attribute_v the_o very_a name_n of_o god_n as_o of_o right_a belong_v unto_o he_o second_o those_o that_o ascribe_v the_o essential_a attribute_n or_o propriety_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n unto_o he_o such_o as_o be_v eternity_n omnipotency_n infinitenes_n of_o wisdom_n perfection_n of_o justice_n and_o mercy_n and_o such_o like_a three_o such_o as_o ascribe_v the_o work_n of_o the_o deity_n unto_o he_o to_o wit_n the_o work_n of_o creation_n the_o work_n of_o government_n general_o over_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o more_o special_o concern_v the_o church_n of_o god_n four_o such_o as_o show_v that_o the_o same_o duty_n of_o spiritual_a worship_n and_o honour_n be_v due_a to_o he_o which_o be_v only_o belong_v to_o god_n namely_o faith_n hope_n prayer_n thanksgiving_n etc._n etc._n these_o proof_n do_v evident_o declare_v and_o very_o sufficient_o warrant_v unto_o we_o the_o deity_n and_o godhead_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o first_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v attribute_v the_o name_n of_o god_n as_o of_o right_a and_o not_o in_o way_n of_o resemblance_n belong_v unto_o he_o it_o be_v manifest_a by_o many_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n question_n which_o be_v they_o answer_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n write_v by_o saint_n john_n it_o be_v expressy_a affirm_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n there_o call_v the_o essential_a and_o eternal_a word_n be_v very_o god_n and_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n of_o the_o same_o evangelist_n that_o he_o be_v very_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n likewise_o the_o apostle_n paul_n rom_n 9_o verse_n 5._o christ_n be_v god_n over_o all_o to_o be_v bless_v for_o ever_o amen_n proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n these_o be_v very_o manifest_a testimony_n indeed_o and_o there_o be_v many_o other_o like_a to_o these_o both_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o also_o in_o the_o new_a namely_o isai_n 9.6_o the_o mighty_a god_n as_o god_n the_o father_n call_v he_o and_o psalm_n 45.6_o confer_v with_o heb_fw-mi 2.8_o o_o god_n thy_o throne_n be_v for_o ●●er_n and_o ever_o and_o psalm_n 97._o verse_n 1.7_o confer_v with_o heb_fw-mi 1.6_o the_o lord_n ●he_n word_n be_v jehovah_n reign_v etc._n etc._n and_o let_v all_o the_o angel_n worship_v he_o likewise_o psalm_n 102.25_o confer_v with_o heb_fw-mi 1.10_o thou_o lord_n in_o the_o begin_n have_v establish_v the_o earth_n etc._n etc._n and_o psal_n 104.4_o confer_v with_o heb_fw-mi 1.7_o where_o that_o which_o be_v say_v of_o the_o lord_n god_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o creation_n and_o government_n of_o the_o angel_n be_v attribute_v to_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n but_o of_o this_o sort_n of_o testimony_n we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o collect_v they_o when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o deity_n attribute_v to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o the_o mean_a season_n this_o be_v plain_a both_o from_o the_o one_o sort_n of_o testimony_n as_o well_o as_o from_o the_o other_o that_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v proper_o and_o essential_o ascribe_v to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o see_v some_o proof_n that_o the_o essential_a attribute_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v likewise_o ascribe_v unto_o he_o and_o first_o of_o all_o concern_v eternity_n question_n what_o proof_n have_v you_o that_o it_o be_v attribute_v to_o our_o saviour_n answer_n we_o have_v a_o manifest_a testimony_n of_o it_o in_o the_o 8._o chap_n of_o the_o holy_a proverbe_n of_o king_n solomon_n from_o the_o 22._o verse_n of_o the_o chapter_n to_o the_o 27._o where_o he_o do_v in_o a_o holy_a figurative_a speech_n describe_v the_o son_n of_o god_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n speak_v thus_o the_o lord_n have_v possess_v i_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o way_n i_o be_v before_o his_o work_n of_o old_a i_o be_v set_v up_o from_o everlasting_a from_o the_o beginning_n and_o before_o the_o earth_n when_o there_o be_v no_o depth_n be_v i_o beget_v when_o there_o be_v no_o fountain_n abound_v with_o water_n before_o the_o mountain_n be_v settle_v and_o before_o the_o hill_n be_v i_o beget_v he_o have_v not_o yet_o make_v the_o earth_n and_o the_o open_a place_n nor_o the_o height_n of_o the_o dust_n in_o the_o world_n the_o wisdom_n here_o speak_v of_o by_o solomon_n or_o rather_o he_o which_o speak_v &_o utter_v these_o holy_a word_n by_o the_o tongue_n and_o pen_n of_o king_n solomon_n must_v needs_o be_v the_o eternal_a wisdom_n of_o god_n a_o person_n distinct_a from_o the_o father_n like_v as_o paul_n the_o holy_a apostle_n call_v our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n 1._o cor._n 1.24_o and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n also_o the_o power_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o further_a description_n of_o king_n solomon_n in_o the_o place_n before_o allege_v as_o we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o repeat_v afterward_o but_o for_o the_o present_a let_v we_o here_o call_v to_o mind_n that_o there_o be_v many_o like_a testimony_n for_o proof_n of_o the_o eternal_a godhead_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o isaiah_n chap._n 9.6_o the_o father_n of_o eternity_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o that_o be_v eternal_a in_o himself_o and_o without_o beginning_n together_o with_o the_o father_n be_v the_o author_n of_o eternity_n to_o the_o church_n insomuch_o as_o though_o it_o have_v a_o beginning_n yet_o it_o shall_v never_o have_v end_n for_o unless_o he_o be_v eternal_a and_o without_o beginning_n he_o can_v not_o establish_v any_o thing_n to_o have_v a_o eternal_a continuance_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v further_o say_v col._n 1.17_o he_o be_v before_o all_o thing_n and_o in_o he_o all_o thing_n consist_v and_o hebr._n 7.3_o that_o he_o have_v neither_o begin_n of_o his_o day_n nor_o end_n of_o his_o life_n and_o reu._n 1.8_o that_o he_o be_v alpha_n and_o omega_n the_o beginning_n and_o the_o end_n who_o be_v and_o who_o be_v and_o who_o be_v to_o come_v even_o the_o almighty_a the_o which_o almighty_a power_n of_o he_o be_v further_a argue_v from_o the_o work_n of_o the_o deity_n attribute_v to_o he_o as_o we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o observe_v anon_o question_n now_o what_o proof_n have_v you_o that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v in_o that_o he_o be_v god_n infinite_a in_o majesty_n and_o greatness_n every_o where_o present_a and_o fill_v all_o place_n answer_n this_o may_v be_v perceive_v by_o his_o own_o word_n john_n 3.13_o no_o man_n ascend_v up_o to_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o have_v descend_v from_o heaven_n the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o again_o behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n matth._n 28.20_o and_o by_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n say_v ephes_n 3.17_o christ_n dwell_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o faithful_a by_o faith_n proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n these_o and_o such_o like_a speech_n may_v well_o warrant_v unto_o we_o the_o ubiquitarie_a or_o every-where-presence_n of_o the_o deity_n of_o our_o saviour_n howsoever_o his_o humanity_n be_v and_o be_v limit_v and_o circumscribe_v in_o his_o proper_a place_n for_o otherwise_o he_o will_v not_o have_v say_v that_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n while_o he_o be_v here_o on_o earth_n etc._n etc._n but_o see_v our_o saviour_n be_v not_o only_o infinite_a in_o divine_a majesty_n and_o greatness_n but_o also_o in_o all_o divine_a perfection_n let_v we_o see_v some_o proof_n of_o it_o and_o first_o more_o general_o and_o then_o in_o some_o particular_n question_n first_o therefore_o what_o proof_n have_v you_o for_o the_o divine_a perfection_n of_o our_o saviour_n more_o general_o answer_n in_o the_o sixteenth_o chapter_n of_o the_o evangelist_n john_n verse_n 14._o our_o saviour_n himself_o
deity_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n by_o reason_n that_o the_o attribute_n proper_a to_o the_o godhead_n be_v equal_o ascribe_v to_o he_o as_o well_o as_o to_o god_n the_o father_n in_o the_o next_o place_n we_o be_v likewise_o to_o inquire_v how_o the_o same_o may_v be_v warrant_v by_o s_z ch_z proof_n as_o ascribe_v the_o work_n proper_a to_o the_o deity_n un●o_v he_o as_o be_v his_o workmanship_n question_n have_v you_o any_o proof_n for_o this_o answer_n yea_o both_o for_o the_o work_n of_o creation_n and_o also_o of_o providence_n and_o government_n in_o either_o of_o they_o as_o i_o have_v be_v teach_v the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v very_o plentiful_a proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n they_o be_v so_o indeed_o let_v we_o therefore_o call_v some_o of_o those_o proof_n to_o mind_n for_o the_o confirm_v of_o our_o faith_n in_o this_o so_o excellent_a a_o point_n question_n and_o first_o concern_v the_o work_n of_o creation_n what_o proof_n have_v you_o that_o these_o be_v ascribe_v to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o that_o he_o both_o be_v and_o be_v before_o all_o beginning_n very_o true_a eternal_a and_o almighty_a the_o most_o wise_a righteous_a and_o holy_a god_n answer_n proverb_n 8_o 271_o and_o so_o forth_o when_o god_n prepare_v the_o heaven_n say_v he_o i_o be_v there_o when_o he_o set_v the_o compass_n upon_o the_o deep_a when_o he_o establish_v the_o crowd_n above_o when_o he_o confirm_v the_o fountain_n of_o the_o deep_a when_o he_o give_v his_o decree_n to_o the_o se●_n that_o the_o water_n shall_v not_o pass_v his_o commandment_n when_o he_o appoint_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n then_o be_v i_o with_o he_o as_o a_o nourisher_n and_o i_o be_v daily_o his_o delight_n rejoice_v always_o before_o he_o proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n unto_o this_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a proverb_n out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n agree_v many_o other_o both_o of_o the_o new_a and_o also_o of_o the_o old_a namely_o psalm_n 102_o 25._o as_o we_o read_v those_o word_n to_o be_v apply_v heb._n 1._o verse_n 10._o likewise_o psal_n 104._o verse_n 4_o etc._n etc._n as_o they_o be_v interpret_v heb._n 1.7_o and_o in_o the_o same_o chap._n verse_n 2._o god_n have_v make_v the_o world_n by_o his_o son_n moreover_o john_n chap._n 1._o verse_n 3._o all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o without_o he_o be_v make_v nothing_o that_o be_v make_v and_o verse_n 10._o the_o world_n be_v make_v by_o he_o likewise_o 1._o cor._n 8.6_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n which_o be_v the_o father_n of_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n and_o we_o in_o he_o and_o one_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n &_o we_o by_o he_o and_o ephes_n 3.9_o god_n have_v create_v all_o thing_n by_o jesus_n christ_n and_o coloss_n 1.16_o by_o he_o be_v all_o thing_n create_v which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o which_o be_v in_o earth_n thing_n visible_a and_o invisible_a whether_o they_o be_v throne_n or_o dominion_n or_o principality_n or_o power_n all_o thing_n be_v create_v by_o he_o and_o for_o he_o thus_o we_o see_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v entitle_v to_o the_o work_n of_o creation_n whereby_o also_o his_o almighty_a power_n be_v manifest_o argue_v as_o be_v touch_v before_o now_o likewise_o for_o a_o further_a declaration_n of_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n let_v we_o inquire_v whether_o we_o have_v like_o warrant_n that_o the_o divine_a government_n of_o the_o creature_n do_v likewise_o belong_v unto_o he_o and_o first_o more_o general_o question_n general_o question_n what_o proof_n have_v you_o for_o it_o answer_n it_o answer_n hitherto_o say_v our_o saviour_n himself_o my_o father_n workeh_a and_o i_o work_v john_n 5.17_o and_o verse_n 19_o whatsoever_o thing_n the_o father_n do_v the_o same_o thing_n do_v the_o son_n also_o proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n of_o this_o sort_n of_o proof_n be_v these_o that_o follow_v prou._n 8.31_o i_o take_v my_o solace_n say_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o compass_n of_o his_o earth_n and_o colos_n 1.17_o in_o he_o all_o thing_n do_v consist_v and_o heb._n 1.3_o he_o bear_v up_o all_o thing_n by_o his_o mighty_a word_n thus_o much_o for_o the_o government_n of_o our_o saviour_n general_o now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o particular_n and_o first_o concern_v the_o holy_a angel_n what_o proof_n have_v you_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n our_o lord_n question_n have_v the_o government_n of_o they_o answer_n the_o place_n before_o allege_a heb._n 1.7_o do_v plain_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v so_o for_o of_o the_o angel_n he_o say_v that_o be_v god_n say_v by_o his_o holy_a prophet_n psal_n 104.4_o he_o make_v the_o spirit_n his_o messenger_n and_o his_o minister_n a_o flame_n of_o fire_n that_o be_v god_n the_o son_n together_o with_o the_o father_n have_v create_v the_o angel_n and_o give_v they_o a_o kind_n of_o commodious_a kind_n of_o nature_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n subtle_a and_o pierce_a quick_a and_o mighty_a most_o like_a of_o all_o creature_n to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o wind_n and_o flame_a fire_n and_o according_o use_v they_o as_o his_o minister_n to_o diverse_a great_a and_o worthy_a service_n according_a to_o this_o right_n which_o our_o saviour_n have_v to_o command_v they_o it_o be_v say_v further_o psalm_n 67.7_o and_o so_o it_o be_v repeat_v again_o heb._n 1._o verse_n 6._o let_v all_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n worship_v he_o and_o in_o the_o last_o verse_n of_o this_o chapter_n be_v they_o not_o all_o minister_a spirit_n say_v the_o holy_a apostle_n send_v forth_o to_o wit_n by_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o their_o sake_n which_o shall_v be_v heir_n of_o salvation_n as_o though_o the_o apostle_n shall_v say_v it_o be_v out_o of_o doubt_n both_o that_o they_o be_v such_o and_o also_o that_o our_o saviour_n use_v they_o in_o that_o their_o holy_a service_n yea_o not_o only_o do_v he_o govern_v the_o holy_a angel_n which_o be_v willing_a to_o obey_v he_o but_o he_o also_o rule_v yea_o over-ruleth_a the_o wicked_a angel_n we_o mean_v the_o devil_n and_o all_o unclean_a spirit_n according_a to_o that_o which_o we_o read_v zech._n 3.1_o 2._o the_o lord_n say_v to_o satan_n that_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n say_v the_o lord_n he_o mean_v god_n the_o father_n reproove_v thou_o o_o satan_n even_o the_o lord_n that_o have_v choose_v jerusalem_n reprove_v thou_o etc._n etc._n read_v also_o matth._n 8.29_o ●0_n 31._o mark_n 1.27_o and_o luk._n 4.41_o likewise_o he_o rule_v yea_o over-ruleth_a all_o wicked_a man_n restrain_v the_o extremity_n of_o their_o wickedness_n at_o his_o pleasure_n and_o judge_v their_o rebellion_n in_o due_a season_n according_a to_o that_o john_n 5.22_o the_o father_n have_v commit_v all_o judgement_n to_o the_o son_n and_o for_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o judgement_n in_o time_n to_o come_v see_v the_o pprophecy_n of_o it_o psalm_n 2.9_o and_o psal_n 110.1_o 2._o and_o verses_z 5_o 6_o 7._o and_o isai_n chap._n 11.4_o ●nd_v chap_n 4●_n 3_o he_o shall_v bring_v forth_o judgement_n in_o truth_n or_o unto_o victory_n as_o mat._n 12.20_o thus_o also_o have_v he_o govern_v in_o former_a time_n according_a to_o that_o we_o read_v in_o the_o holy_a story_n exod._n 23.21_o read_v also_o 1._o cor._n 10.9_o let_v we_o not_o tempt_v christ_n as_o some_o of_o they_o also_o tempt_v he_o and_o be_v destroy_v of_o serpent_n the_o continuance_n of_o the_o same_o his_o government_n to_o this_o day_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o his_o restrain_v and_o punish_v of_o the_o wicked_a it_o shall_v be_v most_o full_o accomplish_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n act._n chap._n 10._o verse_n 4●_n and_o chap._n 17._o verse_n 31._o and_o revel_v ●_o 18_o i_o have_v the_o key_n of_o hell_n and_o of_o death_n but_o let_v we_o come_v to_o his_o gracious_a government_n over_o his_o church_n to_o the_o benefit_n of_o all_o such_o as_o do_v submit_v themselves_o under_o the_o same_o question_n same_o question_n what_o proof_n have_v you_o for_o this_o answer_v this_o answer_v the_o proof_n be_v many_o and_o diverse_a according_a to_o the_o manifold_a and_o sundry_a benefit_n of_o his_o most_o gracious_a and_o divine_a government_n t●ey_n be_v so_o indeed_o for_o as_o he_o do_v together_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n call_v gather_v together_o and_o sanctify_v his_o church_n institute_v a_o holy_a ministry_n deliver_v a_o divine_a doctrine_n work_v mighty_a and_o miraculous_a work_n ordain_v sacrament_n send_v forth_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n give_v spiritual_a gift_n and_o grace_n make_v they_o effectual_a to_o inlighten_v to_o regenerate_v to_o guide_v to_o comfort_v and_o to_o strengthen_v and_o as_o he_o do_v reveal_v thing_n to_o come_v hear_v
perform_v to_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n our_o lord_n the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v affirm_v concern_v thanksgiving_n read_v psalm_n 47._o and_o ●8_o 18_o 19_o compare_v with_o ephes_n 4.7_o 8._o and_o when_o we_o praise_v god_n the_o father_n in_o he_o and_o through_o he_o it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o praise_v and_o thank_v he_o with_o the_o father_n rom._n 7.25_o and_o 1._o cor._n 15.57_o ephes_n 5.20_o and_o 1._o thes_n 5.18_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n likewise_o to_o reverence_v and_o fear_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n as_o 1._o cor._n 10._o verse_n 9_o let_v we_o not_o tempt_v christ_n as_o some_o of_o they_o also_o tempt_v he_o and_o be_v destroy_v of_o serpent_n read_v also_o exod._n chap._n 23._o verse_n 20_o 21._o consider_v also_o that_o he_o be_v appoint_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o he_o have_v the_o key_n of_o hell_n and_o of_o death_n etc._n etc._n act._n 17.30_o 31._o revel_v 1.18_o and_o chap._n 6.15_o 16_o 17._o and_o in_o sundry_a other_o place_n read_v also_o psal_n 2.9_o etc._n etc._n we_o stand_v bind_v by_o the_o express_a commandment_n of_o the_o father_n to_o obey_v our_o saviour_n in_o all_o thing_n matth._n chap._n 17._o verse_n 5._o and_o luke_n chap._n 6._o verse_n 46._o why_o call_v you_o i_o master_n say_v our_o saviour_n himself_o and_o do_v not_o the_o thing_n that_o i_o speak_v and_o thus_o we_o may_v perceive_v according_a to_o that_o which_o be_v before_o touch_v and_o promise_v to_o be_v in_o this_o place_n further_o declare_v that_o in_o so_o much_o as_o all_o duty_n of_o divine_a worship_n proper_a to_o the_o godhead_n be_v due_a to_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o father_n and_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o contain_v one_o very_o evident_a and_o invincible_a proof_n among_o the_o rest_n that_o he_o be_v very_o true_a god_n coequal_a and_o coeternall_a with_o they_o whereupon_o also_o just_o may_v it_o be_v conclude_v according_a to_o the_o last_o part_n of_o the_o answer_n without_o any_o further_a proof_n that_o every_o christian_n ought_v to_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v ashamed_a of_o christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n that_o we_o ought_v to_o esteem_v it_o the_o great_a honour_n that_o may_v be_v to_o profess_v his_o most_o holy_a &_o glorious_a name_n yea_o though_o it_o shall_v be_v with_o the_o great_a reproach_n that_o may_v fall_v upon_o we_o here_o in_o this_o wicked_a world_n for_o the_o same_o according_a to_o the_o encouragement_n of_o our_o saviour_n himself_o matth._n 5.11.12_o luke_n 6.22.23_o and_o of_o the_o apostle_n peter_n 1._o ep._n 4.13.14.16_o read_v also_o rom._n 1.16_o and_o 2._o tim._n 1.7.8_o and_o verse_n 1●_n 16._o these_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o faith_n in_o a_o more_o general_a consideration_n of_o the_o title_n joint_o together_o now_o that_o we_o may_v for_o our_o further_a instruction_n consider_v the_o duty_n belong_v more_o particular_o to_o the_o same_o first_o what_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o faith_n in_o this_o respect_n that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n question_n answer_n in_o so_o much_o as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v abase_v himself_o to_o the_o low_a degree_n of_o a_o servant_n for_o we_o we_o must_v needs_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v our_o bind_a duty_n to_o humble_v ourselves_o in_o the_o low_a degree_n of_o humiliation_n that_o we_o can_v unto_o he_o and_o in_o the_o great_a measure_n of_o love_n that_o we_o may_v attain_v unto_o to_o perform_v all_o good_a duty_n unto_o he_o yea_o and_o one_o of_o we_o to_o another_o also_o for_o his_o sake_n according_a as_o he_o himself_o do_v in_o this_o respect_n require_v it_o of_o us._n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n he_o do_v so_o indeed_o matth._n 11.29_o take_v my_o yoke_n on_o you_o and_o learn_v of_o i_o that_o i_o be_o meek_a and_o lowly_a in_o heart_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v rest_n to_o your_o soul_n etc._n etc._n read_v also_o cha_n 18.1_o 2_o 3_o etc._n etc._n and_o cha_n 20._o verse_n 25_o 26_o 27_o 28._o and_o again_o luke_n 22._o verse_n 24_o 25_o etc._n etc._n and_o john_n cha_n 13._o verse_n 12_o 13_o 14_o 15_o 16_o 17._o we_o have_v also_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o same_o end_n rom._n chap._n 15._o verse_n 12_o 13._o we_o which_o be_v strong_a etc._n etc._n for_o christ_n also_o will_v not_o please_v himself_o etc._n etc._n and_o verse_n 5_o 6_o 7._o and_o philip._n chap._n 2._o verse_n 5_o 6_o 7_o 8._o let_v the_o same_o mind_n be_v in_o you_o that_o be_v even_o in_o christ_n jesus_n who_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n think_v it_o no_o robbery_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n but_o he_o make_v himself_o of_o no_o reputation_n etc._n etc._n likewise_o heb._n 5._o verse_n 8_o 9_o and_o though_o he_o be_v the_o son_n yet_o learn_v he_o obedience_n by_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o suffer_v and_o be_v consecrate_v be_v make_v the_o author_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n to_o all_o that_o obey_v he_o mark_v that_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o obey_v he_o who_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v more_o obedient_a to_o god_n in_o our_o nature_n and_o for_o we_o than_o any_o other_o son_n of_o man_n can_v possible_o be_v now_o likewise_o what_o duty_n belong_v to_o the_o comfort_n of_o faith_n in_o this_o that_o though_o he_o so_o humble_v himself_o for_o we_o yet_o be_v our_o lord_n yea_o that_o even_o by_o humble_v of_o himself_o for_o we_o he_o have_v obtain_v a_o most_o just_a sovereignty_n over_o we_o above_o any_o other_o as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o 2._o cha_n of_o the_o epist_n to_o the_o philip._n mention_v before_o question_n what_o duty_n i_o say_v belong_v to_o the_o comfort_n of_o this_o answer_n we_o stand_v bind_v to_o obey_v he_o absolute_o and_o for_o himself_o but_o no_o other_o lord_n otherwise_o then_o in_o he_o and_o for_o he_o we_o do_v likewise_o stand_v bind_v from_o the_o comfortable_a consideration_n hereof_o to_o employ_v ourselves_o and_o all_o our_o gift_n and_o also_o his_o creature_n and_o all_o his_o ordinance_n as_o they_o that_o must_v give_v a_o account_n unto_o he_o of_o the_o same_o none_o must_v be_v over-master_o in_o judge_v and_o censure_v of_o his_o fellow_n servant_n and_o christian_n brethren_n but_o contrariwise_o it_o be_v the_o part_n of_o every_o one_o to_o be_v very_o tender_a and_o chary_a that_o he_o do_v not_o willing_o and_o light_o offend_v or_o discourage_v any_o of_o the_o least_o among_o they_o final_o as_o every_o one_o of_o we_o must_v in_o all_o thing_n and_o all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n live_v unto_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n so_o must_v we_o willing_o die_v unto_o he_o and_o for_o he_o if_o need_v so_o require_v to_o the_o end_n that_o be_v at_o the_o last_o approve_v of_o he_o for_o good_a and_o faithful_a servant_n we_o may_v for_o ever_o live_v and_o reign_v with_o he_o proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n that_o great_a duty_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o that_o he_o be_v call_v our_o lord_n the_o very_a title_n itself_o do_v plain_o import_v according_a to_o that_o challenge_n which_o the_o lord_n god_n make_v by_o his_o holy_a prophet_n malachi_n chap._n 1.5_o if_o i_o be_v a_o lord_n where_o be_v my_o fear_n out_o of_o all_o question_n rightful_a lordship_n require_v reverend_a service_n now_o we_o know_v that_o god_n have_v set_v over_o as_o it_o be_v the_o right_a of_o his_o government_n over_o we_o to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o therefore_o faith_n our_o saviour_n himself_o also_o luk._n 6.46_o why_o do_v you_o call_v i_o master_n master_n and_o do_v not_o the_o thing_n that_o i_o speak_v as_o be_v mention_v before_o for_o very_o it_o be_v but_o trifle_v yea_o a_o mere_a mockery_n for_o any_o servant_n to_o yield_v his_o master_n his_o title_n and_o to_o deny_v he_o his_o service_n well_o therefore_o reason_v the_o holy_a psalmist_n concern_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n when_o he_o give_v the_o church_n this_o charge_n he_o be_v thy_o lord_n and_o reverence_n thou_o he_o the_o word_n hishiabbani_n which_o the_o prophet_n use_v signify_v a_o humble_a service_n by_o bow_v unto_o he_o psal_n 45.12_o but_o let_v we_o consider_v a_o little_a of_o some_o proof_n for_o the_o particular_a branch_n of_o the_o answer_n first_o therefore_o that_o we_o be_v absolute_o to_o obey_v the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o that_o he_o be_v our_o lord_n and_o no_o other_o but_o in_o he_o and_o for_o he_o that_o be_v according_a to_o h_o s_o will_n and_o commandment_n and_o as_o may_v be_v most_o for_o his_o divine_a honour_n and_o glory_n and_o not_o otherwise_o read_v 1._o cor._n 7.22.23_o he_o that_o be_v call_v in_o
though_o this_o his_o mighty_a work_n by_o creation_n may_v be_v call_v also_o a_o kind_n of_o beget_v in_o such_o sense_n as_o god_n be_v call_v a_o father_n partly_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o work_n of_o creation_n as_o have_v be_v declare_v heretofore_o the_o second_o thing_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o report_n of_o this_o promise_n of_o conception_n be_v the_o instrumental_a or_o material_a cause_n thereof_o which_o be_v the_o virgin_n marie_n so_o that_o the_o word_n conceive_v be_v to_o be_v refer_v both_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o also_o to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n to_o he_o as_o to_o the_o author_n of_o the_o conception_n to_o she_o as_o to_o the_o instrument_n minister_a the_o matter_n of_o the_o conception_n the_o revelation_n of_o this_o most_o extraordinary_a conception_n thus_o promise_v to_o the_o virgin_n marie_n be_v to_o be_v account_v of_o we_o a_o singular_a mercy_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n not_o only_o to_o the_o virgin_n herself_o but_o also_o to_o we_o &_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n to_z marry_o because_o otherwise_o she_o can_v not_o have_v possible_o conceive_v in_o her_o mind_n that_o her_o body_n have_v be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o the_o son_n of_o god_n she_o shall_v have_v be_v confound_v rather_o than_o rejoice_v at_o this_o so_o strange_a and_o unsearchable_a a_o work_n of_o god_n well_o may_v she_o have_v have_v peace_n in_o her_o conscience_n in_o that_o she_o know_v well_o that_o she_o have_v never_o dishonest_v herself_o but_o comfort_n of_o faith_n how_o can_v she_o have_v have_v any_o but_o by_o revelation_n from_o god_n the_o revelation_n of_o this_o mystery_n therefore_o be_v a_o singular_a mercy_n of_o god_n to_o marie_n herself_o as_o be_v say_v but_o not_o only_o to_o she_o but_o also_o to_o we_o and_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o be_v further_o affirm_v and_o the_o rather_o consider_v as_o well_o the_o honourable_a messenger_n that_o be_v send_v even_o the_o holy_a angel_n of_o god_n as_o the_o notable_a manner_n of_o his_o do_v of_o the_o message_n from_o the_o lord_n first_o by_o a_o unwonted_a salutation_n verse_n 28._o second_o by_o a_o sweet_a and_o comfortable_a encourage_v of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n against_o her_o fear_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o sudden_a appear_v to_o her_o be_v alone_o and_o because_o of_o the_o same_o his_o strange_a and_o unwonted_a salutation_n verse_n 30._o three_o by_o a_o plain_a narration_n of_o the_o whole_a matter_n unto_o she_o with_o a_o excellent_a description_n of_o the_o child_n what_o manner_n of_o one_o he_o shall_v be_v ver_fw-la 31_o 32_o 33._o four_o by_o a_o notable_a description_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o conception_n how_o it_o shall_v be_v wrought_v and_o effect_v in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o virgin_n for_o her_o further_a satisfaction_n and_o confirmation_n against_o all_o her_o doubt_n verse_n 35._o yea_o so_o as_o the_o angel_n will_v not_o leave_v she_o till_o she_o be_v put_v out_o of_o all_o doubt_n to_o the_o which_o end_n he_o give_v she_o also_o a_o very_a rare_a sign_n and_o token_n for_o the_o further_o establish_v of_o her_o faith_n for_o he_o discover_v unto_o she_o the_o conception_n of_o old_a barren_a elizabeth_n and_o the_o time_n how_o long_o since_o so_o that_o she_o may_v perceive_v that_o elizabeth_n be_v then_o upon_o her_o quicken_a with_o child_n verse_n 36.37_o as_o marie_n find_v it_o to_o be_v true_a short_o after_o even_o as_o the_o angel_n have_v tell_v for_o she_o go_v to_o elizabeth_n at_o she_o very_o come_v to_o she_o the_o child_n do_v spring_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o elizabeth_n and_o thereupon_o elizabeth_n move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n rejoice_v and_o salute_v marie_n by_o the_o most_o honourable_a name_n of_o the_o mother_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o show_v herself_o thankful_a to_o god_n whereupon_o marie_n also_o break_v forth_o in_o a_o very_a heavenly_a and_o prophetical_a thanksgiving_a as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n so_o then_o from_o this_o notable_a message_n of_o the_o angel_n the_o virgin_n marie_n be_v plain_o inform_v and_o obtain_v victory_n both_o against_o her_o astonishment_n and_o also_o against_o all_o succeed_a doubt_n it_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o undoubted_a a_o confirmation_n to_o our_o own_o faith_n that_o she_o be_v that_o virgin_n which_o god_n in_o his_o most_o holy_a providence_n have_v set_v apart_o and_o appoint_v thereunto_o to_o the_o which_o purpose_n also_o the_o diligence_n of_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n yield_v a_o memorable_a furtherance_n in_o that_o he_o certifi_v we_o of_o the_o time_n when_o this_o bless_a message_n be_v send_v to_o what_o place_n &_o to_o what_o person_n even_o to_o this_o marie_n who_o he_o also_o describe_v by_o as_o particular_a circumstance_n as_o may_v be_v verse_n 26.27_o thus_o the_o narration_n of_o this_o immediate_a promise_n of_o the_o conception_n of_o our_o saviour_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o great_a mercy_n of_o god_n comfort_n the_o comfort_n both_o to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n marie_n and_o also_o to_o we_o and_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n and_o thus_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o promise_n we_o come_v to_o inquire_v of_o the_o comfort_n question_n arise_v to_o our_o faith_n from_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o same_o what_o may_v these_o comfort_n be_v answer_n this_o most_o holy_a conception_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o all_o our_o comfort_n concern_v his_o humane_a nature_n in_o so_o much_o as_o if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v conceive_v he_o can_v never_o have_v be_v bear_v nor_o have_v wrought_v or_o suffer_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o for_o us._n likewise_o the_o comfort_n be_v exceed_o great_a in_o that_o we_o be_v hereby_o assure_v that_o he_o in_o who_o we_o believe_v be_v not_o only_o the_o true_a christ_n according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n fulfil_v in_o his_o conception_n but_o also_o that_o he_o be_v even_o from_o his_o conception_n perfect_o fit_v to_o be_v a_o most_o worthy_a &_o alsufficient_a mediator_n and_o saviour_n unto_o we_o and_o for_o us._n moreover_o the_o union_n of_o our_o humane_a nature_n in_o he_o to_o the_o divine_a be_v general_o the_o ground_n of_o all_o comfort_n in_o so_o much_o as_o hereby_o his_o humane_a nature_n be_v make_v the_o mean_n and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o condite-pipe_n to_o cleanse_v our_o filthy_a nature_n and_o to_o convey_v all_o grace_n and_o even_o the_o gift_n of_o eternal_a life_n itself_o unto_o we_o from_o the_o divine_a nature_n which_o alone_o be_v the_o ever-springing_a yea_o the_o ever-overflowing_a fountain_n of_o the_o water_n of_o life_n final_o this_o personal_a union_n of_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o our_o saviour_n with_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v the_o very_a ground_n of_o our_o unite_n and_o espouse_v with_o christ_n and_o so_o of_o our_o reunit_n to_o god_n wherein_o stand_v all_o our_o happiness_n proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n it_o be_v very_o true_a our_o conjunction_n with_o god_n be_v our_o happiness_n even_o as_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n our_o misery_n that_o we_o be_v separate_v from_o he_o through_o the_o fall_n of_o our_o first_o father_n adam_n for_o thereby_o beside_o the_o guiltiness_n of_o his_o sin_n we_o have_v in_o ourselves_o a_o original_a fountain_n of_o all_o sin_n the_o which_o of_o the_o own_o accord_n do_v continual_o flow_v forth_o to_o our_o eternal_a destruction_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n unless_o god_n shall_v be_v merciful_a unto_o us._n jer._n 6._o verse_n 7.8_o now_o therefore_o see_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n alone_o we_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n and_o through_o he_o reunite_v in_o a_o perfect_a league_n of_o peace_n and_o friendship_n never_o to_o be_v dissolve_v any_o more_o yea_o see_v we_o be_v in_o and_o by_o christ_n one_o with_o god_n and_o he_o with_o we_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o herein_o rest_v all_o our_o happiness_n as_o upon_o the_o only_a sure_a ground_n and_o foundation_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o we_o lose_v by_o adam_n defection_n that_o yea_o a_o far_o more_o excellent_a estate_n be_v restore_v unto_o we_o by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n both_o for_o righteousness_n and_o holiness_n and_o also_o for_o happiness_n and_o glory_n partly_o to_o be_v apprehend_v by_o faith_n here_o and_o full_o and_o real_o to_o be_v enjoy_v for_o ever_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n for_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v make_v of_o god_n to_o be_v unto_o we_o wisdom_n and_o righteousness_n and_o sanctification_n and_o redemption_n 1._o cor._n 1.30_o you_o be_v of_o he_o in_o christ_n jesus_n say_v the_o apostle_n who_o of_o god_n be_v make_v unto_o we_o wisdom_n etc._n etc._n that_o according_a as_o it_o be_v write_v he_o that_o rejoice_v
at_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v report_v by_o they_o and_o verse_n 20._o it_o be_v further_o testify_v concern_v the_o shepherd_n themselves_o that_o they_o return_v glorify_v and_o praise_v god_n for_o all_o that_o they_o have_v hear_v and_o see_v as_o it_o be_v speak_v unto_o they_o and_o concern_v the_o bless_a virgin_n marie_n it_o be_v say_v verse_n 19_o that_o she_o keep_v and_o ponder_v all_o in_o her_o heart_n moreover_o concern_v the_o wise_a man_n we_o read_v matth_n cha_n 2._o and_o not_o only_o of_o their_o reverend_a estimation_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o the_o whole_a history_n show_v but_o also_o of_o their_o great_a travel_n as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o first_o verse_n of_o their_o boldness_n verse_n 2._o of_o their_o joyfulness_n without_o all_o offence_n at_o the_o external_a baseness_n of_o our_o saviour_n birth_n and_o of_o their_o homage_n and_o worship_n do_v unto_o he_o verses_z 10.11_o and_o last_o of_o all_o of_o their_o circumspection_n and_o care_n to_o perform_v their_o faithful_a allegiance_n verse_n 12._o concern_v in_o the_o example_n of_o simeon_n we_o read_v luke_n ch_n 2._o verse_n 28.29.30.31.32_o he_o take_v our_o saviour_n up_o in_o his_o arm_n and_o praise_v god_n and_o say_v lord_n now_o thou_o do_v let_v thy_o servant_n depart_v in_o peace_n according_a to_o thy_o word_n for_o my_o eye_n have_v see_v thy_o salvation_n etc._n etc._n read_v also_o verse_n 34.35_o behold_v this_o child_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o fall_n and_o rise_n of_o many_o in_o israel_n final_o concern_v the_o prophetisse_n anna_n we_o read_v as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n verse_n 36._o there_o be_v a_o prophetisse_n one_o anna_n etc._n etc._n and_o verse_n 38._o she_o come_v at_o the_o same_o instant_n upon_o they_o confess_v likewise_o the_o lord_n and_o speak_v of_o he_o to_o all_o that_o look_v for_o redemption_n in_o jerusalem_n all_o which_o example_n no_o doubt_n be_v record_v article_n the_o danger_n of_o not_o believe_v this_o article_n not_o only_o for_o the_o discourse_n and_o explanation_n of_o the_o holy_a story_n but_o also_o for_o our_o instruction_n and_o like_o imitation_n upon_o the_o same_o consideration_n which_o move_v they_o both_o to_o think_v speak_v and_o do_v as_o they_o do_v the_o duty_n therefore_o of_o faith_n concern_v this_o article_n be_v such_o as_o have_v be_v describe_v now_o in_o the_o last_o place_n of_o our_o inquiry_n what_o be_v the_o danger_n of_o not_o believe_v in_o our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n bear_v in_o due_a time_n question_n very_o true_a man_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n the_o holy_a apostle_n s._n john_n teach_v and_o very_o earnest_o affirm_v that_o every_o spirit_n which_o confess_v not_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n answer_v be_v not_o of_o god_n but_o that_o this_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o antichrist_n he_o do_v so_o indeed_o as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o 3._o verse_n of_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o his_o 1._o proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n epistle_n and_o there_o be_v very_o good_a and_o necessary_a reason_n why_o he_o shall_v teach_v so_o for_o he_o that_o deni_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n deni_v the_o come_n of_o christ_n yea_o and_o all_o the_o fruit_n and_o benefit_n both_o of_o his_o birth_n and_o also_o of_o his_o whole_a life_n and_o death_n and_o therein_o he_o be_v a_o open_a adversary_n to_o god_n and_o his_o christ_n as_o the_o word_n antichrist_n itself_o give_v for_o the_o title_n of_o such_o plain_o show_v according_a to_o the_o greek_a language_n and_o beside_o that_o insomuch_o as_o it_o be_v a_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o teach_v christian_n to_o confess_v that_o according_a to_o this_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n jesus_n christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v in_o the_o former_a verse_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o all_o such_o as_o deny_v it_o be_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o antichrist_n and_o be_v therein_o open_a adversary_n to_o god_n who_o have_v send_v his_o son_n in_o the_o flesh_n true_o conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n such_o antichristes_n and_o adversary_n both_o to_o god_n and_o his_o son_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o simonianite_n valentinian_o marcionite_n apollinaristes_n and_o many_o other_o sort_n of_o heretic_n as_o they_o have_v be_v rehearse_v before_o in_o the_o article_n of_o his_o conception_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o their_o several_a heresy_n against_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o our_o saviour_n the_o belief_n of_o all_o which_o heretic_n be_v no_o doubt_n nothing_o better_a than_o a_o airy_n and_o vanish_v belief_n even_o a_o shadow_n and_o spectrum_n of_o faith_n and_o no_o true_a faith_n in_o deed_n even_o answerable_a to_o that_o which_o they_o hold_v that_o our_o saviour_n have_v no_o true_a body_n but_o only_o a_o outward_a appearance_n of_o a_o body_n and_o which_o as_o the_o devil_n bewitch_v they_o to_o think_v be_v but_o a_o spiritual_a or_o airy_n thing_n of_o some_o strange_a composition_n &_o not_o like_a unto_o we_o etc._n etc._n and_o thus_o by_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n we_o be_v come_v to_o a_o end_n of_o our_o inquiry_n concern_v the_o article_n of_o the_o birth_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n according_a to_o the_o propound_a order_n of_o our_o course_n nevertheless_o upon_o some_o good_a consideration_n we_o will_v yet_o more_o particular_o inquire_v as_o in_o way_n of_o a_o appendix_n why_o the_o name_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n be_v mention_v in_o this_o article_n of_o our_o belief_n for_o it_o be_v very_o unskilfullie_o yea_o most_o wicked_o and_o blasphemous_o misconstrue_v by_o many_o as_o though_o marie_n herself_o have_v be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o have_v be_v conceive_v without_o sin_n to_o the_o end_n that_o in_o respect_n of_o she_o own_o purity_n of_o nature_n our_o saviour_n may_v be_v bear_v and_o bring_v forth_o of_o she_o without_o all_o spot_n of_o sin_n whereupon_o also_o have_v follow_v these_o heretical_a conclusion_n that_o she_o be_v to_o be_v esteem_v for_o our_o lady_n here_o on_o earth_n and_o a_o queen_n in_o heaven_n &_o therefore_o to_o be_v picture_v with_o a_o crown_n upon_o her_o head_n &_o so_o paint_v in_o church_n window_n &c_n &c_n with_o a_o opinion_n that_o she_o have_v power_n and_o authority_n to_o command_v her_o son_n and_o therefore_o be_v to_o be_v pray_v unto_o etc._n etc._n but_o all_o these_o be_v false_a cause_n coin_v in_o the_o deceivable_a shop_n of_o man_n superstitious_a and_o idolatrous_a brain_n to_o be_v utterlie_o condemn_v and_o abhor_v of_o all_o true_a christian_n as_o intolerable_a blasphemy_n against_o god_n and_o most_o heinous_a injury_n do_v to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n question_n i_o ask_v therefore_o what_o be_v the_o true_a cause_n or_o reason_n which_o may_v be_v believe_v to_o be_v such_o indeed_o answer_n first_o for_o the_o more_o full_a certainty_n or_o perspicuity_n &_o plainness_n of_o the_o holy_a history_n itself_o secondlie_o that_o our_o belief_n may_v be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o e●●a●e_a and_o unfold_v concern_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o our_o saviour_n thirdlie_o that_o as_o have_v be_v say_v already_o she_o may_v be_v have_v in_o memorial_n for_o a_o notable_a example_n to_o we_o of_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o of_o obey_v his_o gospel_n and_o of_o blessing_n praise_v and_o magnify_v the_o name_n of_o god_n for_o our_o salvation_n which_o be_v bring_v to_o light_n by_o the_o incarnation_n and_o manifestation_n of_o he_o proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n these_o be_v the_o true_a cause_n indeed_o as_o may_v be_v discern_v by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v set_v down_o before_o for_o how_o can_v god_n be_v sufficient_o praise_v for_o this_o most_o gracious_a work_n of_o he_o and_o what_o place_n be_v there_o leave_v for_o any_o doubt_v see_v not_o only_o according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o isaiah_n it_o be_v testify_v that_o the_o mother_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v a_o virgin_n notwithstanding_o the_o conception_n and_o birth_n of_o this_o child_n but_o also_o see_v it_o be_v particular_o describe_v unto_o we_o who_o that_o holy_a virgin_n be_v by_o her_o name_n by_o the_o place_n of_o her_o dwell_n by_o her_o parentage_n in_o that_o she_o be_v the_o daughter_n of_o elie_n by_o her_o husband_n to_o who_o she_o be_v first_o betroth_v and_o afterward_o marry_v by_o her_o kindred_n in_o that_o elizabeth_n the_o mother_n of_o john_n baptist_n be_v her_o cousin_n etc._n etc._n luke_n chap_n 1.26_o etc._n etc._n and_o ch_n 3.23_o we_o can_v deny_v but_o the_o papist_n be_v ready_a to_o allege_v other_o cause_n &_o namely_o because_o as_o they_o teach_v the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v to_o be_v honour_v
life_n of_o some_o among_o the_o heathen_a for_o their_o civil_a justice_n and_o liberality_n for_o their_o bodily_a chastity_n and_o temperance_n for_o their_o fortitude_n &_o stout_a courage_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o public_a weal_n &c_n &c_n but_o all_o be_v in_o they_o but_o shadow_n of_o virtue_n and_o no_o true_a and_o holy_a virtue_n indeed_o if_o they_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o virtue_n which_o god_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n of_o sanctification_n wrought_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o many_o of_o his_o people_n nevertheless_o albeit_o the_o life_n of_o the_o holy_a servant_n of_o god_n chief_o of_o they_o that_o be_v record_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v much_o more_o profitable_o to_o be_v read_v &_o consider_v than_o any_o of_o the_o heathen_a man_n in_o so_o much_o as_o their_o virtue_n be_v in_o they_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o be_v say_v and_o therefore_o the_o word_n &_o work_v do_v in_o truth_n and_o not_o for_o ostentation_n sake_n or_o in_o any_o other_o sinister_a and_o fleshly_a respect_n as_o be_v those_o of_o the_o heathen_a yet_o their_o life_n be_v not_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o life_n of_o our_o saviour_n for_o in_o read_v the_o life_n of_o the_o best_a of_o they_o we_o do_v meet_v with_o many_o unworthy_a and_o uncomfortable_a declining_n both_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n and_o on_o the_o left_a which_o may_v just_o cause_v we_o to_o blush_v and_o be_v ashamed_a in_o behold_v the_o corruption_n of_o our_o own_o wicked_a nature_n represent_v before_o our_o eye_n in_o they_o but_o the_o life_n of_o our_o saviour_n from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n be_v without_o any_o the_o least_o blemish_n and_o stain_v let_v we_o therefore_o bend_v our_o mind_n with_o the_o best_a attention_n that_o we_o may_v to_o inquire_v after_o this_o most_o holy_a and_o righteous_a life_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o whereas_o the_o virtue_n of_o other_o man_n be_v their_o own_o praise_n &c_n &c_n the_o virtue_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v not_o only_o his_o own_o praise_n but_o also_o his_o merit_n and_o desert_n for_o we_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n as_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o more_o full_o observe_v in_o the_o due_a place_n thereof_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n we_o be_v to_o observe_v concern_v the_o education_n and_o life_n of_o our_o saviour_n that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v of_o we_o by_o certain_a degree_n according_a to_o some_o commodious_a distinction_n of_o the_o year_n of_o his_o age_n partly_o concern_v the_o time_n wherein_o he_o live_v a_o private_a condition_n of_o life_n and_o partly_o concern_v the_o time_n wherein_o he_o live_v in_o a_o public_a estate_n or_o call_n and_o concern_v the_o time_n of_o his_o private_a life_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v of_o it_o first_o of_o all_o from_o the_o time_n of_o his_o presentation_n in_o the_o temple_n until_o about_o the_o four_o year_n of_o his_o age_n for_o of_o his_o circumcision_n and_o of_o the_o presentation_n itself_o we_o have_v consider_v already_o as_o more_o near_o appertain_v to_o his_o nativity_n and_o birth_n secondlie_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v of_o it_o from_o the_o four_o year_n to_o the_o twelve_o of_o his_o age_n thirdlie_o of_o that_o which_o be_v record_v concern_v the_o twelve_o year_n fourthlie_o from_o the_o twelve_o year_n to_o the_o time_n that_o he_o be_v thirty_o year_n old_a at_o what_o time_n his_o public_a estate_n and_o condition_n of_o life_n begin_v fiftlie_o from_o the_o thirtith_n year_n to_o the_o time_n of_o his_o passion_n which_o be_v about_o the_o space_n of_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a to_o be_v consider_v from_o the_o time_n of_o his_o baptism_n under_o the_o note_n or_o mark_v as_o it_o be_v of_o four_o several_a passover_n and_o herein_o when_o once_o we_o shall_v come_v unto_o it_o we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o consider_v after_o what_o manner_n our_o saviour_n be_v make_v know_v to_o the_o people_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n who_o be_v as_o the_o lord_n say_v by_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n the_o voice_n of_o a_o crier_n in_o the_o wilderness_n by_o the_o voice_n of_o god_n the_o father_n himself_o from_o heaven_n by_o the_o descend_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o visible_a shape_n of_o a_o dove_n upon_o he_o and_o last_o of_o all_o by_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o own_o most_o holy_a ministry_n in_o preach_v his_o heavenly_a doctrine_n and_o in_o work_v his_o most_o mighty_a and_o gracious_a miracle_n but_o of_o these_o also_o more_o hereafter_o it_o may_v suffice_v for_o the_o present_a that_o we_o have_v a_o inkling_n concern_v the_o order_n wherein_o we_o shall_v by_o god_n good_a grace_n proceed_v from_o point_n to_o point_n now_o therefore_o in_o the_o first_o place_n that_o we_o may_v begin_v from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o presentation_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o temple_n to_o the_o four_o year_n of_o his_o age_n and_o therein_o of_o his_o transportation_n or_o carry_v out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o israel_n into_o egypt_n of_o his_o abode_n there_o and_o of_o his_o return_n into_o israel_n again_o and_o also_o of_o that_o which_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o land_n of_o israel_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n question_n what_o proof_n of_o holy_a scripture_n have_v you_o for_o the_o declaration_n of_o this_o part_n of_o his_o education_n and_o life_n it_o be_v notable_o though_o brief_o describe_v in_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o the_o gospel_n write_v by_o the_o evangelist_n matthew_n from_o the_o 13._o verse_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n quest_n it_o be_v so_o indeed_o in_o which_o of_o the_o verse_n be_v his_o carry_v into_o egypt_n and_o his_o abode_n there_o testify_v and_o describe_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n answer_n in_o the_o thirteen_o fourteen_o and_o fifteen_o rehearse_v the_o word_n of_o the_o text._n 13_o after_o their_o departure_n that_o be_v after_o the_o departure_n of_o the_o wise_a man_n of_o the_o east_n country_n behold_v say_v the_o evangelist_n the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n appear_v to_o joseph_n in_o a_o dream_n say_v arise_v and_o take_v the_o babe_n and_o his_o mother_n and_o fly_v into_o egypt_n and_o be_v there_o till_o i_o bring_v thou_o word_n for_o herode_fw-la will_v seek_v the_o babe_n to_o destroy_v he_o 14._o so_o he_o arise_v and_o take_v the_o babe_n and_o his_o mother_n by_o night_n &_o depart_v into_o egypt_n 15_o and_o be_v there_o unto_o the_o death_n of_o herod_n that_o it_o may_v be_v fulfil_v which_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o lord_n by_o the_o prophet_n say_v out_o of_o egypt_n have_v i_o call_v my_o son_n in_o these_o word_n be_v contain_v indeed_o the_o holy_a history_n both_o of_o the_o carry_v of_o our_o saviour_n into_o egypt_n proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n and_o also_o of_o the_o recarrying_a or_o bring_v of_o he_o back_o again_o into_o the_o land_n of_o israel_n with_o some_o notation_n of_o that_o space_n of_o time_n wherein_o he_o be_v there_o and_o all_o as_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n say_v that_o the_o pprophecy_n which_o we_o find_v in_o hosea_n the_o prophet_n chapter_n 11.1_o may_v be_v fulfil_v for_o see_v god_n have_v determine_v to_o call_v our_o saviour_n his_o son_n out_o of_o egypt_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v first_o send_v into_o egypt_n and_o beside_o we_o have_v in_o this_o scripture_n a_o further_a declaration_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o transport_v of_o our_o saviour_n which_o be_v for_o that_o herod_n malign_v he_o mind_v to_o destroy_v he_o in_o his_o infancy_n we_o have_v also_o a_o declaration_n of_o the_o mean_n and_o instrument_n whereby_o god_n reveal_v the_o same_o and_o give_v direction_n and_o commandment_n to_o joseph_n and_o marie_n for_o the_o avoid_v of_o his_o fury_n moreover_o there_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o 2._o chap_v of_o s._n matthew_n a_o like_a holy_a declaration_n of_o the_o return_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n out_o of_o egypt_n verse_n 19.20_o etc._n etc._n but_o betwixt_o the_o connexion_n of_o this_o and_o the_o former_a part_n of_o the_o story_n there_o be_v insert_v a_o narration_n of_o the_o lamentable_a event_n which_o fall_v out_o in_o israel_n while_o our_o saviour_n be_v in_o egypt_n wherein_o the_o deep_a dissemble_v and_o most_o cruel_a malice_n of_o herod_n against_o he_o be_v notable_o discover_v question_n in_o which_o word_n of_o the_o text_n be_v this_o narration_n record_v answer_n verse_n 16.17_o and_o 18._o in_o these_o word_n 16_o then_o say_v the_o evangelist_n herod_n see_v that_o he_o be_v mock_v of_o the_o wise_a man_n be_v exceed_v wroth_a and_o send_v forth_o and_o slay_v all_o the_o male-children_n that_o be_v in_o bethlehem_n and_o all_o the_o coast_n thereof_o from_o
the_o heavenly_a father_n of_o we_o all_o but_o in_o special_a manner_n the_o father_n of_o his_o natural_a son_n be_v in_o the_o season_n thereof_o to_o be_v always_o prefer_v before_o duty_n to_o earthly_a parent_n and_o chief_o when_o any_o have_v their_o special_a call_n thereunto_o as_o our_o saviour_n have_v above_o all_o other_o the_o levite_n in_o respect_n of_o a_o special_a service_n they_o be_v command_v to_o perform_v unto_o god_n be_v commend_v for_o this_o that_o they_o neither_o know_v father_n nor_o mother_n that_o be_v they_o regard_v nothing_o that_o may_v hinder_v their_o service_n much_o more_o be_v our_o saviour_n to_o be_v commend_v in_o the_o like_a respect_n at_o this_o time_n and_o now_o as_o touch_v joseph_n and_o marie_n our_o saviour_n do_v furthermore_o make_v it_o plain_a by_o his_o most_o wise_a and_o dutiful_a defence_n which_o it_o be_v meet_v he_o shall_v at_o this_o time_n make_v for_o himself_o that_o the_o fail_v be_v in_o they_o altogether_o and_o nothing_o at_o all_o in_o he_o for_o what_o reason_n have_v they_o to_o think_v that_o our_o saviour_n have_v be_v always_o a_o most_o dutiful_a child_n unto_o they_o will_v at_o this_o time_n have_v withdraw_v himself_o from_o they_o for_o no_o other_o cause_n then_o to_o have_v haste_v homeward_o with_o the_o first_o of_o those_o that_o return_v from_o jerusalem_n nay_o rather_o what_o reason_n have_v they_o but_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v think_v thus_o with_o themselves_o upon_o the_o first_o miss_v of_o he_o sure_o he_o be_v now_o go_v aside_o to_o some_o special_a purpose_n to_o the_o glorify_v of_o god_n before_o his_o departure_n out_o of_o the_o city_n or_o it_o be_v sure_a that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o holy_a exercise_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o temple_n he_o be_v go_v thither_o etc._n etc._n such_o no_o doubt_n ought_v their_o thought_n to_o have_v be_v as_o our_o saviour_n show_v plain_o in_o these_o word_n of_o his_o holy_a defence_n know_v you_o not_o that_o i_o must_v be_v in_o my_o father_n business_n as_o though_o he_o shall_v put_v they_o in_o mind_n that_o he_o have_v signify_v so_o much_o unto_o they_o before_o though_o either_o they_o do_v not_o mark_v it_o as_o they_o shall_v have_v do_v or_o else_o forget_v it_o again_o though_o they_o may_v easy_o have_v understand_v it_o from_o he_o final_o let_v we_o observe_v this_o notable_a history_n the_o most_o holy_a and_o excellent_a disposition_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o this_o his_o childhood_n in_o that_o according_a as_o his_o parent_n at_o the_o last_o well_o bethink_v themselves_o and_o go_v to_o seek_v he_o in_o the_o temple_n find_v he_o there_o at_o the_o holy_a exercise_n of_o instruction_n or_o conference_n &_o catechism_n mention_v before_o for_o no_o doubt_n the_o rare_a disposition_n of_o the_o child_n to_o all_o godliness_n after_o they_o have_v well_o bethink_v themselves_o cause_v they_o to_o think_v that_o it_o be_v most_o like_a they_o shall_v find_v he_o there_o o_o that_o child_n will_v learn_v from_o this_o most_o excellent_a example_n to_o love_v their_o church_n as_o we_o use_v to_o speak_v &_o the_o holy_a exercise_n of_o religion_n &_o namely_o this_o of_o catechise_v to_o be_v willing_a to_o be_v ask_v question_n &_o to_o learn_v to_o answer_v they_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o alas_o if_o parent_n now_o a_o day_n miss_v their_o child_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n where_o shall_v they_o usual_o find_v they_o in_o the_o church_n at_o sermon_n think_v we_o no_o but_o in_o the_o market_n place_n playing_z or_o idle_o gaze_v or_o if_o there_o be_v any_o other_o place_n of_o special_a disorder_n and_o vanity_n the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v of_o servant_n and_o many_o of_o elder_a year_n yea_o even_o of_o some_o parent_n themselves_o it_o be_v a_o shame_n to_o speak_v who_o may_v soon_o be_v find_v in_o the_o beerhouse_n etc._n etc._n then_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n but_o of_o the_o duty_n more_o afterward_o now_o in_o the_o last_o place_n let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o education_n and_o life_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n under_o the_o government_n of_o joseph_n and_o marie_n that_o be_v from_o the_o twelve_o year_n to_o the_o thirtith_n in_o what_o part_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v that_o record_v unto_o we_o it_o be_v brief_o set_v down_o in_o the_o two_o last_o verse_n of_o the_o same_o 2._o ch_z of_o the_o evangelist_n luke_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o 51._o and_o 52._o verse_n question_n rehearse_v the_o word_n as_o they_o follow_v in_o the_o text_n which_o be_v they_o answer_n 51_o then_o say_v saint_n luke_n he_o go_v down_o with_o they_o that_o be_v with_o joseph_n &_o marie_n and_o come_v to_o nazareth_n and_o be_v subject_a unto_o they_o and_o his_o mother_n keep_v all_o those_o say_n in_o her_o heart_n 52_o and_o jesus_n increase_v in_o wisdom_n and_o stature_n and_o in_o favour_n with_o god_n and_o man_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n this_o also_o be_v a_o very_a short_a but_o yet_o in_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n a_o sufficient_a and_o full_a description_n of_o the_o life_n of_o our_o saviour_n so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o we_o to_o know_v for_o the_o space_n of_o about_o 18._o year_n if_o that_o which_o be_v set_v down_o shall_v be_v due_o weigh_v and_o consider_v of_o us._n for_o by_o that_o which_o be_v say_v here_o if_o it_o be_v lay_v to_o that_o which_o we_o have_v see_v already_o we_o may_v without_o any_o great_a or_o obscure_a difficulty_n conceive_v right_o what_o manner_n of_o life_n he_o lead_v that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o private_a and_o not_o as_o yet_o nor_o for_o all_o the_o time_n mention_v any_o public_a estate_n and_o condition_n of_o life_n not_o a_o wealthy_a and_o delicious_a kind_n of_o life_n but_o a_o poor_a and_o sober_a life_n not_o a_o idle_a or_o easy_a life_n but_o a_o diligent_a and_o painful_a life_n final_o a_o life_n in_o subjection_n and_o obedience_n to_o his_o poor_a parent_n and_o not_o the_o life_n of_o a_o master_n of_o a_o family_n to_o have_v commandment_n and_o government_n over_o any_o yea_o which_o be_v strange_a to_o speak_v of_o and_o be_v it_o not_o testify_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n incredible_a to_o be_v think_v consider_v who_o he_o be_v he_o lead_v the_o life_n of_o a_o apprentice_n or_o man_n of_o occupation_n as_o we_o may_v say_v work_v the_o carpenter_n work_n and_o not_o a_o student_n life_n as_o be_v touch_v before_o matth._n ch_n 13._o in_o the_o end_n and_o as_o it_o may_v be_v further_o observe_v from_o the_o evangelist_n mark._n ch_n 6._o verse_n 2_o 3._o and_o john_n 7.15_o and_o let_v we_o further_o mark_n that_o still_o this_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n repeat_v that_o as_o our_o saviour_n grow_v in_o year_n so_o he_o grow_v both_o in_o bodily_a stature_n and_o also_o in_o all_o wisdom_n and_o grace_n until_o he_o come_v to_o the_o full_a stature_n and_o perfection_n of_o both_o of_o the_o body_n according_a to_o a_o natural_a course_n and_o proportion_n like_o to_o other_o man_n of_o wisdom_n and_o grace_n without_o measure_n infinite_o above_o all_o other_o man_n final_o let_v we_o well_o observe_v that_o as_o the_o evangelist_n do_v plain_o testify_v so_o gracious_a be_v the_o whole_a conversation_n and_o behaviour_n of_o our_o saviour_n that_o all_o man_n be_v draw_v to_o a_o singular_a love_n and_o like_n of_o he_o to_o wit_n so_o many_o as_o have_v any_o grace_n and_o true_a discretion_n to_o perceive_v the_o excellency_n of_o his_o rare_a wisdom_n and_o all_o other_o virtue_n the_o which_o be_v not_o excellent_a only_o in_o appearance_n before_o man_n who_o be_v not_o seldom_o deceive_v in_o their_o judgement_n but_o also_o even_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n who_o in_o all_o thing_n do_v at_o all_o time_n judge_v most_o true_a and_o righteous_a judgement_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v express_o testify_v by_o the_o evangelist_n that_o our_o saviour_n increase_v in_o favour_n with_o god_n as_o well_o as_o with_o man_n that_o be_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n do_v shine_v forth_o more_o and_o more_o bright_o in_o the_o most_o gracious_a effect_n and_o fruit_n thereof_o towards_o he_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o it_o do_v evident_o appear_v to_o all_o that_o have_v eye_n to_o see_v that_o god_n do_v singular_o love_v and_o delight_n in_o he_o and_o that_o thereby_o also_o all_o may_v be_v effectual_o move_v to_o have_v he_o in_o like_a singular_a regard_n such_o be_v the_o holy_a history_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a &_o humble_a life_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n in_o his_o private_a state_n and_o condition_n of_o life_n even_o from_o his_o infancy_n every_o way_n admirable_a to_o all_o that_o shall_v
and_o that_o again_o partly_o while_o our_o saviour_n be_v tempt_v in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o partly_o after_o his_o return_n and_o then_o twice_o by_o point_v of_o our_o saviour_n out_o by_o the_o finger_n at_o such_o time_n as_o he_o be_v present_a but_o much_o more_o often_o do_v he_o testify_v of_o he_o in_o his_o absence_n labour_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o magnify_v and_o advance_v our_o saviour_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n most_o humble_o abase_v himself_o in_o comparison_n of_o our_o saviour_n that_o by_o no_o mean_n their_o heart_n may_v be_v hinder_v from_o the_o embrace_n and_o acknowledge_v of_o he_o to_o their_o salvation_n this_o be_v the_o course_n which_o john_n have_v track_v by_o his_o holy_a ministry_n let_v we_o according_o follow_v he_o question_n and_o first_o where_o be_v his_o more_o general_a and_o preparatorie_n doctrine_n accompany_v with_o the_o baptism_n of_o the_o gospel_n set_v down_o unto_o us._n answer_n it_o follow_v in_o the_o abovenamed_n three_o chapter_n of_o the_o evangelist_n luke_n from_o the_o 3._o verse_n to_o the_o 19_o of_o the_o same_o chapter_n there_o it_o be_v very_o notable_o and_o most_o at_o large_a set_v down_o indeed_o in_o the_o read_n whereof_o special_o if_o we_o call_v to_o mind_v the_o interpretation_n of_o it_o as_o we_o have_v hear_v it_o in_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o preach_v upon_o it_o it_o can_v be_v but_o we_o must_v needs_o perceive_v a_o wonderful_a spirit_n to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o seruamt_v of_o god_n not_o only_o touch_v the_o doctrine_n but_o also_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o most_o zealous_a accommodate_v and_o apply_v of_o it_o to_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n as_o may_v be_v most_o fit_a and_o effectual_a through_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n to_o the_o conversion_n of_o all_o that_o belong_v to_o the_o lord_n whereby_o also_o we_o ourselves_o may_v just_o be_v put_v in_o remembrance_n how_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v prepare_v and_o to_o prepare_v ourselves_o continual_o to_o receive_v christ_n into_o our_o heart_n yea_o more_o and_o more_o full_o to_o entertain_v he_o to_o our_o own_o endless_a comfort_n and_o salvation_n that_o be_v to_o say_v we_o may_v hereby_o clear_o perceive_v that_o we_o must_v admit_v the_o terror_n of_o the_o threaten_n of_o god_n to_o chase_v away_o our_o security_n that_o we_o must_v repent_v of_o our_o sin_n deny_v all_o opinion_n of_o our_o own_o righteousness_n and_o rest_v altogether_o upon_o the_o free_a grace_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o salvation_n through_o his_o righteousness_n and_o redemption_n final_o that_o we_o must_v bring_v such_o fruit_n as_o we_o may_v declare_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o repentance_n and_o humiliation_n before_o god_n every_o one_o of_o we_o according_a to_o the_o duty_n of_o our_o several_a calling_n for_o so_o do_v john_n earnest_o charge_v all_o those_o to_o who_o he_o preach_v public_o and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o that_o seek_v any_o more_o private_a or_o particular_a direction_n from_o he_o as_o appear_v at_o large_a by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o evangelist_n luke_n in_o the_o chapter_n before_o allege_v the_o same_o doctrine_n of_o john_n baptist_n record_v more_o large_o by_o saint_n luke_n be_v more_o brief_o contract_v by_o saint_n mat_n chap_n 3._o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o chap_n v_o 1.2.7.8.9.10.11.12_o and_o yet_o more_o brief_o mark_v ch_n 1.4.7.8_o read_v also_o john_n ch_n 1._o verse_n 6.7.8_o and_o act_n 10.37_o and_o chap_n 11.16_o and_o chap_n 13_o 24_o and_o chap_n 19.4_o such_o be_v the_o more_o general_a and_o preparatorie_n doctrine_n of_o john_n before_o the_o manifestation_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n at_o his_o baptism_n we_o come_v now_o to_o his_o more_o particular_a and_o direct_a testimony_n and_o first_o to_o that_o which_o he_o give_v of_o he_o at_o his_o baptism_n question_n where_o be_v that_o record_v answer_n in_o the_o 13._o and_o 14._o verse_n of_o the_o 3._o chapter_n of_o s._n matthew_n in_o these_o word_n then_o come_v jesus_n from_o galilee_n to_o jordan_n unto_o john_n to_o be_v baptize_v of_o he_o but_o john_n put_v he_o back_o say_v i_o have_v need_n to_o be_v baptize_v of_o thou_o and_o come_v thou_o to_o i_o proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n this_o indeed_o be_v the_o first_o more_o particular_a testimony_n which_o john_n give_v to_o our_o saviour_n wherein_o he_o acknowledge_v as_o we_o see_v his_o incomparable_a dignity_n let_v we_o proceed_v to_o the_o rest_n the_o next_o of_o those_o testimony_n which_o we_o find_v record_v be_v they_o which_o john_n give_v of_o our_o saviour_n while_o he_o be_v tempt_v of_o the_o devil_n in_o the_o wilderness_n whether_o he_o be_v lead_v away_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n immediate_o after_o his_o baptism_n as_o the_o evangelist_n mat_n mark_v and_o luke_n do_v express_o witness_v question_n now_o there_o be_v two_o of_o this_o sort_n where_o be_v the_o first_o of_o they_o set_v down_o answer_n it_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o evangelist_n john_n verse_n 15._o after_o this_o manner_n john_n to_o wit_n john_n the_o baptist_n bar●_n witness_v of_o he_o and_o cry_v say_v this_o be_v he_o of_o who_o i_o say_v he_o that_o come_v after_o i_o be_v prefer_v before_o i_o for_o he_o be_v before_o i_o proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n here_o again_o do_v john_n the_o baptist_n give_v a_o notable_a testimony_n to_o the_o peerless_a excellency_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n unto_o who_o all_o flesh_n ought_v to_o direct_v not_o so_o much_o the_o eye_n of_o their_o head_n as_o the_o eye_n and_o hand_n of_o their_o mind_n and_o heart_n that_o happy_o they_o may_v see_v and_o enjoy_v the_o salvation_n of_o god_n which_o be_v only_o to_o be_v find_v in_o he_o and_o thus_o no_o doubt_n be_v john_n earnest_n all_o the_o time_n that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v in_o the_o wilderness_n even_o until_o the_o day_n before_o his_o return_n out_o of_o the_o wilderness_n to_o the_o place_n where_o john_n continue_v his_o preach_n and_o baptise_v that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o bethabara_n beyond_o jordan_z john_n 1._o verse_n 18._o now_o as_o the_o evangelist_n john_n show_v in_o the_o very_a next_o verse_n the_o day_n next_o before_o this_o return_n of_o our_o saviour_n john_n the_o baptist_n give_v a_o other_o most_o notable_a and_o resolute_a testimony_n of_o he_o by_o occasion_n of_o a_o inquisition_n that_o pass_v upon_o he_o by_o certain_a priest_n who_o be_v of_o the_o pharisy_n and_o that_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o jerusalem_n to_o that_o end_n answer_n where_o be_v that_o notable_a testimony_n record_v ans_fw-fr it_o follow_v in_o the_o aforesaid_a first_o chapter_n of_o the_o evangelist_n john_n from_o the_o 19_o verse_n to_o the_o 2d_o verse_n of_o the_o same_o quest_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o evangelist_n ans_fw-fr 19_o then_o say_v the_o evangelist_n this_o be_v the_o record_n of_o john_n when_o the_o jew_n send_v priest_n and_o levite_n from_o jerusalem_n to_o ask_v he_o who_o be_v thou_o 20_o and_o he_o confess_v and_o deny_v not_o but_o say_v plain_o i_o be_o not_o the_o christ_n 21._o and_o they_o ask_v he_o what_o then_o be_v thou_o elias_n and_o he_o say_v i_o be_o not_o be_v thou_o the_o prophet_n and_o he_o answer_v no._n 22._o then_o say_v they_o unto_o he_o what_o be_v thou_o that_o we_o may_v give_v a_o answer_n to_o they_o that_o send_v we_o what_o say_v thou_o of_o thyself_o 23._o he_o say_v i_o be_o the_o voice_n of_o he_o that_o cry_v in_o the_o wilderness_n make_v straight_o the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o say_v the_o prophet_n esaias_n 24._o no●_n they_o that_o be_v send_v as_o the_o evangelist_n say_v further_o be_v of_o the_o pharisy_n 25._o and_o they_o ask_v he_o and_o say_v unto_o he_o why_o baptize_v thou_o then_o if_o thou_o be_v not_o the_o christ_n neither_o e●ias_n nor_o the_o prophet_n 2d_o john_n answer_v they_o say_v i_o baptize_v with_o water_n but_o there_o be_v one_o among_o you_o who_o you_o know_v not_o 27._o he_o it_o be_v which_o come_v after_o i_o who_o be_v prefer_v before_o i_o who_o shoo-la●chet_a i_o be_o not_o worthy_a to_o unloose_v proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n this_o very_o be_v a_o notable_a testimony_n indeed_o most_o resolute_a and_o wise_a concern_v himself_o for_o the_o justify_n of_o his_o own_o office_n and_o calling_n and_o most_o dutiful_a and_o honourable_a concern_v our_o saviour_n christ_n this_o testimony_n be_v so_o much_o the_o rather_o to_o be_v embrace_v of_o we_o because_o it_o be_v give_v upon_o so_o imperious_a &_o dangerous_a a_o examination_n so_o that_o we_o may_v perceive_v hereby_o that_o john_n be_v in_o no_o doubt_n either_o of_o the_o truth_n which_o
be_v the_o christ_n that_o shall_v come_v or_o whether_o they_o shall_v look_v for_o another_o or_o no._n but_o how_o may_v this_o be_v account_v a_o witness_n question_n give_v of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o for_o a_o confirmation_n that_o he_o be_v the_o true_a christ_n when_o as_o it_o may_v seem_v rather_o to_o be_v a_o recall_v or_o recant_v of_o all_o his_o former_a ministry_n and_o testification_n into_o question_n and_o doubt_v answer_n that_o john_n be_v in_o no_o doubt_n at_o all_o himself_o but_o remain_v the_o same_o man_n in_o prison_n that_o he_o be_v before_o in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o liberty_n our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v plain_o confirm_v as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n our_o saviour_n do_v so_o indeed_o for_o as_o he_o say_v even_o to_o prevent_v this_o doubt_n john_n be_v no_o reed_n shake_v with_o the_o wind_n but_o a_o prophet_n yea_o great_a than_o a_o prophet_n etc._n etc._n these_o word_n make_v it_o plain_a that_o john_n send_v his_o disciple_n to_o our_o saviour_n with_o such_o a_o message_n not_o for_o that_o he_o himself_o be_v in_o any_o the_o least_o doubt_n of_o it_o but_o for_o their_o confirmation_n who_o he_o send_v and_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o many_o other_o from_o that_o answer_n which_o our_o saviour_n shall_v give_v this_o doubtless_o be_v the_o holy_a and_o wise_a purpose_n of_o john_n in_o this_o practice_n of_o he_o and_o he_o take_v a_o very_a fit_a occasion_n give_v he_o unto_o it_o by_o that_o report_n which_o his_o disciple_n bring_v unto_o he_o of_o the_o great_a work_n which_o our_o saviour_n wrought_v and_o beside_o what_o more_o excellent_a way_n may_v he_o have_v take_v be_v shut_v up_o himself_o then_o to_o direct_v his_o disciple_n to_o use_v their_o liberty_n in_o make_v resort_n to_o he_o by_o who_o only_o all_o true_a liberty_n redemption_n and_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v find_v and_o who_o alone_o be_v able_a to_o put_v they_o out_o of_o all_o doubt_n and_o to_o establish_v they_o in_o the_o true_a faith_n thus_o therefore_o ●he_v holy_a devise_n of_o john_n in_o send_v his_o disciple_n to_o our_o saviour_n be_v not_o of_o doubtfulness_n in_o himself_o but_o to_o deliver_v they_o from_o their_o doubt_n in_o which_o respect_n it_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v mark_v of_o we_o how_o our_o saviour_n do_v most_o excellent_o fit_v his_o answer_n and_o how_o god_n also_o by_o his_o divine_a providence_n so_o dispose_v that_o at_o the_o very_a time_n when_o johns_n disciple_n come_v to_o our_o saviour_n they_o find_v he_o work_v many_o and_o great_a miracle_n luke_n 4.7.21_o then_o the_o which_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o available_a to_o persuade_v they_o of_o that_o truth_n whereof_o they_o be_v in_o doubt_n according_a to_o that_o which_o we_o read_v john_n 10.41.42_o many_o resort_v to_o our_o saviour_n and_o say_v john_n do_v no_o miracle_n but_o all_o thing_n that_o john_n speak_v of_o this_o man_n be_v true_a and_o many_o believe_v in_o he_o there_o and_o thus_o we_o have_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n collect_v &_o gather_v together_o the_o manifold_a testimony_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n tend_v all_o to_o the_o manifestation_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o entrance_n into_o his_o public_a estate_n and_o condition_n of_o life_n the_o fruit_n also_o whereof_o be_v mention_v even_o now_o in_o that_o they_o acknowledge_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a which_o john_n speak_v of_o our_o saviour_n they_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o be_v no_o doubt_n thereby_o induce_v so_o to_o do_v as_o be_v many_o thousand_o more_o from_o this_o whole_a discourse_n concern_v john_n the_o baptist_n and_o his_o ministry_n we_o may_v just_o conclude_v now_o as_o be_v affirm_v at_o the_o first_o as_o well_o from_o the_o prophecy_n which_o go_v before_o of_o he_o as_o by_o the_o history_n show_v the_o accomplishment_n thereof_o that_o he_o be_v in_o special_a manner_n ordain_v and_o prepare_v sanctify_a furnish_v and_o authorise_v by_o god_n himself_o to_o be_v a_o most_o notable_a &_o honourable_a instrument_n of_o he_o to_o this_o excellent_a end_n and_o purpose_n that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o special_a witness_n of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o true_a messiah_n our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n into_o the_o world_n according_a to_o that_o which_o we_o read_v in_o the_o evangelist_n john_n ch_n 1._o verse_n 6_o 7_o 8._o who_o write_v thus_o of_o he_o there_o be_v a_o man_n say_v he_o send_v from_o god_n who_o name_n be_v john_n the_o same_o come_v for_o a_o witness_n to_o bear_v witness_n of_o the_o light_n that_o be_v of_o christ_n that_o all_o man_n through_o he_o may_v believe_v he_o be_v not_o that_o light_n but_o he_o be_v send_v to_o bear_v witness_n of_o the_o light_n so_o that_o now_o there_o remain_v nothing_o to_o be_v say_v further_o of_o john_n in_o this_o our_o exercise_n but_o that_o he_o who_o be_v so_o famous_a and_o faithful_a a_o witness_n to_o and_o of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o his_o life_n time_n be_v honour_v of_o god_n with_o the_o crown_n of_o martyrdom_n by_o his_o death_n in_o that_o he_o die_v a_o most_o constant_a &_o holy_a witness_n both_o of_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o law_n in_o that_o special_a reproof_n of_o herod_n for_o the_o which_o he_o be_v put_v to_o death_n and_o also_o of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n in_o christ_n to_o who_o he_o send_v his_o disciple_n as_o unto_o the_o only_a true_a messiah_n and_o saviour_n not_o long_o before_o the_o same_o his_o death_n read_v matth._n 11.2_o etc._n etc._n and_o somewhat_o more_o full_o mark_n 6.14_o etc._n etc._n but_o touch_v ourselves_o and_o all_o other_o this_o addition_n we_o may_v make_v and_o true_o affirm_v that_o in_o so_o much_o as_o god_n have_v send_v so_o singular_a a_o witness_n to_o the_o appearance_n of_o his_o son_n whosoever_o do_v not_o believe_v in_o that_o christ_n to_o who_o john_n the_o baptist_n give_v testimony_n can_v possible_o believe_v in_o the_o true_a christ_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o this_o also_o may_v we_o true_o affirm_v that_o whosoever_o will_v not_o be_v careful_a more_o and_o more_o to_o confirm_v and_o strengthen_v their_o faith_n in_o the_o true_a christ_n from_o the_o same_o testimony_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n they_o do_v neglect_v a_o fundamental_a prop_n and_o stay_v thereof_o as_o may_v be_v evident_a both_o by_o the_o diligent_a record_n of_o it_o by_o every_o one_o of_o the_o evangelist_n as_o we_o have_v see_v and_o also_o by_o the_o often_o repetition_n thereof_o in_o the_o sermon_n and_o speech_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o we_o may_v read_v act._n 10.37_o and_z ch_z 11.16_o and_z ch_z 13.24.25_o and_z ch_z 19.4_o yea_o so_o that_z ch_z 1._o verse_n 21.22_o when_o a_o apostle_n be_v to_o be_v choose_v in_o the_o room_n of_o judas_n such_o a_o one_o only_o be_v prescribe_v to_o be_v eligible_a and_o as_o we_o may_v say_v capable_a of_o the_o holy_a office_n of_o apostleship_n as_o have_v be_v acquaint_v with_o johns_n ministry_n to_o god_n therefore_o be_v all_o singular_a praise_n and_o honour_n and_o glory_n from_o we_o and_o his_o whole_a church_n for_o this_o so_o excellent_a a_o witness_n and_o martyr_n of_o he_o and_o of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o he_o vouchsafe_v also_o to_o give_v we_o the_o right_a use_n of_o this_o so_o worthy_a a_o testimony_n among_o other_o of_o his_o holy_a prophet_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n that_o our_o weak_a and_o doubtful_a heart_n may_v be_v more_o and_o more_o establish_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o same_o our_o only_a true_a and_o alone_a saviour_n to_o who_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v all_o honour_n and_o glory_n now_o and_o for_o ever_o amen_n and_o thus_o from_o the_o discovery_n and_o manifestation_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o enter_v upon_o his_o public_a estate_n and_o condition_n of_o life_n we_o come_v to_o inquire_v of_o this_o most_o excellent_a part_n and_o remainder_n of_o the_o same_o his_o life_n as_o of_o that_o whereunto_o all_o the_o former_a discourse_n and_o preparatorie_n ministry_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n tend_v for_o albeit_o every_o part_n of_o the_o life_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o have_v be_v already_o declare_v be_v reverendly_a and_o religious_o to_o be_v regard_v of_o we_o even_o from_o the_o time_n that_o he_o be_v first_o put_v into_o swaddle_a clothes_n yet_o most_o of_o all_o be_v the_o latter_a part_n to_o be_v chief_o ponder_v and_o weigh_v as_o that_o wherein_o he_o execute_v and_o perform_v in_o special_a manner_n all_o the_o part_n of_o his_o most_o holy_a office_n of_o his_o kingdom_n prophetship_n and_o
priesthood_n according_a to_o that_o which_o our_o saviour_n near_o the_o time_n of_o his_o death_n say_v to_o pilate_n john_n 18.37_o for_o this_o cause_n be_o i_o bear_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n come_v i_o into_o the_o world_n that_o i_o shall_v bear_v witness_n unto_o the_o truth_n now_o in_o this_o part_n of_o our_o inquitie_n contain_v many_o thing_n we_o must_v proceed_v as_o it_o be_v by_o certain_a degree_n or_o step_n in_o as_o plain_a a_o order_n as_o god_n shall_v give_v we_o grace_n to_o attain_v unto_o and_o that_o also_o to_o the_o further_o establish_v of_o our_o faith_n while_o we_o do_v thorough_o behold_v that_o faithful_a record_n which_o be_v set_v before_o we_o concern_v his_o own_o most_o gracious_a manifest_v of_o himself_o by_o his_o own_o preach_n and_o work_v of_o miraculous_a work_n and_o by_o his_o familiar_a and_o daily_a conversation_n among_o his_o people_n from_o passove_a to_o passove_a and_o through_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o the_o year_n one_o after_o another_o even_o from_o his_o baptism_n to_o the_o time_n of_o his_o chief_a passion_n and_o death_n a_o few_o day_n only_o except_v by_o reason_n of_o his_o special_a tentation_n in_o the_o wilderness_n immediate_o after_o his_o baptism_n this_o baptism_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o those_o day_n of_o his_o tentation_n do_v minister_n un●o_v we_o two_o thing_n necessary_o to_o be_v consider_v before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o preach_n of_o ou●_n saviour_n question_n etc._n etc._n what_o may_v these_o two_o thing_n be_v answer_n the_o first_o be_v the_o most_o high_a and_o honourable_a external_a call_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o most_o high_a and_o excellent_a office_n the_o second_o thing_n be_v his_o most_o difficult_a and_o hard_a entrance_n thereunto_o question_n it_o be_v true_a that_o you_o say_v but_o where_o be_v these_o thing_n testify_v and_o record_v unto_o we_o answer_n the_o first_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 3._o ch_n of_o the_o evangelist_n matthew_n verses_z 16_o 17._o the_o second_o be_v write_v in_o the_o 4._o ch_z of_o the_o same_o evangelist_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o chapter_n to_o the_o 12._o verse_n of_o the_o same_o proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n the_o same_o thing_n be_v likewise_o record_v by_o the_o evangelist_n luke_n the_o first_o in_o the_o 3._o ch_n verse_n 21_o 22._o and_o the_o 2._o in_o the_o 4._o ch_n from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o 14._o verse_n and_o more_o brief_o by_o the_o evangelist_n mark_v chapter_n 1_o verses_z 9_o 10_o 11_o 12_o 13._o rehearse_v now_o the_o word_n of_o the_o evangelist_n matthew_n concern_v the_o first_o thing_n to_o wit_n the_o honourable_a external_a call_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o most_o holy_a &_o high_a office_n question_n what_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o evangelist_n answer_n 10_o jesus_n say_v he_o when_o he_o be_v baptize_v come_v straight_o out_o of_o the_o water_n and_o lo_o the_o heaven_n be_v open_v unto_o he_o and_o he_o that_o be_v john_n see_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n descend_v like_o a_o dove_n and_o light_v upon_o he_o 17_o and_o lo_n a_o voice_n come_v from_o heaven_n say_v this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n the_o evangelist_n luke_n as_o be_v allege_v before_o ch_n 3.21_o express_v further_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n after_o he_o be_v baptize_v do_v pray_v and_o that_o then_o the_o heaven_n be_v open_v the_o lord_n thereby_o give_v plain_o to_o understand_v that_o his_o prayer_n be_v effectual_a with_o he_o even_o to_o the_o open_n of_o heaven_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o sinful_a man_n and_o the_o evangelist_n john_n for_o a_o further_a interpretation_n of_o the_o word_n of_o saint_n matthew_n witness_v express_o that_o john_n the_o baptist_n see_v the_o spirit_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n which_o the_o prayer_n of_o our_o saviour_n have_v open_v thus_o then_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v appoint_v a_o most_o high_a office_n above_o all_o that_o may_v agree_v to_o any_o creature_n whether_o man_n or_o angel_n answerable_a to_o the_o most_o high_a excellency_n of_o his_o person_n he_o have_v likewise_o a_o most_o honourable_a and_o high_a call_n by_o a_o most_o high_a and_o heavenly_a testimony_n give_v of_o he_o for_o to_o who_o or_o of_o who_o do_v god_n ever_o speak_v thus_o from_o heaven_n this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n etc._n etc._n neither_o can_v these_o word_n possible_o agree_v to_o any_o creature_n but_o only_o to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o such_o sense_n as_o god_n speak_v they_o of_o he_o as_o be_v his_o only_o beget_v and_o natural_a son_n and_o as_o one_o in_o who_o he_o be_v well_o please_v not_o by_o grace_n and_o favour_n only_o but_o even_o for_o perfect_a worthiness_n ye●_n so_o please_v as_o for_o his_o sake_n he_o be_v willing_a to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o most_o unworthy_a sinner_n the_o l_o ke_n may_v be_v say_v concern_v the_o descend_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o a_o bodily_a shape_n visible_o upon_o he_o for_o never_o do_v he_o nor_o never_o will_v he_o descend_v so_o upon_o any_o neither_o ever_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v any_o so_o replete_a with_o all_o grace_n without_o measure_n as_o our_o saviour_n be_v whereof_o this_o descension_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o visible_a and_o public_a testimony_n and_o confirmation_n according_a to_o that_o of_o john_n baptist_n in_o the_o gospel_n of_o john_n the_o evangelist_n ch_n 3.34_o god_n give_v he_o not_o the_o spirit_n by_o mea●ure_n now_o the_o end_n why_o our_o saviour_n be_v thus_o proclaim_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o declare_v to_o be_v thus_o replenish_v with_o all_o heavenly_a grace_n be_v for_o that_o all_o may_v know_v that_o they_o stand_v bind_v to_o hear_v he_o as_o it_o be_v say_v likewise_o from_o heaven_n at_o his_o transfiguration_n matth._n 17.5_o though_o not_o so_o public_o as_o it_o be_v at_o his_o baptism_n but_o this_o hear_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v not_o only_o to_o yield_v he_o audience_n while_o he_o speak_v but_o also_o with_o attention_n of_o the_o care_n to_o yield_v all_o obedience_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o life_n to_o his_o most_o holy_a and_o heavenly_a doctrine_n thus_o much_o therefore_o concern_v his_o external_a call_n it_o follow_v next_o that_o you_o do_v likewise_o rehearse_v that_o which_o be_v record_v concern_v that_o most_o difficult_a and_o hard_a entrance_n which_o as_o be_v say_v in_o the_o second_o place_n our_o saviour_n have_v unto_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o office_n and_o duty_n of_o his_o call_n question_n where_o find_v you_o any_o record_n of_o this_o answer_n this_o as_o be_v allege_v be_v that_o which_o be_v write_v by_o the_o evangelist_n matthew_n in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o his_o four_o chapter_n from_o the_o first_o verse_n to_o the_o 12._o concern_v the_o lead_n of_o our_o saviour_n aside_o into_o the_o wilderness_n yea_o concern_v and_o drive_v thither_o as_o the_o evangelist_n mark_n write_v to_o wit_n by_o the_o mighty_a motion_n and_o earnest_a instigation_n of_o that_o spirit_n which_o be_v immediate_o descend_v upon_o he_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v in_o that_o solitary_a and_o most_o uncomfortable_a place_n among_o the_o wild_a beast_n encounter_n with_o the_o tentation_n of_o the_o devil_n who_o have_v full_a leave_n and_o liberty_n permit_v unto_o he_o so_o to_o do_v proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n so_o indeed_o do_v the_o evangelist_n mark_v in_o these_o point_n make_v the_o matter_n more_o plain_a than_o the_o other_o evangelist_n do_v ch_n 1._o verse_n 12.13_o and_o this_o very_o be_v a_o very_a hard_a and_o uncomfortable_a entrance_n if_o any_o thing_n may_v be_v hard_a and_o uncomfortable_a at_o the_o first_o onset_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v drive_v from_o all_o society_n of_o man_n to_o be_v without_o all_o food_n and_o without_o commodious_a lodging_n and_o that_o among_o wild_a savage_a beast_n and_o most_o of_o all_o that_o the_o most_o unwelcome_a devil_n shall_v have_v free_a access_n to_o molest_v his_o holy_a mind_n with_o wicked_a suggestion_n and_o tentation_n and_o to_o have_v power_n over_o his_o body_n to_o carry_v it_o f●●m_a place_n to_o place_n to_o the_o trouble_v of_o his_o sense_n and_o pervert_v of_o his_o mind_n if_o by_o any_o mean_n he_o may_v possible_o have_v prevail_v against_o he_o we_o will_v have_v think_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v so_o solemn_o proclaim_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o great_a prophet_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v forthwith_o have_v go_v forth_o to_o declare_v his_o mighty_a grace_n and_o power_n both_o in_o word_n and_o deed_n above_o moses_n and_o all_o that_o ever_o be_v but_o behold_v the_o matter_n be_v
how_o singular_o well_o please_v it_o be_v unto_o god_n that_o sinner_n shall_v repent_v and_o how_o ready_a he_o be_v to_o accept_v of_o such_o as_o do_v so_o luke_n chap_v 15._o from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o same_o yet_o with_o this_o condition_n that_o it_o be_v in_o truth_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o general_a relapse_n and_o fall_v away_o to_o sin_n again_o because_o then_o all_o be_v lose_v yea_o a_o more_o wo●full_a estate_n attend_v all_o such_o as_o our_o saviour_n admonish_v and_o warn_v we_o matth_n 12.41.42.43.44_o 45._o thus_o far_o concern_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n more_o general_o and_o also_o concern_v repentance_n arise_v from_o and_o with_o the_o same_o as_o our_o saviour_n teach_v it_o we_o come_v to_o his_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o several_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n or_o belief_n and_o first_o concern_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n he_o teach_v plain_o that_o there_o be_v one_o only_a god_n as_o we_o read_v mark_v chap_v 12.29_o whereupon_o as_o it_o follow_v verse_n 32._o well_o master_n say_v the_o scribe_n thou_o have_v say_v the_o truth_n that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n and_o that_o there_o be_v none_o but_o he_o our_o saviour_n christ_n teach_v also_o this_o one_o only_a god_n be_v all_o only_a goodness_n so_o that_o none_o be_v good_a but_o he_o as_o touch_v both_o the_o original_n and_o also_o the_o perfection_n of_o goodness_n matth_n chap_v 19.17_o and_o luke_n 18._o verse_n 19_o he_o teach_v also_o that_o this_o one_o only_a true_a god_n be_v of_o a_o spiritual_a nature_n infinite_a invisible_a and_o incomprehensible_a and_o that_o therefore_o he_o require_v that_o such_o as_o worship_v he_o shall_v perform_v it_o in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n john_n ch_z 4._o verse_n 24_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n etc._n etc._n let_v this_o suffice_v for_o a_o taste_n of_o the_o most_o excellent_a doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n concern_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n let_v we_o proceed_v to_o his_o doctrine_n touch_v the_o dictinction_n of_o person_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o first_o that_o our_o saviour_n distinguish_v the_o person_n in_o the_o deity_n or_o godhead_n it_o be_v evident_a in_o that_o he_o say_v that_o he_o come_v from_o the_o father_n john_n 6.29_o and_o chap_n 10.36_o and_o likewise_o in_o that_o he_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v and_o be_v send_v both_o from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n john_n chap_n 1●_n 26_o and_o chap_n 15.26_o and_o chap_n 16.7_o but_o most_o plain_o in_o the_o form_n of_o baptise_v into_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o also_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n institute_v by_o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o our_o saviour_n himselve_n mat_n ●8_o ●9_n now_o let_v we_o brief_o observe_v his_o doctrine_n concern_v every_o person_n distinct_o and_o first_o concern_v the_o father_n he_o teach_v that_o he_o be_v the_o almighty_a god_n john_n 10.29_o my_o father_n be_v great_a than_o all_o etc._n etc._n that_o he_o be_v a_o father_n most_o proper_o in_o respect_n of_o our_o saviour_n himself_o he_o teach_v plain_o john_n 5.28_o for_o he_o say_v that_o god_n be_v his_o own_o father_n yea_o and_o that_o also_o with_o a_o equality_n of_o person_n a●_n the_o jew_n do_v true_o though_o not_o obedient_o understand_v he_o as_o it_o be_v evident_a in_o that_o place_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o teach_v that_o god_n be_v so_o his_o natural_a father_n only_o but_o that_o he_o be_v a_o father_n to_o all_o the_o elect_a through_o he_o by_o adoption_n and_o grace_n according_a to_o that_o i●hn_n chap_n 20.17_o i_o ascend_v to_o my_o father_n and_o to_o your_o father_n and_o to_o my_o god_n and_o your_o god_n and_o as_o he_o do_v likewise_o call_v he_o our_o father_n in_o many_o other_o place_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o namely_o where_o he_o teach_v h_o we_o and_o all_o christian_n together_o with_o these_o which_o be_v his_o choice_n disciple_n at_o that_o time_n to_o pray_v to_o god_n as_o to_o our_o heavenly_a father_n mat_n 5_o 45.4●_n a●d_fw-mi ch_n 6._o verse_n 9.14_o 15._o our_o saviour_n teach_v we_o also_o that_o god_n the_o father_n be_v the_o maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n mat_n 19_o 4._o for_o in_o that_o he_o allege_v moses_n as_o a_o true_a and_o faithful_a historiographer_n in_o one_o point_n of_o the_o creation_n he_o confirm_v the_o whole_a history_n thereof_o as_o it_o be_v record_v by_o the_o same_o prophet_n he_o teach_v also_o that_o god_n the_o father_n be_v the_o most_o wise_a and_o provident_a ruler_n and_o gove_n nour_n over_o all_o yea_o so_o that_o a_o sparrowe_n fall_v not_o to_o the_o ground_n nor_o one_o hair_n from_o the_o head_n of_o god_n child_n without_o his_o fatherly_a providence_n mat_n 10.29.30_o the_o which_o most_o holy_a and_o comfortable_a doctrine_n he_o do_v most_o earnest_o teach_v and_o affirm_v in_o the_o 6._o chap_n of_o the_o same_o gospel_n read_v also_o chap_n 7._o verse_n 11._o and_o chap_n 26_o 53._o the_o angel_n be_v under_o his_o father_n government_n yea_o the_o call_n and_o salvation_n and_o whole_a government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v in_o his_o father_n hand_n mat_n chap_n 11_o 2●.26_n the_o same_o be_v likewise_o evident_a from_o his_o most_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a prayer_n john_n chap_n 17._o thus_o much_o for_o a_o hand●●ll_n of_o ●he_n doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n concern_v the_o first_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n god_n the_o father_n second_o touch_v himself_o the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n he_o teach_v first_o concern_v his_o person_n that_o he_o who_o be_v from_o all_o eternity_n very_a god_n and_o in_o it_o at_o respect_n equal_a with_o the_o father_n as_o we_o see_v even_o now_o be_v also_o ever_o sin●e_v his_o incarnation_n very_a man_n and_o so_o in_o one_o person_n both_o god_n and_o man_n yea_o our_o saviour_n teach_v this_o so_o plain_o that_o as_o true_a believer_n be_v confirm_v by_o it_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o according_o john_n chapter_n 16_o 29_o 30._o so_o the_o unbelieved_a and_o contradict_v jew_n stumble_v at_o it_o more_o and_o more_o john_n 5.28_o as_o be_v also_o allege_v a_o little_a before_o as_o we_o may_v read_v further_o chap_n 10.33_o but_o for_o the_o further_a confirmation_n that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v teach_v by_o our_o saviour_n read_v ch_n 14.7_o etc._n etc._n in_o the_o same_o evangelist_n and_o chap_n 10.30_o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o moreover_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o his_o divine_a providence_n and_o government_n together_o with_o his_o father_n over_o all_o thing_n both_o natural_a in_o the_o world_n and_o namely_o touch_v the_o body_n of_o man_n and_o also_o over_o all_o spiritual_a thing_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o special_o concern_v man_n soul_n we_o read_v his_o plain_a doctrine_n general_o affirm_v john_n 5_o 17_o my_o father_n work_v hitherto_o and_o i_o work_v and_o verse_n 19_o 20_o &c_n &c_n then_o answer_v jesus_n and_o say_v unto_o they_o very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o the_o son_n can_v do_v nothing_o of_o himself_o save_o that_o which_o he_o see_v the_o father_n do_v for_o whatsoever_o thing_n he_o do_v the_o same_o do_v the_o son_n also_o for_o the_o father_n love_v the_o son_n and_o show_v he_o all_o thing_n etc._n etc._n and_o now_o touch_v his_o office_n he_o teach_v with_o like_a plainness_n while_o he_o be_v here_o on_o earth_n that_o he_o be_v the_o messiah_n and_o anoint_v of_o god_n luke_n 4.17_o etc._n etc._n 21._o and_o john_n 4_o 25.26_o he_o say_v to_o the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n i_o who_o speak_v unto_o thou_o be_o he_o and_o chap_n 6.27_o he_o affirm_v to_o the_o same_o end_n that_o god_n the_o father_n have_v seal_v he_o and_o ch_z 8.12_o and_z ch_z 12.35.36_o and_o again_o verse_n 46._o i_o be_o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n concern_v his_o priesthood_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n thereof_o in_o that_o he_o be_v to_o offer_v up_o himself_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n our_o saviour_n foretell_v it_o that_o it_o shall_v so_o come_v to_o pass_v and_o also_o what_o shall_v be_v the_o mighty_a and_o wonderful_a effect_n of_o it_o in_o that_o by_o the_o virtue_n thereof_o he_o will_v draw_v all_o man_n to_o himself_o that_o be_v so_o many_o as_o be_v give_v he_o of_o god_n for_o who_o he_o die_v etc._n etc._n john_n 12.23.24_o and_o verse_n 32.33_o but_o of_o this_o more_o when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o his_o death_n now_o concern_v his_o kingdom_n he_o profess_v plain_o that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n that_o be_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o earthly_a and_o transitory_a kingdom_n thereof_o john_n 18._o ●6_n and_o
therefore_o it_o be_v that_o he_o frustrate_v the_o vain_a attempt_n of_o the_o people_n at_o such_o time_n as_o they_o will_v have_v make_v he_o their_o king_n chap_n 6_o 1●_n and_o therefore_o also_o even_o then_o when_o it_o please_v he_o to_o make_v some_o declaration_n of_o his_o kingly_a authority_n concern_v his_o spiritual_a sovereignty_n over_o his_o church_n to_o wit_n when_o as_o he_o ride_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o reform_v the_o abuse_n of_o his_o temple_n the_o second_o t●me_n he_o do_v it_o in_o a_o manner_n altogether_o unlike_a to_o the_o stateliness_n and_o pomp_n of_o ●ivill_a king_n and_o prince_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o do_v as_o much_o come_v short_a of_o their_o pomp_n in_o worldly_a show_n as_o he_o exceed_v they_o in_o spiritual_a majesty_n and_o power_n a●_n t●e_v most_o strange_a effect_n thereof_o declare_v mat_n 21._o verse_n 1.2.3_o etc._n etc._n 17._o and_o luke_n cha●_n 19_o verse_n 27_o etc._n etc._n and_o answerable_a to_o this_o profession_n and_o practice_v of_o our_o saviour_n concern_v his_o kingdom_n be_v his_o usual_a description_n of_o it_o the_o which_o we_o will_v now_o henceforth_o brief_o touch_v to_o this_o purpose_n he_o use_v many_o very_a notable_a parable_n and_o similitude_n the_o which_o sort_n of_o parable_n the_o evangelist_n matthew_n do_v most_o full_o record_v unto_o us._n and_o therefore_o we_o will_v take_v they_o from_o his_o hand_n especial_o as_o we_o do_v another_o sort_n of_o they_o before_o concern_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n from_o the_o report_n of_o the_o euange_fw-mi ist_fw-mi luke_n who_o be_v most_o plentiful_a in_o that_o respect_n first_o therefore_o to_o begin_v will_z h_z all_z we_o have_v even_o in_o one_o chapter_n to_o wit_n the_o 13._o of_o saint_n matthew_n the_o record_n of_o seven_o diverse_a parable_n use_v by_o our_o saviour_n to_o lay_v forth_o the_o nature_n or_o estate_n of_o his_o kingdom_n thereby_o and_o to_o show_v what_o manner_n of_o one_o it_o be_v to_o be_v here_o upon_o the_o earth_n among_o all_o which_o the_o first_o be_v of_o seed_n sow_v in_o four_o sort_n of_o ground_n of_o the_o which_o one_o sort_n only_o bring_v forth_o increase_v wherein_o our_o saviour_n admonish_v his_o disciple_n and_o in_o they_o all_o other_o that_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o any_o to_o hear_v the_o word_n preach_v which_o be_v the_o sceptre_n of_o his_o kingdom_n unless_o we_o do_v hear_v it_o with_o honest_a and_o dutiful_a heart_n and_o with_o care_n and_o conscience_n to_o practice_v and_o obey_v it_o according_a to_o that_o use_n which_o saint_n luke_n note_v from_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n himself_o chap_n 8_o 18._o and_o by_o this_o parable_n also_o our_o saviour_n prevent_v that_o offence_n which_o may_v otherwise_o have_v arisen_a when_o the_o unprofitab●●●e●_n of_o many_o hearer_n of_o his_o word_n shall_v be_v observe_v as_o though_o he_o shall_v 〈◊〉_d s●id_v do_v not_o look_v that_o all_o will_v submit_v themselves_o to_o my_o word_n and_o doctrine_n the_o state_n of_o my_o kingdom_n here_o in_o this_o world_n shall_v be_v such_o as_o i_o have_v descr●●e●_n u●to_o you_o in_o this_o parable_n mat_n chap_n 13._o verse_n 3._o and_o so_o forth_o to_o the_o 23._o vers●●_n the_o same_o an●_n second_o he_o say_v to_o the_o same_o end_n and_o therewithal_o to_o stir_v up_o all_o who_o he_o call_v the_o child_n of_o the_o kingdom_n to_o watchfulness_n that_o his_o kingdom_n be_v like_a to_o a_o man_n which_o sow_v good_a seed_n in_o his_o field_n but_o while_o man_n sleep_v there_o come_v his_o enemy_n and_o sow_v tear_n among_o the_o wheat_n etc._n etc._n mat_n 13_o 24_o etc._n etc._n 31._o whereby_o our_o saviour_n give_v plain_o to_o understand_v as_o he_o himself_o afterward_o interprete_v as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n verse_n 36_o 37_o etc._n etc._n to_o 44._o that_o th●_n devil_n will_v use_v his_o instrument_n even_o man_n of_o perverse_a mind_n such_o as_o be_v heretic_n and_o other_o to_o sow_v false_a and_o erroneous_a doctrine_n and_o according_o that_o he_o himself_o will_v do_v what_o he_o can_v by_o his_o wicked_a suggestion_n to_o pervert_v the_o life_n of_o many_o professor_n and_o by_o all_o mean_n to_o hinder_v the_o good_a success_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o the_o bless_a kingdom_n of_o our_o saviour_n here_o in_o this_o world_n where_o the_o devil_n also_o have_v his_o kingdom_n we_o must_v not_o therefore_o look_v for_o a_o perfect_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n here_o that_o be_v reserve_v till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n when_o our_o saviour_n shall_v come_v again_o to_o judge_v the_o same_o nevertheless_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o all_o that_o shall_v submit_v themselves_o to_o our_o saviour_n as_o dutiful_a and_o obedient_a subject_n in_o his_o kingdom_n he_o show_v by_o a_o three_o parable_n of_o the_o grain_n of_o mustard_n seed_n that_o howsoever_o the_o spiritual_a grace_n and_o gift_n of_o the_o kingdom_n may_v seem_v every_o small_a and_o weak_a in_o the_o beginning_n yet_o they_o shall_v grow_v and_o prosper_v with_o mighty_a increase_v through_o his_o divine_a and_o secret_a blessing_n as_o it_o follow_v verse_n 31.32_o to_o the_o same_o end_n tend_v the_o four_o parable_n of_o the_o leaven_n verse_n 33._o unless_o we_o may_v extend_v the_o meaning_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o they_o both_o to_o express_v not_o only_o the_o mighty_a and_o secret_a work_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o every_o member_n or_o true_a subject_n of_o his_o kingdom_n for_o the_o present_a but_o also_o the_o spread_a of_o his_o gospel_n far_o and_o near_o from_o time_n to_o time_n notwithstanding_o all_o resistance_n whatsoever_o the_o five_o parable_n be_v of_o the_o treasure_n hide_v in_o the_o field_n verse_n 44._o and_o the_o sixth_o be_v of_o the_o precious_a pierce_v verse_n 45_o 46._o both_o of_o they_o tend_v to_o set_v forth_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o saviour_n above_o all_o worldly_a riches_n whatsoever_o whether_o we_o respect_v the_o glory_n of_o it_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v or_o the_o present_a grace_n thereof_o while_o we_o live_v here_o and_o herewithal_o our_o saviour_n admonish_v that_o his_o kingdom_n be_v diligent_o to_o be_v seek_v after_o of_o all_o those_o that_o will_v find_v it_o indeed_o see_v it_o be_v a_o thing_n hide_v yea_o that_o no_o cost_n of_o diligence_n and_o labour_n nor_o of_o good_n or_o life_n be_v spare_v to_o the_o obtain_n of_o it_o see_v it_o be_v most_o precious_a above_o all_o thing_n in_o this_o transitory_a and_o base_a world_n in_o the_o seven_o parable_n our_o saviour_n compare_v his_o kingdom_n to_o a_o drawenet_n which_o catch_v both_o good_a and_o bad_a fish_n verse_n 47.48.49.50_o the_o end_n and_o use_v of_o which_o parable_n be_v like_a to_o that_o which_o be_v set_v down_o concern_v the_o tear_n sow_v among_o wheat_n lest_o that_o any_o shall_v be_v offend_v and_o so_o cause_v either_o through_o pride_n or_o of_o unjust_a scruple_n to_o forsake_v the_o outward_a society_n of_o the_o church_n when_o they_o shall_v see_v many_o wicked_a person_n to_o be_v find_v therein_o but_o rather_o to_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o careful_a to_o look_v to_o their_o own_o stand_n and_o to_o yield_v so_o much_o the_o more_o diligence_n every_o one_o in_o his_o place_n wise_o and_o with_o all_o discreet_a patience_n to_o hinder_v the_o overflowing_n of_o iniquity_n these_o be_v the_o seven_o parable_n contain_v in_o one_o chapter_n namely_o in_o the_o 13._o of_o the_o evangelist_n matthew_n all_o of_o they_o express_v as_o be_v say_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o saviour_n here_o in_o this_o world_n far_o otherwise_o then_o we_o of_o ourselves_o will_v have_v conceive_v of_o it_o have_v not_o he_o store_v we_o with_o this_o his_o excellent_a and_o manifold_a instruction_n unto_o these_o seven_o we_o may_v add_v two_o other_o record_v by_o the_o evangelist_n mark_v chap_n 4.21_o etc._n etc._n and_o verse_n 26._o etc._n etc._n the_o one_o of_o a_o candle_n to_o signify_v that_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n shall_v be_v make_v manifest_a and_o therefore_o that_o every_o one_o be_v to_o beware_v of_o hypocrisy_n and_o of_o negligent_a profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o that_o of_o saint_n luke_n chap_n 8.18_o take_v heed_n therefore_o how_o you_o hear_v etc._n etc._n the_o other_o be_v of_o corn_n which_o grow_v in_o the_o field_n above_o that_o the_o owner_n can_v discern_v how_o it_o grow_v at_o every_o instant_n thereof_o to_o signify_v the_o secret_a blessing_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o true_a subject_n thereof_o for_o so_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n say_v our_o saviour_n as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v cast_v seed_n in_o the_o ground_n
and_o shall_v sleep_v and_o rise_v up_o night_n and_o day_n and_o the_o seed_n shall_v spring_v and_o grow_v up_o he_o not_o know_v how_o etc._n etc._n yea_o many_o other_o parable_n do_v our_o saviour_n use_v to_o express_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o same_o his_o kingdom_n here_o in_o every_o other_o respect_n as_o for_o example_n he_o use_v the_o parable_n of_o the_o king_n call_v his_o servant_n to_o a_o account_n to_o declare_v both_o the_o mercy_n and_o justice_n thereof_o matth_n 18.23_o etc._n etc._n the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n say_v our_o saviour_n be_v liken_v to_o a_o certain_a king_n who_o will_v take_v account_n of_o his_o servant_n likewise_o he_o use_v the_o parable_n of_o the_o house_n holder_n hire_v labourer_n into_o his_o vineyard_n matth_n chap_n 20.1.2_o etc._n etc._n to_o give_v to_o understand_v that_o no_o man_n be_v of_o better_a reckon_n with_o god_n for_o their_o long_a continuance_n under_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n special_o if_o they_o presume_v of_o any_o merit_n or_o worthiness_n above_o other_o in_o that_o respect_n but_o rather_o according_a to_o his_o diligence_n &_o faithfulness_n in_o the_o labour_n of_o christianity_n and_o according_a to_o that_o humble_a trust_n which_o he_o have_v in_o the_o free_a grace_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o to_o this_o end_n he_o conclude_v the_o parable_n with_o this_o sentence_n the_o last_o shall_v be_v first_o and_o the_o first_o shall_v be_v last_o for_o many_o be_v call_v but_o few_o choose_v moreover_o by_o another_o parable_n of_o the_o vine-yard_n let_v out_o to_o unfaithful_a husbandman_n our_o saviour_n describe_v the_o rejection_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o their_o treacherous_a st●●-bournes_a and_o cruelty_n against_o h●m_n and_o on_o the_o otherside_n the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n through_o the_o free_a grace_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n mat_n chap_n 21_o verse_n 33_o etc._n etc._n and_o chap_n 22_o 1_o etc._n etc._n he_o do_v to_o the_o same_o end_n use_v another_o parable_n concern_v the_o marriage_n of_o the_o king_n son_n and_o the_o contempt_n thereof_o by_o the_o first_o bid_v guest_n which_o w●re_v the_o jew_n and_o also_o by_o the_o example_n of_o that_o special_a rudes_fw-la by_o tha●_n thrust_v in_o himself_o without_o his_o marriage_n garment_n and_o ch●p_n 25._o verse_n 1._o etc._n etc._n by_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o five_o wise_a and_o five_o foolish_a virgin_n our_o saviour_n do_v likewise_o admonish_v we_o to_o take_v heed_n that_o we_o do_v not_o secure_o rest_v in_o a_o outward_a profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n without_o inward_a truth_n of_o the_o heart_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n abhor_v of_o god_n and_o verse_n 14._o and_o 15._o of_o the_o same_o chapter_n by_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o talente_v which_o a_o certain_a master_n go_v into_o a_o far_a country_n deliver_v to_o his_o servant_n etc._n etc._n our_o saviour_n teach_v plain_o that_o he_o will_v look_v to_o have_v all_o the_o spiritual_a gift_n and_o grace_n of_o his_o kingdom_n to_o be_v industrious_o employ_v in_o every_o man_n calling_n and_o accord_v to_o the_o diverse_a measure_n of_o they_o special_o in_o the_o call_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o all_o those_o profitable_a end_n wherefore_o he_o have_v give_v they_o or_o otherwise_o that_o fearful_a vengeance_n be_v to_o be_v look_v for_o from_o his_o hand_n against_o every_o unprofitable_a servant_n such_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n concern_v his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n here_o on_o earth_n the_o which_o he_o call_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n because_o it_o be_v from_o heaven_n by_o the_o special_a ordinance_n of_o god_n likewise_o because_o the_o government_n of_o it_o be_v most_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a and_o also_o because_o it_o prepare_v and_o fit_v all_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n who_o as_o we_o see_v before_o be_v call_v the_o child_n of_o the_o kingdom_n to_o be_v partaker_n of_o heavenly_a glory_n no●_n let_v we_o proceed_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o article_n of_o our_o belief_n the_o next_o doctrine_n therefore_o of_o our_o saviour_n be_v that_o which_o concern_v his_o own_o conception_n and_o birth_n of_o the_o which_o he_o say_v thus_o before_o pilate_n for_o this_o cause_n be_o i_o bear_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n come_v i_o into_o the_o world_n that_o i_o shall_v bear_v witness_n of_o the_o truth_n next_o to_o the_o birth_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v his_o suffering_n of_o the_o which_o he_o do_v very_o oftentimes_o foretell_v his_o disciple_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v the_o less_o troublesome_a or_o uncomfortable_a to_o they_o when_o they_o shall_v fall_v upon_o he_o as_o luke_n ch_n 9_o 44_o 45_o and_o mat_n 17.12.13_o &_o verse_n 22.23_o and_o mark_n 9.12_o and_o more_o particular_o he_o foretell_v his_o betray_n as_o we_o read_v john_n chap_n 13_o v._o 18._o etc._n etc._n the_o which_o our_o saviour_n do_v as_o he_o say_v in_o the_o same_o place_n to_o the_o establish_n of_o their_o faith_n when_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v of_o his_o crucify_a he_o speak_v likewise_o beforehand_o john_n ch_z 12.32.33_o work_n belief_n in_o god_n the_o son_n who_o wrought_v most_o miraculous_a and_o equine_a work_n of_o his_o burial_n by_o occasion_n of_o that_o costly_a ointment_n which_o mary_n pour_v on_o he_o mat_n 26.12_o john_n 12.7_o of_o his_o continuance_n in_o the_o grave_n answerable_a to_o the_o type_n of_o jonas_n abide_v so_o long_o in_o the_o whale_n belly_n mat_n 12.39.40_o of_o his_o resurrection_n also_o he_o usual_o speak_v add_v the_o prediction_n thereof_o to_o the_o foretell_v of_o his_o suffering_n to_o mitigate_v the_o discomfort_n of_o that_o part_n of_o his_o speech_n as_o john_n 2.19.20.21_o mat._n 16_o 2._o ch_n 17.9_o and_o verse_n 22.23_o and_o ch_z 20.17.18.19_o this_o thing_n as_o the_o evangelist_n mark_n say_v our_o saviour_n speak_v plain_o and_o ch_z 10.32.43.34_o and_o all_o this_o according_a to_o the_o former_a prophecy_n of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n as_o the_o evangelist_n luke_n observe_v and_o that_o also_o in_o a_o merciful_a regard_n of_o his_o disciple_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v over_o whelm_v &_o confound_v with_o excessive_a sorrow_n as_o we_o may_v perceive_v plain_o john_n ch_n 14.1_o etc._n etc._n and_o ch_n 15._o and_o ch_n 16._o and_o by_o his_o most_o sweet_a and_o divine_a prayer_n in_o the_o whole_a 17._o chapter_n our_o saviour_n be_v rise_v again_o as_o he_o have_v often_o say_v that_o he_o will_v he_o than_o foretell_v his_o ascension_n to_o marie_n magdalene_n john_n 20_o 17._o i_o ascend_v to_o my_o father_n etc._n etc._n that_o he_o shall_v sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o come_v again_o to_o judge_v the_o world_n our_o saviour_n bold_o profess_v before_o the_o chief_a priest_n mat_n chap_n 26._o verse_n 64._o hereafter_o say_v our_o saviour_n shall_v you_o see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o power_n god_n and_o come_v in_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n moreover_o touch_v his_o come_n again_o to_o judgement_n he_o have_v speak_v before_o that_o time_n john_n 5.22_o and_o verse_n 27.28.29_o but_o yet_o more_o full_o and_o plain_o mat_n 25.31_o etc._n etc._n the_o precedent_a sign_n of_o which_o time_n of_o his_o come_n our_o saviour_n have_v also_o declare_v matth_n 24._o and_o before_o this_o chap_n 13.39_o etc._n etc._n in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o tare_n and_o again_o verse_n 49_o 50._o in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o drawenet_n we_o be_v come_v now_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o who_o he_o speak_v most_o comfortable_o as_o of_o the_o only_a comforter_n of_o all_o the_o elect_n distinct_a in_o person_n from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o yet_o one_o with_o they_o both_o every_o where_o present_a of_o equal_a power_n and_o dignity_n with_o they_o etc._n etc._n john_n chapter_n 14._o and_o 15._o and_o 16._o which_o also_o our_o saviour_n make_v very_o plain_a in_o that_o form_n of_o baptism_n which_o he_o institute_v after_o his_o resurrection_n mat_n 28.19_o concern_v the_o catholic_a church_n the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v this_o that_o it_o consist_v both_o of_o jew_n and_o gentile_n and_o that_o he_o himself_o be_v the_o only_a universal_a pastor_n and_o shepherd_n thereof_o john_n 10._o verse_n 14_o 16._o read_v also_o luk._n 13.28.29.30_o touch_v the_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o first_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o union_n with_o himself_o and_o so_o by_o he_o among_o their_o own_o self_n our_o saviour_n teach_v it_o plain_o john_n ch_z 15_o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5._o etc._n etc._n and_o ch_n 17.22_o etc._n etc._n what_o his_o doctrine_n be_v touch_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o namely_o that_o there_o be_v mercy_n with_o god_n to_o forgive_v they_o and_o what_o
course_n we_o be_v to_o take_v that_o we_o may_v attain_v to_o the_o comfortable_a assurance_n thereof_o we_o read_v mat_n 6._o v._n 12.14_o and_o chap_n 9.6_o and_o chap_n 18.21.22.27_o and_o luke_n 7.48_o and_o chap_n 15.1.2.3_o etc._n etc._n and_o verse_n 20._o etc._n etc._n concern_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a we_o read_v that_o our_o saviour_n do_v confirm_v it_o john_n 5.28.29_o and_o mat_n chap_n 22._o verse_n 23._o etc._n etc._n where_o he_o confute_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o sadducee_n against_o this_o article_n likewise_o he_o assure_v all_o that_o shall_v believe_v in_o he_o of_o everlasting_a life_n not_o only_o in_o those_o place_n now_o last_v allege_v but_o in_o many_o other_o not_o easy_o to_o be_v number_v and_o thus_o we_o see_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v entire_a and_o perfect_a concern_v all_o the_o article_n and_o ground_n of_o our_o christian_a belief_n as_o for_o prayer_n it_o be_v familiar_o know_v to_o every_o one_o of_o we_o that_o he_o teach_v we_o a_o most_o perfect_a rule_n and_o direction_n of_o it_o as_o we_o find_v it_o record_v matth_n chap_n 6.9_o etc._n etc._n and_o luke_n chapter_n 11.2_o etc._n etc._n and_o again_o matth_n chapter_n 7._o verse_n 7._o doctrine_n belief_n in_o god_n the_o son_n who_o teach_v a_o most_o holy_a and_o perfect_a doctrine_n etc._n etc._n we_o read_v how_o our_o saviour_n incourage_v all_o faithful_a christian_n to_o this_o duty_n as_o to_o a_o special_a fruit_n and_o exercise_n of_o faith_n read_v also_o john_n 14._o verse_n 13_o 14._o and_o chap_n 16_o 26_o 27._o likewise_o luke_n chap_n 11.5_o etc._n etc._n moreover_o ch_n 18.1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7_o 8._o he_o exhort_v to_o constancy_n in_o prayer_n without_o faint_v likewise_o as_o our_o saviour_n be_v the_o ordeiner_n of_o the_o sacrament_n both_o of_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n so_o he_o have_v with_o the_o institution_n of_o they_o plain_o set_v down_o the_o doctrine_n and_o instruction_n concern_v the_o right_a manner_n of_o the_o administration_n and_o also_o the_o end_n and_o use_n whereunto_o he_o have_v appoint_v the_o same_o mat_n chap_n 26._o verse_n 26_o etc._n etc._n and_o chap_n 28.18.19.20_o last_o of_o all_o concern_v the_o external_a government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n such_o as_o he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v in_o perpetual_a use_n for_o the_o well_o order_v thereof_o tha●_n offence_n may_v be_v avoid_v and_o all_o disorder_n rebuke_v and_o censure_v we_o have_v the_o express_a ground_n of_o it_o deliver_v and_o teach_v by_o our_o saviour_n mat_n ch_z 16.19_o and_o ch_z 18._o verse_n 19.16.17.18.19.20_o read_v also_o john_n ch_z 20._o verse_n 22_o 23._o but_o of_o these_o thing_n more_o afterward_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n it_o may_v suffice_v we_o that_o from_o this_o brief_a collection_n and_o survey_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n we_o see_v that_o he_o have_v set_v it_o down_o most_o holy_o and_o perfect_o in_o all_o point_n and_o therefore_o that_o he_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v acknowledge_v and_o believe_v in_o as_o be_v a_o most_o faithful_a prophet_n yea_o great_a than_o any_o prophet_n yea_o even_o as_o in_o the_o author_n of_o all_o holy_a doctrine_n together_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o guide_v we_o in_o the_o perfect_a way_n to_o his_o everlasting_a and_o glorious_a kingdom_n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v the_o only_a entire_a doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n by_o what_o instrument_n soever_o the_o same_o be_v speak_v or_o pen_v for_o they_o both_o speak_v and_o also_o write_v as_o he_o direct_v they_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n but_o in_o this_o our_o present_a discourse_n we_o have_v speak_v only_o of_o that_o his_o doctrine_n which_o he_o utter_v by_o his_o own_o most_o holy_a and_o sacred_a mouth_n while_o he_o abide_v here_o upon_o the_o earth_n question_n now_o therefore_o that_o this_o discourse_n be_v end_v we_o may_v go_v forward_o do_v god_n ever_o make_v any_o promise_n to_o we_o and_o his_o church_n that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n shall_v be_v so_o perfect_a a_o teacher_n unto_o it_o answer_n yea._n for_o in_o this_o respect_n the_o lord_n by_o his_o holy_a prophet_n isaiah_n long_o before_o the_o come_n of_o our_o saviour_n call_v he_o wonderful_a and_o counsellor_n as_o one_o that_o shall_v in_o most_o excellent_a manner_n declare_v the_o high_a counsel_n of_o god_n to_o his_o church_n and_o people_n isaiah_n chap_n 9.6_o he_o declare_v also_o that_o our_o saviour_n shall_v to_o the_o same_o end_n be_v endue_v with_o the_o manifold_a and_o most_o excellent_a gift_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n in_o that_o he_o be_v to_o come_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n chap_n 11_o 2.3.4.5_o likewise_o he_o declare_v further_a that_o he_o shall_v have_v the_o tongue_n of_o the_o learned_a &_o know_v to_o minister_v a_o word_n in_o due_a time_n to_o he_o that_o be_v weary_a chap_n 50.4_o final_o he_o prophesi_v that_o by_o his_o knowledge_n he_o shall_v justify_v many_o ch_z 53.11_o explication_n explication_n these_o prophecy_n utter_v and_o set_v down_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v contain_v evident_a promise_n from_o the_o lord_n for_o as_o our_o saviour_n testify_v all_o thing_n must_v be_v fulfil_v that_o be_v write_v of_o he_o luke_n 22.37_o and_o touch_v the_o special_a manner_n of_o his_o teach_n by_o parable_n as_o we_o have_v observe_v and_o set_v they_o down_o before_o that_o be_v therein_o fulfil_v which_o be_v prophesy_v ps_n 78._o i_o will_v open_v my_o mouth_n in_o parable_n etc._n etc._n according_a to_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o evangelist_n mat_n ch_n 13.34.35_o and_o according_o be_v we_o to_o hearken_v to_o the_o same_o his_o special_a kind_n of_o teach_v with_o special_a reverence_n agreeable_a to_o the_o exhortation_n and_o example_n of_o holy_a psalmist_n ps_n 49.1.2.3_o hear_v this_o all_o you_o people_n etc._n etc._n i_o will_v incline_v my_o ear_n to_o a_o parable_n etc._n etc._n but_o of_o the_o duty_n more_o afterward_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o doctrine_n be_v first_o to_o be_v consider_v question_n what_o be_v that_o answer_n it_o be_v even_o the_o same_o which_o be_v declare_v to_o the_o comfort_n of_o faith_n concern_v the_o spiritual_a anoint_v of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o be_v a_o most_o high_a and_o perfect_a prophet_n unto_o us._n it_o be_v the_o same_o indeed_o that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o be_v a_o very_a great_a and_o singular_a comfort_n duty_n the_o duty_n that_o we_o have_v so_o perfect_a a_o doctrine_n deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o our_o bless_a saviour_n that_o we_o may_v safe_o and_o undoubted_o rest_v in_o it_o as_o in_o the_o very_a truth_n indeed_o yea_o as_o in_o the_o whole_a truth_n of_o god_n which_o it_o behove_v we_o to_o know_v for_o as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o moses_n and_o all_o other_o the_o prophet_n which_o be_v before_o our_o saviour_n point_v on_o still_o to_o look_v towards_o our_o saviour_n then_o to_o come_v so_o our_o saviour_n be_v come_v the_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n point_v we_o back_o to_o he_o and_o to_o that_o doctrine_n which_o he_o preach_v and_o teach_v himself_o and_o which_o he_o command_v they_o as_o they_o acknowledge_v to_o preach_v in_o his_o name_n as_o the_o only_a true_a doctrine_n of_o god_n and_o so_o do_v our_o saviour_n himself_o profess_v say_v john_n 7.16_o my_o doctrine_n be_v not_o i_o to_o wit_n in_o such_o sense_n as_o the_o malignant_a sort_n take_v it_o but_o his_o that_o send_v i_o that_o be_v no_o otherwise_o mine_n but_o as_o it_o be_v his_o also_o and_o then_o it_o follow_v if_o any_o man_n say_v our_o saviour_n will_v do_v his_o will_n he_o shall_v know_v of_o the_o doctrine_n whether_o it_o be_v of_o god_n or_o whether_o i_o speak_v of_o myself_o he_o that_o speak_v of_o himself_o seek_v his_o own_o glory_n but_o he_o that_o seek_v his_o glory_n that_o send_v he_o the_o same_o be_v true_a and_o no_o unrighteousness_n be_v in_o he_o and_o ch_z 8.31.32_o if_o you_o continue_v in_o my_o word_n ma●ke_v that_o he_o call_v it_o his_o own_o word_n speak_v to_o the_o teachable_a &_o believe_a jew_n you_o be_v very_o my_o disciple_n and_o you_o shall_v know_v the_o truth_n &_o the_o truth_n shall_v make_v you_o free_a and_o for_o all_o other_o whosoever_o they_o be_v which_o teach_v not_o this_o doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n they_o be_v false_a prophet_n they_o have_v not_o enter_v in_o by_o the_o door_n but_o they_o have_v climb_v up_o some_o other_o way_n and_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v thieve_v &_o robber_n come_v in_o to_o spoil_v and_o not_o feed_v &_o cherish_v the_o flock_n john_n 10.1_o etc._n etc._n so_o that_o we_o may_v bold_o
history_n of_o it_o to_o the_o hazard_n of_o our_o salvation_n whereunto_o this_o doctrine_n only_o and_o no_o other_o be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a god_n therefore_o of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n even_o for_o our_o saviour_n sake_n give_v we_o grace_v with_o all_o holy_a care_n to_o attend_v unto_o it_o belief_n in_o god_n the_o son_n who_o wrought_v most_o miraculous_a and_o divine_a work_n the_o miraculous_a work_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v next_o to_o be_v consider_v of_o us._n what_o therefore_o be_v we_o to_o believe_v concern_v they_o question_n we_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o miracle_n which_o our_o saviour_n christ_n wrought_v answer_v be_v perfect_a declaration_n and_o confirmation_n that_o he_o both_o be_v and_o be_v for_o ever_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o only_a true_a messiah_n and_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o also_o that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o teach_v be_v and_o so_o be_v still_o and_o shall_v remain_v to_o the_o end_n the_o very_a true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o even_o the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n to_o all_o that_o do_v or_o shall_v hereafter_o true_o believe_v proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n it_o be_v true_a that_o you_o say_v for_o so_o the_o evangelist_n john_n teach_v chap._n 2.11_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o the_o miracle_n of_o our_o saviour_n show_v forth_o his_o glory_n and_o his_o disciple_n as_o the_o evangelist_n say_v believe_v in_o he_o that_o be_v they_o be_v better_o confirm_v in_o their_o faith_n thereby_o this_o glory_n of_o our_o saviour_n thus_o begin_v to_o break_v forth_o by_o the_o beginning_n of_o his_o miracle_n do_v shine_v out_o more_o and_o more_o bright_o in_o the_o proceed_n thereof_o it_o be_v no_o doubt_n part_n of_o that_o glory_n which_o the_o apostle_n see_v according_a to_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o same_o evangelist_n john_n ch_n 1.14_o we_o see_v his_o glory_n etc._n etc._n yea_o our_o saviour_n himself_o teach_v we_o that_o these_o be_v the_o end_n wherefore_o he_o wrought_v his_o great_a work_n as_o the_o same_o evangelist_n witness_v further_a in_o sundry_a place●_n of_o the_o gospel_n write_v by_o he_o as_o chap._n 5.36_o i_o have_v great_a witness_n say_v our_o saviour_n than_o the_o witness_n of_o john_n for_o the_o work_n which_o the_o father_n have_v give_v i_o to_o finish_v even_o the_o same_o work_n which_o i_o do_v bear_v witness_n of_o i_o that_o the_o father_n send_v i_o and_o chap._n 1●_n verse_n 24_o 25_o the_o jew_n say_v the_o evangelist_n come_v round_o about_o our_o saviour_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o how_o long_o do_v thou_o make_v we_o doubt_n if_o thou_o be_v the_o christ_n tell_v u●_n plain_o jesus_n answer_v they_o i_o tell_v you_o and_o you_o believe_v not_o the_o work_n that_o i_o do_v in_o my_o father_n name_n they_o bear_v witness_n of_o i_o and_o therefore_o he_o blame_v they_o the_o rather_o for_o their_o unbelief_n and_o yet_o more_o earnest_o verse_n 37_o 38._o saying_n if_o i_o do_v not_o the_o work_n of_o my_o father_n believe_v i_o not_o yet_o believe_v the_o work_n that_o you_o may_v know_v and_o believe_v that_o the_o father_n be_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o and_o chap._n 11._o verse_n 4._o this_o sickness_n say_v our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o lazarus_n the_o brother_n of_o marie_n and_o martha_n it_o be_v not_o unto_o death_n but_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n may_v be_v glorify_v thereby_o and_o verse_n 41_o 42._o after_o that_o our_o saviour_n have_v make_v his_o prayer_n to_o god_n that_o he_o will_v show_v his_o glory_n in_o raise_v of_o lazarus_n from_o death_n to_o life_n i_o know_v say_v our_o saviour_n to_o god_n his_o father_n that_o thou_o hear_v i_o always_o but_o because_o of_o the_o people_n that_o stand_v by_o i_o say_v it_o that_o they_o may_v believe_v that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o and_o chap._n 14._o verse_n 11._o believe_v i_o say_v our_o saviour_n to_o philippe_n that_o i_o be_o in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n in_o i_o at_o the_o least_o believe_v i_o for_o the_o very_a work_n sake_n read_v also_o chap._n 20._o verse_n 30_o 31._o many_o other_o sign_n do_v jesus_n say_v the_o evangelist_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o disciple_n which_o be_v not_o write_v in_o this_o book_n but_o these_o thing_n be_v write_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o in_o believe_v you_o may_v have_v life_n through_o his_o name_n this_o often_o repetition_n show_v that_o the_o miraculous_a work_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v of_o very_o notable_a and_o necessary_a use_n to_o the_o manifest_v and_o prove_v of_o himself_o to_o be_v the_o christ_n and_o that_o ●is_n doctrine_n be_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o god_n and_o all_o this_o for_o a_o help_n to_o the_o weakness_n of_o his_o people_n now_o as_o these_o be_v the_o end_n which_o our_o saviour_n propound_v to_o himself_o in_o the_o work_n of_o his_o miracle_n so_o through_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n they_o attain_v to_o the_o same_o bless_a end_n and_o effect_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n as_o for_o example_n the_o place_n first_o allege_v chap._n 2._o verse_n 11._o argue_v that_o it_o be_v so_o for_o the_o disciple_n see_v that_o miracle_n be_v say_v to_o believe_v in_o our_o saviour_n and_o chap._n 4._o verse_n 35._o that_o ruler_n who_o son_n our_o saviour_n deliver_v from_o a_o deadly_a fever_n be_v confirm_v thereby_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o yea_o and_o as_o the_o evangelist_n testify_v all_o his_o household_n with_o he_o and_o chap._n 6._o verse_n 14._o they_o which_o have_v see_v the_o miraculous_a feed_n of_o multitude_n of_o people_n with_o so_o few_o loaf_n &_o fish_n say_v this_o be_v of_o a_o truth_n the_o prophet_n that_o shall_v come_v into_o the_o world_n likewise_o chap._n 9_o verse_n 17._o the_o blind_a man_n to_o who_o our_o saviour_n give_v sight_n be_v induce_v by_o the_o miracle_n wrought_v on_o he_o to_o begin_v to_o believe_v in_o our_o saviour_n that_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n and_o verse_n 35_o 36_o 37._o after_o that_o the_o jew_n have_v excommunicate_v he_o for_o this_o his_o profession_n our_o saviour_n the●_n find_v he_o and_o say_v unto_o he_o do_v thou_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o answer_v and_o say_v who_o be_v he_o lord_n that_o i_o may_v believe_v in_o he_o whereupon_o so_o soon_o as_o our_o saviour_n answer_v he_o both_o thou_o have_v see_v he_o and_o he_o it_o be_v that_o talk_v with_o thou_o the_o man_n be_v confirm_v to_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o say_v lord_n i_o believe_v and_o worship_v he_o and_o chap._n 1●_n verse_n 15._o i_o be_v glad_a for_o your_o sake_n say_v our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o the_o death_n of_o lazarus_n that_o i_o be_v not_o there_o that_o you_o may_v believe_v but_o let_v we_o go_v unto_o he_o and_o verse_n 45._o many_o of_o the_o jew_n say_v the_o evangelist_n see_v the_o thing_n which_o jesus_n do_v and_o namely_o this_o that_o he_o have_v raise_v lazarus_n from_o the_o dead_a they_o be_v move_v thereby_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o whereas_o as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o text_n that_o some_o of_o the_o people_n go_v away_o to_o the_o pharisy_n and_o tell_v they_o what_o thing_n jesus_n have_v do_v then_o as_o the_o evangelist_n show_v further_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o the_o pharisy_n gather_v a_o council_n and_o say_v what_o shall_v we_o do_v for_o this_o man_n do_v many_o miracle_n if_o we_o let_v he_o alone_o all_o man_n will_v believe_v in_o he_o etc._n etc._n verse_n 46_o 47_o 48._o and_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n verse_n 10_o 11._o the_o high_a priest_n consult_v that_o they_o may_v put_v lazarus_n to_o death_n also_o because_o that_o for_o his_o sake_n many_o of_o the_o jew_n go_v away_o and_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o verse_n 17.18.19_o the_o people_n that_o be_v with_o he_o do_v bear_v witness_n that_o he_o call_v lazarus_n out_o of_o the_o grave_n and_o raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a therefore_o meet_v he_o the_o people_n also_o because_o they_o hear_v that_o he_o have_v do_v this_o miracle_n whereupon_o as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o evangelist_n the_o pharisy_n say_v among_o themselves_o perceive_v you_o not_o how_o you_o prevail_v nothing_o behold_v the_o world_n go_v after_o he_o yea_o these_o wicked_a adversary_n themselves_o howsoever_o through_o obdurate_a malice_n they_o will_v not_o be_v bring_v to_o believe_v in_o our_o saviour_n yet_o be_v they_o convict_v in_o their_o conscience_n to_o acknowledge_v among_o themselves_o that_o he_o can_v not_o have_v do_v such_o work_n as_o he_o wrought_v unless_o he_o have_v be_v a_o teacher_n send_v of_o god_n
and_o unless_o god_n have_v be_v with_o he_o as_o nicodemus_n a_o fellow_n ruler_n and_o one_o conversant_a among_o they_o do_v before_o this_o time_n bewray_v to_o our_o saviour_n as_o we_o read_v john_n chap._n 3._o verse_n 2._o rabbi_n say_v he_o we_o know_v that_o be_v we_o pharisy_n know_v that_o thou_o be_v a_o teacher_n send_v from_o god_n for_o no_o man_n can_v do_v these_o miracle_n which_o thou_o do_v unless_o god_n be_v with_o he_o read_v also_o act._n 2_o 22._o you_o man_n of_o israel_n hear_v these_o word_n jesus_n of_o nazaret_n a_o man_n approve_v of_o god_n among_o you_o with_o great_a work_n and_o wonder_n and_o sign_n which_o god_n do_v by_o he_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o you_o as_o you_o yourselves_o also_o know_v final_o the_o work_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v so_o wonderful_a that_o as_o the_o evangelist_n luke_n report_v all_o be_v amaze_v at_o the_o mighty_a power_n of_o god_n declare_v by_o they_o chap._n 9.43_o and_o chap._n 7.16_o fear_v say_v he_o come_v on_o all_o people_n and_o they_o glorify_v god_n say_v a_o great_a prophet_n be_v raise_v up_o among_o we_o and_o god_n have_v visit_v his_o people_n they_o the_o ground_n and_o history_n of_o they_o and_o this_o rumour_n as_o he_o report_v further_o go_v forth_o throughout_o all_o judea_n and_o through_o all_o the_o region_n round_o about_o at_o what_o time_n also_o as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n verse_n 18_o 19_o etc._n etc._n the_o answer_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o the_o disciple_n of_o john_n baptist_n show_v plain_o that_o such_o as_o have_v be_v already_o declare_v be_v the_o use_n and_o end_n why_o he_o wrought_v so_o many_o miraculous_a work_n for_o thus_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o go_v your_o way_n and_o show_v to_o john_n what_o you_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v that_o the_o blind_a do_v see_v the_o halt_n do_v go_v the_o leper_n be_v cleanse_v the_o deaf_a here_o the_o dead_a rise_n again_o and_o the_o poor_a receive_v the_o gospel_n and_o bless_v be_v he_o that_o shall_v not_o be_v offend_v in_o i_o as_o if_o our_o saviour_n have_v say_v these_o thing_n be_v sufficient_a confirmation_n that_o i_o be_o the_o true_a messiah_n and_o that_o no_o other_o be_v to_o be_v wait_v for_o as_o john_n well_o know_v and_o have_v already_o most_o faithful_o and_o plentiful_o testify_v unto_o you_o though_o you_o and_o many_o other_o be_v yet_o offend_v in_o i_o and_o have_v not_o receive_v his_o testimony_n read_v also_o matth._n 14.33_o they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o ship_n when_o our_o saviour_n still_v the_o tempestuous_a sea_n worship_v he_o say_v of_o a_o truth_n thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o mark_v 1_o 27._o by_o occasion_n of_o cast_v out_o of_o a_o unclean_a spirit_n out_o of_o a_o man_n of_o capernaum_n the_o people_n be_v amaze_v so_o that_o as_o the_o evangelist_n say_v they_o demand_v one_o of_o another_o say_v what_o thing_n be_v this_o what_o new_a doctrine_n be_v this_o for_o he_o command_v the_o soul_n spirit_n with_o authority_n and_o they_o obey_v he_o thus_o than_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o as_o our_o saviour_n intend_v by_o his_o miraculous_a work_n to_o make_v himself_o know_v to_o be_v the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o true_a prophet_n send_v of_o he_o etc._n etc._n so_o they_o have_v the_o same_o effect_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o many_o of_o those_o among_o who_o he_o wrought_v they_o who_o observe_v his_o divine_a power_n therein_o but_o for_o our_o more_o full_a instruction_n in_o this_o point_n i_o will_v ask_v you_o this_o one_o question_n question_n be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n and_o testimony_n of_o our_o saviour_n of_o sufficient_a credit_n in_o itself_o to_o make_v he_o know_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o true_a messiah_n and_o so_o consequent_o that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o eternal_a life_n be_v it_o not_o i_o say_v of_o itself_o sufficient_a but_o he_o must_v also_o work_v great_a and_o strange_a work_n for_o the_o proof_n thereof_o answer_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n to_o be_v make_v but_o that_o the_o doctrine_n and_o testimony_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v full_o worthy_a and_o aught_o to_o have_v be_v sufficient_a in_o and_o of_o itself_o alone_o to_o these_o end_n nevertheless_o for_o a_o help_n to_o our_o weakness_n and_o for_o the_o more_o clear_a manifestation_n of_o his_o divine_a glory_n as_o be_v say_v it_o please_v he_o of_o his_o special_a goodness_n and_o mercy_n to_o make_v this_o addition_n of_o his_o miraculous_a work_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n so_o it_o be_v indeed_o as_o the_o former_a testimony_n have_v give_v we_o plain_o to_o understand_v and_o namely_o john_n cha_n 11._o verse_n 15._o whence_o we_o may_v well_o remember_v here_o again_o that_o our_o saviour_n profess_v that_o he_o be_v glad_a of_o the_o occasion_n which_o he_o have_v to_o work_v that_o great_a work_n of_o he_o in_o raise_v lazarus_n from_o the_o dead_a to_o the_o end_n his_o disciple_n may_v thereby_o be_v confirm_v to_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o he_o use_v the_o like_a word_n again_o verse_n 41_o 42._o to_o show_v his_o like_a gracious_a desire_n that_o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o people_n may_v be_v holpen_v by_o their_o behold_v of_o the_o miracle_n to_o this_o end_n also_o may_v the_o consideration_n of_o that_o reproof_n well_o serve_v which_o our_o saviour_n give_v the_o people_n for_o not_o attend_v to_o the_o right_a use_n and_o end_n of_o his_o miracle_n john_n 6.26_o matt._n 16.8_o 9_o etc._n etc._n and_o mark_n chap._n 6_o 25._o and_o thus_o the_o good_a and_o merciful_a affection_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v clear_o manifest_v unto_o us._n but_o that_o his_o doctrine_n and_o testimony_n aught_o of_o itself_o to_o have_v be_v of_o sufficient_a authority_n it_o be_v plain_a by_o that_o other_o reproof_n which_o our_o saviour_n give_v in_o respect_n of_o they_o that_o look_v too_o much_o after_o miracle_n john_n chap._n 2.48_o say_n except_o you_o see_v sign_n and_o wonder_n you_o will_v not_o believe_v of_o which_o sort_n be_v those_o mention_v after_o this_o cha_n 6.30_o who_o over_o bold_o ask_v our_o saviour_n what_o sign_n show_v thou_o that_o we_o may_v see_v and_o believe_v thou_o what_o do_v thou_o work_v and_o again_o matth_n 12.38_o master_n we_o will_v see_v a_o sign_n of_o thou_o to_o who_o our_o saviour_n answer_v in_o the_o verse_n follow_v a_o evil_a and_o adulterous_a generation_n seek_v a_o sign_n but_o no_o sign_n shall_v be_v give_v unto_o it_o save_v only_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o prophet_n jonas_n and_o again_o chap_n 16._o verse_n 1.2.3.4_o on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o be_v set_v down_o to_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o the_o samaritan_n who_o believe_v our_o saviour_n for_o his_o word_n sake_n though_o he_o wrought_v no_o miracle_n among_o they_o but_o only_o hear_v the_o woman_n say_v that_o he_o have_v tell_v she_o all_o thing_n that_o she_o have_v do_v as_o we_o read_v joh_n 4_o 40._o whereupon_o they_o desire_v our_o saviour_n to_o tarry_v with_o they_o the_o which_o when_o he_o have_v yield_v unto_o for_o two_o day_n many_o more_o say_v the_o evangelist_n believe_v because_o of_o his_o own_o word_n and_o they_o say_v unto_o the_o woman_n now_o we_o believe_v not_o because_o of_o thy_o say_n for_o we_o have_v hear_v he_o ourselves_o and_o know_v that_o this_o be_v indeed_o the_o christ_n the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n moreover_o many_o be_v bring_v to_o faith_n and_o repentance_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n though_o he_o wrought_v no_o miracle_n matth_n 21_o 32._o john_n 10.41_o much_o rather_o ought_v our_o saviour_n to_o have_v be_v believe_v for_o his_o own_o sake_n although_o god_n will_v have_v so_o appoint_v that_o he_o shall_v have_v wrought_v no_o such_o great_a work_n as_o he_o do_v thus_o much_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o former_a answer_n but_o yet_o one_o question_n more_o for_o the_o further_o clear_v of_o this_o matter_n be_v it_o grant_v that_o the_o miracle_n which_o our_o saviour_n wrought_v be_v necessary_a for_o those_o who_o at_o that_o time_n be_v the_o beholder_n of_o they_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v confirm_v by_o they_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o question_n be_v they_o likewise_o as_o necessary_a for_o we_o answer_v as_o the_o work_n of_o they_o be_v necessary_a to_o help_v the_o weakness_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o they_o that_o then_o live_v and_o may_v see_v and_o behold_v they_o with_o their_o bodily_a eye_n so_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o we_o that_o live_v at_o this_o day_n to_o read_v hear_v and_o meditate_v upon_o the_o same_o miraculous_a work_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o the_o same_o
of_o we_o even_o from_o the_o first_o moment_n of_o his_o conception_n to_o the_o last_o breath_n and_o so_o remain_v for_o ever_o as_o we_o be_v hereafter_o to_o consider_v nevertheless_o as_o he_o begin_v not_o his_o public_a prophetship_n 〈◊〉_d he_o be_v about_o thirty_o year_n of_o age_n so_o he_o begin_v not_o the_o public_a execution_n of_o his_o office_n of_o high_a priesthood_n until_o near_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n like_v as_o also_o albeit_o he_o give_v forth_o some_o glimpse_n of_o his_o kingly_a dignity_n matth._n 21.5_o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o luke_n 19.35_o 36_o 37_o etc._n etc._n and_o john_n chap._n 12._o verse_n 1●_n etc._n etc._n yet_o he_o be_v not_o full_o blazon_v as_o we_o may_v say_v and_o public_o proclaim_v crown_a king_n and_o prince_n over_o his_o people_n until_o he_o be_v rise_v again_o according_a to_o that_o act._n 5.30_o 31._o the_o god_n of_o our_o father_n have_v raise_v up_o jesus_n who_o that_o sle●_n and_o hang_v on_o a_o tree_n he_o have_v god_n lift_v up_o with_o his_o right_a hand_n to_o be_v a_o prince_n &_o a_o saviour_n to_o give_v repentance_n to_o israel_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o we_o be_v his_o witness_n say_v peter_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o according_a to_o that_o rom._n 1.4_o whereof_o the_o apostle_n paul_n testify_v that_o he_o be_v declare_v mighty_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o the_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a and_o phil._n 2.9_o that_o since_o that_o time_n he_o have_v a_o name_n give_v he_o above_o every_o name_n etc._n etc._n moreover_o it_o may_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n abase_v and_o humble_v himself_o and_o suffer_v all_o his_o life_n time_n even_o from_o the_o womb_n yea_o we_o may_v say_v even_o in_o the_o womb_n of_o his_o mother_n in_o that_o he_o take_v our_o base_a nature_n and_o in_o that_o it_o can_v not_o otherwise_o be_v but_o troublesome_a both_o to_o marry_o and_o also_o to_o the_o bless_a fruit_n of_o her_o womb_n to_o travail_v so_o long_o a_o journey_n as_o bethlem_n be_v from_o nazareth_n when_o she_o be_v great_a with_o child_n even_o near_o upon_o the_o time_n of_o her_o deliverance_n likewise_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v troublesome_a to_o the_o child_n after_o that_o he_o be_v bear_v and_o that_o so_o poor_o circumcise_v on_o the_o tender_a part_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o a_o few_o day_n after_o carry_v a_o further_a journey_n into_o egypt_n and_o there_o to_o remain_v with_o hard_a education_n some_o three_o or_o four_o year_n as_o it_o seem_v and_o further_o in_o that_o as_o the_o child_n grow_v to_o strength_n so_o he_o give_v himself_o to_o a_o laboursome_a and_o base_a course_n of_o life_n endure_v pain_n weariness_n hunger_n and_o thirst_n work_v with_o his_o hand_n for_o his_o live_n even_o such_o work_n as_o joseph_n wrought_v unto_o who_o he_o be_v in_o all_o duty_n of_o service_n willing_o subject_a till_o the_o time_n be_v c_o i_o that_o he_o must_v leave_v all_o other_o work_n to_o do_v the_o will_n of_o his_o heavenly_a father_n in_o the_o public_a duty_n of_o his_o heavenly_a call_n but_o from_o that_o time_n also_o it_o be_v not_o less_o troublesome_a and_o painful_a but_o full_a of_o humiliation_n to_o he_o in_o respect_n of_o humane_a infirmity_n and_o passion_n even_o from_o his_o entrance_n thereinto_o as_o it_o appear_v in_o that_o he_o be_v forthwith_o carry_v into_o the_o solitary_a and_o uncomfortable_a wilderness_n to_o be_v among_o the_o wild_a beast_n tempt_v of_o the_o devil_n without_o lodging_n without_o food_n suffer_v hunger_n and_o likewise_o in_o the_o time_n follow_v when_o he_o come_v and_o preach_v among_o the_o people_n great_a be_v his_o pain_n in_o go_v about_o from_o place_n to_o place_n find_v oftentimes_o very_o hard_a entertainment_n yea_o be_v sometime_o refuse_v and_o reject_v and_o many_o time_n reproach_v and_o cruel_o lay_v in_o wait_n for_o with_o violent_a attempt_n against_o his_o life_n namely_o at_o nazareth_n where_o they_o offer_v and_o for_o their_o part_n do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o have_v throw_v he_o down_o headlong_o from_o that_o steep_a hill_n whereon_o their_o city_n be_v build_v luke_n 4.29_o and_o afterward_o in_o judea_n the_o jew_n go_v about_o to_o stone_n he_o john_n 8.59_o and_o again_o chap._n 10.31_o and_o chap._n 11.8_o and_o thus_o it_o be_v with_o our_o saviour_n even_o to_o the_o time_n of_o his_o last_n most_o low_a humiliation_n and_o most_o bitter_a suffering_n which_o be_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n approach_v the_o time_n of_o his_o death_n as_o be_v observe_v of_o us._n of_o these_o last_o suffering_n therefore_o and_o of_o this_o most_o low_a humiliation_n the_o which_o as_o they_o be_v to_o the_o special_a debasement_n and_o in_o a_o great_a part_n of_o they_o most_o bitter_a and_o doleful_a to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n so_o be_v they_o and_o be_v they_o still_o most_o beneficial_a and_o comfortable_a unto_o we_o we_o will_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n with_o speciciall_a diligence_n inquire_v as_o after_o a_o special_a ground_n and_o portion_n of_o our_o christian_n belief_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n peter_n 1._o epist_n ch_n 5.1_o where_o profess_v himself_o a_o special_a witness_n of_o christ_n he_o give_v the_o instance_n concern_v the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n as_o be_v a_o matter_n worthy_a to_o be_v in_o special_a manner_n testify_v and_o confirm_v to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o so_o much_o as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n by_o the_o sacrifice_a of_o himself_o have_v utter_o remove_v and_o take_v away_o the_o guiltiness_n and_o wrath_n due_a to_o sin_n etc._n etc._n heb._n 9.26_o the_o same_o his_o suffering_n be_v also_o the_o perfect_a seal_v up_o and_o as_o we_o may_v say_v the_o crown_n or_o garland_n of_o his_o obedience_n and_o of_o his_o expiation_n or_o satisfaction_n make_v for_o our_o sin_n col._n 2.14.15_o and_o final_o the_o only_a way_n whereby_o he_o be_v on_o our_o behalf_n to_o obtain_v all_o the_o glory_n which_o follow_v after_o according_a to_o that_o luk._n ch_n 24._o ver_fw-la 25_o 26._o and_o john_n 12.23_o 24_o 25_o 26._o and_o 1._o pet._n 1.11_o and_o 2._o tim._n 2.8_o 9_o 10_o 11_o 12._o question_n but_o that_o we_o may_v proceed_v in_o order_n first_o of_o all_o what_o ground_n of_o holy_a scripture_n have_v you_o for_o the_o testimony_n or_o declaration_n and_o warrant_v of_o these_o suffering_n and_o of_o this_o special_a humiliation_n under_o pontius_n pilate_n in_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o most_o holy_a office_n of_o priesthood_n to_o wit_n in_o that_o he_o be_v crucify_v etc._n etc._n to_o such_o singular_a end_n and_o purpose_n as_o have_v be_v say_v where_o be_v they_o most_o faithful_o and_o full_o report_v unto_o we_o answer_n they_o be_v at_o large_a and_o with_o all_o faithfulness_n record_v unto_o we_o as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o perfect_a harmony_n by_o all_o the_o four_o evangelist_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n it_o be_v very_o true_a as_o we_o read_v matth._n ch_z 26._o and_o ch_n 27._o mar._n ch_n 14._o and_o ch_n 15._o luke_n ch_n 22._o and_o 23._o and_o john_n ch_n 18._o and_o ch_n 19_o and_o they_o be_v thus_o diligent_o and_o full_o set_v down_o by_o all_o the_o evangelist_n and_o commend_v to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n as_o be_v a_o most_o worthy_a part_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a history_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n most_o diligent_o to_o be_v read_v hear_v meditate_a and_o confer_v upon_o of_o all_o christian_n all_o the_o day_n of_o their_o life_n and_o that_o to_o many_o the_o most_o excellent_a end_n &_o purpose_n as_o be_v say_v &_o as_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n shall_v hereafter_o be_v declare_v but_o before_o we_o come_v to_o inquire_v of_o those_o excellent_a end_n or_o any_o other_o of_o those_o excellent_a thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v concern_v the_o chief_a humiliation_n and_o suffering_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n let_v we_o inquire_v of_o the_o suffering_n themselves_o and_o of_o the_o same_o his_o humiliation_n and_o that_o also_o in_o as_o commodious_a a_o order_n as_o we_o may_v for_o the_o help_n both_o of_o our_o understanding_n &_o also_o of_o our_o memory_n question_n touch_v so_o great_a and_o memorable_a a_o matter_n as_o this_o be_v how_o therefore_o may_v they_o be_v distinguish_v as_o may_v best_o serve_v to_o so_o good_a end_n and_o purpose_n answer_n the_o chief_a suffering_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n may_v not_o unfit_o be_v consider_v under_o these_o head_n or_o several_a branch_n follow_v first_o those_o that_o belong_v to_o his_o prepare_v of_o himself_o to_o the_o endure_v of_o his_o suffering_n at_o such_o time_n as_o he_o enter_v into_o the_o most_o serious_a thought_n and_o meditation_n of_o
ch_z 22._o verse_n 65._o behold_v therefore_o a_o spectacle_n for_o the_o time_n no_o less_o horrible_a than_o lamentable_a the_o son_n of_o god_n stand_v bind_v as_o a_o malefactor_n pilate_n the_o ground_n &_o history_n of_o his_o lead_n before_o pilate_n before_o most_o sinful_a and_o wicked_a man_n a_o a_o sovereign_a prince_n accuse_v of_o treason_n by_o rebellious_a subject_n he_o that_o be_v the_o glorious_a truth_n account_v a_o blasphemer_n he_o that_o be_v innocent_a be_v smite_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n be_v blindfolded_a the_o lord_n of_o glory_n be_v most_o vile_o disgrace_v they_o most_o shameful_o spit_v upon_o his_o face_n who_o be_v unworthy_a to_o kiss_v his_o foot_n he_o that_o be_v and_o be_v and_o shall_v be_v for_o ever_o most_o reverend_a be_v deride_v &_o scorn_v final_o he_o that_o have_v the_o right_a of_o all_o just_a judgement_n and_o the_o power_n of_o life_n and_o death_n he_o be_v condemn_v as_o unworthy_a to_o live_v etc._n etc._n now_o moreover_o and_o beside_o all_o these_o grief_n and_o forcible_a cause_n thereof_o fall_v out_o in_o this_o second_o act_n for_o we_o may_v not_o but_o think_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n not_o only_o behold_v but_o even_o feel_v this_o extreme_a wickedness_n and_o sustain_v so_o great_a reproach_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o own_o people_n yea_o and_o that_o also_o under_o the_o manage_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n of_o god_n who_o by_o duty_n aught_o to_o have_v show_v himself_o a_o dutiful_a type_n and_o figure_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n and_o to_o have_v lay_v down_o his_o mitre_n and_o all_o his_o glorious_a robe_n before_o he_o we_o may_v not_o think_v i_o say_v but_o he_o be_v exceed_o grieve_v at_o so_o extreme_a a_o impiety_n in_o his_o most_o holy_a and_o righteous_a soul_n far_o above_o that_o lot_n be_v vex_v in_o behold_v the_o uncleanlie_a conversation_n of_o the_o sodomite_n but_o yet_o moreover_o and_o beside_o all_o this_o as_o we_o begin_v to_o say_v the_o fall_n of_o his_o own_o dear_a disciple_n peter_n yea_o his_o great_a downfall_n whereinto_o he_o throw_v himself_o in_o the_o time_n of_o this_o our_o most_o bless_a saviour_n his_o doleful_a and_o confuse_a examination_n and_o sift_v it_o be_v not_o the_o least_o part_n of_o his_o sorrow_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o his_o turn_n back_o and_o mindful_a and_o admonitorie_a look_v upon_o peter_n while_o he_o himself_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o trouble_n as_o we_o read_v luke_n 22.61_o and_o in_o very_a deed_n the_o history_n of_o peter_n fall_n be_v very_o lamentable_a as_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n do_v describe_v the_o same_o as_o it_o follow_v in_o our_o text_n matth_n 26._o from_o the_o 69._o verse_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chap_n and_o mark_v 14._o from_o the_o 66._o verse_n to_o the_o end_n of_o that_o chapter_n and_o luke_n 22._o from_o the_o 54._o verse_n to_o the_o 63._o and_o john_n chap_v 18._o verse_n 15.16.17.18.25.26.27_o but_o it_o be_v not_o our_o purpose_n to_o stay_v upon_o the_o particular_n of_o this_o part_n of_o the_o story_n but_o only_o to_o touch_v this_o point_n of_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o sorrow_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n by_o occasion_n of_o the_o same_o because_o we_o have_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o suffering_n of_o our_o saviour_n the_o which_o be_v the_o argument_n of_o our_o inquiry_n at_o this_o time_n thus_o much_o therefore_o shall_v suffice_v concern_v the_o explication_n of_o the_o second_o act_n of_o this_o wicked_a session_n of_o the_o council_n of_o the_o jew_n against_o our_o saviour_n christ_n with_o the_o appurtenance_n thereof_o the_o three_o act_n be_v yet_o remain_v as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 27._o chapter_n of_o matthew_n unless_o we_o shall_v call_v it_o a_o new_a session_n according_a as_o the_o evangelist_n mark_v and_o luke_n seem_v more_o plain_o to_o distinguish_v the_o same_o from_o the_o former_a as_o if_o there_o have_v be_v some_o intermission_n for_o a_o while_n after_o they_o have_v weary_v themselves_o in_o labour_v a_o good_a part_n of_o the_o night_n all_o that_o they_o can_v to_o tire_v and_o weary_v our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o the_o which_o end_n let_v we_o hear_v and_o compare_v the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n together_o question_n and_o first_o how_o write_v the_o evangelist_n matthew_n answer_n his_o word_n be_v these_o when_o the_o morning_n be_v come_v all_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o elder_n of_o the_o people_n take_v council_n against_o jesus_n to_o put_v he_o to_o death_n and_o lead_v he_o away_o bind_v and_o deliver_v he_o unto_o pontius_n pilate_n the_o governor_n these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o evangelist_n matthew_n let_v it_o not_o be_v tedious_a to_o you_o to_o rehearse_v likewise_o the_o word_n of_o the_o evangelist_n mark_v and_o luke_n question_n which_o be_v they_o answer_n thus_o write_v the_o evangelist_n saint_n mark_v in_o the_o first_o verse_n of_o his_o 15._o chapter_n and_o anon●_n in_o the_o dawn_n of_o the_o day_n the_o high_a priest_n hold_v a_o council_n with_o the_o elder_n and_o the_o scribe_n and_o the_o whole_a council_n and_o bind_v jesus_n and_o lead_v he_o away_o and_o deliver_v he_o to_o pilate_n and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o evangelist_n luke_n be_v these_o chap_v 22._o verse_n 66._o pilate_n the_o ground_n or_o history_n of_o his_o examination_n or_o arraignment_n before_o pilate_n and_o assoon_o as_o it_o be_v day_n the_o elder_n of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o the_o scribe_n come_v together_o and_o lead_v he_o into_o their_o council_n etc._n etc._n and_o ch_n 23._o the_o first_o verse_n then_o say_v the_o evangelist_n the_o whole_a multitude_n of_o they_o arise_v and_o lead_v he_o unto_o pilate_n explicatio_fw-la explicatio_fw-la thus_o then_o by_o the_o compare_v of_o the_o evangelist_n together_o it_o may_v seem_v that_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o council_n make_v a_o new_a session_n and_o consultation_n after_o some_o intermission_n and_o it_o may_v be_v after_o that_o they_o have_v cheer_v themselves_o to_o their_o mischief_n by_o eat_v some_o spice_a cake_n of_o wickedness_n and_o by_o take_v a_o morning_n draught_n of_o the_o wine_n of_o violence_n according_a to_o that_o which_o we_o read_v in_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o the_o proverb_n while_o their_o rude_a company_n abuse_v our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o therewithal_o it_o may_v appear_v also_o by_o that_o which_o the_o evangelist_n luke_n seat_v down_o verse_n 67.68.69.70_o 71._o that_o they_o renew_v the_o former_a adjuration_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n in_o the_o examination_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n whether_o he_o will_v stand_v to_o his_o former_a asseveration_n that_o he_o be_v the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v make_v their_o evidence_n the_o more_o strong_a in_o their_o accuse_v &_o indite_v of_o he_o before_o pilate_n upon_o some_o capital_a crime_n for_o as_o it_o be_v furthermore_o evident_a by_o the_o text_n this_o be_v the_o drift_n of_o this_o last_o consultation_n add_v to_o the_o former_a and_o so_o the_o effect_n itself_o do_v plain_o evicte_n for_o insomuch_o as_o they_o themselves_o have_v no_o power_n to_o give_v capital_a judgement_n in_o matter_n of_o life_n and_o death_n therefore_o after_o they_o have_v make_v sure_a in_o bind_v our_o saviour_n more_o strong_o then_o before_o they_o arise_v with_o one_o consent_n and_o be_v inviron_v with_o the_o whole_a multitude_n they_o lead_v he_o away_o and_o deliver_v he_o to_o pilate_n then_o chief_a governor_n and_o lord_n precedent_n among_o they_o under_o the_o roman_a empire_n tiberius_n be_v then_o emperor_n and_o thus_o we_o be_v come_v from_o the_o suffering_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n belong_v to_o his_o examination_n before_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o therewithal_o of_o his_o condemnation_n so_o far_o as_o they_o may_v condemn_v he_o unto_o those_o that_o belong_v to_o his_o examination_n before_o pontius_n pilate_n whereupon_o follow_v his_o indictment_n and_o condemnation_n before_o he_o but_o not_o until_o he_o be_v send_v also_o to_o herod_n to_o be_v examine_v of_o he_o etc._n etc._n wherefore_o let_v we_o now_o proceed_v to_o inquire_v of_o the_o ground_n and_o interpretation_n of_o these_o part_n of_o the_o holy_a story_n question_n and_o first_o how_o do_v the_o evangelist_n describe_v unto_o we_o the_o examination_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n before_o pilate_n answer_n it_o follow_v thus_o in_o the_o evangelist_n matthew_n chap_v 27._o verse_n 11.12.13.14_o in_o these_o word_n 11_o and_o jesus_n stand_v before_o the_o governor_n and_o the_o governor_n ask_v he_o say_v be_v thou_o the_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n 12_o jesus_n say_v unto_o he_o thou_o say_v it_o
and_o when_o he_o be_v accuse_v of_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o elder_n he_o answer_v nothing_o 13_o then_o say_v pilate_n unto_o he_o hear_v thou_o not_o how_o many_o thing_n they_o lie_v against_o thou_o 14_o but_o he_o answer_v he_o not_o one_o word_n insomuch_o that_o the_o governor_n marvel_v great_o explication_n explication_n thus_o indeed_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o evangelist_n matthew_n concern_v the_o proceed_n and_o course_n of_o the_o suffering_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n nevertheless_o we_o may_v not_o altogether_o neglect_v that_o which_o he_o insert_v betwixt_o the_o condemnation_n which_o pass_v upon_o our_o saviour_n christ_n by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o council_n of_o the_o jew_n so_o far_o as_o they_o may_v proceed_v against_o he_o that_o be_v to_o conclude_v and_o set_v down_o a_o act_n in_o register_n as_o it_o be_v that_o they_o judge_v he_o worthy_a to_o die_v to_o wit_n as_o a_o blasphemer_n and_o betwixt_o the_o first_o examination_n before_o pilate_n that_o judas_n who_o have_v betray_v our_o saviour_n christ_n see_v he_o to_o be_v condemn_v repent_v himself_o that_o be_v to_o say_v be_v now_o convict_v in_o his_o conscience_n that_o his_o fact_n be_v damnable_a because_o he_o have_v betray_v innocent_a blood_n be_v swallow_v up_o with_o a_o despair_a sorrow_n and_o therefore_o bring_v again_o the_o money_n that_o he_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o elder_n for_o the_o reward_n of_o his_o iniquity_n and_o confess_v his_o sin_n not_o with_o godly_a sorrow_n but_o in_o a_o servile_a terror_n and_o confusion_n of_o his_o soul_n a_o just_a reward_n for_o so_o horrible_a a_o traitor_n and_o most_o desperate_o and_o woeful_o hang_v himself_o matth_n 27.3.4.5_o for_o cast_v himself_o down_o headlong_o with_o great_a violence_n from_o that_o gibbet_n as_o it_o be_v which_o he_o have_v choose_v to_o dispatch_v himself_o withal_o he_o burst_v in_o sunder_o in_o the_o midst_n so_o that_o his_o bowel_n gush_v out_o as_o we_o read_v act_n 1.18_o but_o of_o the_o particular_n of_o this_o heavy_a judgement_n of_o god_n and_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v therein_o as_o also_o how_o the_o scripture_n be_v fulfil_v in_o this_o wrath_n which_o fall_v upon_o judas_n and_o in_o those_o thinger_n which_o follow_v upon_o the_o restore_n of_o the_o money_n in_o that_o the_o chief_a priest_n &c_n &c_n buy_v a_o potter_n field_n therewith_o as_o it_o follow_v matth_n 27._o verse_n 5.6.7.8.9.10_o we_o will_v not_o stay_v now_o because_o the_o suffering_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n require_v all_o the_o time_n that_o we_o may_v well_o spare_v at_o this_o present_a for_o the_o more_o through_o open_v of_o they_o but_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n the_o testimony_n of_o a_o chief_a adversary_n to_o the_o clear_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o that_o with_o the_o condemn_v of_o himself_o as_o have_v no_o cause_n at_o all_o wherefore_o he_o shall_v be_v move_v to_o deal_v treacherous_o against_o he_o as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v worthy_a to_o have_v be_v deliver_v as_o a_o offender_n to_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o magistrate_n and_o the_o same_o test●monie_n also_o confirm_v by_o most_o heavy_a punishment_n and_o vengeance_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o traitor_n it_o may_v justly_o be_v of_o no_o small_a weight_n with_o we_o to_o confirm_v th'innocence_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n even_o from_o heaven_n itself_o the_o which_o judgement_n against_o the_o traitor_n be_v likewise_o a_o evident_a declaration_n of_o the_o singula_fw-la love_n which_o god_n the_o father_n do_v bear_v to_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n his_o son_n even_o in_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o m●n_z although_o he_o set_v himself_o in_o the_o stead_n of_o u●_n sinner_n do_v bear_v the_o hatred_n and_o curse_n of_o our_o sin_n for_o it_o be_v unp●ssib●e_a that_o the_o father_n shall_v not_o most_o perfitlie_o and_o most_o constant_o love_v hi●_n son_n yea_o even_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n in_o that_o he_o be_v therein_o perfect_o holy_a and_o righteous_a and_o in_o all_o thing_n obedient_a to_o the_o father_n and_o chief_o because_o of_o the_o most_o near_a union_n thereof_o un●o_o the_o divine_a nature_n it_o be_v unpossible_a a_o so_o that_o god_n though_o in_o his_o divine_a justice_n permit_v yea_o ordain_v and_o appoint_v that_o all_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v thus_o dispose_v to_o these_o most_o holy_a end_n which_o he_o of_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n and_o mercy_n intend_v shall_v not_o therewithal_o most_o perfect_o hate_v and_o abhor_v all_o the_o malicious_a enemy_n &_o persecutor_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o all_o their_o wicked_a and_o unjust_a proceed_n against_o he_o whereof_o this_o one_o judgement_n against_o judas_n be_v a_o shewe-token_n portend_v like_o heavy_a judgement_n against_o th●m_n all_o in_o due_a time_n whosoever_o shall_v not_o by_o another_o manner_n of_o repentance_n than_o be_v the_o repentance_n of_o judas_n prevent_v the_o same_o these_o thing_n therefore_o thus_o observe_v in_o way_n of_o a_o interim_n let_v we_o now_o return_v to_o go_v forward_o to_o inquire_v of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o suffering_n of_o our_o most_o bless_a saviour_n wher●n_o because_o the_o evangelist_n mathewe_n and_o mark_v be_v very_o brief_a as_o touch_v those_o that_o belong_v to_o his_o examination_n before_o pilate_n and_o also_o do_v altogether_o omit_v his_o examination_n and_o suffering_n before_o herod_n we_o will_v repair_v to_o the_o other_o evangelist_n l●ke_v and_o i●hn_n for_o our_o further_a supply_n in_o this_o behalf_n and_o that_o even_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v so_o nea●e_v as_o we_o can_v consider_v of_o all_o thing_n in_o such_o order_n as_o they_o fall_v out_o against_o our_o saviour_n question_n how_o may_v we_o orderly_o proceed_v answer_n in_o this_o part_n of_o the_o story_n th'euangelist_n john_n be_v first_o as_o we_o read_v chap_v 18._o verse_n 28.29.30.31.32_o question_n rehearse_v the_o word_n of_o the_o evangelist_n which_o be_v they_o answer_n 28_o his_o word_n be_v these_o then_o lead_v they_o jesus_n from_o caiaphas_n into_o the_o common_a hall_n now_o it_o be_v morning_n &_o they_o themselves_o go_v not_o into_o the_o common_a hall_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v defile_v but_o that_o they_o may_v eat_v the_o passeover_n 29_o pilate_n than_o go_v out_o unto_o they_o &_o say_v what_o accusation_n bring_v you_o against_o this_o man_n 30_o they_o answer_v and_o say_v unto_o he_o if_o he_o be_v not_o a_o evil_a doer_n we_o will_v not_o have_v deliver_v he_o unto_o thou_o 31._o then_o say_v pilate_n unto_o they_o take_v you_o he_o and_o judge_v he_o according_a to_o your_o own_o law_n then_o the_o jew_n say_v unto_o he_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o we_o to_o put_v any_o man_n to_o death_n 32_o it_o be_v say_v the_o evangelist_n that_o the_o word_n of_o jesus_n may_v be_v fulfil_v which_o he_o speak_v signify_v what_o death_n he_o shall_v die_v explication_n explication_n in_o these_o word_n the_o evangelist_n s_o john_n repeat_v that_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o the_o elder_n have_v condemn_v our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o their_o own_o council_n and_o proceed_v so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v by_o their_o own_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n they_o do_v thenceforth_o deliver_v he_o over_o to_o pilate_n as_o it_o be_v to_o the_o secular_a power_n but_o they_o themselves_o have_v very_a rank_n malicious_a and_o murder_a heart_n they_o will_v not_o forsooth_o go_v into_o the_o common_a hall_n the_o place_n of_o civil_a justice_n lest_o they_o be_v very_o devout_o mind_v to_o eat_v the_o passeover_n in_o the_o evening_n of_o this_o day_n by_o the_o religion_n or_o rather_o licentious_a tradition_n of_o their_o own_o custom_n the_o which_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v have_v eat_v th'euen_v before_o as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n obey_v the_o law_n have_v do_v with_o his_o disciple_n shall_v be_v defile_v pilate_n therefore_o as_o the_o evangelist_n write_v yield_v so_o far_o as_o to_o go_v forth_o unto_o they_o and_o carry_v our_o saviour_n christ_n with_o he_o he_o require_v as_o good_a reason_n lead_v he_o to_o do_v what_o they_o have_v to_o say_v against_o he_o before_o he_o shall_v give_v any_o sentence_n whereunto_o as_o the_o evangelist_n show_v the_o jew_n answer_v in_o general_a term_n that_o if_o our_o saviour_n have_v not_o be_v a_o evil_a doer_n or_o in_o more_o plain_a speech_n in_o the_o use_n of_o our_o language_n a_o malefactor_n they_o will_v not_o have_v deliver_v he_o unto_o pilate_n presume_v belike_o that_o pilate_n shall_v by_o and_o by_o have_v approve_v of_o their_o proceed_n and_o of_o the_o decree_n of_o their_o council_n without_o any_o further_a question_n but_o pilate_n as_o one_o discontent_a and_o loath_a also_o to_o meddle_v in_o the_o cause_n will_v
their_o revile_v of_o he_o wag_v their_o head_n malapert_o according_a to_o that_o whereof_o the_o prophet_n complain_v prophetical_a psal_n ●●_o 6.7_o i_o be_o a_o worm_n and_o not_o a_o man_n a_o shame_n of_o man_n and_o the_o contempt_n of_o the_o people_n all_o they_o that_o see_v i_o have_v i_o in_o derision_n they_o make_v a_o mow_fw-mi and_o nod_v the_o head_n etc._n etc._n concern_v the_o which_o bitter_a kind_n of_o gesture_n in_o express_v derision_n read_v also_o psal_n 44_o 14._o where_o the_o church_n complain_v of_o it_o and_o 2._o king_n 19.21_o the_o like_a gesture_n join_v with_o derision_n though_o ascribe_v to_o the_o church_n against_o the_o presumptuous_a pride_n of_o the_o king_n of_o ashur_n by_o some_o good_a interpreter_n the_o contemptuous_a speech_n be_v in_o themselves_o very_o bitter_a and_o taunt_a be_v utter_v with_o great_a vehemency_n as_o also_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o interjection_n of_o contemptuous_a insult_a or_o rejoice_v against_o our_o saviour_n which_o the_o evangelist_n mark_n express_v hey_o say_v they_o etc._n etc._n the_o speech_n which_o they_o use_v to_o the_o reproach_v of_o our_o saviour_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n the_o one_o be_v a_o upbraid_v of_o he_o by_o a_o false_a imputation_n of_o misconstrue_v word_n which_o he_o shall_v have_v speak_v as_o we_o have_v already_o see_v three_o year_n before_o these_o word_n they_o use_v as_o a_o skornefull_a description_n or_o nickname_v of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n thou_o say_v they_o that_o destroy_v the_o temple_n and_o build_v it_o in_o three_o day_n and_o then_o they_o reproach_n he_o as_o not_o be_v able_a to_o save_v himself_o and_o therefore_o altogether_o unlike_a to_o be_v a_o saviour_n of_o other_o this_o be_v their_o first_o reproach_n as_o touch_v the_o title_n saviour_n belong_v to_o christ_n like_v as_o the_o ruler_n have_v reproach_v he_o before_o so_o that_o it_o appear_v they_o be_v all_o scholar_n teach_v in_o one_o school_n and_o have_v like_o master_n be_v like_o scholar_n etc._n etc._n the_o same_o also_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v concern_v their_o second_o branch_n of_o reproach_n which_o be_v against_o the_o title_n of_o son_n of_o god_n in_o that_o they_o say_v if_o thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n come_v down_o from_o the_o cross_n as_o though_o they_o shall_v say_v hereby_o ●t_z appear_v well_o that_o thou_o do_v false_o boast_v thyself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o to_o have_v a_o divine_a power_n because_o a_o few_o nail_n be_v able_a to_o hold_v thou_o to_o the_o cross_n that_o thou_o be_v not_o able_a to_o stir_v either_o hand_n or_o foot_n for_o the_o relief_n of_o thyself_o thus_o do_v the_o passenger_n of_o the_o jew_n come_v upon_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o execution_n most_o profane_o and_o contumelious_o mock_v and_o deride_v our_o saviour_n so_o that_o what_o they_o be_v behind_o in_o time_n that_o they_o supply_v by_o their_o intemperate_a zeal_n and_o so_o make_v themselves_o companion_n with_o the_o rest_n in_o the_o outrage_n o●●heir_n sin_n now_o the_o last_o sort_n of_o the_o reprocher_n and_o reviler_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v the_o thief_n which_o be_v crucify_v with_o he_o the_o which_o yet_o we_o be_v from_o that_o which_o the_o evangelist_n luke_n write_v compare_v with_o matthew_n and_o mark_v to_o understand_v as_o we_o must_v put_v a_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o one_o of_o the_o thief_n and_o the_o other_o for_o although_o it_o behove_v we_o to_o conceive_v from_o that_o which_o saint_n matthew_n and_o saint_n mark_v do_v write_v that_o at_o the_o first_o both_o the_o thief_n be_v a_o like_a wicked_o mind_v yet_o within_o a_o while_n the_o one_o of_o they_o be_v altogether_o make_v another_o man_n by_o the_o wonderful_a mercy_n and_o miraculous_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o poor_a miserable_a and_o sinful_a man_n of_o a_o miserable_a sinful_a and_o damnable_a wretch_n that_o be_v of_o one_o worthy_a to_o have_v be_v condemn_v for_o ever_o to_o hell_n make_v a_o most_o bless_a and_o happy_a child_n of_o god_n adopt_v to_o be_v a_o inheritor_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o the_o evangelist_n luke_n do_v absolute_o report_v and_o as_o it_o be_v brand_v the_o one_o of_o they_o only_o for_o a_o railer_n if_o we_o will_v know_v what_o the_o rail_n of_o both_o the_o thief_n be_v in_o the_o beginning_n the_o evangelist_n matthew_n and_o luke_n tell_v we_o that_o they_o be_v the_o same_o whereby_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o jew_n mock_v he_o and_o indeed_o as_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o beginning_n they_o be_v as_o the_o ring_n leader_n or_o lord_n of_o the_o misrule_n to_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o so_o the_o author_n of_o this_o heinous_a sin_n of_o mock_v even_o as_o they_o be_v of_o the_o crucify_a itself_o all_o these_o revile_n be_v no_o doubt_n grievous_a unto_o our_o soviour_n and_o increase_v the_o dolour_n of_o his_o soul_n for_o see_v lot_n vex_v his_o righteous_a soul_n to_o see_v and_o hear_v the_o unlawful_a deed_n of_o the_o sodomite_n 2._o pet._n 28._o much_o more_o be_v the_o righteous_a soul_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o see_v and_o hear_v these_o blasphemy_n of_o the_o wicked_a jew_n according_a to_o that_o we_o read_v psal_n 22._o and_o psal_n 69._o see_v also_o it_o be_v as_o the_o break_n of_o david_n bone_n when_o they_o say_v to_o he_o where_o be_v thy_o god_n and_o ps_n 42._o the_o same_o no_o doubt_n be_v much_o more_o grievous_a to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n etc._n etc._n but_o now_o touch_v this_o part_n of_o the_o holy_a story_n let_v we_o consider_v of_o it_o furthermore_o from_o the_o report_n of_o the_o evangelist_n luke_n i_o mean_v first_o touch_v the_o obstinate_a continuance_n of_o the_o impenitent_a and_o obdurate_a thief_n in_o his_o rail_n and_o then_o also_o concern_v the_o miraculous_a and_o most_o gracious_a conversion_n of_o the_o other_o which_o as_o we_o may_v remember_v be_v reckon_v to_o be_v the_o four_o thing_n worthy_a to_o be_v diligent_o mark_v of_o we_o within_o the_o space_n of_o the_o first_o three_o hour_n wherein_o our_o saviour_n christ_n continue_v upon_o the_o cross_n to_o this_o end_n therefore_o let_v we_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n question_n what_o do_v he_o write_v of_o this_o excellent_a matter_n answer_n his_o word_n be_v these_o chap._n 23._o verse_n 39_o 40_o 41._o 39_o and_o one_o of_o the_o evil_a doer_n which_o be_v hang_v rail_v on_o he_o say_v if_o thou_o be_v the_o christ_n save_v thyself_o and_o us._n 4●_n but_o the_o other_o answer_v and_o rebuke_v he_o say_v fear_v not_o thou_o god_n see_v thou_o be_v in_o the_o same_o condemnation_n 41_o we_o be_v indeed_o righteous_o here_o for_o we_o receive_v thing_n worthy_a of_o that_o we_o have_v do_v but_o this_o man_n have_v do_v nothing_o amiss_o 42_o and_o he_o say_v unto_o jesus_n lord_n remember_v i_o when_o thou_o come_v into_o thy_o kingdom_n 43_o then_o jesus_n say_v unto_o he_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o to_o day_n shall_v thou_o be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n explication_n explication_n in_o these_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n we_o have_v lay_v before_o our_o eye_n first_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o the_o one_o thief_n continue_v in_o his_o rail_n and_o then_o the_o repentance_n of_o the_o other_o with_o the_o fruit_n and_o benefit_n thereof_o even_o eternal_a happiness_n and_o salvation_n assure_v unto_o he_o by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n first_o therefore_o from_o the_o evil_a practice_n of_o the_o impenitent_a thief_n let_v we_o conclude_v the_o three_o point_n of_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o story_n concern_v the_o execution_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o wit_n the_o rail_n and_o mock_n of_o all_o sort_n against_o he_o and_o so_o come_v to_o the_o four_o point_n to_o be_v consider_v therein_o in_o this_o wicked_a and_o impenitent_a thief_n we_o be_v to_o observe_v the_o greatness_n of_o his_o sin_n in_o rail_v against_o our_o saviour_n not_o only_o from_o his_o speech_n but_o also_o from_o some_o other_o circumstance_n not_o to_o be_v neglect_v of_o we_o for_o our_o own_o admonition_n and_o first_o because_o he_o give_v himself_o to_o rail_v at_o such_o time_n as_o there_o be_v but_o a_o step_n as_o we_o may_v say_v betwixt_o he_o and_o death_n he_o ought_v now_o at_o the_o last_o to_o have_v lament_v and_o bewail_v his_o own_o damnable_a life_n and_o though_o he_o can_v not_o have_v apprehend_v christ_n now_o crucify_v with_o he_o to_o be_v that_o very_a christ_n the_o only_a saviour_n of_o sinner_n yet_o he_o ought_v most_o humble_o to_o have_v crave_v mercy_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o his_o sin_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n for_o his_o
defer_v till_o we_o come_v to_o the_o death_n itself_o follow_v the_o course_n of_o the_o holy_a story_n only_o let_v we_o from_o hence_o bear_v in_o mind_n that_o we_o have_v from_o the_o most_o grave_a and_o testamentary_a witness_n of_o our_o saviour_n himself_o a_o most_o undoubted_a and_o sure_a ground_n of_o the_o full_a and_o absolute_a perfection_n of_o it_o to_o all_o purpose_n for_o the_o which_o it_o please_v he_o to_o taste_v of_o death_n as_o the_o holy_a apostle_n speak_v this_o interim_n observe_v and_o lay_v up_o in_o our_o mind_n let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o the_o last_o and_o most_o immediate_a speech_n of_o our_o saviour_n next_o the_o s●me_n his_o most_o holy_a and_o propitiatory_a death_n that_o be_v this_o father_n into_o thy_o hand_n i_o commend_v my_o spirit_n a_o speech_n likewise_o of_o very_o great_a importance_n full_a of_o excellent_a direction_n both_o for_o the_o ground_n and_o comfort_n of_o a_o lively_a faith_n as_o also_o for_o direction_n in_o sundry_a duty_n concern_v the_o right_a manner_n of_o a_o christian_a death_n and_o to_o note_v the_o importance_n of_o they_o it_o be_v to_o singular_a good_a purpose_n that_o the_o evangelist_n both_o matthew_n mark_v and_o l●ke_v do_v all_o report_n unto_o we_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n utter_v these_o his_o last_o word_n with_o a_o loud_a and_o mighty_a voice_n as_o he_o have_v do_v the_o fo●mer_n my_o god_n my_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o for_o whereas_o the_o evangelist_n matthew_n say_v that_o he_o cry_v again_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n the_o evangelist_n luke_n tell_v we_o that_o those_o above_o mention_v father_n into_o thy_o hand_n i_o commend_v my_o spirit_n be_v the_o word_n which_o he_o speak_v the_o second_o time_n with_o so_o loud_a a_o voice_n the_o loudenes_n of_o the_o voice_n therefore_o give_v plain_o to_o understand_v that_o as_o our_o saviour_n will_v have_v all_o most_o audible_o to_o hear_v they_o be_v there_o present_a and_o all_o other_o to_o hear_v of_o they_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o his_o gospel_n according_a to_o the_o faithful_a record_n of_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n so_o no_o doubt_n that_o he_o will_v stir_v up_o all_o by_o this_o so_o loud_o sound_v a_o voice_n to_o consider_v diligent_o of_o they_o according_a to_o the_o like_a practice_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n john_n chap_n 7.28_o then_o cry_v jesus_n in_o the_o temple_n as_o he_o teach_v etc._n etc._n and_o verse_n 37.38_o in_o the_o last_o and_o great_a day_n of_o the_o feast_n jesus_n stand_v and_o cry_v say_v if_o any_o man_n thirst_n let_v he_o come_v to_o i_o and_o drink_n etc._n etc._n and_o chap_n 11_o 43._o he_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n laz●rus_n come_v forth_o and_o chap_n 12.44_o and_o jesus_n cry_v and_o say_v he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o believe_v not_o in_o i_o but_o in_o he_o that_o send_v i_o etc._n etc._n concern_v these_o word_n therefore_o let_v we_o first_o consider_v the_o reason_n why_o our_o saviour_n utter_v they_o with_o so_o loud_a a_o voice_n and_o then_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n themselves_o touch_v the_o loudness_n and_o strength_n of_o the_o voice_n our_o saviour_n be_v now_o at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n will_v give_v to_o understand_v that_o he_o die_v not_o as_o other_o man_n by_o a_o mere_a necessary_a faint_a and_o feeble_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o natural_a life_n but_o most_o voluntary_o to_o most_o singular_a end_n and_o purpose_n above_o the_o death_n of_o any_o other_o man_n according_a to_o that_o which_o he_o have_v say_v before_o of_o himself_o john_n 10.17.18_o therefore_o do_v my_o father_n love_v i_o because_o i_o lay_v down_o my_o life_n that_o i_o may_v take_v it_o again_o no_o man_n take_v it_o from_o i_o but_o i_o lay_v it_o down_o and_o i_o have_v power_n to_o take_v it_o again_o this_o commendement_n have_v i_o receive_v of_o my_o father_n the_o which_o word_n notwithstanding_o we_o be_v so_o to_o understand_v that_o we_o do_v in_o no_o wise_n deny_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o natural_a death_n and_o of_o his_o humane_a infirmity_n and_o passion_n therein_o though_o by_o his_o divine_a power_n he_o overrule_v all_o so_o that_o notwithstanding_o as_o the_o apostle_n peter_n say_v he_o be_v put_v to_o death_n concern_v the_o flesh_n yet_o he_o be_v quicken_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o have_v the_o power_n of_o life_n and_o death_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n according_a to_o the_o decree_n and_o determination_n of_o god_n and_o be_v not_o leave_v to_o the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o wicked_a man_n jesus_n crucifixus_fw-la sic_fw-la ex_fw-la causa_fw-la natural_a efflavit_fw-la animam_fw-la nimirum_fw-la ex_fw-la violentia_fw-la &_o cruciatibus_fw-la quos_fw-la in_o tam_fw-la crudeli_fw-la supplicio_fw-la passus_fw-la erat_fw-la ut_fw-la tamen_fw-la separatio_fw-la animae_fw-la a_o svo_fw-la corpore_fw-la procederet_fw-la a_o pura_fw-la ipsius_fw-la voluntate_fw-la beza_n hom_o in_o hist_o pass_v 32._o and_o to_o the_o same_o end_n do_v our_o saviour_n lie_v down_o his_o life_n soon_o then_o be_v ordinary_a in_o that_o kind_n of_o execution_n which_o cause_v pilate_n to_o mar●el_v as_o we_o read_v mark_v 15_o 44_o and_o the_o centurion_n before_o he_o verse_n 39_o second_o our_o saviour_n christ_n utter_v these_o last_o word_n father_n into_o thy_o hand_n i_o commend_v my_o spirit_n with_o like_a loud_a voice_n as_o he_o do_v those_o my_o god_n my_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o that_o it_o may_v evident_o appear_v that_o he_o continue_v yet_o in_o the_o same_o dolour_n and_o distress_n nevertheless_o in_o the_o three_o place_n he_o will_v make_v it_o know_v undoubted_o in_o his_o church_n to_o all_o believe_a christian_n that_o howsoever_o his_o suffering_n be_v exceed_o great_a yet_o he_o do_v nothing_o doubt_v of_o his_o prevail_a against_o they_o nor_o of_o his_o die_v in_o peace_n so_o that_o i_o say_v even_o for_o this_o cause_n also_o we_o may_v well_o conceive_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o put_v the_o matter_n out_o of_o all_o doubt_n will_v the_o rather_o as_o mighty_o utter_v these_o word_n which_o be_v most_o clear_a word_n of_o a_o most_o perfect_a and_o lively_a faith_n father_n into_o thy_o hand_n i_o commend_v my_o spirit_n as_o those_o former_a word_n my_o god_n my_o god_n etc._n etc._n according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o our_o saviour_n john_n 11.41.42_o father_n etc._n etc._n i_o know_v thou_o hear_v i_o always_o but_o because_o of_o the_o people_n that_o stand_v by_o i_o say_v it_o that_o they_o may_v believe_v that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o and_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n let_v we_o now_o after_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o loudness_n of_o the_o voice_n come_v in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o consider_v of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n themselves_o and_o herein_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o first_o place_n be_v worthy_a to_o be_v principal_o weigh_v of_o we_o that_o as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n call_v god_n his_o father_n at_o his_o heavy_a entrance_n into_o his_o suffering_n father_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a let_v this_o cup_n pass_v from_o i_o and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o father_n forgive_v they_o for_o they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o do_v so_o he_o do_v now_o in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o they_o call_v god_n his_o father_n father_n say_v he_o into_o thy_o hand●_n i_o commend_v my_o spirit_n neither_o do_v he_o call_v he_o so_o either_o then_o or_o now_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n and_o because_o he_o be_v the_o natural_a &_o eternal_a son_n of_o the_o father_n only_o but_o rather_o in_o regard_n of_o that_o love_n and_o favour_n which_o he_o be_v assure_v of_o from_o he_o on_o our_o behalf_n even_o in_o respect_n of_o this_o that_o he_o be_v the_o natural_a son_n of_o frail_a man_n have_v take_v our_o nature_n to_o his_o divine_a nature_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o one_o person_n of_o a_o mediator_n and_o therein_o have_v fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n and_o now_o at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n utter_v these_o his_o last_o word_n have_v even_o perfect_v his_o suffering_n for_o our_o sin_n to_o the_o full_a satisfaction_n of_o the_o divine_a justice_n and_o to_o the_o reconcile_n &_o reduce_v of_o we_o into_o the_o most_o gracious_a and_o bless_a favour_n of_o god_n in_o these_o respect_n i_o say_v do_v he_o with_o most_o full_a &_o perfect_a assurance_n of_o the_o most_o full_a and_o perfect_a love_n of_o god_n both_o towards_o himself_o and_o for_o his_o sake_n towards_o all_o who_o he_o have_v redeem_v &_o reconcile_v call_v he_o by_o the_o name_n of_o father_n and_o in_o the_o same_o assurance_n do_v he_o commend_v his_o spirit_n that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o soul_n for_o so●s_v the_o word_n spirit_n use_v often_o as_o 1._o cor._n 6.20_o act._n
we_o be_v to_o consider_v of_o even_o until_o the_o body_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v to_o be_v take_v down_o from_o the_o cross_n they_o only_o be_v now_o behind_o for_o as_o touch_v that_o which_o follow_v of_o joseph_n it_o may_v be_v fit_o refer_v to_o the_o act_n itself_o of_o the_o take_n down_o of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o saviour_n because_o he_o be_v the_o next_o and_o immediate_a instrument_n of_o the_o procure_n of_o it_o question_n wherefore_o before_o we_o come_v to_o that_o point_n of_o the_o story_n what_o be_v that_o which_o be_v record_v concern_v the_o deal_n of_o those_o special_a soldier_n to_o who_o be_v commit_v the_o break_n of_o the_o bone_n of_o the_o crucify_a body_n answer_n it_o follow_v in_o the_o evangelist_n john_n the_o 19_o chap._n from_o the_o 32._o verse_n to_o the_o 38._o in_o these_o word_n 32._o then_o come_v the_o soldier_n and_o break_v the_o leg_n of_o the_o first_o and_o of_o the_o other_o which_o be_v crucify_v with_o he_o 33_o but_o when_o they_o come_v to_o jesus_n and_o see_v that_o he_o be_v dead_a already_o they_o break_v not_o his_o leg_n 34_o but_o one_o of_o the_o soldier_n with_o a_o spear_n pierce_v his_o side_n and_o forthwith_o there_o come_v out_o water_n and_o blood_n 35_o and_o he_o that_o see_v it_o bear_v record_v and_o his_o record_n be_v true_a and_o he_o know_v that_o he_o say_v true_a that_o you_o may_v believe_v it_o 36._o for_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v fulfil_v not_o a_o bone_n of_o he_o shall_v be_v break_v 37_o and_o again_o another_o scripture_n say_v they_o shall_v see_v he_o who_o they_o have_v thrust_v through_o explication_n explication_n in_o these_o word_n the_o holy_a evangelist_n declare_v what_o follow_v upon_o the_o suit_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o pilate_n and_o we_o have_v these_o five_o thing_n to_o observe_v in_o they_o first_o that_o upon_o the_o commission_n or_o commandment_n of_o pilate_n who_o grant_v the_o suit_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o soldier_n to_o who_o the_o execution_n appertain_v break_v the_o leg_n both_o of_o the_o one_o and_o of_o the_o other_o of_o those_o that_o be_v crucify_v with_o our_o saviour_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o break_v the_o bone_n of_o the_o low_a part_n of_o their_o leg_n betwixt_o the_o knee_n &_o the_o ankle_n as_o the_o greek_a word_n signify_v the_o which_o part_n also_o be_v more_o apt_a &_o easy_a to_o be_v break_v with_o some_o bat_n or_o cudgel_n tascel●_n tascel●_n which_o it_o be_v like_a they_o use_v to_o that_o end_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o that_o part_n of_o the_o execution_n verse_n 32._o second_o we_o be_v to_o observe_v that_o contrary_a to_o the_o custom_n and_o request_n of_o the_o jew_n he_o leg_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v not_o break_v verse_n 33._o three_o that_o moreover_o and_o beside_o the_o custom_n his_o side_n be_v pierce_v even_o to_o the_o heart_n as_o the_o effect_n follow_v upon_o it_o show_v insomuch_o as_o both_o blood_n and_o water_n issue_v as_o be_v most_o likely_a from_o it_o the_o water_n from_o betwixt_o the_o membrane_n or_o thick_a skin_n that_o compass_v the_o heart_n itself_o wherein_o usual_o water_n be_v contain_v for_o the_o cool_n of_o the_o heart_n as_o anatomist_n and_o physician_n have_v by_o experience_n observe_v the_o blood_n from_o the_o pierce_a of_o the_o heart_n itself_o and_o from_o some_o other_o passage_n the_o blood_n not_o be_v as_o yet_o cold_a nor_o congeal_v v._o 34._o four_o we_o have_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o evangelist_n to_o observe_v his_o earnest_a asseveration_n or_o testify_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o these_o thing_n verse_n 35._o five_o the_o reason_n how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o both_o contrary_n to_o the_o custom_n the_o leg_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v not_o break_v and_o also_o how_o contrary_a and_o beside_o custom_n his_o side_n be_v thrust_v through_o verse_n 36.37_o of_o these_o thing_n therefore_o let_v we_o a_o little_a more_o full_o consider_v for_o our_o further_a instruction_n as_o the_o matter_n itself_o in_o either_o branch_n shall_v more_o or_o less_o require_v and_o first_o beside_o that_o which_o have_v be_v observe_v already_o touch_v the_o break_n of_o the_o leg_n of_o both_o the_o thief_n let_v we_o only_o consider_v that_o howsoever_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n have_v put_v the_o great_a difference_n that_o may_v be_v betwixt_o thief_n and_o thief_n even_o as_o great_a difference_n as_o betwixt_o heaven_n and_o hell_n yet_o as_o touch_v the_o outward_a punishment_n of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n they_o be_v as_o like_v as_o one_o egg_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n be_v to_o another_o neither_o will_v the_o lord_n put_v any_o difference_n in_o this_o behalf_n not_o that_o he_o mind_v to_o take_v the_o punishment_n of_o the_o convert_a thief_n for_o any_o satisfaction_n to_o his_o divine_a justice_n more_o than_o of_o he_o that_o remain_v harden_v in_o his_o sin_n but_o that_o we_o may_v learn_v to_o depend_v upon_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n touch_v our_o salvation_n and_o not_o to_o measure_v his_o everlasting_a love_n and_o favour_n or_o his_o hatred_n and_o displeasure_n according_a to_o these_o outward_a trial_n and_o affliction_n whether_o we_o be_v exercise_v with_o they_o or_o be_v free_v from_o they_o second_o concern_v the_o not_o break_v of_o the_o leg_n of_o our_o saviour_n albeit_o the_o next_o and_o immediate_a reason_n thereof_o be_v unto_o the_o soldier_n that_o which_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o 33._o verse_n namely_o because_o he_o be_v dead_a already_o for_o see_v the_o break_n of_o the_o leg_n be_v inflict_v to_o accelerate_v and_o hasten_v death_n the●e_n be_v no_o cause_n why_o they_o shall_v deal_v so_o with_o our_o saviour_n insomuch_o as_o they_o perceive_v that_o he_o be_v already_o perfect_o dead_a though_o the_o thief_n leg_n be_v break_v see_v they_o be_v yet_o live_v nevertheless_o if_o there_o have_v not_o be_v another_o cause_n of_o great_a force_n though_o in_o itself_o further_o remove_v as_o be_v mention_v verse_n 36._o the_o fear_n of_o the_o jew_n complaint_n to_o pilate_n and_o of_o pilate_n displeasure_n for_o not_o fulfil_v his_o commandment_n will_v easy_o have_v move_v they_o to_o have_v do_v to_o our_o saviour_n like_a as_o they_o have_v do_v to_o the_o other_o in_o outward_a course_n though_o there_o be_v not_o the_o like_a inward_a cause_n and_o how_o hardly_o they_o be_v restrain_v it_o may_v appear_v by_o that_o which_o follow_v in_o the_o three_o place_n in_o that_o spare_v his_o leg_n when_o they_o break_v the_o leg_n of_o the_o other_o they_o deep_o pierce_v &_o wound_v his_o side_n though_o they_o touch_v not_o they_o so_o they_o will_v make_v sure_a one_o way_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v dead_a indeed_o though_o they_o spare_v he_o in_o the_o other_o because_o they_o can_v not_o but_o very_o think_v that_o he_o be_v already_o dead_a and_o thus_o no_o doubt_n they_o think_v that_o they_o shall_v satisfy_v the_o jew_n and_o stay_v all_o further_a complaint_n that_o may_v have_v be_v make_v to_o their_o master_n for_o though_o it_o be_v but_o the_o act_n of_o one_o yet_o it_o may_v well_o be_v out_o of_o question_n that_o it_o be_v well_o enough_o like_v and_o have_v the_o consent_n of_o all_o but_o here_o also_o there_o be_v a_o high_a cause_n of_o this_o than_o all_o their_o own_o reason_n or_o will_v according_a to_o that_o we_o be_v to_o observe_v when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o 37._o verse_n who_o the_o soldier_n be_v that_o thrust_v our_o saviour_n into_o the_o side_n it_o matter_v not_o &_o therefore_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o his_o name_n it_o be_v a_o ignorant_a fiction_n of_o the_o popish_a that_o his_o name_n shall_v be_v longine_n belike_o because_o the_o name_n of_o a_o spear_n or_o iavelin_n in_o the_o greek_a be_v logche_v and_o he_o that_o carry_v the_o spear_n logchaios_n and_o in_o latin_a lancea_fw-la and_o lancearius_fw-la as_o if_o by_o the_o same_o dexterity_n of_o their_o skill_n they_o shall_v tell_v we_o that_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thief_n convert_v be_v lestine_n because_o the_o greek_a word_n leiste_n signify_v a_o thief_n or_o a_o robber_n it_o be_v also_o as_o unconscionable_a and_o fabulous_a a_o lie_n in_o that_o they_o affirm_v that_o this_o longine_n or_o howsoever_o they_o will_v call_v he_o be_v blind_a when_o he_o pierce_v the_o side_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o that_o he_o be_v restore_v to_o his_o sight_n by_o wash_v his_o eye_n with_o the_o blood_n and_o water_n which_o flow_v out_o of_o our_o saviour_n side_n and_o so_o become_v a_o christian_a forthwith_o and_o afterward_o a_o martyr_n this_o be_v in_o those_o day_n when_o they_o make_v blind_a man_n soldier_n because_o
body_n of_o our_o saviour_n from_o the_o cross_n the_o time_n when_o it_o be_v the_o person_n by_o who_o it_o be_v procure_v and_o the_o manner_n how_o perform_v principal_o yea_o in_o a_o manner_n sole_o by_o joseph_n the_o burial_n follow_v wherein_o nicodemus_n have_v a_o honourable_a partenership_n with_o he_o as_o the_o evangelist_n john_n declare_v and_o as_o we_o have_v already_o rehearse_v out_o of_o his_o text_n nevertheless_o because_o he_o be_v just_o to_o be_v account_v the_o first_o and_o principal_n in_o this_o duty_n also_o let_v we_o begin_v with_o he_o and_o see_v what_o the_o other_o evangelist_n do_v say_v more_o a_o part_n of_o he_o and_o then_o we_o will_v come_v to_o consider_v of_o that_o which_o the_o evangelist_n john_n record_v of_o nicodomus_n apart_o and_o also_o joint_o both_o of_o joseph_n and_o nicodemus_n together_o first_o therefore_o question_n what_o do_v the_o other_o evangelist_n report_v concern_v joseph_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o burial_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o saviour_n answer_n the_o word_n of_o saint_n matthew_n follow_v thus_o in_o the_o holy_a story_n as_o we_o read_v chap_n 27._o verse_n 59.60_o mat_n 27._o verse_n 59_o so_o joseph_n take_v the_o body_n and_o wrap_v it_o in_o a_o fair_a linen_n cloth_n 60._o and_o he_o put_v it_o in_o his_o new_a tomb_n which_o he_o have_v hew_v out_o in_o a_o rock_n and_o roll_v a_o great_a stone_n to_o the_o door_n of_o the_o sepulchre_n and_o depart_v the_o word_n of_o saint_n mark_v be_v these_o chap_n 15._o verse_n 46._o mark_v 1●_n 46_o pilate_n give_v the_o body_n to_o joseph_n who_o buy_v a_o linen_n cloth_n and_o lay_v he_o in_o a_o tomb_n that_o be_v hew_v out_o of_o a_o rock_n and_o roll_v a_o stone_n unto_o the_o door_n of_o the_o sepulchre_n the_o word_n of_o saint_n luke_n be_v these_o chap_n 23.53_o joseph_n take_v down_o the_o body_n and_o wrap_v it_o in_o linen_n clothe_v and_o lay_v it_o in_o a_o tomb_n hew_v out_o of_o a_o rock_n wherein_o be_v never_o any_o man_n yet_o lay_v 54._o and_o that_o day_n be_v the_o preparation_n and_o the_o sabbath_n draw_v on_o thus_o than_o we_o see_v how_o the_o story_n be_v set_v down_o by_o these_o three_o body_n the_o ground_n and_o history_n of_o the_o burial_n of_o his_o body_n under_o the_o name_n of_o joseph_n alone_o because_o he_o be_v the_o principal_a let_v we_o therefore_o consider_v first_o of_o that_o which_o do_v proper_o belong_v to_o he_o and_o then_o of_o that_o which_o be_v proper_o belong_v to_o nicodemus_n and_o last_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o by_o saint_n john_n be_v attribute_v to_o they_o both_o that_o which_o be_v ascribe_v as_o proper_a to_o joseph_n be_v first_o that_o he_o come_v from_o pilate_n after_o he_o have_v obtain_v his_o suit_n that_o he_o may_v have_v the_o take_n down_o &_o bestow_v of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o sa_o in_o the_o way_n as_o he_o come_v through_o the_o city_n buy_v and_o bring_v with_o he_o such_o a_o quantity_n of_o fine_a linen_n as_o be_v full_o sufficient_a in_o the_o best_a &_o most_o seemly_a manner_n to_o be_v employ_v about_o this_o business_n in_o which_o respect_n the_o evangelist_n john_n speak_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n that_o he_o have_v prepare_v linen_n clothes_n chap_n 19.40_o and_o again_o chap_n 20.7_o second_o whereas_o the_o same_o evangelist_n john_n write_v that_o near_o to_o the_o place_n where_o our_o saviour_n be_v crucify_v there_o be_v a_o garden_n and_o in_o that_o garden_n a_o new_a sepulchre_n wherein_o be_v never_o yet_o any_o man_n lay_v it_o seem_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o evangelist_n matthew_n that_o both_o the_o garden_n be_v belong_v to_o joseph_n and_o also_o that_o the_o tomb_n hew_v out_o of_o a_o rock_n be_v the_o tomb_n which_o joseph_n have_v prepare_v for_o himself_o or_o at_o the_o least_o for_o some_o of_o near_a and_o special_a acaccount_n with_o he_o that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o nicodemus_n concern_v the_o burial_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n body_n be_v that_o he_o bring_v a_o great_a quantity_n even_o about_o a_o hundred_o pound_n weight_n of_o myrrh_n and_o aloe_n mingle_v together_o such_o spice_n as_o be_v use_v about_o the_o burial_n of_o the_o dead_a have_v a_o sweeten_v and_o preservative_n quality_n in_o they_o usual_o employ_v in_o this_o kind_n of_o duty_n towards_o the_o dead_a to_o nourish_v in_o themselves_o yet_o live_v the_o hope_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o thereby_o also_o to_o encourage_v themselves_o against_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n to_o the_o which_o end_n likewise_o they_o use_v to_o wash_v the_o body_n of_o the_o depart_a and_o to_o do_v other_o office_n of_o solemnity_n as_o may_v appear_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n record_v the_o manner_n of_o burial_n among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n gen_n 50._o verse_n 2._o and_o 26._o read_v also_o act_n 9.37_o the_o which_o like_a enough_o shall_v have_v be_v do_v with_o a_o more_o full_a solemnity_n save_v that_o as_o the_o evangelist_n express_v the_o sabbath_n draw_v on_o and_o the_o evening_n be_v even_o at_o hand_n when_o with_o they_o the_o sabbath_n begin_v neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v omit_v concern_v nicodemus_n that_o the_o evangelist_n john_n testify_v that_o howsoever_o at_o the_o first_o he_o be_v timorous_a and_o fearful_a as_o he_o remembre●h_v from_o his_o first_o come_v to_o our_o saviour_n which_o be_v by_o night_n for_o fear_n of_o his_o fellow_n pharisy_n and_o ruler_n according_a to_o that_o we_o read_v chap_n 3.1.2_o yet_o afterward_o grow_v somewhat_o more_o bold_a as_o we_o read_v chap_n 7.50.51_o god_n give_v he_o now_o a_o excellent_a courage_n in_o profess_v so_o open_o his_o singular_a reverence_n towards_o our_o saviour_n that_o it_o can_v be_v obscure_a and_o hide_a to_o any_o but_o that_o he_o be_v from_o his_o heart_n a_o faithful_a and_o true_a disciple_n of_o he_o and_o this_o fact_n of_o he_o as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o of_o joseph_n be_v even_o as_o much_o as_o if_o the_o one_o as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o be_v willing_a to_o put_v their_o whole_a state_n in_o hazard_n rather_o than_o they_o will_v fail_v in_o this_o declaration_n of_o their_o love_n towards_o our_o and_o their_o bless_v lord_n and_o saviour_n but_o now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v joint_o ascribe_v both_o to_o joseph_n and_o nicodemus_n in_o this_o honourable_a duty_n of_o the_o burial_n of_o our_o saviour_n first_o as_o the_o evangelist_n john_n say_v they_o together_o with_o their_o company_n which_o they_o bring_v with_o they_o to_o help_v in_o their_o business_n take_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n and_o wrap_v it_o in_o linen_n clothes_n with_o the_o odour_n as_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v to_o bury_v second_o they_o by_o their_o servant_n yea_o so_o far_o as_o be_v needful_a no_o doubt_n not_o stand_v aloof_o but_o set_v their_o own_o hand_n to_o the_o work_n do_v in_o seemly_a manner_n carry_v &_o accompany_v he_o to_o the_o garden_n which_o be_v not_o far_o off_o from_o the_o place_n where_o he_o be_v crucify_v three_o they_o lay_v he_o in_o that_o new_a sepulchre_n mention_v before_o wherein_o never_o any_o be_v yet_o bury_v final_o they_o cover_v the_o tomb_n with_o a_o stone_n yea_o a_o very_a heavy_a one_o as_o may_v appear_v by_o this_o that_o though_o they_o have_v some_o company_n with_o they_o yet_o it_o be_v of_o that_o weight_n that_o they_o can_v not_o well_o remove_v it_o but_o by_o turn_v it_o over_o and_o over_o till_o they_o have_v get_v it_o on_o the_o sepulchre_n and_o so_o say_v the_o evangelist_n mark_v express_o cap._n 16.4_o that_o the_o stone_n be_v a_o very_a great_a one_o which_o do_v as_o the_o evangelist_n matthew_n say_v they_o depart_v such_o therefore_o be_v the_o history_n of_o the_o burial_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o which_o the_o lord_n god_n will_v in_o his_o divine_a providence_n have_v to_o be_v perform_v in_o a_o reverend_a and_o honourable_a manner_n by_o these_o reverend_a and_o honourable_a person_n for_o notwithstanding_o his_o burial_n be_v a_o further_a confirmation_n of_o his_o very_a true_a death_n a_o matter_n most_o necessary_a both_o to_o be_v suffer_v of_o our_o saviour_n as_o have_v be_v declare_v &_o also_o to_o be_v believe_v of_o we_o and_o so_o be_v consequent_o though_o without_o all_o sense_n of_o pain_n a_o remainder_n of_o his_o humiliation_n in_o that_o his_o body_n be_v to_o remain_v in_o the_o state_n of_o the_o dead_a even_o in_o as_o sound_v a_o sleep_n as_o be_v ascribe_v to_o their_o body_n and_o to_o lie_v in_o the_o grave_n as_o under_o the_o power_n of_o death_n though_o not_o corrupt_v nor_o subject_n to_o corruption_n as_o all_o other_o body_n
〈◊〉_d ever_o our_o saviour_n be_v most_o grievous_o trouble_v and_o heavy_a eu●n_n to_o the_o death_n under_o the_o horror_n of_o god_n most_o heavy_a indignation_n bend_v against_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n do_v as_o we_o have_v see_v more_o at_o large_a before_o of_o humane_a infirmity_n yet_o without_o sin_n pray_v that_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a the_o same_o cup_n of_o god_n wrath_n may_v pass_v away_o &_o not_o be_v drink_v of_o he_o yet_o he_o present_o recover_v himself_o like_a as_o the_o sun_n be_v for_o a_o while_n shadow_v by_o some_o dark_a and_o thick_a cloud_n break_v forth_o and_o show_v that_o it_o have_v lose_v no_o part_n of_o the_o light_n it_o have_v before_o and_o he_o submit_v his_o will_n thus_o trouble_v to_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o determined_a will_n of_o god_n and_o thus_o though_o he_o be_v by_o the_o pass_a vehemency_n of_o the_o temptation_n terrible_o shake_v in_o his_o soul_n yet_o be_v it_o but_o as_o the_o shake_n of_o most_o pure_a and_o clarify_a water_n in_o a_o crystal_n glass_n which_o can_v by_o any_o trouble_v or_o shuffle_n of_o it_o too_o and_o fro_o be_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o sullied_a and_o roar_v insomuch_o as_o there_o be_v no_o whit_n of_o soil_n or_o dregs_n in_o the_o bottom_n of_o it_o but_o that_o we_o may_v return_v to_o the_o second_o branch_n of_o the_o former_a answer_n wherein_o as_o be_v say_v we_o may_v in_o the_o second_o place_n observe_v the_o present_a mind_n and_o most_o holy_a wisdom_n and_o undaunted_a valour_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o all_o his_o behaviour_n towards_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o suffering_n first_o let_v we_o observe_v what_o it_o be_v towards_o his_o disciple_n that_o be_v with_o how_o singular_a love_n and_o in_o how_o tender_a pity_n and_o compassion_n it_o be_v manifest_v towards_o they_o question_n wherein_o may_v this_o be_v discern_v answer_n in_o this_o respect_n the_o present_a mind_n and_o most_o excellent_a wisdom_n of_o our_o saviour_n shine_v bright_o in_o this_o that_o as_o the_o time_n of_o his_o suffering_n approach_v near_o he_o do_v the_o more_o often_o preadmonish_v &_o acquaint_v his_o disciple_n with_o the_o predication_n and_o foretell_v of_o they_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v not_o be_v altogether_o sudden_a and_o unlooked_a for_o and_o so_o the_o more_o uncomfortable_a unto_o they_o the_o present_a mind_n of_o our_o saviour_n together_o with_o his_o singular_a wisdom_n and_o tender_a love_n to_o his_o disciple_n be_v evident_a likewise_o in_o this_o that_o when_o the_o time_n be_v at_o hand_n indeed_o then_o do_v he_o show_v himself_o most_o cheerful_a in_o hearten_v of_o they_o howsoever_o in_o ●ome_v consideration_n he_o carry_v a_o very_a heavy_a heart_n in_o his_o own_o most_o wise_a and_o holy_a bosom_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n it_o be_v true_a and_o thereupon_o do_v the_o evangelist_n john_n give_v this_o testimony_n of_o our_o saviour_n that_o he_o love_v those_o that_o be_v his_o own_o in_o the_o world_n even_o unto_o the_o end_n so_o long_o as_o he_o live_v with_o they_o john_n 13.1_o the_o declaration_n and_o constancy_n of_o which_o tenderness_n of_o the_o love_n of_o our_o saviour_n insomuch_o as_o it_o be_v most_o plentiful_o testify_v at_o the_o celebration_n of_o that_o passeover_n in_o the_o which_o he_o be_v immediate_o to_o suffer_v as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o 13._o chap._n of_o john_n from_o the_o 2._o verse_n even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 17._o chapter_n and_o by_o some_o other_o testimony_n of_o the_o other_o evangelist_n let_v we_o as_o brief_o and_o as_o orderly_o as_o we_o can_v collect_v and_o gather_v they_o together_o question_n how_o may_v this_o be_v do_v answer_n the_o most_o tender_a and_o constant_a love_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o his_o disciple_n and_o consequent_o even_o to_o his_o whole_a church_n be_v evident_a in_o this_o that_o no_o premeditation_n of_o his_o suffering_n which_o he_o know_v must_v needs_o be_v most_o grievous_a and_o that_o only_a for_o their_o and_o our_o sin_n and_o for_o that_o sin_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o god_n elect_v and_o nothing_o at_o all_o for_o any_o default_n of_o his_o own_o can_v possible_o diminish_v his_o love_n no_o though_o he_o have_v already_o begin_v to_o taste_v the_o extreme_a bitterness_n of_o they_o proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n so_o in_o deed_n we_o read_v joh._n 12.27_o and_o very_o it_o be_v a_o lively_a proof_n of_o a_o more_o perfect_a love_n than_o the_o tender_a and_o love_a mother_n can_v bear_v to_o her_o child_n while_o the_o sorrow_n of_o child_n bear_v be_v yet_o fresh_a in_o her_o mind_n and_o which_o of_o we_o if_o so_o be_v we_o know_v that_o we_o must_v die_v though_o the_o gentle_a death_n that_o may_v be_v for_o any_o other_o man_n cause_n can_v love_v and_o delight_n in_o that_o party_n for_o who_o offence_n we_o must_v die_v but_o special_o if_o he_o be_v a_o wicked_a man_n and_o a_o enemy_n unto_o we_o according_a to_o that_o rom._n 5._o verse_n 6.7.8_o yet_o our_o saviour_n die_v for_o we_o and_o for_o all_o other_o of_o he_o though_o we_o be_v both_o by_o nature_n and_o in_o transgression_n of_o our_o life_n such_o as_o we_o speak_v of_o but_o let_v we_o go_v forward_o how_o do_v our_o saviour_n furthermore_o declare_v the_o same_o his_o most_o tender_a love_n question_n he_o have_v do_v it_o diverse_a other_o way_n answer_n and_o first_o by_o wash_v his_o disciple_n foot_n as_o it_o follow_v john_n chap._n 13._o verse_n 4.5_o etc._n etc._n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o this_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v account_v of_o we_o a_o admirable_a declaration_n of_o his_o incomparable_a love_n for_o assure_o whosoever_o be_v a_o superior_a can_v find_v in_o his_o heart_n to_o wash_v the_o foot_n of_o his_o inferior_a the_o which_o no_o doubt_n according_a to_o the_o use_n of_o that_o country_n be_v a_o office_n perform_v of_o the_o inferior_a to_o the_o superior_a when_o a_o guest_n be_v entertain_v of_o the_o master_n of_o the_o family_n and_o a_o far_o more_o mean_a office_n then_o to_o pour_v the_o ewer_n at_o the_o wash_n of_o hand_n after_o meat_n it_o be_v a_o certain_a argument_n that_o he_o love_v he_o well_o infinite_o much_o rather_o then_o must_v it_o be_v conceive_v that_o insomuch_o as_o i●_n please_v our_o saviour_n though_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o master_n of_o his_o disciple_n and_o know_v well_o his_o sovereignty_n over_o they_o thus_o far_o to_o abase_v himself_o that_o it_o be_v a_o singular_a declaration_n of_o his_o most_o dear_a love_n towards_o they_o question_n but_o be_v this_o the_o only_a cause_n why_o he_o do_v so_o answer_n it_o be_v not_o the_o only_a cause_n though_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a and_o principal_n as_o the_o evangelist_n saint_n john_n give_v to_o understand_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o 13._o chapter_n question_n you_o say_v well_o but_o for_o our_o further_a instruction_n what_o other_o cause_n move_v our_o saviour_n so_o to_o do_v answer_n he_o do_v it_o to_o show_v they_o that_o as_o they_o have_v the_o beginning_n of_o their_o sanctification_n from_o he_o so_o they_o be_v to_o seek_v for_o their_o continuance_n and_o increase_n therein_o from_o he_o and_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o mediation_n alone_o he_o do_v it_o likewise_o to_o give_v they_o a_o example_n of_o true_a humility_n and_o in_o humility_n of_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o office_n of_o love_n one_o to_o another_o and_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n these_o cause_n be_v evident_a from_o the_o explication_n of_o our_o saviour_n himself_o first_o verse_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n 8.9.10_o for_o to_o this_o end_n he_o say_v to_o peter_n who_o of_o modesty_n or_o civility_n refuse_v for_o a_o while_n to_o have_v his_o foot_n wash_v that_o if_o he_o do_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o wash_v his_o foot_n he_o shall_v have_v no_o part_n in_o he_o and_o touch_v the_o second_o our_o saviour_n do_v further_a express_v it_o from_o the_o 12._o verse_n to_o the_o 18._o and_o he_o stand_v the_o more_o full_o to_o instruct_v his_o disciple_n in_o this_o point_n of_o humility_n in_o themselves_o and_o of_o their_o mutual_a love_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o duty_n thereof_o because_o they_o be_v to_o be_v the_o teacher_n of_o humility_n and_o of_o the_o practice_n of_o love_n to_o all_o other_o for_o these_o be_v common_a duty_n belong_v to_o all_o christian_n without_o exception_n whereunto_o that_o our_o saviour_n may_v the_o rather_o induce_v his_o disciple_n he_o pronounce_v a_o blessing_n upon_o they_o if_o according_a as_o they_o be_v instruct_v by_o he_o they_o will_v perform_v and_o practice_v they_o but_o this_o belong_v to_o
glorify_v in_o he_o god_n will_v also_o glorify_v he_o in_o himself_o yea_o he_o will_v straight_o way_n glorify_v he_o proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n these_o word_n indeed_o be_v speak_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o suffering_n which_o our_o saviour_n be_v short_o after_o he_o speak_v of_o they_o to_o endure_v and_o moreover_o in_o that_o he_o say_v god_n be_v glorify_v in_o the_o son_n and_o god_n will_v glorify_v he_o in_o himself_o he_o preach_v therein_o his_o own_o deity_n and_o so_o lay_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o doctrine_n follow_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o next_o chapter_n that_o they_o shall_v therefore_o believe_v in_o he_o as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o father_n as_o we_o have_v see_v it_o open_v and_o declare_v before_o furthermore_o our_o saviour_n in_o this_o 13._o chapter_n tell_v his_o disciple_n of_o his_o departure_n from_o they_o first_o by_o death_n and_o then_o his_o ascension_n up_o into_o heaven_n and_o that_o they_o be_v to_o stay_v a_o while_n here_o in_o this_o world_n after_o he_o he_o do_v therewithal_o comfort_v they_o in_o this_o that_o they_o shall_v afterward_o in_o the_o time_n appoint_v of_o god_n follow_v he_o and_o be_v for_o ever_o with_o he_o this_o also_o he_o do_v further_o confirm_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n as_o it_o follow_v in_o our_o text_n even_o from_o the_o first_o word_n of_o the_o same_o and_o again_o verse_n 19_o yet_o a_o little_a while_n and_o the_o world_n shall_v see_v i_o no_o more_o but_o you_o shall_v see_v i_o because_o i_o live_v you_o shall_v live_v also_o at_o that_o day_n shall_v you_o know_v that_o i_o be_o in_o my_o father_n and_o you_o in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o you_o and_o verse_n 28.29_o you_o have_v hear_v how_o i_o say_v i_o go_v away_o and_o will_v come_v unto_o you_o if_o you_o love_v i_o you_o will_v very_o rejoice_v because_o i_o say_v i_o go_v to_o the_o father_n for_o my_o father_n be_v great_a than_o 1_n our_o saviour_n mean_v this_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o humanity_n and_o office_n of_o mediation_n for_o otherwise_o as_o he_o be_v god_n he_o be_v equal_a with_o the_o father_n as_o his_o own_o word_n in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o evangelist_n do_v plain_o show_v and_o namely_o in_o this_o very_a chapter_n as_o a_o learned_a interpreter_n observe_v by_o many_o that_o be_v piscator_fw-la piscator_fw-la almost_o by_o twenty_o reason_n and_o here_o also_o this_o be_v worthy_o to_o be_v observe_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n at_o this_o time_n meditate_v of_o his_o humiliation_n and_o death_n do_v comfort_n himself_o in_o the_o behold_n of_o that_o glory_n which_o be_v set_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o his_o faith_n verse_n 13._o as_o also_o before_o chap._n 12._o verse_n 23.31.32_o and_o afterward_o chap._n 17.4.5_o the_o which_o thing_n also_o the_o apostle_n observe_v heb._n 12.2_o likewise_o no_o less_o worthy_a be_v it_o to_o be_v observe_v on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o at_o such_o time_n as_o he_o be_v for_o the_o present_a in_o glory_n to_o wit_n at_o his_o transfiguration_n and_o at_o his_o ride_n to_o jerusalem_n when_o the_o people_n both_o old_a and_o young_a yield_v the_o honour_n of_o a_o king_n unto_o he_o he_o do_v even_o then_o join_v with_o this_o the_o meditation_n of_o the_o same_o his_o suffering_n and_o death_n and_o cease_v not_o to_o renew_v the_o speech_n of_o they_o not_o only_o for_o his_o disciple_n sake_n to_o pull_v away_o their_o mind_n from_o their_o conceit_n about_o a_o earthly_a kingdom_n but_o also_o that_o he_o may_v the_o better_o prepare_v his_o own_o heart_n to_o the_o willing_a &_o patient_a endure_v of_o they_o read_v also_o luk._n 9_o verse_n 43.44_o this_o example_n of_o our_o saviour_n that_o we_o may_v by_o the_o way_n note_v a_o duty_n among_o the_o comfort_n be_v not_o only_o to_o be_v admire_v of_o we_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o wisdom_n in_o this_o his_o practice_n but_o also_o to_o be_v imitate_v and_o follow_v of_o we_o in_o our_o measure_n and_o degree_n to_o the_o end_n we_o be_v neither_o too_o much_o puff_v up_o when_o we_o be_v in_o prosperity_n and_o honour_n etc._n etc._n neither_o yet_o too_o much_o deject_a and_o cast_v down_o or_o discourage_v in_o our_o mind_n when_o we_o shall_v fall_v into_o any_o adversity_n moreover_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v for_o our_o comfort_n concern_v the_o suffering_n and_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n that_o both_o in_o this_o and_o also_o in_o the_o chapter_n follow_v he_o show_v that_o the_o comfort_n as_o well_o of_o his_o resurrection_n as_o of_o his_o ascension_n do_v depend_v upon_o his_o death_n insomuch_o as_o his_o death_n general_o the_o comfort_n of_o his_o suffering_n more_o general_o be_v a_o necessary_a passage_n unto_o they_o both_o for_o himself_o first_o and_o then_o also_o for_o we_o by_o he_o yea_o so_o necessary_a that_o if_o he_o have_v not_o die_v he_o can_v neither_o have_v rise_v again_o nor_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n whence_o it_o be_v that_o our_o saviour_n from_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o one_o do_v argue_v the_o comfort_n of_o the_o other_o as_o ch_z 16._o verse_n 5._o &c_n &c_n 22._o and_o as_o we_o see_v before_o ch_n 13._o verse_n 12.24_o 25.26_o ●2_n and_o thus_o we_o see_v after_o what_o manner_n our_o saviour_n comfort_v his_o disciple_n against_o the_o sorrow_n of_o his_o death_n and_o departure_n out_o of_o this_o world_n the_o which_o ground_n of_o their_o comfort_n may_v likewise_o be_v just_o the_o ground_n &_o warrant_v of_o our_o comfort_n and_o of_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n show_v you_o now_o likewise_o how_o he_o comfort_v they_o and_o how_o we_o ourselves_o may_v take_v comfort_n against_o our_o own_o trouble_n and_o affliction_n or_o persecution_n of_o this_o world_n question_n where_o be_v this_o contain_v answer_n our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v this_o first_o of_o all_o more_o brief_o verse_n 18_o of_o this_o 14._o chap._n of_o john_n i_o will_v not_o leave_v you_o comfortless_o say_v he_o but_o i_o will_v come_v unto_o you_o and_o then_o verse_n 27._o peace_n i_o leave_v with_o you_o my_o peace_n i_o give_v unto_o you_o not_o as_o the_o world_n give_v give_v i_o unto_o you_o let_v not_o your_o heart_n be_v trouble_v nor_o fear_n ●ut_fw-la mo●e_n at_o large_a in_o the_o 15._o chap._n from_o the_o 18._o verse_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n and_o that_o by_o many_o reason_n the_o which_o his_o comfortable_a speech_n he_o do_v also_o furthermore_o prosecute_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 16._o ch_z verse_n 1_o 2_o ●_o 4_o and_o thenceforth_o he_o return_v again_o to_o com●ort_a ●is_n disciple_n against_o their_o sorrow_n concern_v his_o departure_n from_o they_o it_o be_v true_a as_o be_v observe_v not_o long_o since_o even_o from_o the_o 5._o verse_n to_o the_o 22._o but_o which_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v the_o reason_n whereby_o our_o saviour_n comfort_v his_o disciple_n against_o affliction_n and_o persecution_n of_o this_o world_n yea_o of_o the_o malignant_a church_n that_o be_v both_o in_o the_o world_n and_o also_o of_o the_o world_n as_o our_o saviour_n range_v it_o question_n which_o i_o say_v be_v these_o reason_n answer_n first_o our_o saviour_n say_v if_o the_o world_n hate_v you_o you_o know_v that_o it_o hate_v i_o before_o you_o verse_n 18_o the_o which_o reason_n he_o further_o amplifi_v in_o the_o 20._o verse_n in_o these_o word_n remember_v the_o word_n that_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o the_o servant_n be_v not_o great_a than_o his_o master_n if_o they_o have_v persecute_v i_o they_o will_v persecute_v you_o also_o if_o they_o have_v keep_v my_o word_n they_o will_v also_o keep_v you_o secondl●_o our_o saviour_n comfort_v his_o disciple_n against_o the_o persecution_n of_o this_o world_n from_o the_o excellency_n of_o their_o estate_n as_o be_v choose_v out_o of_o the_o world_n if_o you_o be_v of_o the_o world_n say_v our_o saviour_n the_o world_n will_v love_v his_o own_o but_o i_o have_v choose_v you_o out_o of_o the_o world_n therefore_o the_o worl●_n hate_v you_o three_o our_o sau_o our_o com●orte●h_n his_o disciple_n from_o the_o causeless_a ground_n of_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o wicked_a against_o they_o the_o which_o he_o show_v to_o be_v no_o better_o then_o mere_a wilful_a ignorance_n join_v with_o hatred_n and_o malice_n not_o only_o against_o they_o but_o also_o against_o christ_n and_o god_n the_o father_n himself_o whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v therein_o without_o all_o excuse_n and_o that_o they_o make_v themselves_o most_o miserable_a and_o damnable_a in_o that_o wherein_o they_o imagine_v they_o serve_v god_n proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n so_o indeed_o it_o follow_v verse_n ●1_n 22_o 23_o 24_o 25._o all_o these_o thing_n will_v they_o do_v
unto_o you_o for_o my_o name_n sake_n because_o they_o have_v not_o know_v he_o that_o send_v i_o if_o i_o have_v not_o come_v and_o speak_v to_o they_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v have_v sin_n but_o now_o they_o have_v no_o cloak_n for_o their_o sin_n etc._n etc._n but_o it_o be_v that_o the_o word_n may_v be_v fulfil_v that_o be_v write_v in_o their_o law_n they_o have_v hate_v i_o without_o cause_n question_n b●t_v the_o principal_a comfort_n be_v yet_o behind_o what_o be_v that_o answer_n our_o saviour_n christ_n promise_v his_o disciple_n the_o immediate_a comfort_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o corroborate_v and_o strengthen_v they_o to_o the_o cheerful_a endure_v of_o all_o persecution_n yea_o that_o he_o will_v to_o this_o end_n send_v the_o holy_a ghost_n unto_o they_o explication_n explication_n he_o do_v so_o indeed_o as_o it_o be_v plain_a ver_fw-la 26.27_o the_o last_o verse_n of_o the_o chap._n but_o when_o the_o comforter_n shall_v come_v who_o i_o say_v our_o saviour_n will_v send_v unto_o you_o from_o the_o father_n eu●n_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n which_o procee_v of_o the_o father_n he_o shall_v testify_v of_o i_o and_o you_o shall_v witness_v also_o because_o you_o have_v be_v with_o i_o from_o the_o beginning_n yea_o he_o assure_v they_o that_o this_o comfort_n shall_v be_v so_o great_a that_o it_o shall_v arm_v they_o both_o against_o that_o excommunication_n and_o also_o bodily_a death_n the_o great_a and_o most_o grievous_a censure_n that_o may_v be_v in_o this_o world_n which_o our_o saviour_n know_v before_o the_o malignant_a and_o false_a church_n will_v abuse_v against_o his_o true_a and_o faithful_a servant_n as_o it_o follow_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 16._o chapter_n verse_n 1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o as_o be_v mention_v before_o hitherto_o of_o the_o comfort_n wherewith_o our_o saviour_n comfort_v his_o disciple_n against_o the_o discomfort_n of_o trouble_n and_o persecution_n for_o he_o and_o his_o gospels_n s●ke_n the_o which_o we_o be_v diligent_o to_o mark_v and_o treasure_n up_o in_o our_o heart_n as_o the_o principal_a reason_n whereby_o we_o also_o be_v to_o comfort_v our_o own_o self_n whensoever_o we_o shall_v be_v exercise_v with_o like_a trial_n as_o all_o other_o of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n have_v do_v from_o time_n to_o time_n before_o we_o and_o thereby_o encourage_v themselves_o to_o endure_v such_o affliction_n as_o will_v otherwise_o have_v be_v intolerable_a unto_o they_o now_o let_v we_o consider_v of_o the_o other_o sort_n of_o comfort_n which_o our_o saviour_n show_v his_o disciple_n that_o his_o suffering_n and_o departure_n shall_v bring_v unto_o they_o in_o that_o thereby_o they_o shall_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o many_o special_a good_a benefit_n and_o blessing_n which_o shall_v abundant_o supply_v the_o want_n of_o his_o bodily_a presence_n even_o such_o as_o shall_v bring_v a_o further_a increase_n of_o comfort_n against_o the_o trouble_n and_o persecution_n of_o this_o world_n question_n which_o may_v these_o special_a good_a benefit_n and_o blessing_n be_v answer_n the_o last_o of_o the_o former_a sort_n may_v just_o be_v the_o first_o of_o these_o insomuch_o as_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o only_o the_o principal_a support_n of_o christian_n against_o the_o discomfiture_n of_o their_o trouble_n and_o persecution_n but_o it_o be_v also_o in_o itself_o the_o chief_a and_o principal_a blessing_n and_o benefit_n above_o all_o other_o proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n it_o be_v so_o indeed_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o our_o saviour_n do_v make_v so_o often_o mention_v of_o it_o as_o ch_z 14.16.17_o and_o v._o 26._o and_o ch_z 15.26_o ●s_v we_o see_v even_o now_o and_o yet_o against_o ch_n 16.6_o ●_o and_o so_o forth_o to_o the_o 16._o verse_n because_o say_v our_o saviour_n i_o have_v say_v these_o thing_n unto_o you_o your_o heart_n be_v full_a of_o sorrow_n yet_o i_o tell_v you_o the_o truth_n it_o be_v expedient_a for_o you_o that_o i_o do●_n go_v away_o for_o if_o i_o go_v not_o away_o the_o comforter_n will_v not_o come_v unto_o you_o but_o if_o i_o depart_v i_o will_v send_v he_o to_o you_o and_o when_o he_o be_v come_v he_o will_v reprove_v the_o world_n of_o sin_n etc._n etc._n and_o v._o 13._o when_o he_o be_v come_v who_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n he_o will_v lead_v you_o into_o all_o truth_n etc._n etc._n this_o then_o be_v the_o chief_a blessing_n &_o principal_a benefit_n above_o all_o the_o rest_n question_n what_o fruit_n else_o have_v the_o disciple_n of_o our_o saviour_n by_o the_o same_o his_o suffering_n &_o departure_n the_o which_o also_o be_v fruit_n &_o benefit_n to_o we_o &_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n answer_n if_o we_o shall_v true_o and_o constant_o believe_v in_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o willing_o suffer_v and_o die_v for_o we_o according_a to_o the_o most_o gracious_a and_o merciful_a good_a will_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o god_n will_v always_o hear_v our_o prayer_n he_o will_v work_v mighty_a thing_n by_o we_o and_o for_o us._n and_o final_o he_o will_v give_v we_o everlasting_a joy_n and_o blessedness_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n these_o indeed_o be_v brief_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o which_o though_o in_o a_o special_a degree_n the_o excellency_n &_o first_o fruit_n as_o we_o may_v say_v do_v belong_v and_o according_o be_v bestow_v upon_o those_o his_o choice_n disciple_n who_o our_o saviour_n send_v forth_o into_o the_o world_n to_o be_v his_o apostle_n and_o first_o preacher_n of_o his_o gospel_n yet_o they_o be_v and_o have_v be_v in_o a_o very_a comfortable_a manner_n and_o measure_n continue_v hitherto_o unto_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o world_n end_n as_o we_o may_v perceive_v from_o our_o saviour_n own_o word_n for_o as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o 14._o chap._n verse_n 12.13.14_o very_o very_o say_v our_o saviour_n i_o say_v unto_o you_o he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o the_o work_n that_o i_o do_v he_o shall_v do_v also_o and_o great_a than_o these_o shall_v he_o do_v our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o heal_v bodily_a disease_n which_o be_v less_o than_o the_o conversion_n of_o soul_n which_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o apostle_n most_o abundant_o for_o say_v he_o i_o go_v unto_o my_o father_n 13_o and_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v ask_v in_o my_o name_n that_o will_v i_o do_v that_o the_o father_n may_v be_v glorify_v in_o the_o son_n 14_o ●f_n you_o shall_v ask_v any_o thing_n in_o my_o name_n i_o will_v do_v it_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o say_v whatsoever_o you_o shall_v pray_v for_o which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o that_o rule_n of_o prayer_n which_o our_o saviour_n himself_o have_v set_v down_o and_o namely_o for_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o elect_a and_o for_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o same_o end_n for_o so_o must_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v understand_v and_o thus_o we_o have_v sufficient_a testimony_n of_o the_o two_o former_a benefit_n to_o wit_n garden_n the_o comfort_n belong_v to_o his_o agony_n and_o apprehension_n in_o the_o garden_n that_o god_n for_o our_o saviour_n sake_n will_v hear_v faithful_a prayer_n and_o that_o he_o will_v work_v great_a thing_n in_o his_o church_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o faithful_a servant_n read_v also_o chap._n 15_o verse_n 7._o if_o you_o abide_v in_o i_o and_o my_o word_n abide_v in_o you_o ask_v what_o you_o will_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v do_v to_o you_o explication_n explication_n question_n now_o in_o what_o word_n do_v our_o saviour_n give_v we_o like_o assurance_n of_o the_o last_o benefit_n which_o be_v everlasting_a joy_n answer_n in_o the_o 16._o ch_z verse_n 22._o you_o be_v now_o in_o sorrow_n but_o i_o will_v see_v you_o again_o and_o your_o heart_n shall_v rejoice_v and_o your_o joy_n shall_v no_o man_n take_v from_o you_o etc._n etc._n and_o again_o verse_n 24._o ask_v and_o you_o shall_v receive_v that_o your_o joy_n may_v be_v full_a explication_n explication_n these_o thing_n be_v most_o comfortable_a to_o the_o which_o end_n also_o let_v we_o conclude_v with_o the_o last_o word_n of_o the_o speech_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o his_o disciple_n in_o the_o way_n to_o the_o garden_n as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o last_o verse_n of_o the_o 16_o chapter_n wherein_o he_o express_v what_o be_v the_o intend_a scope_n of_o his_o whole_a speech_n unto_o his_o disciple_n say_v these_o thing_n have_v i_o speak_v unto_o you_o that_o in_o i_o you_o may_v have_v peace_n in_o the_o world_n you_o shall_v have_v affliction_n but_o be_v of_o good_a comfort_n i_o have_v overcome_v the_o world_n our_o saviour_n affirm_v that_o before_o hand_n which_o he_o purpose_v most_o
rom_n 4_o 25._o he_o be_v deliver_v to_o death_n for_o our_o sin_n likewise_o 1_o corin_z 15.3_o christ_n die_v for_o our_o sin_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o 2._o epistle_n 5.21_o god_n make_v he_o which_o know_v no_o sin_n that_o be_v he_o who_o never_o sin_v neither_o be_v natural_o taint_v with_o any_o infection_n of_o sin_n to_o be_v sin_n for_o we_o that_o be_v to_o be_v account_v a_o sinner_n and_o sinful_a and_o to_o bear_v the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n our_o sin_n be_v impute_v to_o he_o that_o we_o may_v through_o faith_n in_o he_o be_v justify_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n by_o the_o imputation_n of_o his_o righteousness_n unto_o us._n and_o ephe_n 1.7_o we_o have_v redemption_n say_v the_o apostle_n through_o his_o blood_n even_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n according_a to_o the_o rich_a grace_n of_o god_n and_o again_o colos_n 1.14_o and_o heb_fw-mi chap_n 9_o verse_n 22.23.24.25.26.27.28_o this_o be_v that_o which_o john_n the_o baptist_n preach_v of_o our_o saviour_n that_o he_o be_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n which_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n as_o saint_n john_n the_o evangelist_n have_v record_v it_o gospel_n chap_n 1.29_o and_o in_o his_o 1._o epistle_n chap_n 1.7_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n and_o ch_z 3.5_o you_o know_v that_o he_o appear_v to_o take_v away_o our_o sin_n and_o in_o he_o be_v no_o sin_n and_o revel_v 1.5_o jesus_n christ_n love_v we_o and_o wash_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n in_o his_o blood_n sin_n be_v thus_o forgive_v unto_o we_o through_o the_o death_n and_o suffering_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n must_v needs_o cease_v according_a to_o that_o 2._o cor_n 5.18.19.20_o and_o 1._o thes_n 1.10_o the_o son_n of_o god_n deliver_v we_o from_o the_o wrath_n to_o come_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n cease_v it_o can_v be_v but_o the_o punishment_n must_v needs_o cease_v at_o the_o least_o so_o far_o forth_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v hurtful_a unto_o we_o but_o rather_o shall_v be_v furtherance_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o among_o the_o punishment_n first_o as_o touch_v the_o abate_n of_o the_o strength_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o the_o heat_n of_o lust_n in_o our_o wicked_a nature_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o suffering_n of_o our_o saviour_n read_v rom_n 7.1.2.3.4.5.6_o where_o the_o apostle_n paul_n speak_v figurative_o of_o our_o second_o marriage_n to_o christ_n he_o show_v that_o we_o be_v thereby_o become_v dead_a to_o the_o law_n which_o be_v as_o our_o first_o husband_n engender_v the_o fruit_n of_o sin_n to_o death_n and_o do_v now_o by_o our_o second_o husband_n christ_n bring_v forth_o fruit_n unto_o god._n and_o chap_n 8.10_o if_o christ_n be_v in_o you_o the_o body_n be_v dead_a because_o of_o sin_n and_o galat_n 2.19_o i_o through_o the_o law_n be_o dead_a to_o the_o law_n and_o that_o i_o may_v live_v unto_o god_n i_o be_o crucify_v with_o christ_n thus_o the_o apply_v of_o the_o death_n and_o suffering_n of_o our_o saviour_n by_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o a_o penitent_a sinner_n it_o be_v of_o like_a nature_n to_o a_o strong_a corasive_n lay_v to_o a_o sore_n which_o eat_v out_o the_o rot_a and_o dead_a flesh_n that_o lie_v fester_v in_o it_o as_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o repentance_n the_o greatness_n of_o which_o benefit_n may_v be_v the_o more_o clear_o discern_v of_o we_o if_o we_o do_v consider_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o it_o be_v the_o great_a and_o most_o grievous_a plague_n and_o punishment_n of_o all_o other_o for_o a_o man_n to_o be_v give_v over_o to_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n to_o follow_v sin_n with_o greediness_n and_o so_o to_o have_v one_o sin_n punish_v as_o it_o be_v with_o another_o to_o the_o increase_n of_o most_o heavy_a vengeance_n from_o the_o revenge_a hand_n of_o god_n in_o the_o end_n rom_n 1.24_o etc._n etc._n and_o chap_n 2._o verse_n 5._o and_o therefore_o do_v our_o saviour_n teach_v we_o to_o pray_v so_o earnest_o that_o god_n will_v not_o lead_v we_o into_o temptation_n second_o that_o the_o hand_n writing_n or_o indictment_n and_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n wh●ch_n be_v against_o we_o be_v now_o take_v away_o by_o the_o death_n and_o suffering_n of_o our_o saviour_n yea_o and_o that_o the_o power_n of_o death_n and_o of_o the_o devil_n and_o of_o all_o our_o adversary_n both_o of_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n be_v not_o only_o disaduantage_v but_o even_o quite_o overthrow_v and_o vanquish_v we_o read_v it_o affirm_v partly_o gal_n 3.13_o in_o that_o the_o holy_a apostle_n very_o comfortable_o assure_v we_o that_o christ_n have_v redeem_v we_o from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n when_o he_o be_v make_v a_o curse_n for_o us._n for_o say_v he_o it_o be_v write_v curse_a be_v every_o one_o that_o hang_v on_o tree_n and_o this_o do_v our_o saviour_n for_o us._n moreover_o colos_n chap_n 1.13_o and_o chap_n 2.14_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v upon_o the_o cross_n spoil_v the_o devil_n of_o their_o power_n and_o deliver_v we_o from_o all_o power_n of_o darkne●_n etc._n etc._n likewise_o heb_fw-mi ch_n 2._o five_o 9_o etc._n etc._n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n we_o read_v the_o same_o thing_n testify_v and_o also_o john_n 12.31_o and_o 1._o epistle_n 3_o 8._o likewise_o in_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v die_v the_o death_n which_o be_v the_o wage_n of_o sin_n he_o have_v by_o endure_v the_o penalty_n of_o sin_n deliver_v we_o from_o death_n which_o come_v upon_o we_o thereby_o he_o have_v deliver_v we_o also_o from_o all_o the_o tyranny_n and_o malice_n of_o all_o the_o wicked_a instrument_n of_o the_o devil_n which_o he_o enrage_v against_o the_o child_n of_o god_n here_o in_o this_o present_a evil_a world_n yea_o even_o from_o all_o inordinate_a desire_n after_o the_o vain_a glory_n and_o applause_n of_o this_o vain_a world_n and_o the_o child_n thereof_o according_a to_o to_o that_o gal_n 1_o 4._o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n say_v the_o apostle_n give_v himself_o for_o our_o sin_n as_o be_v allege_v before_o and_o then_o he_o add_v furthermore_o that_o he_o may_v deliver_v we_o from_o this_o present_a evil_a world_n according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n our_o father_n to_o who_o be_v glory_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n and_o chap._n 6.14_o god_n forbid_v say_v he_o that_o i_o shall_v rejoice_v but_o in_o the_o cross_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n whereby_o the_o world_n be_v crucify_v unto_o i_o and_o i_o unto_o the_o world_n to_o conclude_v our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v by_o his_o death_n ransom_v we_o from_o all_o our_o enemy_n as_o zacharie_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o pprophecy_n have_v testify_v in_o general_a luke_n 1.68.69.70.71.72.73_o bless_a be_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n say_v he_o because_o he_o have_v visit_v and_o redeem_v his_o people_n etc._n etc._n as_o he_o speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o holy_a prophet_n which_o be_v since_o the_o world_n begin_v say_v that_o he_o will_v send_v we_o deliverance_n from_o our_o enemy_n and_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o all_o that_o hate_v us._n and_o thus_o like_a as_o that_o valiant_a judge_n samson_n do_v at_o his_o death_n kill_v more_o of_o the_o bodily_a enemy_n of_o the_o people_n and_o church_n of_o god_n than_o he_o have_v do_v in_o all_o his_o life_n before_o judg._n chap_n 16.30_o so_o yea_o infinite_o much_o more_o triumphant_o have_v our_o saviour_n christ_n that_o victorious_a lion_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n by_o his_o death_n vanquish_v all_o our_o enemy_n both_o spiritual_a and_o bodily_a and_o even_o death_n and_o destruction_n itself_o yea_o and_o which_o be_v every_o way_n most_o admirable_a he_o have_v make_v his_o conquest_n after_o a_o special_a manner_n differ_v altogether_o from_o all_o worldly_a fight_n and_o victory_n for_o even_o as_o by_o be_v himself_o bind_v for_o we_o he_o break_v all_o our_o bond_n by_o bear_v our_o reproach_n have_v remove_v it_o from_o we_o by_o take_v our_o curse_n have_v make_v we_o bless_v by_o sustain_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n have_v bring_v we_o into_o his_o favour_n so_o have_v he_o by_o die_v make_v we_o alive_a as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o be_v consider_v question_n now_o therefore_o which_o be_v the_o good_a benefit_n and_o blessing_n which_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v by_o the_o same_o his_o most_o holy_a death_n &_o all_o his_o bless_a suffering_n obtain_v and_o procure_v for_o we_o answer_n they_o be_v these_o which_o follow_v first_o our_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n &_o therewithal_o the_o full_a confirmation_n and_o seal_v up_o of_o his_o covenant_n touch_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o our_o
explication_n and_o proof_n our_o saviour_n christ_n take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o we_o ought_v most_o dear_o to_o love_v he_o for_o who_o can_v otherwise_o say_v or_o think_v but_o he_o must_v be_v convict_v in_o his_o own_o conscience_n if_o he_o have_v any_o knowledge_n of_o that_o which_o our_o saviour_n have_v wrought_v and_o suffer_v for_o he_o well_o therefore_o this_o he_o infer_v just_o as_o a_o fruit_n belong_v to_o that_o love_n which_o his_o redeem_a stand_n bind_v to_o bear_v unto_o he_o that_o they_o do_v declare_v it_o by_o their_o obey_n of_o his_o commandment_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o son_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o father_n and_o to_o the_o same_o end_n he_o repeat_v it_o again_o in_o the_o 21._o verse_n of_o the_o same_o chapter_n say_v he_o that_o have_v my_o commandment_n and_o keep_v they_o be_v he_o that_o love_v i_o to_o the_o which_o love_n also_o he_o do_v in_o the_o same_o verse_n persuade_v by_o most_o forcible_a reason_n for_o say_v he_o he_o that_o love_v i_o shall_v be_v love_v of_o my_o father_n and_o i_o will_v love_v he_o and_o show_v my_o own_o self_n unto_o he_o and_o yet_o again_o verse_n 23._o if_o any_o man_n love_v i_o he_o will_v keep_v my_o word_n and_o my_o father_n will_v love_v he_o and_o we_o will_v come_v unto_o he_o and_o we_o will_v dwell_v with_o he_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a he_o profess_v in_o the_o 24._o verse_n that_o he_o account_v none_o of_o they_o to_o bear_v he_o any_o true_a love_n whosoever_o do_v not_o keep_v his_o word_n of_o the_o which_o word_n our_o saviour_n say_v further_a that_o they_o be_v not_o he_o to_o wit_n as_o he_o be_v man_n simple_o consider_v in_o his_o humane_a nature_n but_o his_o father_n who_o send_v he_o moreover_o for_o love_n and_o the_o trial_n of_o true_a love_n towards_o he_o by_o a_o general_a care_n of_o obedience_n thus_o our_o saviour_n say_v chap._n 15.9.10_o as_o the_o father_n have_v love_v i_o so_o have_v i_o love_v you_o continue_v you_o in_o my_o love_n if_o you_o will_v keep_v my_o commandment_n you_o shall_v abide_v in_o my_o love_n as_o i_o have_v keep_v my_o father_n commandment_n and_o do_v abide_v in_o his_o love_n proceed_v now_o to_o show_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o duty_n in_o like_a general_a manner_n question_n which_o may_v they_o be_v answ_n they_o be_v all_o the_o duty_n of_o love_n mutual_o to_o be_v perform_v of_o one_o christian_n towards_o a_o other_o and_o the_o same_o also_o from_o a_o humble_a and_o lowly_a mind_n this_o be_v very_o true_a for_o so_o do_v our_o saviour_n first_o of_o all_o give_v to_o understand_v by_o his_o wash_n of_o his_o disciple_n foot_n as_o he_o do_v plain_o express_v his_o own_o intent_n therein_o proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n for_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v do_v it_o know_v you_o say_v he_o what_o i_o have_v do_v you_o call_v i_o master_n and_o lord_n and_o you_o do_v well_o for_o so_o i_o be_o if_o i_o then_o your_o lord_n and_o master_n have_v wash_v your_o foot_n you_o also_o aught_o to_o wash_v one_o another_o foot_n that_o be_v you_o ought_v to_o carry_v this_o mind_n to_o be_v always_o ready_a to_o do_v as_o much_o as_o this_o come_v too_o and_o that_o even_o with_o all_o humbleness_n of_o mind_n void_a of_o ambition_n void_a of_o all_o bitterness_n and_o contention_n etc._n etc._n for_o i_o say_v our_o saviour_n have_v give_v you_o a_o example_n that_o you_o shall_v do_v even_o as_o i_o have_v do_v to_o you_o wherein_o also_o our_o saviour_n be_v very_a earnest_n say_v as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o text_n very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o the_o servant_n be_v not_o great_a than_o his_o master_n neither_o the_o ambassador_n great_a than_o he_o that_o send_v he_o if_o you_o know_v these_o thing_n that_o be_v see_v now_o you_o know_v they_o to_o belong_v to_o your_o office_n and_o duty_n bless_v be_v you_o if_o you_o do_v they_o john_n cha_n 13._o verse_n 12_o 13_o 14_o 15_o 16_o 17._o the_o same_o doctrine_n he_o renu_v again_o verse_n 34.35_o of_o the_o same_o chapter_n say_v likewise_o to_o the_o same_o his_o disciple_n a_o new_a commandment_n that_o be_v a_o commandment_n the_o care_n whereof_o i_o do_v renew_v and_o revive_v do_v i_o give_v unto_o you_o that_o you_o love_v one_o another_o yea_o as_o i_o have_v love_v you_o that_o you_o also_o love_v one_o another_o by_o this_o shall_v all_o man_n know_v that_o you_o be_v my_o disciple_n if_o you_o have_v love_v one_o to_o another_o for_o very_o true_a and_o unfeigned_a love_n not_o in_o word_n only_o but_o in_o truth_n and_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v as_o our_o saviour_n in_o these_o word_n give_v to_o understand_v so_o rare_a and_o difficult_a a_o grace_n to_o be_v obtain_v and_o so_o contrary_a to_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o this_o self-loving_a world_n that_o it_o can_v but_o be_v acknowledge_v of_o all_o that_o know_v any_o thing_n that_o they_o have_v be_v singular_o teach_v and_o instruct_v even_o of_o god_n himself_o whosoever_o be_v endue_v with_o it_o and_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n do_v our_o saviour_n yet_o again_o renew_v and_o revive_v it_o as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o new_a parliament_n and_o that_o earnest_o with_o a_o new_a weight_n of_o reason_n chap._n 15._o verse_n 12.13.14.15.16.17_o this_o be_v my_o commandment_n that_o you_o love_v one_o another_o as_o i_o have_v love_v you_o great_a love_n than_o this_o have_v no_o man_n when_o any_o man_n bestow_v his_o life_n for_o his_o friend_n you_o be_v my_o friend_n if_o you_o do_v whatsoever_o i_o command_v you_o henceforth_o i_o do_v not_o call_v you_o servant_n for_o the_o servant_n do_v not_o know_v what_o the_o master_n do_v but_o i_o have_v call_v you_o friend_n for_o all_o thing_n that_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o my_o father_n have_v i_o make_v know_v to_o you_o you_o have_v not_o choose_v i_o but_o i_o have_v choose_v you_o and_z or_o dain_v you_o that_o you_o go_v and_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n and_o that_o your_o fruit_n remain_v that_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v ask_v the_o father_n in_o my_o name_n he_o may_v give_v it_o you_o these_o thing_n command_v i_o you_o that_o you_o love_v one_o another_o this_o also_o be_v that_o which_o our_o saviour_n do_v instant_o pray_v for_o as_o a_o singular_a effect_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n through_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n chap._n 17.20.21_o i_o pray_v not_o for_o these_o alone_a but_o for_o they_o also_o which_o shall_v believe_v in_o i_o through_o their_o word_n he_o mean_v the_o preach_n of_o his_o choice_n disciple_n and_o other_o succeed_a they_o that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v one_o as_o thou_o o_o father_n art_n in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o thou_o that_o they_o may_v be_v also_o one_o in_o we_o that_o the_o world_n may_v believe_v that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o to_o wit_n as_o be_v convict_v thereof_o by_o so_o notable_a and_o admirable_a a_o effect_n and_o that_o thereby_o many_o may_v be_v induce_v true_o to_o believe_v from_o time_n to_o time_n these_o thing_n belove_v brethren_n we_o be_v to_o apply_v to_o ourselves_o for_o very_o no_o man_n can_v be_v a_o true_a christian_a without_o love_n to_o the_o brethren_n nor_o unless_o we_o carry_v so_o humble_a a_o mind_n that_o we_o be_v very_o ready_a &_o willing_a according_a to_o those_o place_n and_o calling_n wherein_o god_n have_v set_v we_o to_o perform_v all_o good_a office_n and_o duty_n of_o love_n unto_o they_o even_o as_o it_o be_v to_o the_o wash_n of_o their_o foot_n the_o christian_a king_n or_o queen_n must_v not_o refuse_v to_o be_v a_o servant_n to_o god_n for_o the_o benefit_n and_o welfare_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n nay_o rather_o they_o must_v for_o the_o lord_n jesus_n sake_n and_o for_o that_o duty_n sake_n which_o they_o owe_v to_o he_o be_v willing_o serviceable_a to_o his_o church_n as_o the_o holy_a prophet_n isaias_n do_v by_o as_o mean_v a_o similitude_n as_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o wash_v his_o disciple_n foot_n give_v plain_o to_o understand_v in_o the_o 23._o verse_n of_o the_o 49._o chap_n of_o his_o prophecy_n read_v also_o psal_n 72.9_o where_o the_o subjection_n which_o be_v due_a to_o our_o saviour_n himself_o from_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v note_v by_o the_o same_o phrase_n of_o speech_n they_o that_o dwell_v in_o the_o wilderness_n shall_v kneel_v before_o he_o and_o his_o enemy_n shall_v lick_v the_o dust_n the_o king_n of_o tarshish_n and_o of_o the_o island_n shall_v bring_v present_n etc._n etc._n wherefore_o if_o king_n and_o queen_n ought_v to_o
god_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o and_o therefore_o that_o know_v ourselves_o to_o be_v once_o deliver_v by_o our_o saviour_n we_o do_v thenceforth_o general_o renounce_v all_o ungodliness_n and_o wicked_a lust_n that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o our_o sin_n and_o wickedness_n which_o our_o saviour_n suffer_v for_o on_o our_o behalf_n this_o general_a doctrine_n may_v profitable_o be_v illustrate_v by_o some_o particular_a sin_n which_o the_o suffering_n and_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n aught_o in_o special_a manner_n to_o move_v we_o to_o forsake_v question_n which_o therefore_o may_v some_o of_o they_o be_v answer_n to_o speak_v more_o particular_o the_o due_a meditation_n of_o the_o suffering_n and_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n must_v needs_o be_v as_o a_o most_o strong_a engine_n to_o make_v a_o notable_a battery_n yea_o to_o work_v the_o overthrow_n of_o all_o pride_n and_o vain_a glory_n and_o of_o the_o inordinate_a love_n of_o the_o profit_n pleasure_n and_o honour_n of_o this_o world_n the_o which_o do_v natural_o and_o through_o the_o suggestion_n of_o the_o devil_n mighty_o rule_n and_o reign_v in_o our_o wicked_a heart_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n they_o do_v so_o indeed_o yet_o the_o power_n and_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v more_o mighty_a in_o the_o heart_n of_o true_a believer_n to_o suppress_v and_o destroy_v they_o then_o our_o own_o natural_a corruption_n and_o the_o tentation_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v to_o continue_v and_o uphold_v they_o in_o the_o strength_n of_o their_o dominion_n for_o who_o can_v be_v proud_a of_o himself_o if_o he_o do_v due_o bethink_v himself_o after_o what_o manner_n it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o abase_v himself_o for_o we_o or_o else_o vile_a and_o wretched_a sinner_n that_o we_o be_v we_o must_v have_v perish_v in_o the_o most_o base_a filth_n of_o our_o sin_n for_o ever_o and_o who_o love_v christ_n that_o die_v for_o he_o can_v immoderate_o affect_v the_o world_n and_o the_o thing_n thereof_o when_o he_o see_v by_o daily_a experience_n that_o the_o world_n and_o all_o thing_n therein_o be_v unkind_o &_o advers_o bend_v against_o he_o love_v not_o the_o world_n therefore_o say_v st._n john_n nor_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n 1._o ep_n 2.15.16_o thus_o much_o for_o a_o taste_n of_o those_o evil_n which_o the_o meditation_n of_o the_o suffering_n and_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n do_v call_v we_o from_o question_n now_o which_o be_v the_o good_a thing_n which_o they_o move_v we_o unto_o and_o call_v for_o at_o our_o hand_n answer_n the_o due_a meditation_n of_o the_o suffering_n &_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n teach_v &_o require_v of_o we_o not_o only_o to_o deny_v ungodliness_n and_o worldly_a lust_n as_o have_v be_v already_o answer_v but_o also_o that_o we_o live_v sober_o and_o just_o and_o godly_a in_o this_o present_a world_n so_o in_o deed_n we_o read_v tit._n 2._o verse_n 11.12.13.14.15_o for_o say_v the_o apostle_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o bring_v salvation_n to_o all_o man_n have_v appear_v what_o grace_n proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n even_o the_o most_o free_a favour_n &_o mercy_n of_o god_n in_o give_v his_o only_a son_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o the_o death_n for_o us._n this_o grace_n as_o the_o apostle_n add_v teach_v we_o not_o only_o to_o deny_v ungodliness_n and_o worldly_a lust_n but_o also_o that_o we_o shall_v live_v first_o sober_o that_o be_v with_o good_a moderation_n touch_v the_o use_n of_o those_o worldly_a blessing_n which_o god_n have_v bless_v we_o withal_o second_o righteous_o that_o be_v in_o yield_v to_o all_o and_o every_o one_o that_o which_o of_o right_n belong_v unto_o they_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o their_o life_n three_o that_o we_o shall_v live_v godly_o that_o be_v with_o a_o religious_a and_o holy_a regard_n to_o obey_v and_o please_v god_n in_o all_o thing_n special_o in_o the_o duty_n of_o his_o divine_a worship_n and_o spiritual_a service_n look_v as_o the_o apostle_n add_v yet_o further_o for_o the_o bless_a hope_n and_o appear_v of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o mighty_a god_n and_o of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o give_v himself_o for_o we_o that_o he_o may_v redeem_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n and_o purge_v we_o to_o be_v a_o peculiar_a people_n unto_o himself_o zealous_a of_o good_a work_n these_o thing_n say_v the_o apostle_n teach_v and_o exhort_v and_o rebuke_v with_o all_o authority_n and_o that_o by_o good_a reason_n even_o from_o this_o most_o weighty_a consideration_n of_o the_o death_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n to_o redeem_v us._n a_o learned_a interpreter_n speak_v of_o these_o three_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n sober_o just_o godly_a he_o move_v to_o the_o careful_a regard_n of_o they_o in_o these_o two_o verse_n follow_v in_o latin_a haec_fw-la tria_fw-la perpetuó_n meditare_fw-la adverbia_fw-la pauli_n haec_fw-la tria_fw-la sint_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la regula_fw-la sancta_fw-la tuus_fw-la the_o which_o we_o may_v english_a thus_o three_o word_n of_o saint_n paul_n in_o mind_n see_v thou_o bear_v sober_a just_a godly_a life_n good_a rule_n they_o be_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o same_o duty_n belong_v to_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o suffering_n death_n and_o bloodshed_n of_o our_o saviour_n upon_o the_o cross_n read_v that_o notable_a exhortation_n of_o the_o apostle_n peter_n 1._o ep._n chap._n 1._o ver_fw-la 13._o etc._n etc._n wherefore_o gird_v up_o the_o loin_n of_o your_o mind_n and_o be_v sober_a etc._n etc._n as_o obedient_a child_n not_o fashion_v yourselves_o to_o the_o former_a lust_n of_o your_o ignorance_n but_o as_o he_o which_o have_v call_v you_o be_v holy_a so_o be_v you_o holy_a in_o all_o manner_n of_o conversation_n etc._n etc._n know_v that_o you_o be_v not_o redeem_v with_o corruptible_a thing_n as_o silver_n and_o gold_n from_o your_o vain_a conversation_n receive_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o father_n but_o with_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o christ_n as_o of_o a_o lamb_n undefiled_a and_o without_o spot_n etc._n etc._n and_o ver_fw-la 2._o of_o the_o same_o chapter_n as_o we_o shall_v have_v say_v before_o th●_n faithful_a be_v say_v to_o be_v elect_a according_a to_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o god_n the_o father_n unto_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n through_o the_o obedience_n a●d_v sprinkle_v of_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ._n and_o chap._n 2._o verse_n 24.25_o christ_n his_o own_o self_n do_v bear_v our_o sin_n in_o his_o body_n on_o the_o tree_n that_o we_o be_v deliver_v from_o sin_n shall_v live_v in_o right●ousnes_n etc._n etc._n and_o afterward_o again_o chap._n 4.1.2_o forasmuch_o then_o as_o christ_n have_v suffer_v for_o we_o in_o the_o flesh_n arm_n yourselves_o likewise_o with_o the_o same_o mind_n which_o be_v that_o he_o which_o have_v suffer_v i●_n the_o flesh_n have_v cease_v from_o sin_n that_o he_o henceforth_o shall_v live_v as_o much_o time_n as_o remain_v in_o t●e_v flesh_n not_o after_o the_o lust_n of_o man_n but_o after_o the_o will_n of_o god_n this_o care_n of_o please_a god_n in_o lead_v a_o righteous_a and_o holy_a life_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o end_n of_o our_o redemption_n luke_n chap._n 1._o verse_n 74.75_o and_o so_o we_o read_v also_o 1._o cor._n 6.19.20_o know_v you_o not_o that_o your_o body_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v in_o you_o who_o you_o have_v of_o god_n and_o you_o be_v not_o your_o own_o for_o you_o a●e_v buy_v for_o a_o price_n therefore_o glorify_v you_o god_n in_o your_o body_n and_o in_o your_o spirit_n for_o they_o be_v god_n but_o how_o shall_v we_o glorify_v god_n if_o we_o l●ue_v in_o sin_n read_v also_o ephes_n chap._n 4.32_o be_v you_o courteous_a one_o to_o another_o and_o tender_a heart_a forgive_a one_o another_o even_o as_o god_n for_o christ_n sake_n forgive_v you_o and_o chap._n 5.1.2_o be_v you_o therefore_o follower_n of_o god_n as_o dear_a child_n and_o walk_v in_o love_n even_o as_o christ_n have_v love_v we_o and_o have_v give_v himself_o for_o we_o to_o be_v a_o offering_n and_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o sweet_a smell_a savour_n to_o god_n likewise_o colos_n 3.12.13.14_o and_o phil._n 2.1_o etc._n etc._n moreover_o for_o our_o cheerful_a reverend_a and_o zealous_a worship_v of_o god_n from_o the_o force_n of_o this_o argument_n read_v revel_v ch_n 5.9_o etc._n etc._n and_o ps_n 22._o from_o the_o 23._o verse_n etc._n etc._n after_o a_o pprophecy_n of_o the_o suffering_n of_o our_o saviour_n whereunto_o also_o may_v be_v refer_v all_o those_o prophetical_a exhortation_n in_o many_o psalm_n follow_v one_o another_o from_o the_o 95._o to_o the._n 101._o for_o all_o rejoice_a be_v ground_v upon_o this_o that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n have_v dye_v for_o we_o and_o by_o his_o death_n
lighten_v our_o eye_n by_o the_o bright_a beam_n of_o his_o gospel_n through_o the_o inward_a operation_n and_o illumination_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n these_o thing_n very_o may_v we_o not_o causeless_o admonish_v ourselves_o of_o from_o this_o holy_a consideration_n of_o the_o time_n yea_o so_o may_v we_o observe_v both_o his_o power_n and_o divine_a grace_n that_o how_o soever_o foolish_a and_o wicked_a man_n arm_v themselves_o and_o watch_v the_o body_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o if_o they_o will_v willing_o no_o doubt_n if_o they_o can_v have_v knock_v he_o down_o with_o their_o bill_n and_o halberd_n or_o have_v take_v and_o carry_v he_o to_o the_o chief_a priest_n to_o have_v be_v crucify_v again_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o shall_v in_o their_o sight_n have_v offer_v to_o rise_v out_o of_o the_o grave_n yet_o it_o be_v as_o unpossible_a for_o they_o to_o keep_v he_o down_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o rise_v etc._n etc._n or_o to_o hinder_v the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o his_o resurrection_n that_o by_o it_o the_o world_n shall_v not_o be_v enlighten_v with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o salvation_n as_o it_o be_v for_o they_o or_o for_o all_o the_o wicked_a in_o the_o world_n with_o all_o their_o power_n or_o devise_n which_o they_o may_v possible_o use_v to_o hinder_v the_o sun_n one_o moment_n of_o time_n from_o the_o course_n of_o the_o rise_n thereof_o and_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o cast_v forth_o the_o bright_a &_o warm_a beam_n of_o it_o ever_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o so_o likewise_o be_v it_o unpossble_a at_o this_o day_n or_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v even_o as_o it_o have_v be_v from_o the_o first_o time_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n resurrection_n that_o any_o adverse_a power_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o hinder_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o it_o shall_v not_o shine_v forth_o there_o where_o as_o god_n do_v command_v the_o light_n of_o it_o to_o break_v out_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o his_o people_n yea_o and_o though_o it_o fall_v out_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o sin_n and_o unthankfulness_n of_o the_o world_n that_o it_o be_v obscure_v and_o darken_v for_o a_o time_n as_o the_o sun_n be_v sometime_o by_o a_o thick_a cloud_n yet_o it_o be_v unpossible_a that_o it_o shall_v not_o according_a to_o the_o good_a will_n &_o pleasure_n of_o god_n renew_v the_o light_n like_v as_o the_o sun_n after_o a_o while_n break_v through_o the_o cloud_n again_o th●s_v then_o the_o time_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n may_v fit_o lead_v we_o to_o consider_v of_o the_o comfortable_a prophe●ie_n of_o malachi_n in_o the_o place_n allege_v before_o in_o these_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n unto_o you_o that_o fear_v my_o name_n shall_v the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n arise_v and_o health_n shall_v be_v under_o his_o wing_n and_o you_o shall_v go_v forth_o etc._n etc._n and_o likewise_o it_o may_v apt_o put_v we_o in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o like_a prophecy_n of_o new_a heaven_n ●nd_v a_o new_a earth_n and_o of_o a_o new_a and_o clear_a light_n to_o be_v make_v by_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n at_o the_o manifest_v of_o himself_o and_o through_o the_o break_n forth_o of_o his_o gospel_n and_o the_o publish_n of_o it_o to_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n isai_n 60.1.3_o etc._n etc._n and_o ch_n 65.17.19_o and_z ch_z 66.22_o and_o zech._n 14.7.9_o and_o even_o for_o this_o cause_n as_o it_o seem_v will_v the_o lord_n than_o begin_v the_o world_n to_o come_v even_o in_o the_o morning_n with_o the_o light_n as_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v term_v 1._o john_n 2.8_o to_o put_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o it_o and_o the_o former_a world_n again_o the_o place_n from_o whence_o he_o do_v rise_v again_o which_o in_o the_o creation_n thereof_o be_v begin_v in_o darkness_n for_o darkness_n cover_v all_o as_o gen._n 1.1_o hitherto_o of_o the_o time_n when_o our_o saviour_n rise_v again_o the_o place_n now_o follow_v to_o be_v consider_v of_o us._n which_o therefore_o be_v the_o place_n whence_o our_o saviour_n do_v rise_v again_o question_n answer_n the_o grave_n wherein_o he_o be_v bury_v and_o continue_v to_o the_o three_o day_n as_o it_o be_v among_o the_o dead_a and_o in_o the_o very_a state_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o dead_a that_o be_v the_o place_n from_o whence_o he_o rise_v the_o three_o day_n even_o from_o the_o dead_a his_o body_n be_v quicken_v by_o the_o return_v of_o the_o soul_n unto_o it_o again_o proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n it_o be_v true_a for_o that_o be_v the_o very_a place_n whether_o the_o woman_n come_v early_o to_o seek_v the_o body_n of_o our_o saviour_n but_o see_v that_o it_o be_v go_v and_o the_o angel_n speak_v of_o the_o same_o place_n tell_v they_o he_o be_v not_o here_o but_o be_v rise_v remember_v how_o he_o speak_v unto_o you_o etc._n etc._n luke_n 24.6_o and_o mark_v 16.6_o he_o be_v rise_v he_o be_v not_o here_o behold_v the_o place_n where_o they_o put_v he_o and_o matth._n 28.6_o he_o be_v not_o here_o for_o he_o be_v rise_v as_o he_o say_v come_v see_v the_o place_n where_o the_o lord_n be_v lay_v and_o in_o this_o respect_n let_v we_o call_v to_o mind_n that_o to_o the_o end_n there_o may_v be_v no_o pretence_n of_o cavil_n against_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n from_o the_o very_a place_n where_o he_o be_v lay_v the_o holy_a story_n assure_v we_o that_o the_o sepulchre_n in_o the_o which_o he_o be_v lay_v be_v by_o god_n providence_n new_o hew_v out_o of_o the_o rock_n and_o that_o never_o any_o have_v be_v bury_v in_o it_o till_o our_o saviour_n be_v lay_v there_o matth._n 26.60_o john_n 19.41_o let_v this_o for_o the_o present_a suffice_v touch_v the_o place_n the_o manner_n how_o our_o saviour_n christ_n arise_v out_o of_o the_o grave_n be_v next_o to_o be_v examine_v question_n how_o be_v that_o answer_n the_o holy_a story_n report_v it_o thus_o while_o the_o unbelieved_a and_o malicious_a jew_n little_o think_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n shall_v indeed_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n as_o he_o have_v say_v that_o he_o will_v and_o yet_o to_o put_v the_o matter_n out_o of_o question_n gather_v together_o set_v and_o charge_v a_o watch_n or_o garrison_n of_o soldier_n to_o keep_v the_o sepulchre_n wherein_o the_o body_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v bury_v lest_o his_o disciple_n as_o they_o pretend_v shall_v come_v by_o night_n and_o steal_v it_o away_o and_o say_v to_o the_o people_n he_o be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o lest_o as_o they_o further_o pretend_v to_o fear_v that_o by_o this_o mean_n the_o last_o error_n shall_v be_v worse_o than_o the_o first_o the_o lord_n in_o this_o while_n even_o early_o in_o the_o morning_n on_o the_o three_o day_n send_v his_o holy_a angel_n from_o heaven_n who_o cause_v a_o great_a earthquake_n and_o roll_v away_o that_o great_a stone_n which_o be_v lay_v over_o the_o sepulchre_n and_o sit_v upon_o it_o have_v a_o countenance_n like_o lightning_n and_o his_o raiment_n white_a as_o snow_n so_o that_o for_o fear_n of_o he_o the_o keeper_n be_v astonish_v and_o become_v as_o dead_a man_n so_o that_o as_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n testify_v our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a even_o in_o this_o time_n according_a as_o he_o have_v say_v that_o he_o will_v proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n such_o indeed_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o the_o evangelist_n matthew_n report_v it_o chap_v 27.62_o etc._n etc._n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n and_o cha_n 28._o verse_n 2.4_o so_o that_o we_o may_v true_o say_v that_o he_o rise_v again_o in_o a_o divine_a manner_n insomuch_o as_o he_o rise_v by_o his_o own_o divine_a power_n and_o so_o declare_v himself_o mighty_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o that_o we_o read_v rom._n 1.4_o and_o john_n 2.19_o and_o 10.18_o as_o we_o have_v see_v before_o neither_o be_v it_o any_o thing_n against_o this_o that_o the_o raise_n up_o of_o our_o saviour_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o father_n acts._n 2.24.30.33_o and_o chap._n 3.15_o and_o 5.30.31_o and_o 13.30.33.34.37_o rom._n 8.11_o eph._n 1.20_o and_o 2.6_o and_o 1._o pet._n 1.21_o this_o be_v not_o against_o it_o i_o say_v insomuch_o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o deity_n both_o of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n question_n but_o if_o our_o saviour_n rise_v again_o by_o his_o own_o divine_a power_n why_o then_o do_v not_o he_o himself_o roll_v away_o the_o stone_n and_o amaze_v the_o soldier_n with_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o own_o divine_a glory_n and_o majesty_n and_o so_o take_v away_o all_o heart_n and_o courage_n from_o they_o as_o he_o
the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o former_a time_n and_o the_o prediction_n of_o our_o saviour_n himself_o to_o his_o disciple_n must_v be_v fulfil_v herein_o second_o the_o most_o high_a excellency_n of_o his_o person_n in_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n require_v it_o three_o the_o eternity_n of_o his_o most_o holy_a office_n call_v for_o it_o four_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n can_v not_o suffer_v it_o to_o be_v otherwise_o final_o neither_o can_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n have_v be_v perfect_o advance_v in_o his_o son_n nor_o the_o redemption_n and_o salvation_n of_o the_o elect_a perfect_v by_o the_o son_n unless_o he_o have_v in_o our_o nature_n rise_v again_o proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n it_o be_v most_o true_a for_o first_o of_o all_o so_o say_v our_o saviour_n himself_o concern_v all_o whatsoever_o be_v write_v of_o he_o by_o the_o holy_a prophet_n that_o it_o must_v be_v fulfil_v as_o luke_n 22.37_o doubtless_o say_v our_o saviour_n those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v of_o i_o have_v a_o end_n and_o chap._n 24.25.27_o and_o verse_n 44.46_o he_o say_v to_o they_o that_o be_v to_o his_o disciple_n all_o thing_n must_v be_v fulfil_v which_o be_v write_v of_o i_o in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o in_o the_o prophet_n and_o in_o the_o psalm_n then_o open_v he_o their_o understanding_n that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o scripture_n and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o thus_o it_o be_v write_v and_o thus_o it_o behove_v christ_n to_o suffer_v and_o to_o rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a the_o three_o day_n now_o that_o there_o be_v prophecy_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n it_o be_v evident_a psal_n 16.10_o and_o isai_n 53.10_o this_o be_v figure_v also_o in_o the_o law_n by_o the_o two_o goat_n levit._n 16.5_o etc._n etc._n verse_n 20_o etc._n etc._n the_o one_o a_o sin_n offer_v to_o be_v slay_v and_o the_o other_o a_o escape_n goat_n to_o be_v send_v away_o alive_a into_o the_o wilderness_n to_o carry_v away_o the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o people_n into_o a_o land_n that_o be_v not_o inhabit_v as_o though_o the_o lord_n will_v give_v plain_o to_o understand_v that_o though_o our_o saviour_n must_v die_v for_o our_o sin_n yet_o he_o shall_v also_o live_v and_o so_o give_v we_o assurance_n that_o he_o have_v make_v a_o perfect_a removal_n of_o our_o sin_n out_o of_o his_o sight_n but_o our_o saviour_n christ_n who_o die_v for_o we_o can_v not_o have_v live_v again_o unless_o he_o have_v rose_n again_o from_o the_o dead_a unto_o who_o estate_n he_o be_v go_v yea_o and_o all_o the_o prophecy_n that_o speak_v of_o his_o ascension_n and_o of_o his_o last_o judgement_n such_o as_o we_o read_v psal_n 68.18_o and_o the_o prophecy_n of_o henoch_n in_o the_o epistle_n of_o ●ude_n ver_fw-la 14._o and_o likewise_o all_o that_o our_o saviour_n himself_o speak_v before_o of_o his_o ascension_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n &_o come_v to_o judgement_n at_o the_o last_o day_n they_o do_v all_o include_v the_o resurrection_n insomuch_o as_o he_o can_v not_o have_v ascend_v etc._n etc._n unless_o he_o have_v first_o rise_v again_o and_o touch_v the_o prediction_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n by_o his_o own_o sacred_a mouth_n we_o have_v so_o late_o set_v they_o down_o that_o we_o need_v not_o here_o repeat_v they_o again_o second_o consider_v the_o most_o high_a excellency_n of_o the_o person_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o that_o he_o be_v the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n and_o very_a god_n the_o author_n and_o fountain_n of_o life_n john_n 1.4_o how_o shall_v that_o nature_n of_o man_n which_o he_o have_v unite_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n be_v vanquish_v of_o death_n it_o be_v unpossible_a that_o death_n shall_v prevail_v against_o the_o power_n of_o the_o live_a god_n the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v in_o the_o three_o place_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o eternity_n of_o his_o office_n in_o that_o he_o be_v anoint_v of_o the_o father_n to_o be_v a_o royal_a high_a priest_n to_o rule_v &_o reign_n and_o to_o make_v intercession_n for_o his_o people_n for_o ever_o and_o how_o shall_v he_o give_v life_n to_o other_o in_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n if_o he_o himself_o shall_v rest_v bereave_v of_o life_n john_n 5.26.29_o how_o shall_v we_o receive_v of_o his_o fullness_n if_o he_o have_v remain_v as_o a_o empty_a vessel_n how_o shall_v he_o defend_v we_o against_o our_o enemy_n if_o our_o enemy_n have_v prevail_v against_o himself_o how_o shall_v he_o reconcile_v we_o to_o god_n witness_n the_o proof_n of_o his_o resurrection_n by_o witness_n if_o god_n be_v not_o perfect_o well_o please_v and_o satisfy_v in_o he_o for_o we_o etc._n etc._n it_o be_v necessary_a therefore_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o office_n that_o he_o shall_v rise_v again_o four_o as_o a_o consequent_a of_o the_o former_a insomuch_o as_o our_o saviour_n have_v pay_v the_o full_a price_n and_o ransom_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n for_o we_o as_o it_o be_v every_o where_o evident_a in_o the_o scripture_n it_o shall_v be_v against_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n that_o our_o saviour_n shall_v continue_v under_o the_o dominion_n of_o death_n it_o be_v just_a therefore_o with_o god_n that_o our_o saviour_n shall_v rise_v again_o a_o glorious_a conqueror_n over_o death_n and_o also_o over_o he_o that_o have_v the_o power_n of_o death_n even_o the_o devil_n etc._n etc._n heb._n 2.14.15_o so_o then_o we_o may_v just_o conclude_v that_o neither_o can_v god_n have_v be_v perfect_o glorify_v in_o his_o son_n nor_o the_o church_n have_v be_v perfect_o redeem_v by_o he_o unless_o he_o have_v rise_v again_o and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n paul_n make_v this_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n a_o special_a declaration_n and_o as_o we_o may_v say_v a_o seal_n and_o confirmation_n that_o he_o be_v the_o very_a true_a son_n of_o god_n rom._n 1.4_o and_o that_o we_o be_v perfect_o justify_v by_o he_o and_o that_o therefore_o we_o may_v bold_o believe_v in_o god_n that_o have_v raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a as_o chap._n 4.24.25_o for_o he_o be_v deliver_v to_o death_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o be_v rise_v again_o for_o our_o justification_n thus_o much_o concern_v the_o reason_n or_o cause_n why_o our_o saviour_n christ_n rise_v again_o we_o come_v now_o to_o the_o proof_n and_o confirmation_n that_o he_o be_v rise_v again_o question_n which_o may_v they_o be_v answer_n they_o be_v either_o the_o testimony_n of_o other_o or_o else_o the_o appearance_n of_o our_o saviour_n himself_o by_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o day_n after_o his_o resurrection_n together_o with_o the_o word_n which_o he_o speak_v and_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o do_v in_o that_o space_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n such_o indeed_o be_v the_o testimony_n of_o saint_n luke_n act._n 1.3_o he_o present_v himself_o to_o his_o apostle_n alive_a say_v the_o evangelist_n after_o that_o he_o have_v suffer_v by_o many_o infallible_a token_n be_v see_v of_o they_o by_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o day_n and_o speak_v of_o those_o thing_n that_o appertain_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n these_o two_o sort_n of_o proof_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n the_o testimony_n of_o other_o and_o his_o own_o appearance_n they_o be_v so_o link_v in_o the_o holy_a story_n that_o we_o can_v altogether_o separate_v they_o asunder_o neither_o be_v it_o meet_v we_o shall_v do_v so_o nevertheless_o we_o may_v lawful_o distinguish_v they_o yea_o and_o notwithstanding_o the_o appearance_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v in_o order_n of_o time_n before_o the_o witness_n thereof_o yet_o because_o without_o the_o witness_n we_o can_v not_o have_v know_v the_o appearance_n see_v our_o saviour_n appear_v to_o they_o and_o not_o to_o we_o and_o so_o their_o testimony_n be_v the_o most_o immediate_a proof_n unto_o we_o therefore_o we_o will_v begin_v with_o they_o and_o yet_o so_o again_o as_o we_o will_v esteem_v of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n own_o appearance_n as_o the_o ground_n of_o their_o testimony_n and_o therefore_o stand_v most_o diligent_o to_o consider_v of_o they_o after_o that_o we_o have_v brief_o observe_v who_o they_o be_v which_o do_v witness_v this_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n unto_o us._n question_n first_o therefore_o who_o be_v they_o answer_n the_o witness_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v of_o these_o five_o sort_n follow_v first_o the_o holy_a angel_n from_o heaven_n second●y_o the_o saint_n rise_v from_o the_o dead_a three_o the_o soldier_n that_o be_v set_v to_o watch_v the_o sepulchre_n four_o certain_a godly_a woman_n first_o marie_n magdalene_n and_o then_o diverse_a other_o five_o the_o two_o disciple_n which_o go_v
that_o he_o vouchsafe_v to_o show_v himself_o first_o to_o he_o who_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v most_o unworthy_a to_o see_v he_o at_o all_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v judge_v peter_n according_a to_o his_o desert_n as_o touch_v that_o which_o the_o papist_n do_v upon_o such_o sandy_a ground_n as_o this_o be_v go_v about_o to_o gather_v that_o peter_n shall_v be_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v leave_v that_o principality_n of_o he_o to_o the_o pope_n who_o they_o will_v perforce_o needs_o have_v to_o be_v his_o successor_n it_o be_v so_o strange_a that_o it_o be_v wonder_n that_o they_o shall_v ever_o have_v be_v so_o sottish_a as_o not_o to_o see_v the_o extreme_a vanity_n of_o all_o such_o absurd_a conceit_n wherefore_o leave_v they_o with_o their_o most_o fond_a conceit_n we_o come_v to_o that_o which_o we_o reckon_v to_o be_v the_o four_o appearance_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n question_n where_o be_v that_o set_v forth_o unto_o we_o answer_n the_o evangelist_n luke_n do_v set_v it_o down_o unto_o we_o in_o a_o large_a narration_n chap._n 24._o beginning_n at_o the_o 13._o verse_n and_o so_o forth_o to_o the_o 36._o it_o be_v very_o true_a and_o he_o do_v it_o in_o the_o order_n follow_v explication_n explication_n first_o he_o show_v to_o how_o many_o he_o appear_v at_o this_o four_o time_n and_o he_o name_v the_o one_o of_o they_o by_o his_o name_n second_o he_o show_v the_o time_n when_o he_o appear_v three_o the_o place_n where_o four_o the_o occasion_n of_o his_o appearance_n five_o the_o manner_n how_o he_o make_v himself_o know_v six_o after_o what_o manner_n he_o depart_v from_o they_o and_o last_o of_o all_o what_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o this_o his_o four_o appearance_n let_v we_o therefore_o consider_v all_o thing_n from_o point_n to_o point_n as_o they_o lie_v in_o the_o text_n question_n and_o first_o how_o many_o and_o who_o be_v they_o to_o who_o our_o saviour_n appear_v this_o four_o time_n answer_n they_o be_v only_o two_o even_o the_o least_o number_n that_o may_v be_v yet_o sufficient_a to_o testify_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o earnest_a importance_n the_o one_o whereof_o be_v call_v cleopas_n as_o the_o evangelist_n express_v the_o other_o he_o name_v not_o explication_n explication_n so_o indeed_o we_o read_v verse_n 13._o behold_v say_v the_o evangelist_n two_o of_o they_o etc._n etc._n and_o verse_n 18._o the_o one_o be_v name_v cleopas_n who_o as_o it_o be_v very_o like_a be_v the_o husband_n of_o that_o marie_n which_o be_v call_v of_o cleopas_n john_n chap._n 19.25_o the_o which_o name_n of_o the_o one_o give_v to_o understand_v that_o though_o these_o two_o be_v the_o disciple_n of_o our_o saviour_n yet_o neither_o of_o they_o be_v of_o the_o eleven_o and_o this_o be_v yet_o more_o clear_a and_o manifest_a verse_n 33._o where_o the_o evangelist_n say_v that_o these_o return_v to_o jerusalem_n find_v the_o eleven_o gather_v together_o the_o time_n when_o our_o saviour_n appear_v to_o these_o two_o be_v next_o question_n when_o be_v that_o answer_n it_o be_v the_o same_o day_n that_o he_o arise_v from_o the_o dead_a appearance_n the_o proof_n of_o his_o resurrection_n by_o his_o four_o appearance_n and_o in_o the_o afternoon_n of_o that_o day_n explication_n day_n explication_n this_o also_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o same_o 13._o verse_n behold_v two_o of_o they_o go_v that_o same_o day_n etc._n etc._n and_o ver_fw-la 29._o it_o be_v towards_o night_n and_o the_o day_n be_v far_o spend_v when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o end_n of_o their_o journey_n while_o yet_o our_o saviour_n be_v with_o they_o this_o circumstance_n be_v worthy_a our_o special_a consideration_n compare_v with_o the_o former_a appearance_n even_o from_o the_o morning_n thereof_o very_o early_o till_o within_o the_o evening_n of_o the_o same_o and_o touch_v the_o afternoon_n a_o good_a part_n of_o it_o no_o doubt_n be_v spend_v about_o this_o one_o appearance_n as_o will_v be_v more_o manifest_a when_o we_o come_v to_o consider_v the_o l●rge_a communication_n of_o our_o saviour_n with_o these_o man_n so_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v not_o obscure_o signify_v hereby_o as_o the_o very_a use_n of_o the_o christian_n church_n ever_o since_o that_o time_n show_v also_o that_o so_o his_o meaning_n be_v understand_v of_o they_o that_o he_o will_v have_v this_o day_n in_o special_a manner_n holy_a to_o the_o memorial_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o therefore_o apt_o be_v it_o come_v in_o stead_n of_o the_o sabbath_n and_o lord_n day_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o be_v the_o lord_n day_n and_o sabbath_n of_o we_o and_o of_o all_o christian_n from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o resurrection_n when_o our_o saviour_n appear_v to_o these_o two_o disciple_n even_o to_o this_o day_n the_o place_n of_o the_o appearance_n be_v next_o question_n where_o be_v that_o answer_n it_o be_v in_o the_o way_n as_o they_o walk_v from_o jerusalem_n to_o emmaus_n it_o be_v likewise_o in_o the_o house_n wherein_o they_o rest_v themselves_o when_o they_o come_v to_o their_o journey_n end_n explication_n explication_n the_o evidence_n of_o this_o reach_v from_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o 13._o verse_n to_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o 31._o the_o distance_n also_o of_o emmaus_n from_o jerusalem_n be_v express_v by_o the_o evangelist_n to_o be_v about_o threescore_o furlong_n which_o be_v by_o estimation_n about_o 6._o mile_n contain_v a_o walk_n of_o three_o hour_n or_o thereabouts_o but_o when_o our_o saviour_n come_v unto_o they_o it_o be_v not_o mention_v save_v only_o that_o the_o largeness_n of_o the_o communication_n may_v well_o declare_v that_o he_o spend_v a_o great_a part_n of_o this_o time_n with_o they_o but_o leave_v the_o very_a point_n of_o the_o time_n in_o suspense_n let_v we_o draw_v more_o near_o to_o the_o matter_n itself_o question_n what_o be_v the_o occasion_n that_o our_o saviour_n show_v himself_o to_o these_o his_o disciple_n answer_n the_o occasion_n be_v express_v in_o the_o 14._o verse_n in_o these_o word_n and_o they_o talk_v together_o say_v st._n luke_n of_o all_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v explication_n explication_n these_o word_n show_v that_o their_o godly_a care_n be_v in_o confer_v one_o with_o another_o about_o the_o suffering_n of_o our_o saviour_n partly_o mourn_v together_o and_o partly_o comfort_v themselves_o as_o well_o as_o they_o can_v as_o will_v appear_v afterward_o insomuch_o as_o they_o hear_v by_o the_o first_o report_n of_o marie_n magdalen_n and_o also_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o peter_n and_o john_n who_o be_v at_o the_o sepulchre_n betimes_o in_o the_o morning_n that_o the_o body_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v remoove_v out_o of_o the_o sepulchre_n and_o likewise_o by_o some_o other_o of_o the_o woman_n who_o have_v see_v a_o vision_n of_o angel_n which_o say_v that_o he_o be_v alive_a though_o as_o yet_o these_o two_o disciple_n desirous_a to_o know_v and_o embrace_v the_o truth_n can_v not_o firm_o and_o comfortable_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v so_o this_o than_o be_v the_o occasion_n whereupon_o it_o please_v our_o saviour_n to_o show_v himself_o to_o these_o poor_a soul_n thus_o talk_v and_o confer_v one_o with_o another_o with_o heavy_a heart_n as_o they_o walk_v on_o together_o in_o their_o journey_n it_o follow_v now_o that_o we_o consider_v of_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o show_v of_o himself_o unto_o they_o question_n how_o do_v st._n luke_n describe_v that_o unto_o we_o answer_n it_o follow_v in_o the●4_n ●4_z chapter_n 15_o 16_o and_o 17._o verse_n in_o this_o manner_n 15_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v say_v the_o evangelist_n as_o they_o commune_v together_o and_o reason_v that_o jesus_n himself_o draw_v near_o and_o go_v with_o they_o 16_o but_o their_o eye_n be_v hold_v that_o they_o can_v not_o know_v he_o 17_o and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o what_o manner_n of_o communication_n be_v these_o that_o you_o have_v one_o with_o another_o as_o you_o walk_v and_o be_v sad_a explication_n touch_v the_o manner_n of_o our_o saviour_n his_o show_v of_o himself_o to_o these_o two_o of_o his_o disciple_n we_o see_v first_o of_o all_o by_o these_o word_n and_o so_o it_o will_v further_o appear_v afterward_o that_o he_o do_v it_o as_o a_o stranger_n by_o conceal_v as_o it_o be_v and_o hide_v the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o person_n from_o they_o for_o a_o while_n this_o conceal_v or_o hide_v be_v two_o way_n first_o because_o as_o saint_n luke_n say_v our_o saviour_n withhold_v their_o eye_n that_o be_v the_o discern_a power_n of_o they_o that_o they_o can_v not_o know_v he_o whereby_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o cause_n why_o they_o know_v he_o not_o be_v not_o any_o change_n of_o the_o stature_n or_o gate_n or_o countenance_n of_o our_o saviour_n now_o after_o
jew_n and_o gentile_n and_o that_o not_o only_o by_o his_o own_o most_o holy_a ministry_n but_o also_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o servant_n in_o the_o 53._o cha_n he_o prophesi_v of_o his_o suffering_n even_o as_o if_o he_o have_v see_v they_o inflict_v upon_o he_o before_o his_o eye_n and_o with_o the_o same_o he_o do_v most_o sweet_o lay_v before_o we_o and_o to_o the_o view_n of_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o faith_n what_o shall_v be_v and_o so_o still_o be_v the_o mighty_a and_o effectual_a fruit_n thereof_o to_o our_o eternal_a comfort_n and_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o speak_v of_o the_o miracle_n which_o our_o saviour_n shall_v work_v as_o the_o evangelist_n matthew_n do_v interpret_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v by_o his_o servant_n the_o prophet_n ch_n 8._o verse_n 16.17.18_o the_o which_o thing_n also_o he_o do_v before_o ch_n 35.5.6_o and_o beside_o all_o this_o he_o do_v in_o that_o 53._o chap._n foretell_v the_o burial_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o it_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o 9_o verse_n of_o the_o chapter_n in_o the_o 55._o ch_z verse_n 3._o he_o prophesi_v of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o therein_o of_o his_o prevail_a against_o death_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v perform_v to_o his_o church_n the_o fruit_n and_o blessing_n of_o god_n most_o gracious_a covenant_n the_o which_o he_o can_v not_o have_v do_v if_o he_o have_v perish_v by_o death_n as_o this_o part_n of_o his_o pprophecy_n be_v interpret_v by_o the_o apostle_n paul_n act._n 13.34_o and_o chap._n 61._o verse_n 8._o etc._n etc._n isaiah_n prophesi_v again_o of_o the_o preach_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o what_o shall_v be_v the_o singular_a fruit_n thereof_o the_o which_o his_o holy_a pprophecy_n be_v perform_v in_o part_n as_o our_o saviour_n himself_o certifi_v we_o at_o such_o time_n as_o he_o preach_v at_o nazareth_n luk._n 4.16_o etc._n etc._n his_o prophecy_n be_v many_o more_o concern_v our_o saviour_n as_o every_o where_o be_v to_o be_v read_v in_o his_o book_n of_o his_o prophecy_n even_o as_o they_o have_v be_v of_o ancient_a time_n compile_v and_o lay_v together_o that_o be_v even_o from_o the_o time_n that_o it_o please_v god_n to_o publish_v they_o to_o his_o church_n by_o his_o holy_a ministry_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o vzziah_n jotham_n ahas_n and_o hezekiah_n king_n of_o judah_n but_o these_o shall_v suffice_v for_o our_o present_a purpose_n we_o haste_v to_o the_o rest_n the_o prophet_n jeremiah_n prophesi_v likewise_o jeremiah_n jeremiah_n of_o what_o family_n our_o saviour_n christ_n shall_v take_v man_n nature_n and_o of_o that_o justification_n and_o salvation_n which_o shall_v come_v by_o he_o ch_n 23.5.6_o and_z ch_z 33.15_o the_o prophet_n ezekiel_n prophesi_v ezekiel_n ezekiel_n that_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o usurper_n and_o give_v to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o of_o right_a belong_v to_o he_o chap._n 21._o verse_n 26_o 27._o moreover_o all_o the_o vision_n of_o ezekiel_n from_o the_o 40._o ch_z to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o book_n of_o his_o prophecy_n they_o be_v typical_a adumbration_n or_o shadowing_n forth_o of_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o government_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n by_o a_o allegorical_a allusion_n to_o the_o land_n temple_n ceremony_n law_n commonwealth_n etc._n etc._n of_o the_o jew_n the_o prophet_n daniel_n in_o the_o 9_o ch_z ver_fw-la 24._o etc._n etc._n he_o foretell_v the_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n yea_o the_o year_n of_o his_o death_n and_o the_o time_n of_o the_o year_n if_o we_o mark_v well_o that_o computation_n which_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n number_v and_o deliver_v unto_o he_o hosea_n prophesi_v of_o the_o victory_n of_o our_o saviour_n over_o our_o last_o enemy_n death_n and_o the_o grave_n hosea_n hosea_n chapter_n 13_o verse_n 14._o yea_o so_o that_o we_o in_o he_o shall_v likewise_o overcome_v for_o ever_o 1._o cor._n 15.54_o etc._n etc._n joel._n joel._n joel_n prophesi_v of_o the_o extraordinary_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o god_n will_v give_v to_o his_o church_n immediate_o after_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n up_o into_o heaven_n ch_n 2.28_o etc._n etc._n and_o act._n 2._o verse_n 14.15.16.17_o etc._n etc._n and_o joel_n again_o chap._n 3.16_o etc._n etc._n amos._n amos._n amos_n foretell_v the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n as_o a_o fruit_n of_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o of_o the_o preach_n of_o his_o gospel_n chap._n 9.11_o and_o act._n 15._o verse_n 15.16.17_o obadiah_n obadiah_n obadiah_n likewise_o do_v prophesy_v of_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o of_o the_o counit_n and_o conjoin_v of_o they_o with_o the_o jew_n to_o be_v one_o church_n unto_o our_o saviour_n christ_n verse_n 17._o etc._n etc._n to_o the_o end_n jonah_n jonah_n jonah_n be_v a_o prophetical_a type_n of_o the_o burial_n and_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o that_o he_o be_v three_o day_n and_o three_o night_n in_o the_o belly_n of_o the_o whale_n as_o our_o saviour_n himself_o show_v math._n 12.39.40_o and_o chap._n 16.4_o micah_n micah_n micah_n prophesi_v of_o the_o place_n of_o our_o saviour_n birth_n and_o therewithal_o of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o of_o his_o eternal_a deity_n assume_v unto_o it_o the_o humane_a nature_n chap._n 5.1.2_o nahum_n nahum_n nahum_n prophesi_v that_o the_o lord_n shall_v return_v with_o the_o excellency_n of_o jacob_n that_o be_v with_o our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n on_o the_o behalf_n of_o his_o church_n against_o the_o assyrian_n as_o junius_n interprete_v posteriori_fw-la bib_n editione_n cha_n 2._o verse_n 2._o habbakuk_n habbakuk_n habbakuk_n set_v down_o the_o excellent_a doctrine_n of_o our_o justification_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n chap._n 2.4_o as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n do_v interpret_v those_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n rom._n 1.17_o and_o again_o gal._n 3.11_o and_o heb._n 10.38_o the_o just_a shall_v live_v by_o faith_n zephaniah_n zephaniah_n zephaniah_n prophesi_v of_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o of_o the_o sanctify_a gift_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o shall_v be_v give_v they_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o by_o his_o gospel_n to_o wit_n faith_n and_o repentance_n with_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o everlasting_a life_n haggai_n haggai_n how_o the_o prophet_n haggai_n prophesy_v of_o our_o saviour_n we_o have_v partly_o see_v before_o in_o that_o the_o second_o temple_n shall_v be_v make_v more_o glorious_a than_o the_o former_a by_o the_o come_n of_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n into_o it_o and_o by_o his_o preach_n in_o it_o etc._n etc._n moreover_o he_o prophesi_v of_o the_o mighty_a power_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o gentile_n to_o god_n under_o these_o significant_a speech_n of_o shake_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o saviour_n shall_v overthrow_v all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o heathen_a chap._n 2._o verse_n 3.4.5.6.7_o 8._o and_o verse_n 22.23_o and_o all_o this_o under_o the_o name_n and_o person_n of_o zerubbabel_n a_o prince_n of_o judah_n one_o of_o the_o ancestor_n of_o our_o saviour_n who_o be_v also_o by_o the_o appointment_n of_o god_n a_o type_n and_o figure_n of_o he_o zechariah_n zechariah_n zechariah_n in_o the_o first_o chap._n of_o his_o holy_a prophecy_n ver_fw-la 8._o etc._n etc._n he_o show_v that_o in_o a_o vision_n our_o saviour_n christ_n represent_v himself_o unto_o he_o in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o man_n and_o as_o a_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o who_o other_o angel_n do_v serve_v for_o the_o help_n of_o the_o church_n against_o the_o adversary_n thereof_o and_o in_o the_o same_o chap._n he_o show_v further_a that_o this_o chief_a angel_n be_v a_o mediator_n unto_o god_n for_o mercy_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o his_o church_n in_o the_o 2._o ch_z he_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o have_v another_o vision_n wherein_o this_o angel_n inform_v he_o by_o another_o angel_n that_o the_o gentile_n shall_v be_v call_v to_o be_v one_o church_n with_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o three_o chapter_n he_o see_v in_o another_o vision_n the_o same_o angel_n even_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o likeness_n of_o a_o angel_n rebuke_v satan_n for_o hinder_v the_o peace_n and_o prosperity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o he_o show_v also_o that_o he_o use_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o other_o angel_n his_o servant_n to_o further_o the_o prosperity_n thereof_o yea_o the_o prophet_n show_v that_o this_o angel_n assure_v jehoshua_n the_o high_a priest_n appearance_n the_o proof_n of_o his_o resurrection_n by_o his_o first_o appearance_n &_o all_o that_o shall_v faithful_o serve_v god_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o holy_a ordinance_n that_o the_o lord_n will_v give_v
they_o a_o bless_a estate_n after_o this_o life_n like_v to_o the_o holy_a angel_n verse_n 7_o and_o final_o that_o in_o due_a time_n the_o lord_n will_v send_v our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o his_o church_n in_o man_n nature_n of_o who_o he_o speak_v under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o branch_n i_o will_v bring_v forth_o say_v he_o the_o branch_n my_o servant_n v_o 8._o likewise_o in_o the_o 4._o ch_n the_o prophet_n declare_v that_o the_o same_o angel_n jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n show_v he_o in_o a_o other_o vision_n the_o prosperous_a success_n of_o zerubbabel_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o people_n a_o figure_n and_o type_n of_o christ_n in_o build_v the_o material_a temple_n of_o jerusalem_n after_o their_o return_n out_o of_o babylon_n notwithstanding_o all_o the_o contrary_a endeavour_n of_o their_o malignant_a &_o malicious_a adversary_n and_o therewithal_o figure_v out_o the_o everlasting_a favour_n of_o god_n towards_o his_o church_n through_o ch_z and_o the_o spiritual_a gift_n &_o grace_n which_o he_o mind_v to_o bestow_v upon_o it_o continual_o like_v as_o the_o olive_n branch_n which_o the_o prophet_n see_v nourish_v the_o lamp_n of_o the_o golden_a candlestick_n to_o burn_v and_o give_v light_a without_o cease_v for_o this_o be_v fulfil_v only_o in_o &_o by_o our_o savi_fw-la chr_n from_o who_o light_n we_o have_v all_o our_o light_n and_o of_o who_o fullness_n alone_o we_o receive_v grace_n for_o grace_n as_o the_o evangelist_n john_n affirm_v ch_n 1.16_o in_o the_o 6._o ch_n vers_n 12.13_o the_o prophet_n show_v that_o under_o the_o type_n of_o jehoshua_n the_o high_a priest_n who_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o man_n who_o name_n shall_v be_v natzrath_n that_o be_v a_o branch_n or_o sprout_v he_o be_v inform_v again_o of_o the_o come_n of_o our_o sa_o ch_n the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o the_o native_a of_o man_n and_o of_o the_o unite_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n together_o in_o one_o by_o he_o this_o be_v fulfil_v in_o that_o he_o be_v bring_v up_o in_o nazareth_n do_v thereof_o patronimical_o as_o we_o may_v say_v &_o from_o the_o place_n of_o his_o education_n take_v a_o kind_n of_o surname_n to_o be_v call_v a_o nazaritane_n in_o that_o from_o thence_o he_o proceed_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o salvation_n etc._n etc._n as_o have_v be_v declare_v before_o in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o 8_o ch_z he_o prophesi_v of_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n to_o be_v one_o church_n unite_v with_o the_o jew_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n mention_v even_o now_o in_o the_o 9_o ch_n verse_n 9_o he_o prophesi_v of_o the_o princely_a come_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o jerusalem_n to_o reform_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o temple_n &_o thereby_o to_o declare_v his_o sovereign_a authority_n over_o his_o church_n the_o which_o be_v fulfil_v as_o the_o evangelist_n do_v all_o of_o they_o testify_v with_o great_a power_n and_o glory_n though_o not_o after_o a_o worldly_a pompous_a manner_n mat_n 21.1.2_o 3._o etc._n etc._n 16._o mark_v 11.1_o etc._n etc._n 12._o luke_n 19.29_o etc._n etc._n 40._o john_n 12._o verse_n 12_o etc._n etc._n 16._o in_o the_o 10._o ch_n he_o prophesi_v of_o the_o mighty_a prevail_a of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o saviour_n ch_z that_o shall_v be_v by_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o apostle_n v._n 6.7_o etc._n etc._n in_o the_o 11._o ch_n he_o prophesi_v of_o the_o most_o intolerable_a ingratitude_n of_o the_o jew_n argue_v by_o their_o buy_n and_o sell_v of_o our_o saviour_n at_o so_o vile_a a_o price_n as_o judas_n the_o traitor_n sell_v he_o and_o as_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o the_o other_o ruler_n of_o the_o jew_n buy_v he_o verse_n 12.13_o fulfil_v mat_n 27.3.4_o 5._o etc._n etc._n 10._o in_o the_o 12._o ch_n he_o prophesi_v of_o their_o crucify_a and_o pierce_v of_o he_o on_o the_o cross_n with_o the_o spear_n verse_n 10._o fulfil_v john_n 19.34.37_o but_o yet_o so_o as_o therewithal_o he_o prophesi_v also_o of_o the_o true_a repentance_n of_o the_o faithful_a in_o that_o they_o with_o godly_a sorrow_n for_o their_o sin_n shall_v look_v up_o to_o he_o who_o they_o have_v pierce_v and_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 13._o chap_n he_o prophesi_v of_o other_o fruit_n of_o the_o come_n of_o our_o saviour_n both_o to_o jew_n and_o gentile_n whosoever_o shall_v true_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o repent_v of_o their_o sin_n namely_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v remission_n of_o sin_n through_o that_o fountain_n of_o blood_n and_o water_n which_o issue_v from_o the_o hand_n &_o foot_n and_o side_n yea_o from_o both_o the_o body_n and_o heart_n of_o our_o most_o bless_a propitiatory_a and_o peacemaking_a saviour_n moreover_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o he_o have_v prophesy_v in_o the_o former_a chap_n shall_v cut_v off_o and_o rid_v his_o church_n of_o false_a teacher_n and_o restore_v a_o sincere_a and_o faithful_a ministry_n unto_o his_o church_n the_o which_o he_o will_v bless_v to_o the_o separate_n of_o those_o that_o be_v he_o from_o the_o rest_n so_o as_o he_o of_o his_o free_a grace_n profess_v and_o declare_v himself_o to_o take_v they_o for_o his_o people_n they_o shall_v likewise_o by_o fa●●_n profess_v and_o acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o take_v he_o for_o the_o lord_n their_o god_n final_o in_o the_o last_o chapter_n zechariah_n appearance_n the_o proof_n of_o his_o resurrection_n by_o his_o four_o appearance_n prophesy_v of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o jew_n by_o the_o roman_n because_o of_o their_o rebelion_n against_o our_o saviour_n christ_n he_o do_v therewithal_o comfort_v the_o remnant_n of_o the_o faithful_a among_o the_o jew_n and_o all_o believe_a gentile_n that_o god_n will_v have_v a_o most_o merciful_a regard_n of_o they_o as_o the_o allegorical_a description_n of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n do_v notable_o give_v the_o understanding_n reader_n easy_o to_o conceive_v malachi_n malachi_n malachi_n the_o last_o of_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n foretell_v the_o come_n of_o our_o saviour_n into_o the_o temple_n as_o be_v the_o very_a true_a lord_n of_o it_o and_o that_o most_o holy_a angel_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n who_o have_v in_o the_o person_n of_o a_o angel_n and_o in_o the_o likeness_n of_o man_n so_o often_o represent_v himself_o to_o his_o servant_n the_o patriarch_n prince_n and_o prophet_n from_o time_n to_o time_n the_o manner_n and_o end_n and_o effect_n of_o his_o come_n in_o the_o very_a true_a nature_n of_o man_n he_o likewise_o foreshow_v chap_n 3.1.2.3.4_o and_o also_o of_o the_o come_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n immediate_o before_o he_o chap_n 4._o verse_n 5_o 6._o like_a as_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n have_v prophesy_v many_o year_n before_o this_o chap_n 40.3.4_o the_o which_o be_v fulfil_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n mat_n 4._o verse_n 3._o mark_v chap_n 1._o verse_n 1.2.3_o etc._n etc._n luke_n chap_n 3._o verse_n 3.4.5.6_o and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n himself_o as_o the_o evangelist_n john_n witness_v chap_n 1.23_o and_o our_o saviour_n christ_n mat_n 17.9.10.11.12.13_o thus_o then_o we_o may_v plentiful_o perceive_v yea_o though_o we_o have_v not_o call_v to_o mind_v all_o that_o moses_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n have_v write_v of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n that_o our_o saviour_n may_v as_o he_o do_v very_o just_o reprove_v his_o disciple_n for_o that_o they_o have_v make_v no_o better_a use_n of_o their_o read_n and_o hear_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n read_v and_o interpret_v unto_o they_o yea_o if_o it_o have_v be_v for_o no_o more_o than_o their_o neglect_n of_o his_o own_o most_o sacred_a and_o diligent_a preach_v unto_o they_o whereby_o doubtless_o if_o they_o have_v well_o attend_v and_o mark_v they_o may_v have_v be_v abundant_o relieve_v and_o furnish_v against_o every_o scruple_n and_o doubt_n which_o cause_v they_o to_o call_v into_o question_n whether_o he_o be_v the_o true_a messiah_n or_o no_o and_o namely_o against_o that_o offence_n or_o scandal_n which_o arise_v from_o his_o suffering_n and_o death_n for_o as_o it_o appear_v plain_o by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v rehearse_v moses_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prophet_n aim_v at_o these_o two_o point_n first_o to_o foretell_v the_o suffering_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o then_o the_o glory_n which_o be_v to_o follow_v the_o same_o yea_o even_o his_o suffering_n unto_o the_o death_n and_o after_o that_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n etc._n etc._n and_o thenceforth_o also_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n his_o princely_a government_n over_o his_o whole_a church_n and_o whatsoever_o else_o belong_v to_o the_o glorify_v of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n through_o the_o same_o our_o bless_a lord_n and_o saviour_n to_o who_o be_v all_o praise_n and_o glory_n
profit_v ourselves_o in_o this_o behalf_n as_o we_o ought_v to_o have_v do_v thus_o much_o concern_v the_o place_n now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o person_n to_o who_o our_o saviour_n appear_v question_n who_o be_v they_o answer_n they_o be_v the_o eleven_o most_o choice_n disciple_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o diverse_a other_o gather_v together_o with_o they_o explication_n explication_n so_o we_o have_v see_v before_o in_o the_o 33._o verse_n of_o the_o 24._o chapter_n of_o saint_n luke_n and_o hereunto_o serve_v the_o secrecy_n both_o of_o the_o time_n and_o also_o of_o the_o place_n before_o declare_v for_o these_o no_o doubt_n give_v encouragement_n to_o the_o great_a assembly_n and_o the_o rather_o also_o do_v our_o saviour_n at_o this_o time_n show_v himself_o to_o the_o eleven_o that_o therewithal_o he_o may_v certify_v many_o of_o the_o rest_n likewise_o be_v assemble_v together_o with_o they_o but_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v why_o he_o do_v not_o first_o of_o all_o show_n himself_o to_o the_o eleven_o see_v he_o mind_v to_o use_v they_o in_o his_o special_a service_n of_o preach_v and_o publish_v his_o resurrection_n yea_o in_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o his_o gospel_n above_o all_o other_o q●_n what_o may_v be_v the_o reason_n hereof_o ans_fw-fr we_o have_v see_v it_o in_o part_n before_o insomuch_o as_o it_o please_v our_o saviour_n so_o to_o bl●ss●_n that_o singular_a ca●e_n which_o the_o woman_n have_v in_o seek_v after_o he_o yea_o though_o it_o be_v not_o without_o some_o weakness_n and_o error_n of_o judgement_n and_o now_o we_o may_v furthermore_o well_o conceive_v that_o our_o saviour_n will_v leave_v his_o chief_a disciple_n for_o a_o while_n unt●_n themselves_o to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o have_v experience_n of_o their_o own_o flowne_n and_o hardness_n of_o heart_n to_o believe_v they_o may_v the_o rather_o from_o thence_o learn_v to_o have_v compassion_n ou●r_v other_o and_o to_o be_v the_o more_o earnest_a in_o preach_v and_o testify_v the_o gospel_n unto_o all_o those_o to_o who_o he_o shall_v send_v they_o that_o so_o many_o poor_a soul_n may_v be_v confirm_v in_o the_o faith_n by_o they_o final_o t●e_v difficulty_n and_o hardness_n of_o the_o establish_n of_o these_o chief_a disciple_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o resurrection_n yea_o after_o many_o testimony_n give_v thereof_o do_v more_o clear_o confirm_v unto_o we_o that_o their_o testimony_n be_v no_o feign_a or_o over_o credulous_a report_n but_o a_o witness_v of_o that_o truth_n which_o be_v most_o effectual_o and_o above_o all_o that_o they_o look_v for_o confirm_v unto_o they_o explication_n explication_n these_o reason_n may_v well_o satisfy_v the_o former_a demand_n i●_n be_v true_a that_o the_o will_n of_o our_o saviour_n ought_v to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o we_o for_o his_o fact_n although_o we_o can_v see_v no_o other_o reason_n of_o it_o yea_o though_o our_o vain_a reason_n shall_v imagine_v itself_o to_o have_v great_a reason_n against_o that_o which_o be_v do_v for_o to_o control_v the_o divine_a wisdom_n of_o god_n in_o any_o thing_n which_o he_o do_v be_v to_o show_v a_o man_n self_n most_o foolish_a and_o presumptuous_a when_o he_o will_v think_v himself_o most_o wise_a it_o be_v no_o better_o then_o to_o boast_v of_o reason_n in_o extreme_a and_o frantic_a madness_n nevertheless_o when_o god_n himself_o shall_v vouchsafe_v to_o show_v we_o any_o light_n of_o holy_a reason_n to_o discern_v of_o his_o divine_a work_n and_o the_o order_n thereof_o it_o stand_v with_o good_a duty_n then_o that_o we_o shall_v reverendly_a consider_v and_o weigh_v the_o same_o to_o our_o more_o fall_n instruction_n or_o admonition_n and_o comfort_n as_o the_o matter_n itself_o shall_v require_v and_o touch_v the_o present_a argument_n it_o may_v just_o be_v both_o for_o instruction_n and_o admonition_n and_o comfort_v thus_o for_o instruction_n and_o admonition_n because_o insomuch_o as_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a difficulty_n &_o contrary_a to_o all_o humane_a reason_n to_o believe_v yea_o to_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o consequent_o to_o be_v persuade_v of_o the_o fruit_n &_o benefit_n thereof_o and_o namely_o of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n through_o he_o hereby_o we_o be_v admonish_v that_o we_o do_v therefore_o cast_v away_o all_o negligent_a drowsiness_n in_o hear_v read_v meditate_v pray_v yea_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_a we_o do_v use_v all_o diligent_a &_o godly_a care_n both_o in_o preach_v and_o hear_v etc._n etc._n that_o so_o happy_o we_o may_v attain_v unto_o faith_n and_o the_o bless_a increase_v thereof_o for_o certain_o faith_n be_v no_o gift_n of_o nature_n neither_o will_v it_o grow_v and_o increase_v of_o itself_o unless_o it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v water_v with_o dew_n from_o heaven_n that_o so_o i●_n may_v fructify_v and_o have_v all_o meet_a increase_v from_o god_n like_v as_o it_o come_v at_o the_o first_o even_o from_o he_o alone_o thus_o therefore_o as_o be_v say_v the_o present_a argument_n serve_v for_o instruction_n and_o admonition_n now_o for_o comfort_v it_o serve_v also_o excellent_o well_o in_o that_o the_o chief_a disciple_n be_v at_o the_o the_o first_o most_o incredulous_a and_o yet_o be_v afterward_o most_o full_o persuade_v of_o this_o truth_n we_o in_o believe_v it_o from_o their_o testimony_n do_v not_o give_v credit_n to_o a_o matter_n of_o forgery_n and_o colourable_a compact_n but_o to_o that_o which_o have_v most_o divine_a evidence_n for_o the_o undoubted_a warrant_n and_o confirmation_n of_o it_o and_o this_o shall_v suffice_v we_o for_o the_o present_a concern_v the_o person_n to_o who_o our_o saviour_n christ_n appear_v this_o five_o time_n that_o we_o now_o speak_v of_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o appearance_n come_v next_o to_o be_v consider_v question_n how_o be_v that_o answer_v it_o be_v in_o very_o miraculous_a and_o strange_a manner_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o suddenness_n and_o also_o of_o the_o stillness_n of_o it_o insomuch_o as_o though_o the_o door_n be_v fast_o shut_v yet_o they_o hear_v no_o noi●●_n or_o ●inne_n before_o his_o come_n in_o among_o they_o explication_n explication_n so_o indeed_o do_v the_o evangelist_n give_v we_o plain_o to_o understand_v as_o we_o may_v remember_v f_z they_z that_o which_o be_v allege_v concern_v the_o place_n where_o our_o saviour_n at_o this_o time_n show_v himself_o qu._n but_o how_o be_v we_o to_o understand_v the_o miracle_n of_o this_o his_o appearance_n an._n i_o have_v be_v teach_v so_o to_o understand_v it_o as_o we_o must_v in_o no_o wise_a prejudice_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o our_o saviour_n now_o after_o that_o he_o be_v rise_v see_v that_o be_v to_o prejudice_v yea_o in_o effect_n to_o disannul_v the_o resurrection_n itself_o expli_v it_o be_v very_o true_a and_o therefore_o you_o have_v be_v teach_v a_o very_a good_a rule_n to_o go_v by_o even_o as_o the_o truth_n itself_o require_v of_o you_o the_o which_o also_o be_v the_o rather_o to_o be_v diligent_o and_o religious_o regard_v of_o we_o because_o the_o neglect_n of_o it_o have_v be_v a_o cause_n of_o confirm_v many_o in_o sundry_a gross_a error_n contrary_a to_o the_o express_a doctrine_n of_o the_o faith_n for_o they_o misconceive_a the_o miracle_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o saviour_n now_o glorify_v they_o have_v imagine_v that_o he_o come_v bodily_a among_o they_o by_o a_o penetration_n or_o pierce_v through_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o door_n without_o any_o open_n of_o they_o and_o thereupon_o also_o have_v fancy_v a_o ubiquitary_a or_o everywhere_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n by_o a_o omnipotent_a and_o unlimited_a power_n of_o his_o godhead_n and_o therefore_o say_v they_o further_o why_o may_v not_o his_o body_n be_v real_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n where_o and_o whensoever_o even_o in_o so_o many_o place_n as_o it_o please_v he_o when_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n be_v administer_v as_o well_o as_o he_o be_v thus_o strange_o and_o miraculous_o present_a even_o at_o a_o instant_n with_o his_o disciple_n though_o the_o door_n be_v fast_o shut_v the_o rule_n therefore_o which_o you_o speak_v of_o be_v most_o necessary_a to_o be_v due_o observe_v of_o we_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v avoid_v these_o gross_a and_o erroneous_a misconstruction_n for_o it_o be_v most_o centaine_a from_o all_o the_o ground_n and_o article_n of_o our_o christian_n faith_n right_o understand_v that_o albeit_o our_o saviour_n be_v almighty_a in_o that_o he_o be_v god_n and_o also_o be_v in_o the_o same_o his_o deity_n every_o where_o present_a always_o and_o at_o once_o yet_o that_o his_o humane_a nature_n do_v by_o his_o own_o most_o holy_a will_n and_o
settle_a decree_n constant_o re●aine_o the_o natural_a property_n of_o it_o yea_o since_o the_o glorify_v of_o it_o as_o well_o as_o before_o so_o far_o forth_o that_o it_o can_v be_v but_o in_o one_o place_n at_o once_o neither_o can_v pierce_v or_o move_v i●_n self_n through_o any_o bodily_a substance_n but_o it_o must_v caus●_n it_o to_o remove_v or_o to_o sunder_v and_o divide_v itself_o ●hat_n it_o may_v have_v passage_n and_o therefore_o do_v our_o saviour_n himself_o tell_v his_o disciple_n that_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o bodily_a presence_n they_o shall_v not_o have_v he_o always_o though_o by_o his_o divine_a spirit_n and_o the_o grace_n ●hereof_o he_o will_v be_v present_a with_o they_o for_o their_o time_n and_o with_o all_o the_o faithful_a minister_n of_o his_o gospel_n from_o time_n to_o time_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n affirm_v plain_o that_o touch_v his_o bodily_a presence_n the_o heaven_n must_v contain_v he_o even_o from_o the_o ti●e_n of_o his_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n until_o his_o come_n again_o to_o judge_v the_o world_n to_o this_o very_a end_n no_o doubt_n do_v our_o saviour_n at_o the_o first_o take_v and_o unite_v the_o true_a humane_a nature_n to_o the_o divine_a in_o one_o person_n that_o it_o may_v so_o remain_v as_o touch_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o to_o the_o benefit_n and_o comfort_n of_o all_o the_o elect_a of_o mankind_n for_o ever_o though_o ever_o since_o the_o resurrection_n it_o have_v lay_v down_o all_o the_o natural_a infirmity_n and_o vileness_n or_o dishonour_n of_o that_o condition_n which_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n have_v bring_v upon_o the_o same_o for_o these_o cause_n therefore_o we_o be_v not_o to_o esteem_v the_o miracle_n of_o our_o saviour_n his_o come_n in_o among_o his_o disciple_n so_o sudden_o even_o at_o such_o a_o season_n as_o the_o door_n be_v now_o shut_v in_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o night_n time_n to_o consist_v in_o the_o deify_n or_o spiritual_a alteration_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n but_o in_o his_o divine_a power_n whereby_o either_o at_o his_o immediate_a commandment_n the_o door_n open_v unto_o he_o and_o shut_v again_o without_o any_o noise_n or_o at_o the_o least_o ●he_v hear_v of_o the_o company_n be_v so_o restrain_v that_o they_o can_v not_o hear_v the_o same_o like_v as_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o two_o disciple_n be_v hold_v before_o so_o that_o they_o can_v not_o know_v our_o saviour_n or_o else_o he_o use_v the_o ministry_n of_o his_o angel_n hereunto_o like_v as_o by_o a_o angel_n he_o do_v afterward_o open_a the_o door_n of_o the_o prison_n to_o let_v out_o his_o apostle_n and_o shut_v they_o again_o no_o one_o of_o the_o keeper_n or_o watchman_n once_o hear_v the_o same_o act_n 5.17_o 18_o 19_o etc._n etc._n and_o chap._n 12.4_o 5_o 6_o etc._n etc._n and_o thus_o be_v our_o saviour_n describe_v general_o to_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o open_v and_o shu●teth_v both_o hear_n and_o see_v and_o understanding_n and_o affection_n and_o all_o thing_n by_o his_o most_o sovereign_a and_o divine_a authority_n according_a to_o his_o own_o holy_a will_n and_o pleasure_n revel_v 3_o 7._o this_o therefore_o be_v the_o true_a manner_n of_o the_o miraculous_a and_o strange_a appearance_n of_o our_o saviour_n altogether_o without_o any_o deposition_n of_o the_o natural_a property_n which_o do_v concern_v the_o nature_n and_o substance_n of_o a_o true_a body_n the_o which_o will_v yet_o further_o be_v manifest_a from_o the_o word_n and_o action_n of_o our_o saviour_n himself_o in_o the_o time_n of_o this_o his_o appear_v and_o abide_v with_o his_o disciple_n and_o therefore_o leave_v it_o for_o a_o while_n we_o come_v now_o in_o the_o five_o place_n to_o the_o behaviour_n of_o our_o saviour_n both_o in_o word_n and_o deed_n in_o this_o time_n of_o his_o five_o appearance_n and_o therewithal_o also_o to_o the_o effect_n thereof_o as_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o last_o place_n for_o insomuch_o as_o these_o thing_n be_v intermingle_v in_o the_o text_n we_o will_v according_o speak_v of_o they_o as_o the_o text_n itself_o shall_v give_v the_o occasion_n the_o speech_n and_o action_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v sundry_a and_o so_o be_v the_o effect_n also_o in_o the_o heart_n and_o sense_n of_o the_o disciple_n as_o be_v say_v before_o and_o as_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o will_v consider_v in_o the_o particular_n of_o they_o question_n first_o of_o all_o therefore_o which_o be_v the_o first_o speech_n of_o our_o saviour_n answer_n the_o first_o speech_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o his_o disciple_n be_v this_o verse_n 36._o peace_n be_v unto_o you_o question_n true_a so_o we_o read_v luke_n 24.36_o and_o john_n chap._n 20._o verse_n 19_o how_o be_v these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o be_v understand_v be_v they_o only_o to_o be_v take_v as_o word_n of_o a_o common_a and_o ordinary_a salutation_n and_o nothing_o otherwise_o answer_n yes_o they_o be_v not_o only_a word_n of_o love_a and_o familiar_a salutation_n whereby_o our_o saviour_n wish_v the_o welfare_n of_o his_o disciple_n but_o they_o contain_v in_o they_o the_o virtue_n of_o a_o commandment_n &_o warrant_n of_o all_o spiritual_a peace_n &_o prosperity_n to_o they_o through_o faith_n in_o his_o name_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n so_o they_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v indeed_o even_o in_o a_o sense_n far_o exceed_v the_o salutation_n of_o david_n send_v to_o nabal_n by_o his_o messenger_n 1._o sam._n 25.6_o or_o that_o common_a holy_a salutation_n use_v among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n the_o lord_n be_v with_o you_o or_o the_o lord_n bless_v you_o ruth_n 2.4_o psal_n 129.8_o they_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v here_o like_v as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v they_o before_o his_o death_n when_o he_o send_v they_o forth_o to_o preach_v for_o a_o time_n in_o that_o cursory_a course_n of_o ministry_n which_o be_v a_o preparative_n to_o their_o great_a and_o general_a apostleship_n at_o what_o time_n he_o direct_v they_o to_o pronounce_v peace_n to_o that_o house_n which_o shall_v give_v they_o any_o entertainment_n and_o promise_v that_o peace_n even_o more_o than_o ordinary_a peace_n shall_v rest_v upon_o every_o such_o one_o as_o shall_v so_o receive_v they_o mat._n 10.12.13_o and_o that_o we_o be_v to_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o such_o sense_n as_o be_v answer_v it_o will_v be_v furthermore_o evident_a unto_o we_o if_o we_o due_o consider_v first_o who_o he_o be_v that_o make_v the_o promise_n even_o the_o prince_n of_o peace_n promise_v and_o give_v to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n yea_o that_o prince_n of_o peace_n the_o peace_n of_o who_o government_n shall_v increase_v and_o have_v no_o end_n isai_n 9_o verse_n 6.7_o and_o if_o we_o shall_v yet_o further_o consider_v what_o his_o promise_n and_o bequeathement_a as_o it_o be_v be_v to_o his_o disciple_n a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n john_n 14.17_o peace_n i_o leave_v with_o you_o my_o peace_n i_o give_v unto_o you_o not_o as_o the_o world_n give_v i_o do_v give_v unto_o you_o let_v not_o your_o heart_n be_v trouble_v nor_o fear_n and_o if_o we_o shall_v consider_v herewithal_o how_o it_o be_v say_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o he_o come_v and_o preach_v peace_n both_o to_o jew_n and_o gentile_n ephes_n 2.17_o likewise_o if_o we_o do_v call_v to_o mind_n and_o consider_v that_o salutatorie_a prayer_n of_o the_o apostle_n grace_n mercy_n and_o peace_n from_o god_n the_o father_n and_o from_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o which_o as_o we_o know_v be_v usual_a in_o their_o holy_a epistle_n moreover_o if_o we_o weigh_v well_o with_o ourselves_o that_o the_o birth_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o chariot_n of_o peace_n send_v from_o heaven_n down_o to_o the_o earth_n as_o the_o angel_n of_o heaven_n declare_v luke_n chap._n 2._o verse_n 14._o final_o if_o we_o shall_v consider_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v righteousness_n and_o peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o will_v then_o every_o way_n be_v manifest_a unto_o we_o that_o our_o saviour_n in_o say_v to_o his_o disciple_n peace_n be_v unto_o you_o do_v not_o after_o a_o common_a manner_n salute_v they_o or_o wish_v they_o outward_a and_o worldly_a prosperity_n or_o carnal_a rest_n and_o security_n in_o earthly_a pleasure_n but_o a_o most_o holy_a spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a peace_n for_o as_o touch_v carnal_a and_o worldly_a peace_n he_o say_v profess_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o he_o come_v not_o to_o bring_v peace_n on_o the_o earth_n but_o rather_o a_o sword_n to_o arm_v all_o that_o be_v he_o against_o all_o peace_n in_o the_o pleasure_n of_o sin_n only_o he_o pronounce_v and_o assure_v that_o peace_n of_o conscience_n which_o pass_v all_o
though_o we_o see_v not_o either_o to_o the_o mystical_a transubstantiation_n of_o the_o bread_n in_o the_o sacrament_n into_o the_o very_a true_a body_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n or_o to_o the_o consubstantiation_n of_o the_o body_n with_o the_o bread_n or_o to_o the_o invisible_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n every_o where_o without_o the_o sacrament_n do_v most_o gross_o and_o erroneous_o misapply_v these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n insomuch_o as_o it_o be_v so_o far_o off_o that_o those_o monstrous_a opinion_n have_v any_o warrant_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o they_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o all_o that_o which_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n do_v teach_v &_o assure_v we_o concern_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o natural_a body_n that_o it_o be_v but_o in_o one_o place_n at_o once_o and_o that_o wheresoever_o it_o be_v or_o have_v be_v that_o it_o be_v and_o have_v be_v always_o both_o visible_a and_o touchable_a as_o our_o saviour_n himself_o have_v plain_o give_v we_o to_o understand_v both_o in_o this_o and_o also_o in_o his_o former_a appearance_n moreover_o we_o consider_v due_o of_o the_o holy_a end_n wherefore_o our_o saviour_n retain_v the_o print_n of_o his_o wound_n in_o his_o most_o glorious_a and_o holy_a body_n for_o a_o time_n namely_o to_o give_v assurance_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o thereby_o also_o to_o assure_v we_o of_o the_o bless_a fruit_n of_o his_o death_n and_o endure_v of_o those_o wound_n themselves_o which_o be_v to_o satisfy_v god_n wrath_n just_o bend_v against_o we_o etc._n etc._n and_o consider_v also_o the_o holy_a use_n which_o thomas_n make_v of_o the_o see_v of_o they_o it_o can_v but_o be_v a_o most_o horrible_a thing_n for_o we_o to_o think_v of_o the_o curse_a blasphemy_n of_o those_o which_o in_o their_o fury_n or_o otherwise_o profane_o and_o wicked_o swear_v by_o these_o wound_n of_o our_o saviour_n thus_o much_o brief_o concern_v the_o proof_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n by_o his_o sixth_o appearance_n and_o unto_o this_o the_o evangelist_n john_n draw_v towards_o the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o book_n add_v a_o certain_a advertisement_n as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o way_n give_v to_o understand_v that_o whereas_o he_o even_o as_o he_o be_v direct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n appearance_n the_o proof_n of_o his_o resurrection_n by_o his_o seven_o appearance_n who_o secretary_n he_o be_v have_v set_v down_o but_o a_o few_o appearance_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o according_o but_o a_o few_o of_o the_o miraculous_a work_n which_o he_o have_v wrought_v for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o mind_v to_o set_v down_o but_o one_o appearance_n more_o that_o yet_o nevertheless_o our_o saviour_n show_v himself_o often_o than_o he_o mind_v to_o rehearse_v the_o rather_o because_o he_o know_v well_o that_o sundry_a other_o be_v mention_v by_o other_o of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o he_o give_v to_o understand_v likewise_o that_o he_o wrought_v many_o other_o sign_n than_o he_o will_v speak_v of_o according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o evangelist_n luk_n act._n 1.3_o he_o present_v himself_o alive_a to_o his_o choose_a apostle_n after_o that_o he_o have_v suffer_v by_o many_o vocantur_fw-la many_o tecmeriois_fw-mi certis_fw-la seu_fw-la indubitatis_fw-la signis_fw-la et_fw-la indicijs_fw-la eiusmodi_fw-la namque_fw-la signa_fw-la quae_fw-la necessariam_fw-la et_fw-la demonstratinan_n consequentiam_fw-la habent_fw-la tecmeria_n vocantur_fw-la infallible_a token_n be_v see_v of_o they_o by_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o day_n etc._n etc._n and_o therewithal_o the_o evangelist_n john_n do_v very_o notable_o show_v in_o few_o word_n the_o principal_a end_n and_o use_n both_o of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n &_o also_o of_o all_o the_o proof_n &_o confirmation_n thereof_o namely_o that_o we_o and_o all_o other_o to_o who_o they_o be_v report_v &_o record_v may_v thereby_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o faith_n &_o so_o be_v save_v so_o that_o hereby_o he_o manife_v unto_o we_o the_o excellency_n of_o this_o history_n of_o our_o saviour_n his_o resurrection_n most_o worthy_a to_o be_v diligent_o regard_v of_o all_o christian_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o evangelist_n himself_o to_o this_o purpose_n question_n which_o be_v they_o answer_n 30._o and_o many_o other_o sign_n also_o say_v s._n john_n do_v jesus_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o disciple_n which_o be_v not_o write_v in_o this_o book_n 31._o but_o these_o thing_n be_v write_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o in_o believe_v you_o may_v have_v life_n through_o his_o name_n explication_n explication_n from_o these_o word_n we_o may_v see_v plain_o that_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n be_v such_o as_o have_v be_v already_o express_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v preocupate_v or_o prevent_v &_o meet_v aforehand_o with_o that_o which_o may_v be_v object_v either_o against_o himself_o because_o he_o speak_v of_o so_o few_o appearance_n of_o our_o saviour_n or_o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o other_o evangelist_n for_o set_v down_o somewhat_o more_o affirm_v that_o both_o by_o they_o &_o by_o he_o there_o be_v appearance_n &_o sign_n enough_o set_v down_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o faith_n unto_o salvation_n which_o be_v the_o end_n &_o scope_n of_o all_o sign_n and_o appearance_n and_o also_o even_o of_o the_o resurrection_n itself_o the_o which_o be_v obtain_v there_o be_v no_o further_a need_n of_o appearance_n or_o sign_n whatsoever_o yea_o &_o therewithal_o the_o evangelist_n do_v with_o like_a brevity_n very_o notable_o show_v we_o the_o sum_n of_o that_o which_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v namely_o that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o which_o word_n be_v contain_v a_o plain_a declaration_n both_o of_o the_o most_o divine_a person_n and_o also_o of_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o bless_a office_n of_o our_o saviour_n on_o our_o behalf_n for_o by_o the_o name_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o evangelist_n do_v not_o mean_a the_o bare_a title_n whereby_o he_o be_v call_v but_o all_o whatsoever_o be_v signify_v by_o they_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o which_o he_o assure_v we_o to_o be_v full_o verify_v in_o he_o who_o resurrection_n he_o report_v unto_o us._n and_o thus_o also_o we_o put_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o these_o word_n the_o last_o of_o this_o 20._o ch_z &_o those_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o book_n in_o the_o two_o last_o verse_n of_o the_o next_o chap._n like_v unto_o they_o because_o these_o do_v more_o special_o concern_v the_o particular_a history_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n but_o they_o be_v to_o be_v extend_v to_o the_o history_n of_o the_o whole_a book_n and_o to_o all_o the_o work_n which_o our_o saviour_n do_v before_o his_o death_n as_o well_o as_o after_o that_o he_o rise_v again_o these_o thing_n thus_o insert_v we_o come_v now_o to_o the_o seven_o appearance_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n which_o be_v the_o last_o of_o the_o evangelist_n john_n concern_v which_o let_v we_o first_o of_o all_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o evangelist_n question_n how_o do_v he_o report_v this_o appearance_n answer_n after_o these_o thing_n say_v the_o evangelist_n cha_n 21.1_o jesus_n show_v himself_o again_o to_o his_o disciple_n at_o the_o sea_n of_o tiberias_n and_o thus_o he_o show_v himself_o 2._o there_o be_v together_o simon_n peter_n and_o thomas_n which_o be_v call_v didymus_n and_o nathanael_n of_o cana_n in_o galilee_n and_o the_o son_n of_o zebedeus_n and_o two_o other_o of_o his_o disciple_n 3._o simon_n peter_n say_v unto_o they_o i_o go_v a_o fish_n they_o say_v unto_o he_o we_o also_o will_v go_v with_o thou_o they_o go_v their_o way_n and_o straightway_o they_o enter_v into_o a_o ship_n &_o that_o night_n catch_v they_o nothing_o 4._o but_o when_o the_o morning_n be_v now_o come_v jesus_n stand_v on_o the_o shore_n nevertheless_o the_o disciple_n know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v jesus_n 5._o jesus_n then_o say_v unto_o they_o child_n they_o paidia_fw-la pveri_fw-la child_n sir_n have_v you_o any_o meat_n they_o answer_v he_o no._n 6._o then_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o cast_v out_o the_o net_n on_o the_o right_a side_n of_o the_o ship_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v so_o they_o cast_v out_o and_o they_o be_v not_o able_a at_o all_o to_o draw_v it_o for_o the_o multitude_n of_o fish_n 7._o therefore_o say_v the_o disciple_n who_o jesus_n love_v unto_o peter_n it_o be_v the_o lord_n when_o simon_n peter_n hear_v that_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n he_o gird_v his_o coat_n to_o he_o for_o he_o be_v naked_a and_o cast_v himself_o into_o the_o sea_n 8._o but_o the_o other_o disciple_n come_v by_o ship_n for_o they_o be_v not_o far_o from_o the_o
of_o salvation_n know_v and_o assure_v to_o all_o that_o will_v by_o faith_n embrace_v and_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v their_o saviour_n and_o that_o even_o of_o the_o mere_a grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n through_o he_o how_o worthy_a soever_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o of_o eternal_a death_n and_o condemnation_n in_o which_o respect_n the_o gospel_n be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o reconciliation_n 2._o cor._n chap._n 5._o verse_n 18_o 19_o 20_o 21._o not_o that_o our_o saviour_n will_v not_o have_v the_o law_n and_o the_o moral_a duty_n thereof_o preach_v for_o he_o himself_o command_v that_o every_o man_n be_v careful_a to_o obey_v they_o but_o he_o show_v what_o that_o be_v which_o his_o apostle_n and_o so_o all_o other_o the_o minister_n and_o preacher_n of_o his_o holy_a word_n shall_v principal_o intend_v and_o yet_o as_o touch_v the_o law_n it_o appear_v thereby_o that_o though_o he_o come_v not_o as_o he_o himself_o profess_v to_o destroy_v or_o utter_o to_o dissolve_v and_o loosen_v the_o authority_n of_o it_o catalusai_o but_o rather_o to_o establish_v it_o as_o it_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o righteousness_n and_o obedience_n to_o god_n yet_o he_o will_v not_o have_v it_o preach_v otherwise_o then_o as_o be_v to_o the_o benefit_n of_o all_o true_a believer_n fulfil_v in_o he_o so_o by_o he_o who_o be_v the_o end_n and_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n in_o that_o the_o righteousness_n thereof_o be_v perform_v the_o curse_n be_v remove_v and_o all_o transgression_n and_o guiltiness_n of_o sin_n be_v perfect_o satisfy_v for_o touch_v all_o such_o as_o have_v true_o repent_v and_o have_v unfeigned_a care_n to_o serve_v god_n in_o the_o obedience_n of_o it_o though_o they_o can_v fulfil_v it_o but_o in_o many_o thing_n though_o to_o their_o godly_a grief_n do_v sin_n against_o it_o as_o elsewhere_o have_v be_v more_o full_o declare_v and_o as_o we_o may_v read_v testify_v and_o confirm_v matth._n 5_o 17._o and_o rom._n 3.31_o and_o chap._n 10.4_o and_o gal._n 3.24_o and_o 1._o tim._n 1.5_o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o 10._o now_o as_o touch_v the_o manner_n of_o teach_v the_o gospel_n which_o our_o saviour_n require_v that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o word_n preach_v the_o which_o according_a to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n cerusso_fw-la or_o cerutto_fw-mi and_o more_o near_o from_o the_o latin_a word_n praeco_n which_o proper_o signify_v a_o crier_n which_o utter_v thing_n with_o a_o loud_a voice_n whether_o proclamation_n of_o law_n and_o edict_n of_o prince_n or_o of_o thing_n set_v forth_o to_o common_a sale_n it_o be_v metaphorical_o or_o in_o a_o borrow_a sense_n apply_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o signify_v a_o earnest_n and_o zealous_a and_o audible_a publish_n of_o the_o gracious_a message_n and_o counsel_n of_o god_n touch_v the_o salvation_n of_o his_o people_n according_a to_o that_o isai_n 40.4_o where_o john_n the_o baptist_n a_o most_o earnest_a and_o zealous_a preacher_n be_v prophesy_v of_o under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o crier_n in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o chap._n 58.1_o the_o lord_n command_v his_o holy_a prophet_n to_o cry_v aloud_o and_o jonah_n chap._n 1.2_o go_v to_o niniveh_n and_o cry_n against_o it_o etc._n etc._n and_o again_o chap._n 3.2_o cry_v out_o that_o outcry_n that_o be_v preach_v the_o preach_v which_o i_o bid_v thou_o the_o which_o open_a and_o earnest_a publish_n our_o saviour_n express_v elsewhere_o when_o he_o say_v what_o i_o tell_v you_o in_o darkness_n that_o speak_v you_o in_o light_n and_o what_o you_o hear_v in_o the_o ear_n that_o preach_v you_o on_o the_o house_n matth._n 10.27_o and_o furthermore_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o preach_v we_o may_v more_o full_o understand_v by_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n saint_n paul_n write_v 2._o tim._n 4.2_o preach_v the_o word_n say_v he_o be_v instant_a in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n improve_v rebuke_n exhort_v with_o all_o long_a suffering_n and_o doctrine_n preach_v the_o word_n say_v the_o apostle_n and_o because_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v but_o what_o mean_v you_o by_o preach_v he_o add_v improve_v rebuke_n exhort_v etc._n etc._n as_o though_o he_o shall_v say_v this_o be_v preach_v when_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o holy_a scripture_n be_v so_o interpret_v that_o the_o truth_n be_v open_v by_o collection_n of_o doctrine_n error_n in_o judgement_n be_v convince_v wickedness_n of_o life_n be_v reprove_v slothfulness_n to_o good_a duty_n be_v by_o exhortation_n chase_v away_o as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v by_o the_o wise_a ministry_n of_o the_o preacher_n etc._n etc._n for_o to_o these_o end_n be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n give_v of_o god_n to_o his_o church_n and_o put_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o faithful_a minister_n as_o the_o same_o apostle_n teach_v in_o the_o same_o his_o epistle_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n immediate_o go_v before_o and_o all_o this_o must_v be_v do_v not_o in_o curious_a affect_a eloquence_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o heathen_a orator_n neither_o in_o affect_a obscurity_n under_o a_o colour_n of_o profound_a learning_n as_o some_o of_o the_o heathen_a philosopher_n have_v do_v but_o in_o as_o much_o plainness_n and_o simplicity_n as_o may_v both_o best_a suit_n and_o answer_v the_o gravity_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o also_o be_v most_o fit_a for_o the_o edification_n of_o those_o that_o be_v the_o most_o weak_a and_o simple_a of_o the_o whole_a auditory_a and_o congregation_n according_a to_o the_o example_n and_o instruction_n of_o the_o same_o excellent_a apostle_n 1._o cor._n 2.1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o etc._n etc._n but_o of_o all_o that_o belong_v to_o the_o right_a manner_n of_o teach_v time_n will_v not_o serve_v we_o to_o speak_v now_o such_o as_o upon_o this_o occasion_n desire_v to_o consider_v of_o this_o matter_n further_o may_v have_v recourse_n to_o that_o which_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o former_a part_n of_o our_o treasury_n only_o let_v we_o here_o observe_v this_o one_o thing_n more_o concern_v preach_a that_o this_o be_v the_o gracious_a mean_n which_o the_o mighty_a prince_n our_o saviour_n use_v to_o subdue_v his_o people_n by_o and_o that_o he_o differ_v herein_o from_o all_o the_o tyrant_n of_o the_o world_n who_o subdue_v people_n by_o fire_n and_o sword_n even_o as_o much_o as_o heaven_n be_v distant_a from_o the_o earth_n for_o they_o destroy_v life_n before_o they_o teach_v the_o right_a use_n of_o it_o or_o show_v the_o way_n to_o a_o better_a etc._n etc._n the_o last_o point_n which_o we_o be_v for_o the_o present_a to_o consider_v of_o be_v the_o end_n of_o teach_v the_o which_o as_o our_o saviour_n give_v to_o understand_v in_o the_o word_n of_o his_o commission_n to_o his_o apostle_n be_v obedience_n not_o in_o this_o or_o that_o instruction_n only_o with_o neglect_n of_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n but_o in_o all_o thing_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o our_o saviour_n require_v of_o every_o one_o both_o general_o touch_v the_o common_a duty_n of_o christianity_n and_o particular_o touch_v the_o duty_n of_o every_o man_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o several_a estate_n condition_n and_o call_v qu._n in_o what_o word_n do_v our_o saviour_n express_v thus_o much_o an._n teach_v they_o say_v our_o saviour_n to_o observe_v all_o thing_n whatsoever_o i_o have_v command_v you_o explication_n explication_n our_o saviour_n mean_v whatsoever_o he_o have_v command_v they_o to_o teach_v every_o man_n what_o belong_v unto_o he_o in_o such_o respect_n as_o be_v even_o now_o mention_v according_a to_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n paul_n write_v concern_v himself_o and_o the_o rest_n in_o testimony_n of_o their_o obedience_n to_o the_o commandment_n of_o our_o saviour_n col._n 1.28.19_o we_o preach_v christ_n the_o hope_n of_o glory_n admonish_v every_o man_n and_o teach_v every_o man_n in_o all_o wisdom_n that_o we_o may_v present_v every_o man_n perfect_a in_o christ_n jesus_n whereunto_o i_o also_o labour_n and_o strive_v according_a to_o his_o work_n which_o work_v in_o i_o mighty_o and_o 1._o thessaly_n 4.1_o 2._o and_o furthermore_o we_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n and_o exhort_v you_o in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n that_o you_o increase_v more_o and_o more_o as_o you_o have_v receive_v of_o we_o how_o you_o ought_v to_o walk_v and_o please_v god_n for_o you_o know_v what_o commandment_n we_o give_v you_o by_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o 1._o cor._n 11.23_o concern_v the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n i_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o lord_n say_v the_o same_o apostle_n that_o which_o i_o have_v deliver_v unto_o you_o and_o the_o apostle_n peter_n 2._o epistle_n chap._n 3.1_o 2._o this_o second_o epistle_n i_o now_o write_v unto_o you_o belove_v wherewith_o i_o stir_v up_o and_o warn_v your_o pure_a mind_n to_o call_v to_o remembrance_n the_o
our_o saviour_n appear_v thus_o to_o the_o apostle_n james_n alone_o to_o the_o special_a animate_v and_o encourage_v of_o he_o thereunto_o and_o thus_o for_o want_v of_o any_o further_a record_n of_o this_o ten_o appearance_n of_o our_o saviour_n we_o use_v the_o more_o speed_n in_o come_v to_o the_o eleven_o appearance_n the_o proof_n of_o his_o resurrection_n by_o his_o eleven_o appearance_n which_o be_v the_o last_o of_o those_o wherein_o he_o show_v himself_o upon_o the_o earth_n for_o any_o record_n that_o we_o find_v in_o the_o word_n quest_n where_o therefore_o be_v this_o last_o appearance_n record_v unto_o we_o ans_fw-fr it_o seem_v to_o be_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n paul_n tell_v we_o of_o immediate_o after_o the_o former_a in_o that_o he_o say_v our_o saviour_n be_v see_v of_o all_o the_o apostle_n together_o but_o the_o evangelist_n luke_n do_v most_o certain_o report_v it_o unto_o we_o more_o brief_o indeed_o in_o the_o 50._o verse_n of_o the_o last_o chap_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o he_o write_v but_o more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o first_o chap_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n verse_n 4.5.6.7.8_o it_o be_v true_a let_v we_o therefore_o hear_v his_o word_n question_n which_o be_v they_o answer_n ch._n 24.50_o in_o the_o gospel_n they_o be_v these_o afterward_o he_o ●ed_v they_o out_o into_o bethania_n and_o lift_v up_o his_o hand_n and_o bless_v they_o question_n and_o what_o be_v they_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n answer_n ch_z 1.4_o when_o he_o have_v gather_v they_o together_o say_v the_o holy_a evangelist_n he_o command_v they_o not_o to_o depart_v from_o jerusalem_n but_o to_o wait_v for_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o father_n which_o say_v he_o you_o have_v hear_v of_o i_o 5._o for_o john_n indeed_o baptize_v with_o water_n but_o you_o shall_v be_v baptize_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n within_o these_o few_o day_n 6._o when_o they_o therefore_o be_v come_v together_o they_o ask_v of_o he_o say_v lord_n will_v thou_o at_o this_o time_n rest●re_v the_o kingdom_n to_o israel_n 7._o and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o it_o be_v not_o for_o you_o to_o know_v the_o time_n or_o the_o season_n which_o the_o father_n have_v put_v in_o his_o own_o power_n 8._o but_o you_o shall_v receive_v power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n when_o he_o shall_v com●_n on_o you_o and_o you_o shal●_n be_v witness_n unto_o i_o both_o in_o jerusalem_n and_o in_o judea_n and_o in_o samaria_n and_o unto_o the_o uttermost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n explication_n explication_n here_o indeed_o we_o have_v the_o full_a narration_n of_o this_o last_o appearance_n wherein_o many_o thing_n be_v worthy_o to_o be_v consider_v of_o us._n but_o which_o be_v they_o question_n and_o in_o what_o order_n may_v we_o do_v it_o answer_n first_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v the_o time_n when_o second_o the_o place_n where_o three_o the_o per●●ns_n to_o who_o our_o saviour_n appear_v four_o the_o speech_n which_o he_o use_v to_o his_o disciple_n final_o that_o holy_a farewell_n if_o we_o may_v so_o call_v it_o or_o rather_o his_o divine_a blessing_n which_o he_o give_v to_o his_o apostle_n at_o his_o departure_n from_o they_o into_o heaven_n explication_n explication_n these_o point_n indeed_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v very_o diligent_o and_o with_o all_o holy_a reverence_n to_o be_v consider_v and_o weigh_v of_o we_o and_o that_o also_o in_o the_o same_o order_n as_o you_o have_v rehearse_v they_o first_o therefore_o concern_v the_o time_n of_o this_o last_o appearance_n of_o our_o saviour_n when_o be_v it_o question_n answer_n it_o be_v at_o the_o end_n of_o forty_o day_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o immediate_o before_o his_o ascension_n up_o into_o heaven_n explication_n explication_n it_o be_v so_o indeed_o as_o the_o evangelist_n luke_n testify_v in_o the_o first_o chap_n of_o the_o act_n verse_n ●_o immediate_o before_o the_o word_n allege_v by_o you_o wherein_o he_o say_v express_o that_o before_o this_o time_n our_o saviour_n have_v present_v himself_o alive_a after_o that_o he_o have_v suffer_v by_o many_o infallible_a token_n he_o be_v see_v of_o they_o by_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o day_n and_o speak_v of_o the_o thing_n which_o appertain_v or_o be_v to_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n in_o which_o word_n even_o the_o continuance_n of_o our_o saviour_n so_o long_o a_o space_n of_o time_n upon_o the_o earth_n beside_o his_o often_o appearance_n in_o the_o same_o it_o ought_v to_o avail_v much_o to_o the_o establish_n of_o our_o hear●s_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o resurrection_n for_o as_o our_o saviour_n show_v himself_o four_o or_o five_o time_n the_o first_o day_n that_o he_o arise_v so_o he_o may_v in_o the_o next_o day_n have_v show_v himself_o six_o time_n more_o if_o so_o it_o have_v please_v he_o and_o then_o have_v present_o depart_v but_o he_o will_v not_o do_v so_o for_o that_o tender_a regard_n which_o he_o have_v of_o our_o infirmity_n but_o stay_v by_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o day_n that_o therein_o take_v his_o most_o fit_a opportunity_n to_o manifest_a him●elfe_n he_o may_v leave_v no_o cause_n of_o doubt_n or_o scruple_n about_o this_o so_o weighty_a and_o necessary_a a_o article_n of_o our_o belief_n and_o whereas_o the_o evangelist_n affirm_v further_a that_o in_o the_o space_n of_o so_o many_o day_n he_o speak_v and_o give_v commandment_n to_o the_o apostle_n who_o he_o have_v choose_v in_o matter_n concern_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n it_o may_v just_o be_v a_o undoubted_a ground_n and_o warrant_v unto_o we_o consider_v the_o faithfulness_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n that_o all_o the_o doctrine_n that_o they_o teach_v and_o the_o external_a order_n for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n which_o they_o practise_v and_o namely_o the_o change_n of_o the_o jew_n sabbath_n to_o the_o day_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v according_a to_o his_o divine_a direction_n and_o commandment_n thus_o much_o concern_v the_o time_n the_o place_n of_o the_o appearance_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v next_o question_n where_o be_v it_o answer_n where_o our_o saviour_n begin_v to_o show_v himself_o at_o this_o time_n it_o be_v not_o mention_v but_o that_o from_o the_o place_n where_o he_o do_v at_o this_o time_n first_o appear_v he_o lead_v they_o into_o bethania_n and_o from_o thence_o to_o the_o mount_n of_o olive_n the_o evangelist_n luke_n do_v plain_o declare_v proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n it_o be_v true_a for_o in_o the_o holy_a gospel_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o lead_v they_o out_o into_o bethania_n and_o in_o the_o 12_o verse_n of_o the_o first_o cha_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n he_o say_v further_a that_o after_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n they_o return_v to_o jerusalem_n from_o the_o mount_n be_v which_o call_v the_o mount_n of_o olive_n it_o be_v as_o he_o note_v but_o a_o sabbath_n day_n journey_n from_o jerusalem_n the_o bethania_n which_o the_o evangelist_n name_v be_v the_o town_n of_o lazarus_n and_o of_o marie_n and_o martha_n who_o our_o saviour_n love_v as_o we_o read_v john_n 11_o 1.5_o and_o of_o simon_n the_o leper_n who_o entertain_v our_o saviour_n in_o that_o supper_n wherein_o marie_n pour_v the_o costly_a ointment_n upon_o he_o cha_n 12_o 1_o 2_o 3._o and_o mat_n 26.6_o 7._o to_o the_o which_o town_n our_o saviour_n resort_v diverse_a time_n for_o that_o love_n no_o doubt_n which_o he_o do_v bear_v to_o these_o his_o love_a and_o dutiful_a disciple_n though_o not_o always_o to_o feast_v or_o eat_v with_o they_o mark_n 11_o 1_o 11_o 12._o the_o mount_n of_o olive_n be_v the_o place_n whether_o our_o saviour_n do_v often_o resort_v likewise_o but_o for_o private_a meditation_n and_o prayer_n luk_n 21_o ●7_n and_o chap_n 22_o 36_o and_o it_o be_v the_o place_n wherein_o he_o suffer_v one_o part_n of_o his_o most_o doleful_a affliction_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o same_o chap._n nevertheless_o after_o that_o our_o saviour_n have_v finish_v all_o thing_n and_o be_v now_o to_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n that_o mount_n which_o have_v be_v the_o place_n of_o his_o most_o low_a abasement_n and_o humiliation_n it_o be_v the_o place_n from_o whence_o he_o ascend_v to_o his_o most_o high_a exaltation_n whence_o elegant_o say_v a_o learned_a godly_a minister_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n allude_v to_o the_o name_n of_o bethania_n per._n w._n per._n which_o according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n writing_n beth-gnaijah_a or_o the_o sirian_a beth-gnaniah_a signify_v the_o place_n of_o poverty_n or_o affliction_n that_o if_o we_o bear_v our_o affliction_n as_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v either_o in_o our_o bed_n of_o sickness_n or_o in_o the_o prison_n of_o persecution_n or_o at_o the_o stake_n or_o gibbet_n of_o execution_n for_o
may_v probable_o seem_v unto_o they_o that_o now_o be_v a_o fit_a time_n and_o season_n for_o that_o purpose_n howsoever_o he_o have_v before_o flat_o deny_v to_o be_v make_v a_o king_n to_o rule_v over_o the_o people_n as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o 6._o chap_v of_o saint_n john_n final_o we_o may_v not_o suppose_v that_o they_o do_v without_o reverence_n ask_v this_o question_n for_o the_o contrary_n appear_v by_o the_o manner_n of_o speech_n which_o they_o use_v in_o call_v he_o lord_n etc._n etc._n in_o say_v lord_n will_v thou_o at_o this_o time_n etc._n etc._n therein_o no_o doubt_n yield_v he_o the_o honour_n of_o sovereignty_n which_o they_o acknowledge_v in_o their_o heart_n to_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o above_o all_o that_o he_o will_v assume_v and_o take_v to_o himself_o and_o yet_o all_o these_o thing_n notwithstanding_o that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o these_o probability_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o all_o these_o qualification_n in_o their_o affection_n yet_o because_o they_o presume_v without_o warrant_n of_o the_o word_n yea_o rather_o at_o unwares_o presume_v to_o ask_v a_o question_n of_o such_o a_o matter_n as_o he_o have_v plain_o disclaim_v and_o teach_v they_o the_o contrary_n he_o do_v very_o earnest_o &_o no_o less_o just_o rebuke_v they_o whence_o we_o for_o our_o part_n be_v ready_a to_o see_v a_o mote_n in_o the_o disciple_n eye_n not_o yet_o altogether_o so_o clear_v as_o they_o be_v afterwards_o may_v learn_v to_o discern_v the_o beam_n that_o be_v in_o our_o own_o if_o so_o be_v that_o we_o be_v not_o already_o grow_v stone_n blind_a for_o do_v we_o not_o usual_o even_o after_o long_o teach_v and_o after_o a_o more_o clear_a revelation_n of_o all_o truth_n than_o the_o apostle_n at_o this_o time_n which_o we_o now_o speak_v of_o have_v dote_v still_o after_o worldly_a pleasure_n and_o richeste_n and_o honour_n &c_n &c_n with_o a_o desire_n to_o attain_v unto_o they_o yea_o though_o it_o shall_v be_v by_o corrupt_a course_n of_o injustice_n and_o rapine_n of_o flattery_n and_o deceitful_a deal_n &_o c_o the_o apostle_n infirmity_n therefore_o such_o as_o it_o be_v before_o our_o saviour_n have_v thorough_o confirm_v and_o establish_v they_o be_v well_o worthy_a to_o be_v mark_v of_o we_o to_o the_o more_o clear_a discovery_n and_o to_o the_o more_o sharp_a reproof_n of_o a_o corruption_n in_o we_o a_o hundred_o fold_n worse_o than_o they_o be_v and_o to_o this_o very_a end_n let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o that_o reproof_n which_o our_o saviour_n give_v unto_o they_o question_n what_o be_v it_o answer_n our_o saviour_n tell_v they_o round_o that_o they_o presume_v above_o that_o be_v meet_v for_o they_o in_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o time_n and_o season_n of_o that_o which_o god_n the_o father_n have_v reserve_v as_o a_o proper_a royalty_n and_o prerogative_n to_o his_o own_o divine_a majesty_n and_o not_o to_o be_v communicate_v to_o any_o creature_n explication_n explication_n this_o be_v in_o deed_n his_o meaning_n in_o that_o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o for_o you_o to_o know_v the_o time_n and_o season_n which_o the_o father_n have_v put_v in_o his_o own_o power_n very_o if_o the_o disciple_n of_o our_o saviour_n have_v well_o remember_v and_o advise_o consider_v what_o our_o saviour_n have_v say_v unto_o they_o concern_v the_o last_o day_n that_o the_o angel_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n no_o nor_o the_o son_n himself_o to_o wit_n in_o that_o he_o be_v man_n do_v know_v the_o day_n and_o hour_n thereof_o save_o the_o father_n only_o matth._n 24.36_o and_o mark_v 13.32_o sure_o they_o will_v not_o for_o shame_n or_o fear_n have_v presume_v to_o ask_v the_o question_n which_o for_o want_v of_o such_o due_a consideration_n they_o be_v overbold_a to_o demand_v let_v we_o therefore_o learn_v from_o hence_o another_o excellent_a lesson_n to_o wit_n that_o as_o it_o have_v be_v the_o duty_n of_o these_o disciple_n so_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n and_o the_o duty_n of_o all_o christian_n even_o of_o every_o one_o of_o we_o in_o our_o several_a calling_n to_o settle_v our_o mind_n to_o walk_v humble_o and_o with_o a_o single_a eye_n in_o those_o duty_n which_o god_n have_v in_o his_o wisdom_n and_o of_o his_o singular_a mercy_n prepare_v for_o we_o to_o walk_v in_o and_o to_o leave_v the_o secret_n of_o god_n counsel_n and_o administration_n of_o his_o kingdom_n at_o the_o least_o touch_v the_o particular_a circumstance_n thereof_o to_o the_o lord_n himself_o who_o without_o we_o will_v order_v and_o dispose_v of_o all_o thing_n in_o a_o more_o excellent_a manner_n and_o order_n then_o be_v meet_v for_o we_o to_o know_v before_o the_o manifestation_n thereof_o by_o the_o effect_n or_o even_o itself_o the_o secret_a thing_n belong_v to_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n as_o moses_n say_v and_o it_o be_v a_o say_v worthy_a so_o great_a a_o prophet_n but_o the_o thing_n reveal_v to_o we_o and_o to_o our_o child_n for_o ever_o that_o we_o may_v do_v all_o the_o word_n of_o this_o law_n deut._n chap._n 29._o verse_n 29._o to_o the_o which_o purpose_n also_o in_o like_a excellent_a wisdom_n say_v the_o most_o wise_a king_n solomon_n in_o his_o ecclesiaste_n sundry_a time_n that_o the_o lord_n do_v of_o purpose_n order_n all_o thing_n in_o so_o uncertain_a a_o course_n to_o man_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a certain_o to_o find_v our_o what_o shall_v fall_v out_o afterward_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v learn_v hereby_o to_o humble_v himself_o under_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n to_o who_o of_o most_o due_a right_n all_o flesh_n ought_v to_o stoop_v eccles_n 2.19_o and_o chap._n 3.14.22_o and_o chap._n 7.2_o and_o verse_n 15.16_o and_o chap._n 8.6.7_o and_o chap._n 9.1_o etc._n etc._n so_o then_o let_v we_o do_v our_o duty_n every_o one_o of_o we_o in_o our_o calling_n faithful_o and_o commit_v both_o ourselves_o and_o all_o success_n to_o the_o most_o wise_a and_o righteous_a disposition_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o he_o be_v most_o faithful_a and_o gracious_a and_o he_o will_v assure_o above_o that_o be_v meet_v for_o we_o to_o know_v before_o hand_n bring_v all_o to_o a_o most_o godly_a issue_n both_o to_o his_o own_o great_a honour_n and_o glory_n and_o also_o to_o our_o great_a comfort_n in_o the_o end_n shall_v the_o husbandman_n neglect_v to_o sow_v his_o corn_n because_o he_o know_v not_o whether_o the_o harvest_n follow_v shall_v be_v prosperous_a and_o fruitful_a or_o no_o shall_v the_o shepherd_n neglect_v to_o tend_v his_o flock_n in_o winter_n because_o he_o know_v not_o whether_o they_o will_v the_o of_o the_o rot_n in_o the_o spring_n shall_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n cease_v his_o preach_n because_o he_o know_v not_o whether_o his_o preach_n will_v be_v accept_v of_o the_o people_n or_o no_o shall_v the_o justice_n of_o peace_n or_o judge_n of_o a_o country_n neglect_v to_o execute_v justice_n because_o he_o know_v not_o whether_o he_o shall_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o rid_v malefactor_n out_o of_o the_o country_n or_o no_o shall_v the_o parent_n or_o master_n of_o a_o family_n neglect_v to_o instruct_v correct_v and_o pray_v for_o his_o family_n because_o he_o know_v not_o whether_o some_o of_o they_o will_v ever_o come_v to_o good_a or_o no_o god_n forbid_v let_v we_o for_o the_o present_n do_v our_o duty_n and_o as_o be_v say_v so_o let_v we_o say_v yea_o so_o let_v we_o practice_v still_o even_o with_o patience_n humble_o to_o commit_v the_o success_n of_o all_o unto_o the_o lord_n for_o all_o time_n to_o come_v for_o as_o our_o bless_a saviour_n tell_v we_o to_o who_o we_o ought_v in_o all_o thing_n to_o yield_v a_o most_o listen_a and_o obedient_a ear_n it_o be_v not_o for_o we_o to_o know_v the_o time_n and_o season_n which_o the_o father_n have_v put_v in_o his_o own_o power_n to_o wit_n according_a to_o the_o prerogative_n royal_a of_o his_o own_o most_o sovereign_a authority_n but_o as_o be_v say_v our_o saviour_n do_v not_o only_o reproove_v that_o which_o be_v faulty_a in_o his_o disciple_n but_o for_o their_o direction_n also_o he_o do_v again_o put_v they_o in_o remembrance_n both_o of_o the_o commandment_n which_o he_o have_v give_v and_o also_o of_o the_o promise_n which_o he_o have_v make_v and_o renew_v unto_o they_o before_o as_o though_o he_o shall_v say_v this_o aught_o to_o suffice_v you_o that_o you_o have_v the_o promise_n of_o a_o special_a dignity_n and_o power_n to_o be_v give_v unto_o you_o though_o you_o do_v not_o encroach_v upon_o the_o incommunicable_a power_n or_o authority_n of_o god_n it_o be_v your_o part_n to_o think_v first_o of_o the_o labour_n and_o then_o of_o the_o ease_n first_o of_o the_o fight_n then_o of_o the_o victory_n first_o of_o humiliation_n then_o of_o the_o crown_n
wide_o open_a for_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o every_o people_n and_o nation_n under_o heaven_n 4_o four_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n we_o be_v quicken_v to_o newness_n and_o holiness_n of_o life_n 5_o moreover_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o same_o we_o be_v strengthen_v and_o confirm_v to_o all_o holy_a constancy_n in_o the_o faith_n and_o service_n of_o the_o gospel_n under_o the_o bless_a hope_n of_o immortality_n and_o heavenly_a glory_n 6_o furthermore_o we_o have_v by_o it_o a_o settle_a comfort_n against_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o our_o frail_a &_o transiterie_a life_n yea_o against_o all_o the_o trouble_n of_o it_o and_o against_o death_n itself_o and_o all_o the_o terror_n and_o dismaying_n thereof_o see_v our_o saviour_n have_v perfect_o vanquish_v and_o overcome_v they_o for_o us._n 7_o and_o yet_o more_o than_o these_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v a_o real_a confirmation_n that_o our_o body_n though_o they_o must_v die_v in_o corruption_n weakness_n and_o dishonour_n as_o natural_a body_n for_o a_o final_a conviction_n and_o farewell_n of_o sin_n yet_o they_o shall_v by_o the_o save_a power_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v raise_v up_o again_o and_o make_v spiritual_a body_n incorrupt_a and_o glorious_a never_o to_o return_v to_o corruption_n again_o 8_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v also_o a_o evidence_n that_o be_v be_v ordain_v of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o world_n 9_o final_o it_o be_v a_o most_o pregnant_a confirmation_n and_o application_n of_o all_o the_o fruit_n and_o benefit_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v for_o we_o by_o his_o death_n and_o by_o all_o other_o his_o manifold_a suffering_n go_v before_o the_o same_o proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v indeed_o as_o the_o seal_n up_o of_o all_o these_o fruit_n and_o benefit_n unto_o we_o and_o therefore_o it_o may_v well_o be_v exceed_o comfortable_a unto_o we_o and_o his_o whole_a church_n for_o as_o our_o saviour_n die_v not_o in_o the_o state_n of_o a_o private_a man_n but_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o church_n so_o also_o do_v he_o not_o rise_v again_o so_o much_o for_o himself_o as_o for_o the_o benefit_n of_o it_o but_o let_v we_o see_v some_o proof_n of_o holy_a scripture_n for_o these_o thing_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o answer_n we_o may_v read_v rom._n 1.3_o 4._o and_o 1._o pet._n 1.21_o where_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v allege_v for_o a_o proof_n that_o he_o who_o be_v our_o saviour_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o it_o be_v furthermore_o a_o proof_n that_o he_o be_v the_o promise_a messiah_n it_o be_v evident_a in_o that_o it_o be_v a_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o former_a prophecy_n which_o be_v give_v forth_o thereof_o as_o we_o see_v before_o and_o may_v just_o here_o call_v to_o mind_n again_o psal_n 16._o isai_n 53.8_o etc._n etc._n and_o chap._n 55.3_o our_o saviour_n himself_o also_o before_o his_o death_n foretell_v the_o same_o as_o a_o sign_n and_o confirmation_n thereof_o matth._n 12.39.40_o john_n 2.18.19_o read_v also_o chap._n 20.9_o and_o in_o the_o law_n the_o escape_n goat_n and_o the_o live_a sparrow_n let_v loose_a may_v well_o be_v account_v figure_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o so_o the_o resurrection_n a_o accomplish_n of_o the_o same_o as_o the_o slay_a goat_n and_o kill_v sparrow_n be_v figure_n of_o his_o death_n levit._fw-la 14.4_o 5_o 6_o 7._o and_o chap._n 16.5_o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o 10._o as_o be_v observe_v once_o before_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o second_o part_n read_v rom._n chap._n 4._o verse_n 22_o 23_o 24_o 25_o 26_o where_o note_n that_o the_o apostle_n affirm_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v deliver_v to_o death_n for_o our_o sin_n be_v rise_v again_o for_o our_o instification_n he_o make_v the_o imputation_n of_o his_o righteousness_n and_o our_o justification_n one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n so_o that_o to_o be_v justify_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n be_v to_o have_v the_o righteousness_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n impute_v to_o we_o who_o have_v perfect_o fulfil_v it_o on_o our_o behalf_n even_o as_o he_o be_v perfect_o sanctify_v of_o god_n himself_o to_o that_o end_n according_a as_o it_o be_v near_o link_v with_o it_o rom._n chap._n 1._o verse_n 3_o 4._o allege_v before_o declare_v mighty_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n touch_v the_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n by_o the_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a and_o as_o we_o read_v 1._o tim._n 3.16_o god_n manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n justify_v in_o the_o the_o spirit_n yea_o all_o the_o place_n allege_v before_o to_o show_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v raise_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o exalt_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n himself_o they_o be_v so_o many_o proof_n that_o by_o his_o holy_a verdict_n his_o justice_n be_v full_o satisfy_v and_o that_o our_o saviour_n have_v procure_v our_o perfect_a quietus_n est_fw-la from_o all_o our_o sin_n for_o if_o any_o one_o of_o our_o sin_n have_v not_o be_v full_o satisfy_v for_o by_o he_o who_o be_v make_v sin_n for_o we_o or_o if_o any_o thing_n have_v be_v want_v touch_v our_o saviour_n his_o own_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n god_n will_v never_o have_v raise_v he_o up_o nor_o acknowledge_v we_o to_o be_v make_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o he_o but_o now_o our_o saviour_n be_v declare_v to_o be_v perfect_a just_a &_o holy_a by_o the_o spirit_n of_o righteousness_n &_o sanctification_n bear_v witness_n thereunto_o by_o his_o resurrectio_fw-la on_o our_o behalf_n as_o before_o we_o be_v hereby_o assure_v that_o we_o have_v our_o full_a discharge_n whenas_o otherwise_o we_o shall_v have_v be_v still_o in_o our_o sin_n 1._o cor._n 15._o verse_n 17_o 18._o read_v also_o act._n 13.37_o 38_o 39_o and_o rom._n 10.4_o 5_o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o and_o 1._o pet._n 21._o a_o good_a conscience_n look_v to_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n for_o the_o settle_n of_o the_o peace_n of_o it_o and_o philip._n 3_o 8_o 9_o 10._o this_o be_v that_o virtue_n of_o our_o saviour_n which_o the_o apostle_n paul_n so_o high_o valu_v &_o advance_v that_o in_o comparison_n of_o it_o he_o count_v all_o thing_n dung_n and_o mere_a loss_n yea_o this_o be_v that_o life_n which_o he_o live_v in_o christ_n or_o rather_o which_o christ_n live_v in_o he_o according_a as_o it_o be_v say_v the_o just_a shall_v live_v by_o faith_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o apprehension_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n thus_o manifest_v by_o his_o resurrection_n to_o be_v their_o own_o through_o the_o most_o gracious_a imputation_n of_o god_n gal._n 2.19_o 20_o 21._o rom._n 1.17_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o answer_n read_v john_n 7.38_o 39_o and_o chap._n 20._o verse_n 21._o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o apostleship_n and_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n read_v also_o luke_n 24.47.48_o 49_o act_n 2.17_o 18_o 32_o 33._o and_o 2._o tim._n 1.9_o 10_o 11._o these_o thing_n indeed_o be_v not_o perform_v till_o after_o the_o ascension_n nevertheless_o the_o resurrection_n make_v way_n and_o be_v as_o the_o first_o step_n unto_o it_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o four_o part_n read_v rom_n 6.4_o 5._o 2._o cor._n 5.14_o 15._o eph._n 1.19_o etc._n etc._n and_o chap._n 2.1_o act_n 3.26_o and_o chap._n 5.31_o colos_n 2.12_o 13._o and_o chap_n 3.1_o etc._n etc._n this_o rise_n up_o to_o newness_n of_o life_n be_v call_v the_o first_o resurrection_n revel_v 20.5_o and_o it_o be_v the_o way_n to_o attain_v unto_o the_o second_o for_o let_v we_o note_v well_o that_o albeit_o god_n do_v favourable_o behold_v we_o in_o christ_n only_o for_o our_o perfect_a justification_n before_o he_o yet_o this_o be_v no_o dispensation_n to_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v continue_v in_o sin_n but_o it_o call_v for_o sanctification_n at_o our_o hand_n without_o the_o which_o no_o man_n shall_v see_v the_o lord_n as_o we_o read_v heb._n 12.14_o and_o it_o be_v also_o necessary_a for_o we_o to_o the_o end_n that_o from_o the_o fruit_n of_o our_o sanctification_n we_o may_v have_v the_o comfortable_a persuasion_n of_o our_o justification_n rom._n 6.1_o etc._n etc._n and_o that_o we_o be_v elect_v and_o choose_v to_o salvation_n 2._o pe_fw-la 1_o 10._o yet_o so_o as_o we_o must_v in_o no_o part_n rely_v upon_o our_o own_o holiness_n or_o work_n which_o will_v always_o be_v fail_v and_o unperfect_a but_o on_o our_o saviour_n alone_o by_o who_o we_o be_v justify_v for_o proof_n of_o the_o first_o part_n read_v 1._o pet._n 1.3_o 4_o 5_o etc._n etc._n bless_a be_v god_n even_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o according_a to_o
be_v so_o manifold_a and_o great_a it_o be_v our_o duty_n answer_n first_o of_o all_o to_o esteem_v most_o high_o and_o precious_o of_o the_o grace_n and_o virtue_n of_o it_o second_o to_o labour_v earnest_o that_o we_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o same_o grace_n or_o virtue_n and_o power_n three_o from_o the_o same_o power_n to_o endeavour_v to_o walk_v in_o all_o holy_a obedience_n to_o god_n in_o every_o christian_a duty_n explication_n explication_n that_o we_o be_v thus_o both_o most_o high_o and_o precious_o to_o esteem_v of_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o likewise_o most_o earnest_o to_o seek_v to_o apprehend_v it_o by_o faith_n the_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n phil_n 3_o may_v be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n and_o inducement_n unto_o we_o both_o so_o to_o think_v and_o also_o to_o be_v earnest_a imitator_n and_o follower_n of_o he_o and_o in_o deed_n unless_o we_o do_v with_o he_o carry_v the_o same_o judgement_n how_o can_v we_o draw_v with_o he_o in_o the_o like_a yoke_n of_o affection_n now_o touch_v a_o particular_a endeavour_n to_o walk_v in_o every_o good_a duty_n of_o obedience_n to_o god_n as_o a_o fruit_n of_o this_o power_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n apprehend_v by_o faith_n it_o be_v good_a for_o we_o to_o consider_v that_o the_o holy_a apostle_n do_v every_o where_o hold_v forth_o the_o same_o as_o a_o reason_n of_o singular_a force_n to_o stir_v up_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o christian_n to_o mind_n repentance_n from_o all_o dead_a work_n and_o to_o provoke_v to_o the_o contrary_a duty_n of_o godliness_n and_o namely_o for_o one_o instance_n 1._o corinth_n 15._o the_o last_o verse_n of_o the_o chapter_n where_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o apostle_n have_v profess_v thanks_o to_o god_n for_o this_o unspeakable_a comfort_n which_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n afford_v he_o annex_v this_o exhortation_n forthwith_o therefore_o my_o belove_a brother_n be_v you_o steadfast_a unmoveable_a and_o abundant_a always_o in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o as_o much_o as_o you_o know_v that_o your_o labour_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a in_o the_o lord_n and_o act_n 2.38_o after_o that_o the_o apostle_n peter_n have_v lay_v open_a and_o confirm_v the_o article_n of_o the_o resurrection_n he_o do_v immediate_o exhort_v and_o encourage_v unto_o repentance_n and_o chap._n 3.15.19_o and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n again_o chap._n 13.30_o etc._n etc._n 40.41_o and_o rom._n 6_o 9.10.11.12_o etc._n etc._n and_o 2._o cor._n 5_o 15._o and_o coloss_n 3.1_o etc._n etc._n 5._o for_o sanctification_n as_o be_v note_v before_o be_v very_o near_o link_v unto_o justification_n hereunto_o therefore_o we_o ought_v as_o the_o scripture_n do_v speak_v to_o rise_v early_o in_o the_o morning_n with_o all_o cheerfulness_n of_o heart_n and_o spirit_n even_o as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v prevent_v as_o it_o be_v the_o morning_n watch_n that_o he_o may_v manifest_v and_o make_v know_v that_o good_a hand_n which_o he_o have_v in_o his_o so_o speedy_a a_o victory_n over_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o grave_n and_o of_o death_n and_o hell_n and_o this_o also_o aught_o to_o give_v we_o singular_a encouragement_n not_o only_o to_o fight_v manful_o against_o sin_n and_o all_o the_o confederate_n thereof_o the_o flesh_n the_o world_n and_o the_o devil_n but_o also_o with_o good_a hope_n of_o prosperous_a success_n to_o seek_v after_o mighty_a increase_v in_o godliness_n neither_o let_v it_o be_v a_o small_a comfort_n and_o encouragement_n unto_o we_o to_o bethink_v ourselves_o that_o according_a to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o our_o saviour_n himself_o we_o do_v together_o with_o the_o exercise_n of_o our_o christian_a religion_n every_o lord_n day_n celebrate_v as_o it_o be_v meet_v the_o memorial_n of_o the_o bless_a resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o of_o the_o restauration_n of_o the_o world_n by_o he_o partly_o already_o begin_v and_o to_o be_v full_o perfect_v in_o time_n to_o come_v and_o in_o trust_n of_o this_o mercy_n of_o our_o god_n also_o let_v we_o not_o cease_v to_o pray_v continual_o in_o this_o barren_a and_o dead_a time_n of_o godliness_n wherein_o we_o live_v for_o a_o new_a spring_n and_o resurrection_n in_o man_n mind_n to_o the_o zeal_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o a_o fruit_n of_o this_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n final_o let_v all_o our_o life_n long_o in_o the_o premeditation_n of_o our_o resurrection_n at_o the_o last_o day_n by_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o resurrection_n to_o everlasting_a life_n and_o of_o that_o perpetual_a feast_n of_o the_o lamb_n which_o we_o be_v invite_v unto_o be_v nothing_o else_o article_n the_o danger_n of_o not_o believe_v this_o article_n but_o a_o careful_a address_v and_o prepare_v of_o ourselves_o both_o soul_n and_o body_n against_o that_o great_a day_n that_o then_o we_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o a_o joyful_a resurrection_n and_o so_o live_v for_o ever_o with_o he_o amen_n these_o thing_n in_o deed_n be_v to_o be_v further_o enforce_v upon_o our_o conscience_n from_o the_o article_n follow_v which_o do_v set_v forth_o the_o further_a exaltation_n of_o our_o saviour_n but_o because_o as_o be_v say_v in_o the_o comfort_n the_o resurrection_n be_v the_o first_o and_o most_o familiar_a inducement_n hereunto_o therefore_o the_o exhortation_n unto_o these_o duty_n may_v not_o be_v pretermit_v here_o and_o now_o that_o we_o may_v full_o finish_v the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o article_n what_o danger_n be_v there_o in_o not_o believe_v the_o very_a natural_a and_o bodily_a resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o not_o in_o yield_v that_o fruit_n of_o obedience_n question_n which_o it_o most_o worthy_o challenge_v at_o our_o hand_n answer_n if_o any_o do_v not_o believe_v this_o article_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n true_a and_o natural_a body_n his_o death_n shall_v profit_v they_o nothing_o but_o they_o shall_v die_v in_o their_o sin_n and_o further_a also_o as_o touch_v those_o that_o be_v not_o through_o the_o virtue_n of_o our_o saviour_n resurrection_n partaker_n of_o the_o first_o resurrection_n of_o their_o soul_n from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n they_o shall_v never_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o their_o body_n to_o everlasting_a life_n by_o he_o at_o his_o second_o come_v explication_n explication_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o read_v first_o of_o all_o 1._o cor._n 15.12.13.14.15.16.17.18_o where_o the_o holy_a apostle_n make_v the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o we_o yea_o so_o the_o ground_n that_o they_o be_v as_o one_o will_v say_v coincident_a and_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o relative_n in_o a_o certain_a sort_n for_o insomuch_o as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n who_o be_v the_o head_n of_o his_o church_n be_v bodily_a raise_v up_o it_o can_v be_v but_o the_o member_n of_o this_o mystical_a body_n must_v be_v make_v conformable_a that_o be_v they_o must_v be_v likewise_o raise_v up_o and_o unite_v unto_o he_o or_o else_o he_o shall_v be_v as_o a_o head_n without_o a_o body_n and_o likewise_o insomuch_o as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v raise_v up_o to_o be_v a_o king_n and_o a_o prince_n over_o his_o church_n for_o ever_o his_o subject_n also_o must_v be_v raise_v up_o or_o else_o he_o can_v not_o have_v subject_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o kind_n with_o himself_o to_o rule_n add_v govern_v a_o king_n who_o be_v a_o man_n must_v be_v a_o king_n of_o man_n and_o not_o of_o beast_n yea_o of_o man_n and_o not_o of_o spirit_n or_o ghost_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v so_o in_o this_o world_n it_o shall_v be_v so_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v as_o touch_v the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n for_o as_o he_o shall_v retain_v the_o whole_a nature_n of_o man_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o so_o he_o shall_v rule_v over_o man_n consist_v of_o soul_n and_o body_n even_o as_o over_o his_o natural_a brethren_n answerable_a after_o a_o sort_n to_o that_o which_o the_o people_n say_v to_o david_n 2._o sam._n 15.1_o behold_v we_o be_v thy_o bone_n and_o thy_o flesh_n and_o as_o our_o saviour_n himself_o show_v plain_o concern_v himself_o in_o his_o message_n send_v by_o marie_n magdalen_n john_n 20.17_o though_o he_o be_v in_o another_o state_n and_o condition_n than_o we_o be_v in_o now_o and_o be_v so_o to_o continue_v even_o world_n without_o any_o end_n and_o therefore_o the_o holy_a apostle_n after_o that_o he_o have_v note_v diverse_a gross_a and_o heretical_a absurdity_n accompany_v the_o denial_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n 1._o cor._n 15._o he_o add_v verse_n 17.18_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o raise_v your_o faith_n be_v in_o vain_a you_o be_v yet_o in_o your_o sin_n and_o so_o they_o who_o be_v
the_o lord_n and_o that_o he_o have_v speak_v these_o thing_n unto_o she_o thus_o i_o say_v not_o only_o be_v this_o article_n record_v unto_o we_o as_o it_o be_v fulfil_v in_o due_a time_n but_o also_o as_o it_o be_v long_o before_o foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n and_o more_o near_o upon_o the_o performance_n thereof_o by_o our_o saviour_n himself_o the_o which_o as_o the_o effect_n itself_o declare_v be_v not_o conjectural_a and_o guess_v prognostication_n but_o most_o certain_a and_o divine_a prediction_n reveal_v by_o god_n himself_o the_o only_a governor_n and_o disposer_n of_o every_o thing_n in_o the_o proper_a time_n and_o season_n thereof_o as_o we_o have_v hear_v before_o but_o leave_v the_o prophecy_n and_o come_v to_o the_o historical_a report_n of_o the_o performance_n thereof_o as_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n mark_v and_o luke_n even_o now_o allege_v do_v report_n the_o same_o question_n in_o what_o order_n may_v we_o profitable_o consider_v of_o it_o answer_n in_o the_o historical_a report_n of_o this_o article_n the_o holy_a evangelist_n do_v lay_v it_o forth_o in_o this_o order_n first_o they_o note_v the_o time_n of_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n second_o the_o place_n from_o whence_o he_o ascend_v three_o the_o manner_n how_o four_o the_o effect_n which_o it_o wrought_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o disciple_n five_o the_o testimony_n of_o two_o angel_n concern_v the_o ascension_n with_o their_o holy_a instruction_n and_o admonition_n to_o the_o disciple_n continue_v in_o the_o earnest_n behold_v of_o the_o same_o these_o indeed_o be_v the_o point_v record_v in_o this_o part_n of_o the_o holy_a story_n and_o they_o may_v well_o be_v consider_v of_o in_o this_o order_n wherein_o you_o have_v rehearse_v they_o first_o therefore_o concern_v the_o time_n of_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n quest_n when_o be_v that_o ans_fw-fr it_o be_v at_o the_o end_n of_o forty_o day_n after_o he_o rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n it_o be_v true_a so_o do_v the_o evangelist_n luke_n affirm_v and_o testify_v in_o the_o first_o chap_n act_n verse_n 3_o in_o the_o which_o space_n of_o time_n also_o as_o he_o there_o show_v our_o saviour_n speak_v to_o his_o apostle_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o appertain_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o this_o contain_v matter_n of_o singular_a comfort_n unto_o we_o in_o that_o our_o saviour_n will_v not_o leave_v his_o disciple_n at_o uncertain_a but_o give_v they_o commandment_n what_o they_o shall_v do_v after_o his_o departure_n and_o again_o consider_v the_o faithfulness_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o obey_v our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o all_o thing_n we_o may_v well_o assure_v ourselves_o that_o whatsoever_o they_o have_v teach_v and_o preach_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v by_o the_o appointment_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o well_o in_o the_o change_n of_o the_o sabbath_n from_o the_o seven_o day_n the_o day_n after_o the_o finish_n of_o all_o god_n work_n of_o creation_n to_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n resurrection_n a_o most_o memorable_a declaration_n that_o he_o be_v the_o redeemer_n of_o the_o world_n in_o who_o alone_o consist_v the_o restore_n of_o the_o desolation_n of_o his_o people_n as_o be_v touch_v before_o as_o also_o in_o all_o the_o duty_n of_o god_n worship_n to_o be_v practise_v on_o that_o day_n preach_v prayer_n baptise_v supper_n of_o the_o lord_n office_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o whatsoever_o else_o beside_o thus_o much_o do_v the_o consideration_n of_o the_o time_n serve_v to_o inform_v we_o of_o neither_o be_v the_o proportion_n of_o the_o time_n to_o be_v neglect_v in_o that_o as_o he_o be_v forty_o day_n in_o the_o wilderness_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o his_o call_n at_o the_o entrance_n of_o his_o ministry_n so_o after_o the_o finish_n of_o all_o thing_n it_o please_v he_o to_o remain_v on_o the_o earth_n forty_o day_n to_o make_v know_v and_o confirm_v that_o all_o thing_n be_v indeed_o finish_v by_o he_o whatsoever_o be_v indeed_o to_o be_v do_v before_o his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n the_o day_n of_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v that_o which_o we_o usual_o call_v holy_a thursday_n but_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o place_n whence_o our_o saviour_n ascend_v explication_n question_n answer_n explication_n which_o be_v that_o it_o be_v from_o the_o mount_n of_o olive_n near_o to_o bethania_n this_o also_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o evangelist_n luke_n chap_n 24._o 50.51_o and_o act_v 1.12_o question_n what_o use_n may_v we_o make_v from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o place_n answer_n insomuch_o as_o the_o place_n which_o be_v before_o in_o one_o part_n of_o it_o a_o place_n of_o his_o low_a humiliation_n and_o descension_n be_v afterward_o make_v in_o the_o same_o or_o in_o some_o other_o part_n of_o it_o a_o place_n of_o his_o triumphant_a ascension_n we_o may_v well_o comfort_v ourselves_o that_o though_o we_o must_v pass_v through_o many_o affliction_n yet_o no_o place_n of_o affliction_n nor_o any_o measure_n of_o affliction_n shall_v hinder_v we_o from_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n explication_n explication_n this_o be_v observe_v before_o by_o reason_n that_o the_o place_n of_o the_o last_o appearance_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o his_o apostle_n be_v the_o place_n of_o this_o his_o ascension_n but_o it_o be_v not_o amiss_o that_o you_o have_v here_o call_v it_o to_o mind_n again_o and_o indeed_o whence_o be_v it_o that_o god_n do_v usual_o take_v his_o child_n from_o the_o earth_n up_o into_o heaven_n but_o their_o soul_n first_o out_n of_o their_o sick_a body_n or_o out_o of_o their_o uncomfortable_a prison_n or_o from_o the_o place_n of_o their_o execution_n for_o his_o holy_a truth_n and_o gospels_n sake_n and_o afterward_o their_o body_n out_o of_o the_o dust_n where_o they_o have_v be_v rot_v before_o but_o of_o this_o place_n of_o our_o saviour_n ascension_n we_o may_v see_v more_o in_o that_o which_o be_v say_v before_o concern_v the_o place_n of_o his_o last_o appearance_n here_o on_o earth_n after_o his_o resurrection_n leave_v the_o place_n thereof_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o ascension_n ques_n how_o be_v that_o ans_fw-fr after_o that_o our_o saviour_n have_v bless_v his_o apostle_n he_o withdraw_v himself_o from_o they_o explication_n explication_n so_o indeed_o be_v these_o word_n of_o the_o evangelist_n luke_n chap_n 24._o verse_n 51._o to_o be_v understand_v in_o that_o he_o say_v of_o our_o saviour_n that_o he_o depart_v from_o they_o dieste_a ap_fw-mi auton_n disiunctus_fw-la est_fw-la ab_fw-la eye_n that_o be_v he_o be_v disjoin_v or_o separate_v some_o distance_n from_o they_o question_n why_o be_v that_o answer_n to_o the_o end_n the_o disciple_n who_o our_o saviour_n mind_v to_o make_v witness_n of_o his_o ascension_n may_v the_o better_o discern_v his_o take_n up_o from_o they_o into_o heaven_n explication_n explication_n this_o be_v manifest_a in_o itself_o for_o if_o he_o have_v be_v take_v up_o from_o they_o on_o a_o sudden_a while_o he_o have_v be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o they_o can_v not_o for_o fear_v and_o through_o other_o infirmity_n so_o sensible_o have_v discern_v the_o same_o nor_o have_v give_v so_o perfect_a a_o testimony_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o holy_a story_n that_o first_o our_o saviour_n be_v remove_v some_o small_a distance_n from_o they_o and_o then_o that_o he_o be_v carry_v upward_o from_o they_o into_o heaven_n as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o forename_a 51._o verse_n question_n but_o how_o be_v he_o take_v up_o answer_n a_o cloud_n take_v he_o up_o out_o of_o the_o disciple_n sight_n while_o they_o behold_v he_o on_o the_o earth_n and_o look_v up_o steadfast_o towards_o heaven_n so_o long_o as_o they_o may_v discern_v he_o ascend_v explication_n explication_n it_o be_v the_o report_n of_o the_o evangelist_n act_n 1._o verse_n 9.10_o as_o be_v rehearse_v before_o and_o this_o motion_n of_o the_o cloud_n come_v down_o perpendicular_o as_o one_o may_v say_v and_o ascend_v up_o direct_o again_o contrary_a to_o the_o natural_a course_n which_o be_v circular_a it_o show_v the_o miraculous_a and_o divine_a hand_n of_o god_n herein_o like_v as_o do_v the_o strange_a motion_n of_o the_o star_n at_o the_o birth_n of_o our_o saviour_n it_o go_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o direct_a line_n and_o not_o compass_v wise_a from_o the_o east_n to_o the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o then_o from_o thence_o to_o bethlehem_n where_o he_o be_v bear_v question_n but_o why_o will_v not_o our_o saviour_n ascend_v without_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o cloud_n but_o will_v have_v it_o as_o a_o waggon_n of_o estate_n or_o chariot_n of_o triumph_n
to_o carry_v he_o up_o answer_n though_o our_o saviour_n can_v by_o his_o divine_a power_n have_v cause_v his_o body_n to_o have_v ascend_v without_o any_o mean_n for_o he_o be_v in_o stead_n of_o a_o ladder_n to_o the_o angel_n of_o heaven_n to_o ascend_v and_o descend_v he_o can_v have_v be_v a_o ladder_n to_o himself_o 1.51_o gen._n 28.12.13_o &_o john_n 1.51_o yet_o it_o seem_v that_o for_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n still_o so_o to_o remain_v in_o heaven_n after_o his_o ascension_n and_o for_o ever_o as_o he_o be_v at_o his_o resurrection_n here_o upon_o the_o earth_n he_o will_v have_v it_o lift_v up_o and_o carry_v up_o by_o a_o cloud_n explication_n explication_n so_o it_o seem_v indeed_o for_o notwithstanding_o the_o body_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v glorify_v and_o free_v from_o all_o natural_a grossness_n be_v more_o apt_a to_o move_v with_o great_a agility_n and_o quickness_n by_o many_o degree_n then_o before_o yet_o we_o may_v not_o think_v that_o it_o have_v lose_v all_o weightiness_n of_o substance_n and_o therefore_o have_v yet_o natural_o need_v of_o some_o help_n to_o lift_v it_o up_o like_v as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o our_o body_n that_o though_o at_o the_o resurrection_n they_o shall_v be_v glorify_v body_n yet_o they_o shall_v stand_v in_o need_n of_o the_o cloud_n of_o god_n to_o carry_v they_o into_o heaven_n 1._o thes_n 4.17_o and_o even_o for_o this_o cause_n also_o will_v our_o saviour_n in_o the_o translate_n of_o his_o body_n from_o earth_n to_o heaven_n give_v we_o a_o precedent_n how_o our_o body_n shall_v be_v conucy_v thither_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n thus_o than_o we_o see_v good_a reason_n why_o our_o saviour_n will_v have_v his_o body_n take_v up_o &_o carry_v into_o heaven_n by_o a_o cloud_n neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v neglect_v which_o learned_a interpreter_n observe_v that_o the_o lord_n by_o put_v a_o cloud_n betwixt_o our_o saviour_n and_o they_o will_v teach_v they_o sobriety_n lest_o they_o shall_v seek_v to_o know_v more_o of_o the_o secret_n of_o god_n then_o be_v meet_v but_o shall_v content_v themselves_o and_o rest_v satisfy_v with_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o think_v good_a to_o reveal_v unto_o they_o like_a as_o the_o lord_n at_o the_o give_v of_o the_o law_n do_v as_o it_o seem_v to_o the_o same_o end_n appear_v in_o a_o dark_a cloud_n exod_n 19.9_o and_o afterward_o in_o the_o tabernacle_n chap_n 46.34_o etc._n etc._n num_fw-la 9.15_o and_o chap_n 16.42_o and_o likewise_o in_o the_o temple_n 1._o king_n 8.10.11.12_o read_v also_o psalm_n 18.9.10.11_o and_o hab_o article_n the_o meaning_n of_o the_o article_n 3_o verse_n 4._o hereunto_o tend_v the_o speech_n of_o the_o two_o man_n that_o stand_v in_o white_a apparel_n act._n 1.10.11_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o two_o angel_n such_o as_o the_o evangelist_n john_n say_v to_o be_v angel_n in_o white_a garment_n chap_n 20_o 12._o who_o mark_n and_o luke_n do_v nevertheless_o call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o man_n clothe_v in_o white_a shine_a vesture_n mark_v 16_o 5._o and_o luke_n 24.4_o for_o these_o angel_n of_o who_o we_o speak_v in_o this_o our_o text_n of_o the_o act_n call_v the_o disciple_n from_o look_v any_o long_o up_o to_o heaven_n after_o that_o our_o saviour_n be_v receive_v out_o of_o their_o sight_n and_o inform_v they_o of_o his_o second_o come_v to_o judgement_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v remain_v in_o the_o heaven_n until_o that_o time_n retain_v still_o the_o same_o nature_n of_o man_n wherewith_o he_o visible_o ascend_v up_o from_o they_o and_o thus_o the_o angel_n beside_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v eye-witness_n do_v testify_v unto_o we_o this_o article_n of_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n into_o heaven_n yea_o the_o angel_n do_v further_o testify_v of_o his_o cont_n nuance_n there_o in_o the_o same_o nature_n as_o be_v say_v even_o now_o until_o his_o come_n again_o a_o point_n right_n worthy_a and_o comfortable_a to_o be_v no●ed_v of_o us._n and_o further_o touch_v the_o speech_n of_o the_o angel_n in_o that_o they_o speak_v to_o the_o apostle_n do_v call_v they_o man_n of_o galilee_n they_o do_v it_o not_o in_o any_o way_n of_o reproof_n but_o that_o by_o hear_v their_o country_n mention_v by_o such_o as_o be_v stranger_n and_o unknown_a of_o they_o they_o may_v be_v so_o much_o the_o rather_o stir_v up_o to_o attend_v their_o speech_n nleither_o be_v we_o so_o to_o understand_v these_o angel_n as_o though_o they_o do_v simple_o reprove_v the_o disciple_n for_o look_v up_o to_o heaven_n but_o even_o as_o our_o saviour_n in_o former_a time_n show_v his_o disciple_n the_o glory_n of_o his_o miracle_n do_v therewithal_o make_v mention_n of_o his_o death_n and_o speak_v of_o his_o death_n do_v upon_o that_o occasion_n likewise_o often_o foretell_v they_o of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o be_v rise_v again_o interrupt_v mary_n magdalen_n and_o tell_v she_o of_o his_o ascension_n and_o by_o she_o his_o disciple_n so_o here_o the_o holy_a angel_n call_v their_o mind_n from_o that_o which_o be_v of_o little_a use_n further_o than_o they_o have_v already_o see_v to_o that_o which_o be_v now_o more_o necessary_o to_o be_v know_v and_o think_v upon_o of_o they_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v prepare_v themselves_o and_o teach_v other_o also_o so_o to_o do_v that_o they_o may_v be_v find_v such_o as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o all_o faithfulness_n of_o good_a service_n at_o his_o glorious_a appearance_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n 2._o cor_n 5.10_o 11._o we_o must_v all_o appear_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n etc._n etc._n know_v therefore_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o lord_n we_o persuade_v man_n etc._n etc._n thus_o much_o therefore_o concern_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o of_o the_o faithful_a witness_n of_o it_o yea_o even_o of_o the_o whole_a history_n and_o ground_n of_o it_o and_o now_o in_o the_o next_o place_n we_o be_v according_a to_o our_o course_n to_o consider_v of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o article_n question_n what_o be_v that_o how_o do_v they_o teach_v you_o to_o believe_v answer_n this_o article_n teach_v i_o steadfast_o to_o believe_v that_o albeit_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n be_v all_o way_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n fill_v all_o place_n at_o once_o with_o his_o divine_a presence_n so_o that_o to_o speak_v proper_o and_o without_o figurative_a speech_n he_o can_v be_v say_v his_o godhead_n simple_o consider_v in_o itself_o to_o have_v at_o any_o time_n either_o ascend_v or_o descend_v yet_o that_o in_o his_o humane_a nature_n both_o body_n and_o soul_n be_v here_o upon_o the_o earth_n and_o not_o in_o heaven_n yea_o that_o even_o with_o the_o same_o body_n which_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n be_v crucify_v dead_a and_o bury_v and_o the_o three_o day_n rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a he_o do_v at_o the_o end_n of_o forty_o day_n after_o his_o resurrection_n ascend_v up_o from_o the_o earth_n here_o below_o into_o the_o high_a heaven_n there_o to_o remain_v till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o be_v not_o now_o neither_o will_v be_v till_o that_o time_n bodily_a present_n any_o other_o where_o explication_n explication_n all_o be_v very_o true_a that_o you_o say_v for_o first_o that_o the_o godhead_n to_o speak_v proper_o and_o without_o trope_n or_o figure_n of_o speech_n can_v be_v say_v to_o ascend_v or_o descend_v it_o be_v evident_a insomuch_o as_o it_o be_v not_o possible_o subject_a to_o change_v of_o place_n but_o it_o be_v present_v every_o where_o fill_v at_o once_o all_o place_n jer_n chap_n 23._o verse_n 23_o 2d_o and_o psal_n 139_o 7_o 8_o 9_o 10_o 11_o 12._o so_o that_o where_o god_n be_v say_v to_o descend_v or_o ascend_v and_o to_o go_v from_o one_o place_n to_o another_o as_o gen_n 11.5_o 7_o and_o chap_n 18.21_o exod_n 3_o 2_o etc._n etc._n 8._o and_o cha_n 19_o 18._o psal_n 89._o habak_v chap_n 3_o verse_n 3_o etc._n etc._n this_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o some_o special_a declaration_n of_o his_o divine_a and_o glorious_a presence_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o holy_a angel_n with_o some_o strange_a adjoint_v and_o effect_n of_o the_o same_o his_o presence_n and_o this_o may_v joint_o or_o distinct_o be_v ascribe_v to_o all_o three_o person_n of_o the_o deity_n as_o mat_n chap._n 3_o 16._o john_n 14_o 23_o 26_o cha_n 15_o 26_o and_o 16_o 7_o 8_o act_v 2.1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o and_o yet_o more_o special_o concern_v the_o son_n of_o god_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o person_n of_o a_o mediator_n both_o god_n
this_o further_a fruit_n and_o excellent_a benefit_n of_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n that_o thenceforth_o of_o his_o most_o royal_a bounty_n he_o have_v give_v most_o plentiful_a gift_n unto_o his_o church_n both_o gift_n of_o calling_n and_o office_n and_o also_o gift_n of_o manifold_a grace_n for_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o same_o to_o the_o replenish_n of_o his_o whole_a church_n from_o time_n to_o time_n for_o unto_o every_o one_o of_o we_o say_v the_o apostle_n be_v give_v grace_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o he_o say_v that_o be_v the_o psalmist_n who_o the_o apostle_n allege_v say_v when_o he_o ascend_v up_o on_o high_a he_o lead_v captivity_n captive_a and_o give_v gift_n unto_o man_n etc._n etc._n that_o he_o may_v fill_v all_o thing_n and_o the_o apostle_n to_o make_v the_o matter_n plain_a he_o add_v yet_o further_o he_o therefore_o give_v some_o to_o be_v apostle_n and_o some_o prophet_n and_o some_o evangelist_n and_o some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n for_o the_o gather_n together_o of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n till_o we_o all_o meet_v together_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n unto_o a_o perfect_a man_n and_o unto_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o age_n of_o the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n etc._n etc._n yea_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n a_o most_o faithful_a record_n of_o the_o gospel_n preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o deliver_v unto_o we_o in_o holy_a writing_n it_o be_v very_o a_o fruit_n of_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o that_o also_o a_o very_a great_a one_o to_o we_o and_o to_o all_o the_o age_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n time_n even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o otherwise_o how_o shall_v the_o age_n follow_v special_o those_o something_o more_o remove_v have_v enjoy_v so_o pure_a and_o plentiful_a a_o fruit_n of_o their_o preach_v have_v it_o not_o be_v for_o this_o holy_a record_n of_o their_o doctrine_n in_o writing_n sure_o the_o defection_n from_o the_o truth_n foretell_v so_o speedy_o by_o they_o and_o even_o begin_v in_o their_o day_n haste_v on_o so_o fast_o according_a to_o the_o common_a proverb_n a_o ill_a weed_n grow_v a_o pace_n that_o the_o truth_n without_o recovery_n by_o any_o ordinary_a mean_n will_v sure_o have_v be_v utter_o pervert_v by_o the_o bastard_n tradition_n and_o doctrine_n of_o man_n in_o a_o short_a time_n thus_o then_o though_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v natural_o absent_a in_o body_n ever_o since_o his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n yet_o he_o be_v and_o always_o have_v be_v spiritual_o present_a with_o his_o true_a church_n and_o choose_a people_n by_o his_o divine_a presence_n walk_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o seven_o golden_a candlestick_n take_v care_n for_o they_o all_o revel_v 1_o 13._o and_o chap_n 2_o 1._o etc._n etc._n according_a to_o his_o most_o holy_a and_o gracious_a promise_n mat_n 28.20_o loe_o i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n amen_o but_o because_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o all_o this_o neither_o be_v neither_o can_v be_v at_o once_o and_o immediate_o upon_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n therefore_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o this_o fruit_n must_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o article_n of_o the_o perpetual_a sit_v of_o our_o saviour_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n though_o the_o beginning_n and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o consideration_n of_o these_o fruit_n do_v belong_v also_o to_o the_o ascension_n see_v hereby_o all_o that_o follow_v take_v that_o glorious_a effect_n which_o ensue_v upon_o it_o question_n but_o be_v there_o no_o other_o fruit_n of_o our_o saviour_n ascension_n yet_o behind_o answer_n yes_o we_o have_v a_o five_o yea_o and_o also_o a_o sixth_o fruit_n beside_o all_o the_o former_a in_o that_o like_o as_o by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n our_o mind_n be_v first_o raise_v up_o to_o newness_n of_o life_n and_o our_o body_n also_o have_v thereby_o a_o pledge_n as_o it_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v rise_v again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n so_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o ascension_n apprehend_v by_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n our_o mind_n be_v yet_o further_o lift_v up_o and_o confirm_v in_o the_o study_n and_o practice_v of_o all_o heavenly_a and_o spiritual_a duty_n in_o certain_a hope_n that_o our_o soul_n shall_v be_v take_v up_o into_o heaven_n immediate_o after_o this_o life_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o by_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n we_o be_v further_o assure_v that_o at_o his_o come_n again_o to_o judgement_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n our_o body_n their_o soul_n join_v to_o they_o again_o shall_v be_v take_v up_o by_o the_o cloud_n like_a as_o he_o himself_o be_v take_v up_o that_o so_o we_o may_v for_o ever_o live_v and_o reign_v with_o he_o and_o all_o the_o thousand_o thousand_o of_o his_o saint_n and_o holy_a angel_n in_o the_o heaven_n touch_v the_o five_o fruit_n that_o be_v the_o further_a lift_v and_o draw_v up_o of_o our_o mind_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n to_o the_o love_n and_o care_n of_o heavenly_a study_n and_o duty_n of_o godliness_n by_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n let_v we_o consider_v what_o he_o himself_o faith_n speak_v of_o his_o lift_n up_o upon_o the_o cross_n by_o his_o death_n john_n 12_o 32._o saying_n if_o i_o be_v lift_v up_o from_o the_o earth_n i_o will_v draw_v all_o man_n unto_o i_o now_o therefore_o see_v his_o lift_n up_o upon_o the_o cross_n which_o be_v indeed_o with_o extreme_a reproach_n be_v mighty_a to_o begin_v so_o great_a a_o work_n how_o shall_v not_o his_o lift_n up_o to_o the_o heavenly_a glory_n due_o of_o we_o look_v up_o unto_o be_v much_o more_o mighty_a to_o perfect_a that_o which_o be_v already_o so_o well_o begin_v for_o so_o it_o be_v write_v act_v 5_o 30.31_o the_o god_n of_o our_o father_n have_v raise_v up_o jesus_n who_o you_o slay_v and_o hang_v on_o a_o tree_n he_o have_v god_n lift_v up_o with_o his_o right_a hand_n to_o be_v a_o prince_n and_o a_o saviour_n to_o give_v repentance_n to_o israel_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o now_o last_o of_o all_o in_o the_o sixth_o place_n that_o not_o only_o our_o soul_n shall_v be_v receive_v into_o the_o heavenly_a place_n etc._n god_n have_v prepare_v a_o kingdom_n for_o his_o people_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o wit_n in_o his_o eternal_a counsel_n mat_n 25_o 34._o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v go_v up_o into_o heaven_n to_o prepare_v place_n in_o his_o kingdom_n as_o one_o that_o actual_o execute_v the_o counsel_n of_o his_o father_n etc._n etc._n so_o soon_o as_o they_o depart_v this_o life_n but_o also_o our_o body_n at_o the_o last_o day_n as_o a_o fruit_n of_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n we_o have_v his_o own_o promise_n john_n 12_o 26._o if_o any_o man_n serve_v i_o let_v he_o follow_v i_o for_o where_o i_o be_o there_o shall_v also_o my_o servant_n be_v and_o if_o any_o man_n serve_v i_o he_o will_v my_o father_n honour_n and_o chap_n 14_o 2.3_o in_o my_o father_n house_n be_v many_o dwell_a place_n if_o it_o be_v not_o so_o i_o will_v have_v tell_v you_o i_o go_v to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o and_o though_o i_o go_v to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o i_o will_v come_v again_o and_o receive_v you_o to_o myself_o that_o where_o i_o be_o there_o may_v you_o be_v also_o and_o chap_n 17._o verse_n 22.24_o and_o 1._o thes_n 4_o 13_o &c_n &c_n touch_v our_o body_n thus_o write_v the_o faithful_a apostle_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n yet_o more_o express_o the_o lord_n himself_o shall_v descend_v from_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n then_o shall_v we_o which_o live_v be_v catch_v up_o with_o they_o also_o in_o the_o cloud_n to_o meet_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o air_n and_o so_o shall_v be_v ever_o with_o the_o lord_n wherefore_o say_v he_o comfort_v yourselves_o one_o another_o with_o these_o word_n thus_o than_o we_o see_v that_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n into_o heaven_n be_v a_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n many_o way_n very_o beneficial_a and_o comfortable_a unto_o we_o yea_o so_o be_v it_o to_o the_o apostle_n even_o from_o the_o instant_a time_n thereof_o for_o they_o as_o it_o be_v write_v forthwith_o return_v from_o the_o mount_n of_o olive_n duty_n the_o duty_n whence_o our_o saviour_n ascend_v to_o jerusalem_n with_o great_a joy_n rejoice_v no_o doubt_n in_o assurance_n that_o our_o saviour_n be_v not_o only_o very_o
it_o record_v math._n 22_o 4●_n etc._n etc._n where_o he_o apply_v the_o ancient_a prophet_n of_o the_o 110._o psal_n be_v long_o before_o speak_v of_o himself_o &_o thereby_o do_v put_v the_o pharisy_n to_o silence_n give_v they_o to_o understand_v that_o the_o promise_v messiah_n be_v another_o manner_n of_o one_o than_o they_o imagine_v he_o to_o be_v that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o great_a dignity_n than_o any_o mere_a mortal_a man_n for_o who_o else_o but_o such_o a_o one_o may_v be_v david_n lord_n who_o be_v the_o sovereign_a king_n of_o israel_n this_o be_v that_o which_o do_v at_o this_o time_n confound_v they_o and_o another_o prediction_n of_o his_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n we_o read_v it_o utter_v before_o the_o high_a priest_n math._n 26.64_o hereafter_o say_v our_o saviour_n shall_v you_o see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n thus_o then_o we_o may_v evident_o see_v that_o we_o have_v this_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n sufficient_o warrant_v and_o confirm_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n now_o after_o the_o ground_n and_o proof_n of_o the_o article_n it_o follow_v in_o the_o next_o place_n that_o we_o do_v inquire_v into_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o it_o to_o the_o which_o end_n as_o you_o hear_v in_o the_o sermon_n upon_o this_o article_n diverse_a thing_n be_v diligent_o to_o be_v consider_v of_o we_o the_o which_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o we_o here_o to_o call_v again_o to_o mind_n question_n which_o therefore_o be_v those_o thing_n answer_n first_o the_o time_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v when_o this_o sit_v of_o our_o saviour_n here_o speak_v of_o do_v begin_v and_o how_o long_o it_o be_v to_o continue_v second_o the_o place_n where_o he_o sit_v three_o the_o person_n at_o who_o right_a hand_n he_o sit_v four_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n five_o what_o the_o sit_v of_o our_o saviour_n mean_v that_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v necessary_o to_o be_v consider_v of_o we_o to_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o this_o article_n it_o will_v appear_v in_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o particular_n let_v we_o therefore_o come_v unto_o they_o article_n the_o meaning_n of_o the_o article_n and_o first_o at_o what_o time_n do_v this_o sit_v of_o our_o saviour_n begin_v and_o how_o long_o be_v it_o to_o continue_v an._n it_o begin_v immediate_o upon_o his_o ascension_n up_o into_o heaven_n and_o it_o continue_v for_o ever_o which_o rld_n without_o end_n expli_v it_o be_v very_o true_a for_o so_o first_o touch_v the_o beginning_n be_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o historical_o and_o orderly_o report_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n namely_o mark_v chap._n 16._o verse_n 19_o as_o be_v before_o rehearse_v and_o again_o act_n chap._n 2._o verse_n 33_o 34._o the_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n follow_v immediate_o after_o the_o exaltation_n of_o our_o saviour_n by_o his_o ascension_n to_o heaven_n and_o though_o the_o ascension_n be_v not_o always_o mention_v betwixt_o the_o resurrection_n and_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n as_o rom._n 8.34_o and_o ephes_n 1.20_o yet_o it_o must_v necessary_o be_v understand_v according_a to_o those_o former_a testimony_n of_o mark_n and_o peter_n and_o so_o likewise_o although_o the_o sit_v be_v rehearse_v in_o some_o other_o place_n immediate_o after_o his_o death_n as_o heb._n 1.3_o and_o chap._n 10.12_o and_o chap._n 12.2_o yet_o must_v both_o the_o resurrection_n and_o also_o the_o ascension_n be_v understand_v as_o go_v in_o order_n of_o time_n betwixt_o they_o for_o so_o it_o be_v plain_a from_o the_o testimony_n and_o prediction_n of_o our_o saviour_n adiur_v by_o the_o high_a priest_n matth._n 26.63_o hereafter_o say_v he_o shall_v you_o see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n this_o hereafter_o which_o our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o be_v indeed_o to_o be_v accomplish_v a_o great_a while_n after_o and_o be_v still_o remain_v to_o be_v perform_v so_o long_a a_o time_n hereafter_o as_o the_o world_n be_v yet_o to_o continue_v nevertheless_o that_o the_o suffering_n death_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v before_o his_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o sit_v be_v after_o they_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v very_o plain_a so_o then_o howsoever_o the_o sit_v of_o our_o saviour_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n be_v to_o continue_v for_o ever_o as_o be_v further_o answer_v which_o thing_n the_o apostle_n plain_o affirm_v heb._n 10.12_o as_o we_o shall_v have_v further_a occasion_n to_o consider_v afterward_o yet_o it_o begin_v not_o till_o that_o very_a time_n when_o he_o be_v ascend_v and_o enter_v into_o the_o high_a heaven_n even_o to_o the_o throne_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n this_o consideration_n of_o the_o time_n be_v the_o rather_o to_o be_v diligent_o observe_v of_o we_o to_o the_o arm_n of_o our_o mind_n against_o that_o confuse_a fancy_n of_o some_o who_o in_o favour_n of_o their_o error_n in_o some_o other_o point_n will_v have_v we_o believe_v that_o our_o saviour_n have_v always_o his_o seat_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o also_o that_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v every_o where_o etc._n etc._n but_o that_o this_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v understand_v we_o have_v see_v already_o in_o that_o which_o be_v say_v touch_v the_o time_n and_o as_o for_o the_o place_n we_o be_v now_o to_o consider_v secondary_o that_o it_o be_v not_o question_n neither_o be_v every_o where_n where_o therefore_o say_v you_o be_v the_o place_n where_o our_o saviour_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n answer_n i_o have_v learn_v from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o the_o place_n where_o our_o saviour_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n be_v only_o in_o the_o heaven_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n so_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v for_o see_v by_o his_o ascension_n he_o have_v leave_v the_o earth_n i_o mean_v as_o touch_v his_o humane_a nature_n for_o of_o it_o do_v these_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n proper_o speak_v &_o be_v go_v into_o the_o heaven_n which_o must_v contain_v he_o till_o he_o shall_v come_v again_o to_o judgement_n we_o can_v understand_v his_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n in_o his_o humane_a nature_n to_o be_v any_o other_o where_o then_o in_o heaven_n so_o that_o this_o we_o be_v to_o embrace_v and_o hold_v for_o a_o certain_a truth_n that_o the_o place_n of_o our_o saviour_n sit_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n be_v that_o place_n only_o whither_o he_o be_v ascend_v for_o proof_n whereof_o read_v eph._n 1.20_o god_n have_v set_v he_o at_o his_o right_a hand_n in_o the_o heavenly_a place_n and_o heb._n 1.3_o in_o the_o high_a place_n and_o ch_z 8.1_o in_o the_o heaven_n and_o 9.24_o christ_n be_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o holy_a place_n that_o be_v make_v with_o hand_n which_o be_v similitude_n of_o the_o true_a sanctuary_n but_o he_o be_v enter_v into_o very_a heaven_n to_o appear_v now_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n for_o us._n thus_o much_o concern_v the_o place_n the_o which_o be_v the_o more_o diligent_o to_o be_v observe_v of_o we_o for_o the_o reason_n before_o mention_v concern_v the_o time_n the_o three_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v explication_n question_n answer_n explication_n be_v the_o person_n at_o who_o right_a hand_n our_o saviour_n sit_v who_o be_v that_o even_o the_o same_o which_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o first_o article_n that_o be_v god_n the_o father_n almighty_a it_o be_v very_o true_a for_o so_o be_v all_o those_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v understand_v where_o mention_n have_v be_v make_v of_o our_o saviour_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n neither_o be_v it_o necessary_a that_o the_o word_n father_n shall_v be_v always_o express_v see_v it_o be_v a_o very_a usual_a thing_n to_o understand_v the_o father_n by_o the_o name_n of_o god_n when_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o god_n with_o a_o respect_n to_o the_o son_n as_o it_o be_v here_o in_o this_o article_n nevertheless_o sometime_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o also_o of_o his_o almighty_a power_n be_v express_v namely_o ephes_n 1.17_o etc._n etc._n the_o god_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o father_n of_o glory_n etc._n etc._n by_o the_o exceed_a greatness_n of_o his_o mighty_a power_n have_v raise_v up_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o set_v he_o at_o his_o right_a hand_n and_o 1._o cor._n 15.24_o the_o same_o apostle_n speak_v of_o our_o saviour_n deliver_v up_o of_o his_o kingdom_n say_v that_o he_o shall_v deliver_v it_o up_o to_o
the_o same_o his_o holy_a doctrine_n it_o may_v be_v evident_a in_o that_o from_o the_o time_n of_o his_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n &_o not_o before_o he_o pour_v down_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n most_o plentiful_o upon_o his_o holy_a apostle_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o whole_a church_n both_o by_o their_o preach_n for_o their_o life_n time_n &_o by_o their_o writing_n even_o to_o this_o day_n &_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n insomuch_o as_o both_o by_o the_o one_o and_o also_o by_o the_o other_o their_o whole_a ministry_n be_v employ_v to_o the_o clear_n of_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o prophet_n by_o the_o full_a performance_n of_o they_o in_o &_o by_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o the_o redemption_n justification_n and_o salvation_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n of_o god_n consist_v both_o of_o jew_n and_o gentile_n according_a to_o that_o notable_a testimony_n of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n ephes_n 4.11_o 12_o 13_o 14_o etc._n etc._n the_o which_o notwithstanding_o we_o do_v allege_v it_o as_o we_o have_v occasion_n give_v we_o from_o the_o 7_o 8_o 9_o and_o 10._o verse_n go_v immediate_o before_o concern_v the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n up_o into_o heaven_n yet_o because_o the_o performance_n and_o distribution_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v not_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o ascension_n simple_o consider_v in_o itself_o but_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o end_n wherefore_o he_o ascend_v that_o be_v to_o take_v his_o full_a glory_n &_o power_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n therefore_o we_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o call_v it_o to_o remembrance_n here_o again_o yea_o here_o to_o give_v it_o the_o due_a place_n of_o our_o more_o full_a consideration_n for_o that_o it_o may_v the_o rather_o appear_v that_o these_o fruit_n and_o benefit_n be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o sit_v of_o our_o saviour_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n to_o the_o perfect_a ratify_n of_o all_o holy_a pprophecy_n and_o doctrine_n according_a to_o his_o own_o teach_n mat._n 5.17_o 18.7_o think_v not_o that_o i_o be_o come_v to_o destroy_v the_o law_n or_o the_o prophet_n i_o be_o not_o come_v to_o destroy_v they_o but_o to_o fulfil_v they_o for_o true_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o till_o heaven_n and_o earth_n perish_v one_o ●ote_n or_o one_o title_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v not_o escape_v till_o all_o be_v fulfil_v etc._n etc._n he_o will_v not_o send_v the_o holy_a ghost_n down_o upon_o his_o apostle_n immediate_o upon_o his_o ascension_n though_o he_o ascend_v to_o that_o end_n and_o purpose_n but_o defer_v it_o ten_o day_n after_o for_o our_o saviour_n ascend_v to_o heaven_n as_o we_o know_v on_o thursday_n which_o fall_v out_o to_o be_v the_o fourtith_n day_n after_o his_o resurrection_n he_o do_v not_o send_v the_o holy_a ghost_n till_o the_o lord_n day_n seven-night_n after_o which_o be_v call_v by_o we_o whitsonday_n it_o be_v in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n of_o the_o act_n where_o this_o holy_a history_n be_v record_v unto_o we_o term_v by_o the_o name_n of_o pentecost_n which_o in_o the_o greek_a tongue_n signify_v the_o fiftith_n day●_n pentecoste_n sub_fw-la andi_fw-la he_o m●ra_n though_o by_o use_n to_o note_v this_o time_n which_o be_v a_o feast_n of_o the_o jew_n otherwise_o call_v of_o they_o the_o feast_n of_o the_o week_n the_o same_o word_n pentecoste_n be_v make_v a_o substantive_a but_o what_o then_o be_v the_o holy_a apostle_n without_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o void_a of_o the_o gift_n and_o grace_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n question_n from_o the_o time_n of_o his_o ascension_n till_o this_o ten_o day_n after_o no_o we_o may_v not_o say_v so_o proof_n answer_n explication_n &_o proof_n you_o say_v true_a for_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o they_o be_v already_o endue_v with_o a_o great_a measure_n of_o grace_n as_o be_v plain_o and_o express_o testify_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n verse_n 13_o 14_o 15_o etc._n etc._n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n and_o that_o two_o way_n first_o more_o general_o in_o that_o it_o be_v record_v that_o in_o this_o mean_a time_n they_o continue_v together_o according_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o our_o saviour_n while_o he_o be_v yet_o with_o they_o give_v themselves_o with_o one_o accord_n to_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n verse_n 14._o second_o and_o that_o more_o particular_o in_o the_o wise_a and_o gracious_a order_n of_o the_o election_n of_o mathias_n to_o be_v in_o the_o room_n of_o a_o twelve_o apostle_n in_o stead_n of_o judas_n who_o have_v leave_v his_o place_n and_o lose_v his_o fellowship_n which_o he_o have_v external_o enjoy_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o it_o follow_v verse_n 15._o and_o to_o the_o end_n thus_o it_o may_v evident_o appear_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o utter_o void_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n till_o the_o ten_o day_n question_n how_o then_o be_v we_o to_o understand_v this_o that_o our_o saviour_n do_v not_o send_v the_o holy_a ghost_n till_o the_o ten_o day_n after_o his_o ascension_n answer_n it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v only_o concern_v that_o most_o full_a measure_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o our_o saviour_n do_v in_o dew_n they_o withal_o at_o that_o time_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n make_v unto_o they_o before_o his_o ascension_n as_o the_o holy_a story_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n so_o it_o do_v indeed_o for_o after_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v descend_v upon_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o they_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o speak_v language_n &_o utter_v the_o wonderful_a mystery_n of_o god_n to_o the_o astonish_n of_o many_o sort_n of_o stranger_n in_o their_o several_a language_n as_o the_o spirit_n give_v they_o utterance_n the_o apostle_n peter_n say_v thus_o act_v 2.33_o 34_o 35_o 36._o since_o that_o christ_n have_v be_v exalt_v by_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o have_v receive_v of_o his_o father_n the_o promise_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o have_v shed_v forth_o this_o which_o you_o now_o see_v and_o hear_v for_o david_n as_o the_o same_o apostle_n add_v further_o be_v not_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n but_o he_o say_v the_o lord_n say_v to_o my_o lord_n sit_v thou_o at_o my_o right_a hand_n till_o i_o make_v thy_o enemy_n thy_o foot_n stooie_n thus_o than_o we_o so_o that_o we_o may_v well_o say_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v by_o his_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n as_o a_o princely_a prophet_n seal_v and_o confirm_v and_o most_o plentiful_o clear_v and_o publish_v the_o holy_a doctrine_n of_o our_o salvation_n yea_o that_o he_o have_v confirm_v and_o authorize_v it_o more_o firm_o than_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o mede_n and_o persian_n which_o never_o change_n for_o though_o man_n law_n be_v sundry_a time_n repeal_v &_o alter_v yet_o it_o be_v not_o neither_o shall_v ever_o be_v so_o with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n for_o it_o shall_v remain_v still_o in_o full_a strength_n when_o all_o humane_a law_n policy_n and_o decree_n of_o man_n wit_n shall_v for_o ever_o be_v disauthorise_v and_o dissolve_v herein_o therefore_o well_o may_v we_o use_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n chap._n 8.16_o that_o the_o testimony_n and_o the_o law_n that_o be_v all_o the_o holy_a doctrine_n of_o god_n be_v most_o perfect_o bind_v up_o and_o seal_v among_o the_o disciple_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o be_v ratify_v and_o reserve_v to_o their_o use_n though_o withdraw_v and_o hide_a as_o a_o secret_a from_o all_o unbeliever_n like_o also_o as_o we_o read_v the_o same_o kind_n of_o speech_n to_o a_o more_o particular_a purpose_n dan._n 8.26_o the_o vision_n be_v true_a therefore_o seal_v it_o up_o and_o chap._n 12.4_o shut_v up_o the_o word_n and_o seal_v the_o book_n but_o more_o general_o chap._n 9.24_o it_o be_v prophesy_v that_o our_o saviour_n shall_v by_o his_o death_n seal_v up_o all_o vision_n and_o pprophecy_n here_o upon_o earth_n the_o which_o also_o he_o have_v since_o his_o ascension_n seal_v up_o most_o perfect_o in_o heaven_n to_o hide_v it_o above_o the_o reach_n of_o all_o infidel_n but_o to_o cause_v all_o thing_n to_o shine_v forth_o more_o clear_o to_o the_o plentiful_a increase_n of_o the_o comfort_n of_o all_o true_a believer_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n 2._o cor._n chap._n 4._o verse_n 3._o if_o our_o gospel_n be_v then_o hide_v it_o be_v hide_v to_o they_o that_o be_v lose_v in_o who_o the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n have_v blind_v their_o
authority_n in_o that_o all_o power_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v give_v unto_o he_o thus_o much_o in_o the_o first_o place_n more_o general_o for_o the_o most_o holy_a rule_n and_o government_n of_o our_o saviour_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o church_n more_o direct_o now_o second_o for_o his_o vigilancy_n in_o preserve_v and_o maintain_v of_o it_o read_v revel_v 1_o 10.11_o 12_o 13_o etc._n etc._n for_o our_o saviour_n be_v describe_v to_o walk_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o church_n &_o to_o have_v eye_n like_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n &c_n &c_n and_o a_o two-edged_a sword_n go_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n etc._n etc._n and_o therewithal_o it_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o three_o place_n by_o the_o two_o chapter_n follow_v what_o wise_a discipline_n our_o saviour_n use_v according_a to_o that_o chap_n 3_o 19_o as_o many_o as_o i_o love_v i_o rebuke_v and_o chasten_v be_v zealous_a therefore_o and_o amend_v and_o again_o in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o which_o be_v four_o observe_v concern_v the_o sweet_a consolation_n and_o comfort_n which_o he_o give_v to_o all_o those_o that_o will_v receive_v it_o as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o very_a next_o verse_n which_o be_v the_o 20._o behold_v say_v our_o saviour_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n from_o heaven_n i_o stand_v at_o the_o door_n and_o knock_n if_o any_o man_n hear_v my_o voice_n and_o open_v the_o door_n i_o will_v come_v in_o unto_o he_o and_o will_v sup_v with_o he_o and_o he_o with_o i_o and_o this_o do_v our_o saviour_n even_o from_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n as_o he_o promise_v that_o he_o will_v john_n ch_n 14_o 18._o i_o will_v not_o leave_v you_o comfortless_a or_o as_o orphanet_n and_o fatherless_a child_n in_o which_o respect_n he_o be_v call_v a_o everlasting_a father_n to_o his_o church_n as_o to_o his_o child_n isai_n 9.6_o but_o say_v our_o saviour_n the_o king_n of_o heaven_n i_o will_v come_v unto_o you_o and_o verse_n 27._o peace_n i_o leave_v with_o you_o etc._n etc._n final_o that_o he_o do_v all_o this_o to_o humble_v his_o church_n and_o every_o member_n thereof_o to_o make_v all_o that_o be_v he_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n and_o that_o he_o mind_v from_o heaven_n even_o from_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n to_o save_v they_o it_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o former_a place_n of_o the_o revel_v ch_n 3._o as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o 21_o and_o 22._o verse_n to_o he_o that_o overcom_v say_v our_o saviour_n i_o will_v grant_v to_o fit_v with_o i_o in_o my_o throne_n even_o as_o i_o overcome_v and_o fit_a with_o my_o father_n in_o his_o throne_n let_v he_o that_o have_v a_o ear_n hear_v what_o the_o spirit_n say_v to_o the_o church_n read_v also_o rom_n 8.28_o we_o know_v that_o all_o thing_n work_v together_o for_o the_o best_a etc._n etc._n and_o 1_o cor_n 11.32_o when_o we_o be_v judge_v we_o be_v chastened_a of_o the_o lord_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v condemn_v with_o the_o world_n it_o be_v evident_a also_o by_o the_o express_a prediction_n and_o warrant_v of_o our_o saviour_n before_o his_o death_n as_o we_o read_v matth_n 25.31_o etc._n etc._n for_o when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v in_o his_o glory_n and_o all_o the_o holy_a angel_n with_o he_o etc._n etc._n then_o shall_v the_o king_n that_o be_v he_o himself_o who_o be_v the_o king_n of_o his_o church_n shall_v say_v to_o they_o on_o his_o right_a hand_n come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n inherit_v you_o the_o kingdom_n prepare_v for_o you_o from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n but_o of_o this_o more_o afterward_o in_o the_o handle_n of_o the_o next_o article_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n that_o we_o may_v now_o go_v forward_o in_o our_o present_a argument_n question_n what_o be_v the_o fruit_n and_o benefit_n of_o our_o saviour_n sit_v in_o his_o royal_a sovereignty_n at_o the_o light_a hand_n of_o god_n for_o the_o comfort_n of_o his_o church_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o enemy_n thereof_o the_o which_o also_o as_o be_v answer_v be_v of_o our_o saviour_n account_v to_o be_v his_o own_o enemy_n answer_n as_o touch_v the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n who_o also_o our_o saviour_n account_v to_o be_v enemy_n to_o himself_o first_o he_o do_v most_o mighty_o bridle_v and_o restrain_v their_o fury_n and_o rage_n second_o he_o do●h_v most_o wise_o defeat_v they_o in_o their_o most_o crafty_a and_o subtle_a devise_n three_o he_o do_v most_o just_o infatuate_a and_o confound_v they_o final_o he_o will_v in_o his_o wrath_n most_o fearful_o cast_v they_o down_o the_o height_n of_o their_o pride_n to_o most_o we_o full_a destruction_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n that_o he_o will_v do_v so_o that_o we_o may_v speak_v of_o the_o last_o part_n of_o the_o answer_n first_o we_o may_v perceive_v it_o plain_o by_o his_o own_o description_n of_o his_o last_o judgement_n mat_n 25.41_o for_o than_o shall_v be_v that_o be_v the_o king_n as_o before_o verse_n 34._o say_v to_o they_o on_o the_o left_a hand_n depart_v from_o i_o you_o curse_v into_o everlasting_a fire_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n yea_o we_o may_v perceive_v it_o by_o a_o reason_n of_o no_o small_a amplification_n for_o insomuch_o as_o there_o it_o appear_v that_o according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n james_n there_o shall_v be_v judgement_n mercitesse_n to_o they_o that_o show_v no_o mercy_n how_o much_o more_o heavy_a may_v we_o think_v shall_v the_o judgement_n of_o they_o be_v who_o give_v themselves_o to_o all_o malicious_a practice_n of_o cruelty_n against_o the_o poor_a saint_n and_o holy_a church_n of_o god_n read_v also_o to_o this_o end_n matth_n 21.33_o etc._n etc._n the_o parable_n of_o the_o householder_n who_o plant_v a_o vineyard_n etc._n etc._n &_o then_o let_v it_o out_o to_o husbandman_n and_o so_o go_v into_o a_o strange_a country_n etc._n etc._n the_o which_o husbandman_n when_o time_n of_o fruit_n come_v deny_v he_o fruit_n abuse_v his_o messenger_n and_o at_o the_o last_o slay_v his_o own_o son_n who_o he_o send_v unto_o they_o now_o of_o these_o wicked_a husbandman_n what_o judgement_n the_o lord_n of_o the_o vineyard_n shall_v give_v our_o saviour_n leave_v it_o as_o a_o matter_n easy_a for_o every_o man_n to_o judge_v and_o they_o who_o hear_v the_o parable_n can_v not_o but_o say_v though_o at_o unwares_o they_o read_v their_o own_o doom_n against_o themselves_o he_o will_v cruelty_n destroy_v these_o wicked_a man_n and_o will_v let_v out_o the_o vineyard_n to_o other_o husbandman_n who_o shall_v deliver_v he_o the_o fruit_n in_o their_o season_n and_o chap_n 22.1_o &c_n &c_n 6_o 7._o we_o read_v the_o like_a application_n of_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o king_n son_n for_o as_o touch_v those_o that_o despise_v the_o marriage_n feast_n and_o mifuse_v the_o messenger_n and_o slay_v they_o the_o king_n hear_v of_o it_o be_v wroth_a and_o send_v forth_o his_o warrior_n and_o destroy_v those_o murderer_n and_o burn_v up_o their_o city_n and_o again_o our_o saviour_n use_v h_o another_o parable_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n chap_n 25_o 14_o etc._n etc._n and_o luk._n 19.12_o etc._n etc._n under_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o certain_a noble_a man_n who_o go_v into_o a_o far_a country_n to_o receive_v for_o himself_o a_o kingdom_n and_o so_o to_o come_v again_o who_o call_v his_o ten_o servant_n and_o deliver_v they_o his_o good_n &c_n &c_n to_o occupy_v till_o he_o shall_v come_v again_o but_o as_o the_o parable_n say_v they_o hate_v he_o and_o send_v a_o ambassage_n after_o he_o say_v we_o will_v not_o have_v this_o man_n to_o reign_v over_o we_o etc._n etc._n the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o parable_n be_v this_o that_o the_o king_n have_v receive_v his_o kingdom_n and_o return_v again_o contrary_a to_o the_o desire_n of_o these_o rebel_n he_o give_v commandment_n that_o those_o his_o enemy_n which_o will_v not_o that_o he_o shall_v reign_v over_o they_o shall_v be_v bring_v and_o slay_v before_o he_o and_o for_o we_o to_o speak_v the_o truth_n how_o shall_v it_o be_v in_o any_o equity_n that_o any_o of_o those_o who_o either_o heretofore_o have_v most_o vile_o profane_v and_o blaspheme_v the_o most_o holy_a pprophecy_n or_o kingdom_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n do_v while_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n or_o shall_v at_o any_o time_n do_v the_o like_a in_o despise_v his_o holy_a word_n and_o sacrament_n etc._n etc._n but_o they_o must_v of_o necessity_n one_o day_n know_v and_o feel_v from_o the_o sword_n and_o balance_n of_o god_n divine_a justice_n how_o grievous_a a_o crime_n and_o what_o the_o price_n of_o it_o be_v all_o this_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o holy_a
prophecy_n which_o be_v give_v forth_o concern_v this_o sovereignty_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o this_o mighty_a administration_n of_o his_o kingdom_n from_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n long_o before_o as_o psal_n 110.1_o etc._n etc._n the_o lord_n say_v the_o princely_a prophet_n king_n david_n say_v to_o my_o lord_n sit_v thou_o at_o my_o right_a hand_n until_o i_o make_v thy_o enemy_n thy_o footstool_n the_o lord_n shall_v send_v the_o rod_n of_o thy_o power_n out_o of_o zion_n etc._n etc._n the_o whole_a psalm_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o prophetical_a description_n of_o the_o mighty_a fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o the_o royal_a priesthood_n and_o priestly_a royalty_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o the_o subdue_a and_o overthrow_v of_o his_o enemy_n from_o the_o glorious_a right_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o so_o also_o say_v the_o holy_a apostle_n paul_n 1._o cor_n 15.25_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o psalm_n he_o must_v reign_v till_o he_o have_v put_v all_o his_o enemy_n under_o his_o foot_n in_o which_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n two_o thing_n be_v well_o worthy_a to_o be_v observe_v of_o us._n first_o that_o he_o interprete_v the_o sit_v of_o our_o saviour_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n by_o this_o word_n to_o reign_v because_o thereby_o as_o have_v be_v show_v already_o his_o most_o high_a and_o kingly_a authority_n be_v signify_v second_o that_o he_o refer_v it_o unto_o our_o saviour_n christ_n which_o the_o holy_a psalmist_n attribute_v unto_o god_n insomuch_o as_o the_o lord_n do_v that_o by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o who_o he_o have_v give_v all_o power_n and_o authority_n for_o the_o government_n of_o his_o church_n which_o the_o prophet_n say_v that_o god_n will_v do_v himself_o and_o so_o he_o do_v indeed_o though_o not_o immediate_o but_o as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n this_o most_o high_a sovereignty_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v likewise_o prophesy_v of_o by_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n as_o we_o read_v cha_n 2_o verses_z 44.45_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n say_v daniel_n shall_v set_v up_o a_o kingdom_n which_o shall_v never_o be_v destroy_v and_o this_o kingdom_n shall_v not_o be_v give_v to_o another_o people_n but_o it_o shall_v break_v and_o destroy_v all_o these_o kingdom_n he_o speak_v of_o the_o proud_a &_o rebellious_a monarchy_n of_o the_o world_n &_o it_o shall_v stand_v forever_o and_o to_o his_o purpose_n be_v our_o saviour_n christ_n compare_v there_o to_o a_o stone_n cut_v out_o of_o the_o mountain_n without_o hand_n that_o shall_v break_v in_o piece_n the_o iron_n egypt_n the_o letter_n intend_v the_o 4._o monarchy_n uz_o of_o the_o babylonians_n the_o mede_n and_o persian_n of_o the_o grecian_n and_o syria_n &_o egypt_n the_o clay_n the_o silver_n and_o the_o gold_n that_o be_v to_o say_v which_o shall_v break_v all_o other_o kingdom_n how_o strong_a or_o how_o rich_a soever_o they_o shall_v be_v which_o will_v not_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o he_o for_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o 35._o verse_n of_o the_o same_o chapter_n all_o the_o rebellious_a kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n be_v to_o become_v like_o the_o chaff_n of_o the_o summer_n flower_n which_o the_o wind_n carry_v away_o so_o that_o no_o place_n be_v find_v for_o they_o but_o as_o touch_v the_o stone_n which_o smite_v the_o image_n that_o shall_v become_v as_o the_o prophet_n say_v a_o great_a mountain_n and_o fill_v the_o whole_a earth_n and_o again_o ch_n 7._o v._n 13.14_o as_o i_o behold_v in_o vision_n by_o night_n behold_v one_o like_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v in_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n and_o he_o approach_v unto_o the_o aucient_a of_o day_n and_o they_o bring_v he_o before_o he_o and_o he_o give_v he_o dominion_n and_o honour_n and_o a_o kingdom_n that_o all_o people_n language_n and_o nation_n shall_v serve_v he_o his_o dominion_n be_v a_o everlasting_a dominion_n which_o shall_v never_o be_v take_v away_o and_o his_o kingdom_n shall_v never_o be_v destroy_v and_o in_o the_o same_o chap_n verse_n 26.27_o the_o same_o holy_a prophet_n foretell_v the_o affliction_n which_o shall_v befall_v the_o church_n through_o the_o cruelty_n of_o tyrannous_a persecutor_n say_v that_o the_o judgement_n shall_v sit_v to_o take_v away_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o persecutor_n to_o consume_v and_o destroy_v it_o to_o the_o end_n and_o as_o the_o prophet_n add_v further_a the_o kingdom_n and_o dominion_n and_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o kingdom_n under_o the_o whole_a heaven_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o holy_a people_n of_o the_o most_o high_a who_o kingdom_n be_v a_o everlasting_a kingdom_n and_o all_o power_n shall_v serve_v and_o obey_v he_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n i_o confess_v do_v in_o these_o word_n first_o of_o all_o speak_v to_o comfort_v the_o jew_n &_o to_o describe_v unto_o they_o what_o their_o estate_n shall_v be_v until_o the_o come_n of_o our_o sa_o ch_n into_o the_o world_n and_o that_o though_o many_o tyrant_n shall_v arise_v to_o trouble_v they_o yet_o shall_v they_o be_v suppress_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n nevertheless_o his_o pprophecy_n extend_v itself_o further_a yea_o even_o beyond_o all_o extent_n of_o time_n as_o his_o word_n do_v plain_o show_v and_o even_o that_o also_o which_o do_v most_o proper_o concern_v the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n it_o contain_v a_o proportionable_a resemblance_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o chistian_a church_n such_o as_o it_o be_v afterward_o in_o the_o like_a time_n of_o their_o persecution_n under_o the_o like_a unmerciful_a tyrant_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n many_o thing_n be_v speak_v in_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o way_n of_o reference_n or_o by_o allusion_n at_o the_o least_o to_o this_o pprophecy_n of_o daniel_n and_o to_o some_o other_o of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n thus_o revel_v 1.6_o our_o saviour_n be_v call_v in_o these_o day_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o chap_n 19_o verse_n 11.12_o etc._n etc._n i_o see_v heaven_n open_a say_v saint_n john_n and_o behold_v a_o white_a horse_n and_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o he_o be_v call_v faithful_a and_o true_a and_o he_o judge_v and_o fight_v righteous_o and_o his_o eye_n be_v as_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n and_o on_o his_o head_n be_v many_o crown_n and_o he_o have_v a_o name_n write_v which_o no_o man_n know_v but_o himself_o and_o he_o be_v clothe_v in_o a_o garment_n dip_v in_o blood_n and_o his_o name_n be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o warrior_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n say_v saint_n john_n follow_v he_o upon_o white_a horse_n clothe_v with_o five_o linen_n white_a and_o pure_a and_o forth_o of_o his_o mouth_n go_v out_o a_o sharp_a sword_n that_o with_o it_o he_o shall_v smite_v the_o heathen_a for_o he_o shall_v rule_v they_o with_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n for_o he_o it_o be_v that_o tread_v the_o wine_n press_v of_o the_o fiercue_n and_o wrath_n of_o almighty_a god_n and_o he_o have_v upon_o his_o garment_n &_o upon_o his_o thigh_n a_o name_n write_v the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o the_o lord_n of_o lord_n and_o chap_n 17_o 14._o the_o lamb_n shall_v overcome_v the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o he_o be_v lord_n of_o lord_n and_o king_n of_o king_n etc._n etc._n thus_o than_o we_o see_v how_o our_o saviour_n shall_v final_o prevail_v against_o all_o the_o enemy_n of_o his_o church_n the_o which_o he_o do_v account_n to_o be_v his_o enemy_n as_o be_v say_v and_o also_o how_o all_o the_o neglect_n of_o his_o saint_n be_v esteem_v of_o he_o to_o be_v the_o neglect_n of_o himself_o according_a to_o that_o mat_n 25._o verse_n 42._o etc._n etc._n i_o be_v a_o hunger_a and_o you_o give_v i_o no_o meat_n etc._n etc._n very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o insomuch_o as_o you_o do_v it_o not_o to_o one_o the_o least_o of_o these_o you_o do_v it_o not_o to_o i_o and_o that_o he_o do_v likewise_o take_v all_o the_o injury_n do_v against_o they_o to_o be_v do_v against_o himself_o we_o see_v it_o plain_o from_o that_o his_o own_o speech_n to_o saul_n say_v thus_o unto_o he_o saul_n saul_n why_o persecute_v thou_o i_o and_o again_o i_o be_o jesus_n who_o thou_o persecute_v and_o therewithal_o show_v saul_n his_o dangerous_a enterprise_n tell_v he_o that_o it_o be_v hard_o for_o he_o to_o kick_v against_o prick_v act_n 9.4.5_o how_o as_o he_o shall_v final_o prevail_v against_o all_o his_o enemy_n so_o we_o be_v further_a to_o consider_v and_o to_o assure_v ourselves_o to_o our_o comfort_n that_o he_o will_v in_o the_o mean_a white_a evermore_o so_o wise_o order_n and_o moderate_a yea_o so_o mighty_o over_o rule_v all_o cause_n and_o person_n as_o may_v best_o
serve_v to_o fulfil_v the_o whole_a counsel_n and_o decree_n of_o god_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o own_o name_n and_o for_o the_o everlasting_a comfort_n and_o salvation_n of_o all_o his_o elect_a people_n to_o this_o purpose_n as_o be_v answer_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o answer_n the_o lord_n do_v mighty_o bridle_v and_o restrain_v the_o rage_n and_o fury_n of_o his_o adversary_n according_a to_o that_o in_o the_o 2._o psal_n why_o do_v the_o heathen_a rage_n and_o the_o people_n murmur_n in_o vain_a etc._n etc._n and_o no_o doubt_n but_o as_o god_n do_v of_o old_a time_n defend_v the_o holy_a patriarch_n and_o give_v they_o their_o stand_n and_o remove_n all_o the_o time_n that_o they_o dwell_v in_o tent_n restrain_v the_o heathen_a from_o oppress_v they_o or_o do_v they_o any_o harm_n and_o afterward_o bring_v their_o posterity_n into_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n as_o we_o read_v ps_n 105.12_o 13.14_o so_o do_v he_o now_o and_o always_o have_v and_o will_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o son_n our_o saviour_n hold_v in_o the_o rage_n of_o all_o the_o enemy_n of_o his_o church_n even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n so_o as_o the_o very_a gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o prevail_v against_o it_o that_o saviour_n of_o we_o who_o so_o restrain_v the_o devil_n in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o humiliation_n here_o on_o earth_n that_o they_o can_v not_o quetch_v without_o his_o leave_n he_o do_v not_o now_o leave_v they_o to_o themselves_o but_o much_o rather_o restrain_v they_o insomuch_o as_o he_o be_v to_o that_o end_n most_o high_o exalt_v and_o glorify_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n in_o heaven_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o doubt_n but_o god_n do_v by_o our_o saviour_n take_v the_o wise_a in_o their_o craft_n according_a to_o that_o 1._o cor_n 3.19.20_o and_o prou_z 8.12_o i_o be_o wisdom_n say_v the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o i_o inhabit_v prudence_n etc._n etc._n the_o word_n gnarmah_n sigfi_v that_o holy_a and_o wary_a circumspection_n wherein_o the_o lord_n over_o reach_v all_o the_o craft_n of_o the_o wicked_a yea_o so_o that_o when_o they_o persist_v in_o their_o resist_n of_o he_o he_o utter_o infatuate_v and_o confound_v they_o that_o it_o may_v easy_o appear_v to_o we_o while_o they_o go_v on_o in_o their_o blind_a wilfulness_n that_o there_o be_v no_o wisdom_n nor_o counsel_n against_o the_o lord_n according_a to_o that_o prou_z 21.30_o and_o isai_n 8_o verse_n 9_o 10._o etc._n etc._n and_o as_o we_o have_v have_v experience_n in_o this_o our_o age_n even_o to_o this_o day_n in_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v not_o only_o restrain_v those_o former_a cruelty_n which_o be_v like_o the_o rage_a wave_n of_o the_o sea_n billow_v and_o beat_v against_o we_o 1588._o as_o a_o intend_a effect_n of_o the_o antichristian_a confederacy_n against_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o popish_a counsel_n of_o trent_n very_o and_o out_o of_o all_o question_n it_o be_v from_o no_o other_o where_o but_o from_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n nor_o by_o no_o other_o mean_n then_o by_o the_o glorious_a mediation_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n there_o that_o any_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v at_o any_o time_n receive_v or_o at_o this_o day_n do_v enjoy_v such_o godly_a prince_n as_o it_o have_v for_o the_o protection_n and_o defence_n of_o they_o against_o the_o adversary_n thereof_o and_o chief_o above_o all_o other_o may_v we_o an_o ought_v we_o just_o say_v and_o acknowledge_v to_o the_o most_o glorious_a praise_n of_o god_n concern_v ourselves_o and_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o our_o land_n that_o it_o can_v not_o possible_o have_v enjoy_v the_o gospel_n nor_o our_o gracious_a queen_n elizabeth_n so_o many_o year_n together_o nor_o now_o our_o gracious_a king_n james_n so_o worthy_a a_o successor_n who_o god_n preserve_v long_o to_o go_v forward_o with_o his_o bless_a work_n begin_v by_o she_o have_v it_o not_o be_v for_o the_o most_o gracious_a and_o tender_a care_n of_o our_o saviour_n from_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n our_o heavenly_a father_n both_o towards_o they_o and_o us._n to_o he_o therefore_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o whole_a glory_n and_o praise_n of_o it_o for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n thus_o much_o concern_v the_o comfort_n of_o this_o article_n that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a all_o which_o comfort_v descend_v unto_o we_o from_o his_o advancement_n they_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o comfortable_a because_o he_o be_v once_o seat_v continue_v a_o high_a priest_n and_o king_n for_o ever_o for_o good_a thing_n be_v so_o much_o the_o better_a by_o how_o much_o they_o be_v of_o long_a continuance_n and_o best_a of_o all_o when_o they_o never_o decay_v but_o here_o a_o doubt_n come_v to_o be_v answer_v for_o how_o then_o be_v it_o say_v by_o the_o apostle_n paul_n 1._o corint_v 15.24.25_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n shall_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n deliver_v up_o the_o hingdome_n to_o god_n even_o the_o father_n when_o he_o have_v put_v down_o all_o rule_n and_o all_o authority_n and_o power_n for_o as_o he_o there_o affirm_v our_o saviour_n must_v reign_v till_o he_o have_v put_v all_o his_o enemy_n under_o high_a foot_n and_o verse_n 28._o he_o say_v yet_o further_o when_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v subdue_v unto_o he_o then_o shall_v the_o son_n also_o himself_o be_v subject_a unto_o he_o that_o do_v subdue_v all_o thing_n under_o he_o that_o god_n may_v be_v all_o in_o all_o question_n what_o therefore_o be_v to_o be_v say_v for_o the_o answer_n and_o open_n of_o this_o doubt_n answer_n our_o saviour_n shall_v no_o more_o cease_v to_o be_v king_n though_o he_o be_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n to_o deliver_v the_o kingdom_n up_o to_o the_o father_n then_o the_o father_n have_v cease_v to_o be_v a_o king_n since_o he_o commit_v all_o kingdom_n and_o power_n to_o our_o saviour_n by_o his_o lift_n of_o he_o up_o and_o seat_v of_o he_o at_o his_o right_a hand_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n it_o be_v true_a for_o it_o be_v express_o testify_v in_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n as_o we_o have_v see_v before_o that_o there_o be_v no_o end_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n revel_v 1.5.6_o and_o it_o be_v with_o like_a faithfulness_n assure_v unto_o we_o yea_o it_o be_v of_o itself_o most_o certain_a that_o god_n the_o father_n never_o intermit_v or_o cease_v the_o regency_n and_o government_n of_o his_o kingdom_n 1._o tim_n 1_o 17._o and_o chap_n 6.15.16_o and_o 1._o pet_n 5.10.11_o and_o in_o the_o ep_n of_o jude_n verse_n 25._o question_n how_o then_o be_v we_o to_o understand_v this_o that_o our_o saviour_n shall_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n deliver_v up_o his_o kingdom_n to_o the_o father_n answer_n the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n be_v this_o that_o as_o the_o father_n rule_v and_o reign_v by_o the_o son_n till_o the_o end_n so_o at_o the_o end_n the_o son_n have_v fulfil_v all_o thing_n most_o perfect_o which_o be_v by_o the_o appointment_n of_o the_o father_n to_o be_v perform_v of_o he_o for_o the_o gather_v together_o and_o defend_v of_o his_o church_n and_o to_o the_o suppress_n of_o all_o usurp_a power_n he_o shall_v make_v it_o manifest_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o before_o all_o his_o saint_n that_o no_o point_n or_o parcel_n thereof_o be_v unperformed_a and_o so_o shall_v thenceforth_o rule_v and_o reign_v in_o and_o with_o the_o father_n only_o in_o another_o manner_n of_o empire_n and_o government_n than_o before_o ephli_n this_o be_v something_o which_o you_o say_v for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o our_o saviour_n be_v most_o faithful_a and_o true_a yea_o the_o truth_n itself_o revel_v 3.7_o and_o again_o verse_n 14._o and_o john_n ch_n 14.6_o will_n most_o full_o and_o perfect_o perform_v all_o that_o have_v be_v commit_v to_o his_o trust_n and_o it_o be_v of_o like_a certainty_n even_o from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o say_v that_o all_o rule_n and_o all_o authority_n and_o power_n shall_v be_v put_v down_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o devil_n who_o have_v now_o great_a power_n and_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o god_n in_o the_o world_n rule_v in_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n and_o by_o they_o molest_v the_o church_n of_o god_n shall_v then_o have_v no_o such_o power_n neither_o he_o nor_o his_o instrument_n the_o wicked_a tyrant_n and_o cruel_a persecutor_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n likewise_o sin_n which_o be_v of_o no_o little_a strength_n to_o entice_v and_o draw_v even_o the_o child_n of_o god_n aside_o in_o
many_o thing_n and_o death_n itself_o which_o now_o overthrow_v all_o shall_v then_o be_v for_o ever_o overthrow_v yea_o as_o we_o may_v add_v yet_o further_o all_o authority_n both_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a though_o of_o necessary_a use_n now_o shall_v then_o cease_v as_o be_v of_o no_o further_o use_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n insomuch_o as_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o course_n of_o government_n shall_v then_o be_v remove_v to_o wit_n all_o ignorance_n of_o judgement_n and_o all_o perverseness_n and_o stubbornenes_n of_o affection_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v therefore_o i_o say_v as_o certain_a as_o the_o former_a that_o our_o saviour_n shall_v rule_v in_o another_o manner_n not_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o enemy_n nor_o by_o such_o ministerial_a service_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n as_o for_o the_o present_a and_o ever_o since_o his_o ascension_n he_o have_v do_v but_o most_o sweet_o and_o peaceable_o as_o among_o his_o friend_n and_o dutiful_a subject_n and_o more_o immediate_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n all_o the_o rebel_n and_o disturber_n of_o the_o most_o sacred_a peace_n of_o his_o kingdom_n be_v for_o ever_o utter_o cast_v out_o into_o their_o own_o place_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o prison_n of_o eternal_a woe_n and_o torment_n according_a to_o that_o grand_a commission_n which_o our_o saviour_n have_v receive_v of_o the_o father_n in_o that_o behalf_n and_o thus_o it_o may_v be_v evident_a that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v not_o general_o that_o our_o saviour_n shall_v lay_v down_o all_o regency_n and_o kingdom_n but_o only_o that_o part_n of_o it_o which_o be_v temporary_a and_o to_o continue_v no_o long_o than_o the_o time_n of_o this_o present_a evil_a world_n while_o yet_o the_o occasion_n of_o that_o kind_n of_o government_n be_v to_o remain_v vrsinus_n vrsinus_n it_o be_v a_o true_a say_n of_o a_o learned_a man_n sic_fw-la filius_fw-la tradet_fw-la regnum_fw-la patri_fw-la ut_fw-la sibi_fw-la tamen_fw-la ipsi_fw-la subijciat_fw-la omne_fw-la non_fw-la igitur_fw-la sibiipsi_fw-la sed_fw-la alijs_fw-la regnum_fw-la abrogando_fw-la tradet_fw-la regnum_fw-la patri_fw-la piscator_fw-la piscator_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o a_o other_o cum_fw-la regnum_fw-la tradiderit_fw-la deo_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la cum_fw-la desinet_fw-la ita_fw-la regnare_fw-la ut_fw-la nunc_fw-la regnat_fw-la dominando_fw-la scilicet_fw-la in_o medio_fw-la inimicorum_fw-la quam_fw-la potestatem_fw-la a_o patre_fw-la accepit_fw-la etc._n etc._n alioquin_fw-la pater_fw-la nunc_fw-la regnat_fw-la per_fw-la filium_fw-la &_o filius_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la regnabit_fw-la cum_fw-la patre_fw-la sed_fw-la alio_fw-la modo_fw-la hostibus_fw-la sc_fw-la omnibus_fw-la subiectis_fw-la but_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o the_o doubt_n be_v not_o full_o clear_v for_o the_o holy_a apostle_n say_v further_a that_o when_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v subdue_v unto_o god_n then_o shall_v the_o son_n also_o himself_o be_v subdue_v unto_o he_o etc._n etc._n that_o god_n may_v be_v all_o in_o all_o question_n what_o therefore_o be_v furthermore_o to_o be_v answer_v to_o this_o answer_n this_o subjection_n of_o the_o son_n be_v in_o no_o wise_a to_o be_v so_o take_v as_o if_o the_o holy_a apostle_n mean_v to_o note_v any_o abrogation_n or_o diminish_n of_o his_o kingly_a dignity_n consider_v simple_o in_o itself_o much_o less_o any_o inferioritie_n of_o his_o divine_a person_n more_o or_o otherwise_o after_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n then_o since_o his_o ascension_n to_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n there_o be_v indeed_o no_o reason_n why_o we_o shall_v take_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v so_o proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n for_o our_o saviour_n be_v once_o advance_v in_o his_o humane_a nature_n as_o a_o fruit_n of_o his_o most_o worthy_a obedience_n to_o his_o father_n continue_v still_o every_o way_n as_o perfect_o worthy_a even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o be_v also_o so_o to_o continue_v for_o ever_o as_o well_o as_o at_o any_o time_n before_o why_o shall_v we_o once_o imagine_v that_o there_o shall_v ever_o follow_v any_o abase_v of_o his_o glory_n or_o diminish_v of_o his_o power_n &_o authority_n and_o as_o for_o the_o deity_n of_o his_o person_n see_v he_o be_v therein_o equal_a to_o his_o father_n even_o in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o humiliation_n as_o he_o himself_o have_v affirm_v say_v i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o john_n 10.30_o how_o shall_v we_o conceive_v that_o now_o after_o his_o exaltation_n there_o shall_v follow_v any_o the_o least_o eclipse_n question_n how_o then_o be_v we_o to_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o subjection_n which_o the_o apostle_n use_v ans_fw-fr our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o we_o be_v here_o to_o consider_v be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n in_o one_o person_n of_o a_o mediator_n and_o likewise_o in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o mediator_n betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n he_o be_v as_o we_o know_v sometime_o compare_v with_o god_n the_o father_n and_o sometime_o he_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o church_n now_o therefore_o as_o he_o be_v a_o mediator_n 8._o christus_fw-la inferior_a est_fw-la patre_fw-la quoad_fw-la humanitatem_fw-la &_o natura_fw-la &_o officio_fw-la quoad_fw-la divinitatem_fw-la vero_fw-la non_fw-la natura_fw-la sed_fw-la officio_fw-la tantum_fw-la vrsinus_n christus_fw-la quatenus_fw-la deus_fw-la est_fw-la cum_fw-la patre_fw-la nos_fw-la subiectos_fw-la habet_fw-la quatenus_fw-la est_fw-la sacerdos_n nobiscum_fw-la patri_fw-la subiectus_fw-la est_fw-la august_n lib_n trin_n 1._o cap_n 8._o and_o in_o that_o respect_n compare_v with_o god_n the_o father_n he_o be_v in_o regard_n of_o this_o his_o mediation_n to_o he_o his_o inferior_a and_o so_o will_v for_o ever_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o subjection_n to_o he_o as_o he_o be_v at_o this_o day_n and_o so_o have_v be_v ever_o since_o his_o ascension_n in_o heaven_n but_o on_o respect_n of_o his_o church_n for_o who_o he_o be_v a_o mediator_n he_o be_v and_o shall_v always_o remain_v a_o king_n or_o prince_n and_o a_o most_o sovereign_a lord_n and_o saviour_n unto_o it_o expli_v it_o must_v needs_o he_o so_o for_o else_o how_o shall_v it_o be_v true_o say_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o he_o remain_v a_o king_n for_o ever_o and_o that_o of_o his_o kingdom_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n wherefore_o yet_o further_o that_o we_o may_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n help_v ourselves_o to_o the_o understanding_n of_o this_o high_a mystery_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v of_o we_o either_o more_o distinct_o &_o a_o part_n by_o himself_o as_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o his_o church_n or_o else_o as_o he_o have_v his_o church_n as_o his_o spiritual_a member_n mystical_o unite_v unto_o he_o and_o in_o this_o latter_a consideration_n be_v the_o subjection_n of_o our_o saviour_n chief_o to_o be_v understand_v for_o thus_o it_o shall_v be_v most_o clear_a and_o manifest_a that_o christ_n in_o his_o member_n shall_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o divine_a man_n she_o of_o god_n nevertheless_o this_o also_o must_v we_o understand_v withal_o that_o the_o subjection_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o his_o church_n which_o now_o we_o speak_v of_o shall_v not_o be_v any_o debasement_n either_o to_o christ_n or_o to_o it_o but_o such_o a_o subjection_n as_o shall_v be_v crown_v with_o perfect_a glory_n and_o chief_o touch_v our_o saviour_n who_o must_v by_o all_o right_a have_v a_o prehemmence_a above_o all_o without_o measure_n to_o the_o which_o good_a purpose_n well_o observe_v master_n beza_n annot_n maier_n that_o there_o be_v in_o this_o word_n subjection_n a_o figurative_a antanaciasis_n to_o be_v respect_v in_o that_o it_o be_v use_v in_o this_o matter_n concern_v the_o son_n of_o god_n together_o with_o his_o church_n in_o a_o contrary_a sense_n to_o the_o same_o word_n as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v take_v immediate_o before_o where_o it_o be_v use_v to_o note_v the_o subjection_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o his_o church_n by_o his_o subdue_a and_o suppress_v of_o they_o for_o their_o subjection_n shall_v be_v enforce_v against_o their_o will_n and_o to_o their_o most_o miserable_a and_o woeful_a thraldom_n for_o ever_o through_o the_o most_o righteous_a judgement_n of_o god_n but_o the_o subjection_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o the_o head_n and_o so_o consequent_o of_o his_o church_n as_o the_o member_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n it_o shall_v be_v most_o voluntary_a and_o willing_a and_o all_o one_o with_o their_o perfect_a glorification_n under_o the_o most_o gracious_a &_o immediate_a government_n of_o god_n world_n without_o end_n for_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o subjection_n to_o god_n in_o perfect_a freedom_n from_o all_o adversary_n &_o in_o the_o enjo_v of_o a_o most_o bl_a ssed_a &_o eternal_a peace_n etc._n etc._n so_o that_o this_o word_n of_o subjection_n be_v use_v rather_o in_o way_n of_o emplification_n than_o otherwise_o and_o that_o to_o the_o singular_a comfort_n of_o
declaration_n of_o god_n judgement_n against_o sin_n point_v forward_o still_o unto_o this_o last_o &_o final_a judgement_n &_o special_o that_o universal_a judgement_n upon_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o the_o day_n of_o noah_n for_o the_o generality_n of_o it_o and_o that_o other_o of_o the_o burn_a of_o sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n and_o the_o other_o city_n about_o they_o in_o respect_n of_o that_o kind_n of_o visitation_n which_o shall_v be_v upon_o the_o whole_a world_n at_o that_o day_n when_o as_o our_o saviour_n himself_o say_v it_o shall_v be_v with_o the_o world_n like_a as_o it_o be_v in_o those_o day_n we_o may_v well_o observe_v to_o this_o end_n that_o when_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o eternal_a confusion_n of_o the_o wicked_a &_o of_o the_o everlasting_a felicity_n of_o the_o godly_a there_o be_v a_o respect_n unto_o this_o last_o judgement_n as_o for_o example_n ps_n 9.6_o 7_o 8_o o_o enemy_n destruction_n be_v come_v to_o a_o perpetual_a end_n but_o the_o lord_n shall_v sit_v for_o ever_o he_o have_v prepare_v his_o throne_n for_o judgement_n for_o he_o shall_v judge_v the_o world_n in_o righteousness_n and_o shall_v judge_v the_o people_n with_o equity_n and_o ver_fw-la 17._o the_o wicked_a shall_v turn_v into_o hell_n and_o all_o nation_n that_o forget_v god_n and_o ps_n 17.15_o but_o i_o shall_v behold_v thy_o face_n in_o righteousness_n when_o i_o awake_v to_o wit_n at_o the_o resurrection_n i_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v with_o thy_o image_n and_o ps_n 49.14_o the_o righteous_a shall_v have_v dominion_n over_o they_o in_o the_o morning_n that_o be_v in_o the_o most_o comfortable_a day_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o just_a whenas_o hell_n shall_v consume_v the_o beauty_n of_o the_o wicked_a from_o his_o house_n that_o be_v from_o the_o grave_n trem_fw-la &_o jun._n and_o ver_fw-la 15._o but_o god_n will_v deliver_v my_o soul_n from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o grave_n for_o he_o will_v receive_v i_o to_o wit_n into_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n selah_n read_v also_o psal_n 125.1_o etc._n etc._n to_o the_o end_n and_o prou._n 10.30_o the_o righteous_a shall_v never_o be_v remove_v and_o ec._n 8.12_o 13._o though_o a_o sinner_n do_v evil_a a_o hundred_o time_n etc._n etc._n yet_o it_o shall_v not_o go_v well_o with_o the_o wicked_a and_o isai_n 33.14_o god_n be_v compare_v to_o burn_a fire_n yea_o to_o everlasting_a burn_n according_a to_o that_o we_o read_v deut._n 4.24_o but_o yet_o more_o plain_o do_v the_o scripture_n follow_v point_v we_o to_o the_o last_o judgement_n &_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o thenceforth_o the_o state_n of_o the_o godly_a &_o wicked_a for_o ever_o psa_fw-la 1●2_n 25_o 26_o 2d_o o_o my_o god_n say_v the_o prophet_n thou_o have_v aforetime_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o heaven_n be_v the_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n they_o shall_v perish_v but_o thou_o shall_v endure_v even_o they_o shall_v wax_v old_a as_o do_v a_o garment_n as_o a_o vesture_n thou_o shall_v change_v they_o and_o they_o shall_v be_v change_v ●ut_v thou_o be_v the_o same_o and_o thy_o year_n shall_v not_o fail_v the_o child_n of_o thy_o seruent_n shall_v continue_v and_o their_o seed_n shall_v stand_v fast_o in_o thy_o sight_n and_o psal_n 145_o 1._o o_o my_o god_n and_o king_n i_o will_v extol_v thou_o and_o bless_v thy_o name_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o and_o verse_n 21._o my_o mouth_n shall_v speak_v the_o praise_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o all_o flesh_n shall_v bless_v his_o name_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o and_o contrariwise_o touch_v the_o wicked_a eccles_n 11_o 9_o rejoice_v o_o young_a man_n in_o thy_o youth_n say_v king_n solomon_n show_v the_o vanity_n of_o all_o youthful_a pleasure_n not_o order_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n but_o know_v for_o all_o these_o thing_n god_n will_v bring_v thou_o to_o judgement_n and_o chap._n 12.14_o god_n will_v bring_v every_o work_n unto_o judgement_n with_o every_o secret_a thing_n whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o evil_n and_o joint_o both_o of_o the_o wicked_a and_o godly_a isai_n 66.14_o 15_o 16._o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v know_v among_o his_o servant_n and_o his_o indignation_n against_o his_o enemy_n for_o behold_v the_o lord_n will_v come_v with_o fire_n and_o his_o chariot_n like_o a_o whirlwind_n that_o he_o may_v recompen●e_v his_o anger_n with_o wrath_n and_o his_o indignation_n with_o the_o flame_n of_o fire_n for_o the_o lord_n will_v judge_v with_o fire_n and_o with_o his_o sword_n all_o flesh_n and_o the_o slay_v of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v many_o and_o verse_n 24._o the_o worm_n of_o the_o transgressor_n shall_v not_o die_v neither_o shall_v their_o fire_n be_v quench_v and_o they_o shall_v be_v a_o abhor_v to_o all_o flesh_n say_v the_o lord_n by_o his_o holy_a prophet_n likewise_o daniel_n chap._n 12._o verse_n 2._o many_o of_o they_o that_o sleep_n in_o the_o earth_n a_o uncertain_a or_o indefinite_a number_n put_v for_o that_o which_o be_v infinite_a or_o innumerable_a shall_v awake_v say_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o daniel_n some_o to_o everlasting_a life_n and_o some_o to_o shame_n and_o perpetual_a contempt_n final_o malachi_n the_o last_o of_o the_o prophet_n behold_v say_v the_o lord_n by_o he_o the_o day_n come_v that_o shall_v burn_v as_o a_o oven_n and_o all_o the_o proud_a yea_o and_o all_o that_o do_v wicked_o shall_v be_v stubble_n and_o the_o day_n that_o come_v shall_v burn_v they_o up_o say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n and_o shall_v leave_v they_o neither_o root_n nor_o branch_n but_o unto_o you_o that_o fear_v my_o name_n shall_v the_o son_n of_o righteousness_n arise_v and_o health_n shall_v be_v under_o his_o wing_n thus_o the_o last_o judgement_n be_v not_o obscure_o point_v at_o though_o as_o it_o be_v a_o far_o off_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o be_v most_o clear_a and_o plain_a and_o it_o be_v also_o more_o plentiful_o repeat_v first_o by_o our_o saviour_n matthew_n chap._n 8._o verse_n 11_o 12._o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o many_o shall_v come_v from_o the_o east_n and_o west_n and_o shall_v sit_v down_o with_o abraham_n and_o isaak_n and_o jacob_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o child_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v cast_v out_o into_o utter_a darkness_n there_o shall_v be_v weep_v and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n compare_v with_o luke_n chapter_n 13._o verse_n 24_o etc._n etc._n 29_o 30._o and_o again_o matthew_n 10._o verse_n 14_o 15._o whosoever_o will_v not_o receive_v you_o nor_o hear_v your_o word_n when_o you_o depart_v out_o of_o that_o house_n or_o that_o city_n shake_v off_o the_o dust_n of_o your_o foot_n true_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o it_o shall_v be_v easy_a for_o they_o of_o the_o land_n of_o sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n then_o for_o that_o city_n and_o chapter_n 12.32_o and_o verse_n 41_o 42._o and_o chapter_n 13.36_o etc._n etc._n 43._o likewise_o verse_n 47_o 48_o 4●_n 50._o and_o chapter_n 16._o verse_n 27._o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n with_o his_o angel_n and_o then_o shall_v he_o give_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o deed_n moreover_o chapter_n 19_o verse_n 27_o 28_o 29._o and_o chapter_n 22.13_o 14._o and_o chapter_n 24_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o chapter_n and_o chapter_n 25._o the_o whole_a and_o chapter_n 26._o verse_n 64._o read_v also_o john_n 5._o verse_n 28_o 29._o and_o chap._n 14.1_o 2._o and_o chapter_n 16._o 16_o etc._n etc._n 23._o thus_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v plentiful_a in_o the_o repetition_n of_o this_o article_n and_o so_o be_v his_o holy_a apostle_n act_n 3.19_o 20_o 21._o and_o chap._n 10.42_o rehearse_v before_o and_o chap._n 17.31_o and_o rom._n 2.5_o 6_o etc._n etc._n 16._o and_o chap._n 14.9_o 10_o 11_o 12._o and_o 1._o cor._n 1.7_o 8._o and_o chap._n 4._o verse_n 5._o and_o chap._n 15.24_o 25_o 26_o 27_o 28._o and_o verse_n 51_o 52_o etc._n etc._n and_o 2._o cor._n 5.10_o philip._n 3.20_o 21._o 1._o thes_n 1.10_o and_o chap._n 5.1_o 2_o 3._o and_o 2_o thes_n 1.5_o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o 10._o and_o cha_n 2.1_o 2_o etc._n etc._n and_o 2._o tim._n 1.18_o and_o chap._n 4_o 1._o heb._n 9_o 27_o 28._o and_o chap._n 10.25_o 26_o 27_o etc._n etc._n james_n 2.13_o and_o chap._n 4.12_o and_o 1._o pet._n 4.5_o and_o chap._n 5.4_o and_o 2._o pet._n chap._n 3._o verse_n 3_o 4_o 5_o etc._n etc._n revel_v chap_n 20.11_o 12_o 13_o &c_n &c_n and_o chap._n 21._o and_o chap._n 22._o final_o act_v 1_o 10_o 11._o two_o angel_n do_v immediate_o upon_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n testify_v to_o his_o disciple_n that_o he_o shall_v come_v again_o from_o heaven_n as_o they_o have_v see_v
themselves_o if_o need_n shall_v so_o require_v as_o it_o become_v all_o those_o that_o do_v true_o profess_v his_o name_n and_o will_v be_v acknowledge_v of_o he_o to_o be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o his_o true_a disciple_n and_o inheritor_n of_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n we_o will_v be_v henceforth_o as_o brief_a as_o we_o can_v in_o the_o rest_n and_o namely_o in_o that_o which_o follow_v more_o proper_o belong_v to_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n from_o the_o 15._o verse_n of_o our_o text_n unto_o the_o 23._o verse_n chief_o observe_v such_o thing_n as_o may_v best_o fit_v our_o present_a purpose_n touch_v the_o time_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n and_o to_o this_o end_n let_v we_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n question_n how_o do_v they_o follow_v in_o the_o text_n answer_n the_o evangelist_n matthew_n continue_v the_o speech_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o these_o word_n 15._o when_o you_o therefore_o shall_v see_v the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n speak_v of_o by_o daniel_n the_o prophet_n stand_v in_o the_o holy_a place_n let_v he_o that_o read_v consider_v it_o 16._o then_o let_v they_o which_o be_v in_o judea_n fly_v into_o the_o mountain_n 17._o let_v he_o which_o be_v on_o the_o house_n top_n not_o come_v down_o to_o fetch_v any_o thing_n out_o of_o his_o house_n 18._o and_o he_o that_o be_v in_o the_o field_n let_v he_o not_o return_v back_o to_o fetch_v his_o clothes_n 19_o and_o woe_n shall_v be_v to_o they_o which_o be_v with_o child_n and_o to_o they_o which_o give_v suck_v in_o those_o day_n 20._o but_o pray_v that_o your_o flight_n be_v not_o in_o the_o winter_n neither_o on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n 21._o for_o than_o shall_v be_v great_a tribulation_n such_o as_o be_v not_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n till_o this_o time_n nor_o shall_v be_v 22._o and_o except_o those_o day_n shall_v be_v shorten_v there_o shall_v no_o flesh_n be_v save_v but_o for_o the_o elect_v sake_n those_o day_n shall_v be_v shorten_v evil_n explication_n first_o our_o saviour_n foreshoweth_a the_o danger_n 2._o he_o give_v counsel_n 3._o he_o give_v a_o reason_n of_o the_o same_o his_o counsel_n 4._o he_o comfort_v the_o faithful_a against_o the_o extremity_n of_o the_o evil_n in_o these_o word_n which_o be_v a_o portion_n of_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o answer_n of_o our_o saviour_n after_o he_o have_v confirm_v his_o prophetical_a menace_n against_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o temple_n thereof_o from_o that_o former_a pprophecy_n which_o he_o have_v reveal_v to_o daniel_n by_o his_o holy_a angel_n chap_n 9.27_o and_o therewithal_o have_v admonish_v all_o believe_a jew_n upon_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o evil_a advise_o to_o regard_n the_o truth_n of_o that_o pprophecy_n say_v let_v he_o that_o read_v consider_v it_o to_o wit_n as_o be_v then_o to_o take_v the_o full_a effect_n our_o saviour_n do_v there_o upon_o furthermore_o earnest_o advise_v and_o charge_v all_o such_o as_o shall_v have_v any_o opportunity_n to_o escape_v with_o all_o expedition_n to_o fly_v from_o the_o danger_n the_o which_o shall_v as_o he_o give_v they_o to_o understand_v grow_v otherwise_o inevitable_a and_o not_o possible_o to_o be_v avoid_v of_o they_o and_o this_o earnest_a advice_n and_o counsel_n our_o saviour_n give_v first_o to_o those_o that_o have_v their_o dwell_a place_n further_o distant_a from_o jerusalem_n which_o may_v so_o much_o the_o soon_o espy_v the_o danger_n approach_v and_o second_o he_o give_v the_o same_o advice_n to_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n whosoever_o of_o they_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o danger_n grow_v near_o shall_v be_v about_o any_o business_n in_o the_o field_n or_o on_o the_o top_n of_o their_o house_n or_o turret_n from_o whence_o they_o may_v peradventure_o espy_v their_o enemy_n a_o far_o off_o march_v towards_o they_o as_o we_o read_v of_o the_o watchman_n that_o stand_v in_o the_o tower_n in_o israel_n 2._o king_n 9.17.18.20_o and_o touch_v those_o that_o either_o can_v not_o commodious_o flee_v such_o as_o shall_v be_v then_o great_a with_o child_n or_o that_o have_v child_n hang_v on_o the_o breast_n or_o that_o will_v not_o regard_v his_o admonition_n to_o flee_v though_o they_o may_v more_o easy_o do_v it_o he_o show_v that_o the_o calamity_n of_o all_o such_o shall_v be_v exceed_o great_a from_o the_o consideration_n and_o certain_a knowledge_n whereof_o our_o sa_o move_v with_o great_a commiseration_n towards_o those_o that_o be_v his_o give_v they_o this_o holy_a counsel_n that_o they_o shall_v pray_v to_o god_n that_o though_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o jerusalem_n shall_v be_v woeful_o besiege_v &_o at_o the_o last_o destroy_v because_o of_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o wicked_a jew_n yet_o that_o the_o begin_n of_o it_o may_v not_o be_v in_o the_o winter_n or_o though_o in_o the_o summer_n yet_o not_o on_o the_o sabbath_n special_o at_o such_o solemn_a time_n as_o they_o shall_v resort_v to_o jerusalem_n with_o a_o mind_n to_o celebrate_v any_o of_o the_o principal_a feast_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o many_o day_n together_o such_o as_o be_v the_o passover_n the_o feast_n of_o week_n and_o the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n exod_a 23._o deut_n 16._o for_o these_o season_n will_v be_v a_o hindrance_n to_o the_o expedition_n of_o their_o escape_n and_o then_o shall_v they_o be_v more_o general_o surprise_v and_o enclose_v by_o the_o destroy_a army_n the_o reason_n of_o this_o his_o careful_a and_o manifold_a admonition_n our_o saviour_n render_v in_o the_o 22._o v._o for_o that_o the_o tribulation_n shall_v be_v great_a to_o those_o that_o shall_v be_v enclose_v in_o the_o siege_n than_o ever_o fall_v upon_o that_o city_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n though_o before_o it_o be_v subdue_v by_o the_o king_n of_o babel_n and_o the_o people_n carry_v captive_n into_o babylon_n for_o they_o return_v again_o yea_o because_o it_o shall_v be_v more_o doleful_a than_o the_o siege_n of_o samaria_n though_o the_o city_n be_v bring_v into_o very_o great_a distress_n 2._o king_n 6.25_o for_o they_o of_o samaria_n have_v a_o gracious_a deliverance_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o next_o chap_n which_o jerusalem_fw-la as_o our_o sa_o give_v his_o disciple_n to_o understand_v shall_v by_o no_o mean_n obtain_v only_o he_o give_v this_o comfort_n that_o albeit_o the_o day_n of_o the_o siege_n shall_v continue_v long_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o stout_a resistance_n of_o the_o people_n and_o thereby_o also_o a_o exceed_a great_a slaughter_n shall_v fall_v upon_o they_o according_a to_o their_o own_o execration_n upon_o themselves_o and_o child_n concern_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n who_o they_o persecute_v to_o the_o death_n as_o be_v declare_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o our_o sa_o to_o the_o woman_n that_o weep_v for_o he_o when_o he_o go_v to_o be_v crucify_v yet_o lest_o all_o shall_v perish_v to_o wit_n with_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o enemy_n therefore_o say_v our_o sa_o for_o the_o elect_v sake_n to_o who_o belong_v eternal_a salvation_n he_o will_v shorten_v the_o day_n of_o the_o siege_n by_o put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o wilfulness_n of_o the_o people_n in_o stand_v out_o against_o it_o and_o so_o at_o the_o last_o grant_v a_o temporal_a deliverance_n to_o some_o among_o the_o rest_n according_a to_o the_o usual_a course_n of_o god_n mercy_n in_o spare_v the_o wicked_a lest_o his_o own_o shall_v be_v altogether_o cut_v off_o from_o this_o life_n with_o they_o as_o gen_n 18.23.24_o &_o ch_z 19.22_o and_o 2._o pet._n 2.9_o jer_n 5.1_o and_o so_o though_o eleven_o hundred_o thousand_o be_v slay_v yet_o the_o life_n of_o nintie_a thousand_o be_v spare_v such_o as_o be_v take_v prisoner_n beside_o many_o other_o as_o josephus_n the_o jew_n write_v the_o which_o exceed_v great_a number_n of_o the_o slay_v as_o also_o of_o the_o remnant_n preserve_v alive_a may_v cause_v we_o to_o conceive_v that_o for_o want_v of_o prayer_n against_o this_o evil_a it_o fall_v upon_o the_o city_n in_o the_o time_n that_o the_o people_n of_o the_o land_n be_v gather_v together_o in_o it_o now_o concern_v the_o word_n of_o daniel_n the_o prophet_n allege_v by_o our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n stand_v in_o the_o holy_a place_n read_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o interpretation_n the_o word_n of_o our_o sa_o allege_v by_o s._n luke_n ch_n 23._o v._n 20_o &c_n &c_n &_o ch_z 19_o 43._o they_o be_v word_n describe_v the_o roman_a army_n which_o be_v to_o come_v into_o the_o holy_a land_n and_o to_o compass_v the_o holy_a city_n yea_o to_o come_v into_o it_o &_o to_o the_o holy_a temple_n to_o leave_v it_o desolate_a according_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o god_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n chief_o for_o put_v our_o saviour_n to_o death_n so_o that_o
though_o they_o be_v his_o just_a instrument_n to_o take_v vengeance_n of_o a_o wicked_a people_n yet_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o no_o better_a than_o a_o abominable_a rout_n of_o idolater_n who_o god_n in_o that_o respect_n abhor_v howsoever_o he_o use_v these_o now_o and_o so_o have_v often_o use_v such_o kind_n of_o abominable_a people_n for_o the_o rod_n of_o his_o anger_n to_o visit_v the_o sin_n and_o rebellion_n of_o his_o own_o disobedient_a and_o licentious_a people_n for_o so_o before_o this_o time_n he_o use_v the_o wicked_a king_n of_o ashur_n to_o be_v a_o scourge_n to_o israel_n and_o after_o that_o the_o king_n of_o babel_n to_o take_v vengeance_n of_o judah_n and_o to_o lead_v the_o people_n away_o to_o be_v in_o captivity_n to_o he_o thus_o brief_o pass_v over_o these_o word_n as_o be_v promise_v the_o use_n whereof_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o time_n of_o our_o saviour_n come_v to_o judgement_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n may_v well_o be_v this_o that_o the_o fulfil_n of_o this_o pprophecy_n against_o jerusalem_n be_v famous_o come_v to_o pass_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n may_v and_o ought_v just_o to_o confirm_v cur_n faith_n in_o the_o assure_a expectation_n both_o of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n in_o such_o manner_n as_o he_o do_v likewise_o foreshewe_v in_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o his_o answer_n and_o also_o that_o he_o himself_o will_n according_o come_v to_o judgement_n at_o the_o same_o instant_n when_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v at_o a_o end_n yea_o &_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n let_v we_o from_o that_o destruction_n learn_v how_o vain_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v for_o any_o to_o trust_v in_o the_o holiness_n or_o strength_n of_o any_o place_n of_o defence_n when_o as_o they_o themselves_o be_v unholy_a and_o thereby_o have_v betray_v and_o weaken_v all_o their_o strength_n and_o let_v we_o likewise_o learn_v by_o their_o example_n to_o take_v heed_n how_o we_o provoke_v god_n to_o wrath_n against_o we_o by_o the_o contempt_n of_o that_o grace_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n which_o he_o offer_v unto_o us._n now_o let_v we_o proceed_v how_o follow_v it_o in_o the_o text_n of_o the_o evangelist_n saint_n matthew_n from_o the_o 23._o verse_n of_o this_o his_o 24._o chap_n question_n what_o be_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n answer_n then_o say_v our_o saviour_n if_o any_o shall_v say_v unto_o you_o loe_o here_o be_v christ_n or_o there_o believe_v it_o not_o thereof_o a_o second_o counsel_n or_o admonition_n of_o our_o saviour_n &_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o amplify_v also_o by_o a_o renew_a exhortation_n and_o the_o reason_n thereof_o for_o there_o shall_v arise_v false_a christ_n and_o false_a prophet_n and_o they_o shall_v show_v great_a sign_n and_o wonder_n so_o that_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a they_o shall_v deceive_v the_o very_a elect_a behold_v i_o have_v tell_v you_o before_o wherefore_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v unto_o you_o behold_v he_o be_v in_o the_o desert_n go_v not_o forth_o behold_v he_o be_v in_o secret_a place_n believe_v it_o not_o for_o as_o the_o lightning_n come_v out_o of_o the_o east_n and_o shine_v into_o the_o west_n so_o shall_v also_o the_o come_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v for_o wheresoever_o a_o dead_a carcase_n be_v thither_o will_v the_o eagle_n resort_n explication_n explication_n the_o former_a part_n of_o the_o answer_n of_o our_o saviour_n do_v so_o proper_o belong_v to_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n that_o it_o can_v be_v transfer_v and_o apply_v to_o the_o day_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n for_o beside_o that_o jerusalem_n be_v express_o mention_v that_o which_o be_v say_v for_o the_o description_n of_o the_o calamity_n thereof_o can_v in_o no_o wise_n agree_v to_o that_o judgement_n which_o our_o saviour_n shall_v execute_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o whether_o shall_v any_o fly_v at_o that_o instant_n from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o how_o shall_v that_o be_v less_o woeful_a to_o the_o barren_a then_o to_o the_o wicked_a that_o be_v child-bearing_a and_o such_o as_o give_v suck_v and_o as_o for_o godly_a woman_n it_o shall_v be_v to_o all_o of_o they_o as_o well_o child-bearing_a as_o other_o a_o day_n of_o singular_a comfort_n and_o rejoice_v moreover_o that_o day_n shall_v be_v so_o sudden_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o time_n of_o flight_n no_o not_o for_o those_o that_o be_v swift_a of_o foot_n no_o though_o they_o have_v the_o wing_n of_o the_o eagle_n or_o hawke_n the_o word_n now_o rehearse_v do_v indeed_o belong_v to_o the_o former_a particular_a pprophecy_n of_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o be_v fulfil_v in_o part_n at_o that_o time_n according_a to_o that_o which_o be_v observe_v before_o concern_v the_o arise_v of_o false_a christ_n and_o false_a prophet_n as_o may_v also_o be_v further_o see_v in_o the_o history_n of_o josephus_n which_o be_v then_o point_v unto_o but_o though_o josephus_n have_v say_v little_a or_o much_o or_o nothing_o at_o all_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n himself_o be_v and_o may_v just_o be_v a_o sufficient_a ground_n and_o warrant_v unto_o we_o that_o all_o be_v fulfil_v which_o he_o foretell_v whether_o in_o this_o place_n or_o ch_z 24_o 38._o &_o luke_n ch_z 19.43.44_o &_o ch_z 21._o verse_n 20.24_o thus_o i_o say_v we_o be_v indeed_o to_o refer_v these_o word_n to_o the_o description_n of_o the_o calamity_n of_o jerusalem_n at_o the_o destruction_n thereof_o and_o to_o show_v that_o all_o succour_n for_o relief_n and_o deliverance_n shall_v be_v expect_v in_o vain_a so_o that_o whosoever_o shall_v or_o do_v take_v upon_o he_o any_o courage_n to_o be_v their_o deliverer_n as_o it_o be_v under_o a_o pretence_n of_o be_v a_o christ_n or_o deliverer_n unto_o they_o shall_v enterprise_v all_o in_o vain_a nevertheless_o we_o may_v therewithal_o well_o understand_v these_o word_n as_o be_v a_o transition_n from_o the_o description_n of_o the_o calamity_n of_o jerusalem_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o siege_n thereof_o to_o the_o description_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o world_n yea_o even_o of_o the_o visible_a church_n such_o as_o it_o shall_v be_v after_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n special_o in_o the_o time_n which_o shall_v more_fw-it and_o more_o near_o approach_v to_o the_o last_o end_n of_o the_o world_n by_o that_o more_o quick_a siege_n and_o battery_n which_o the_o lord_n himself_o will_v lay_v against_o it_o and_o wherewith_o he_o will_v surprise_v it_o infinite_o above_o that_o which_o vespasian_n and_o titus_n effect_v against_o jerusalem_n for_o so_o do_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n give_v to_o understand_v first_o in_o that_o he_o say_v of_o the_o false_a christ_n and_o false_a prophet_n that_o they_o shall_v show_v great_a sign_n and_o wonder_n so_o that_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a they_o shall_v deceive_v the_o very_a elect_a for_o this_o be_v much_o more_o fulfil_v after_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n to_o this_o day_n than_o it_o be_v before_o insomuch_o as_o though_o many_o great_a thing_n be_v attempt_v then_o for_o the_o deliverance_n of_o the_o people_n they_o it_o be_v a_o wondeeful_a thing_n to_o see_v how_o the_o pope_n have_v prevail_v to_o set_v up_o himself_o above_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n what_o religious_a building_n have_v be_v build_v for_o the_o advancement_n of_o popery_n what_o revenue_n ●hat_n a_o 〈◊〉_d ●●t●de_v of_o ord●●●_n that_o c●u●●●●_n what_o wr●t●●g●●●●ca_fw-la h●●_n 〈◊〉_d &_o ●age_n volu●●●●_n print_v ●nd_a 〈◊〉_d against_o the_o truth_n under_o pretence_n of_o the_o defence_n of_o it_o etc._n etc._n all_o these_o a●e_o dangerous_a and_o mighty_a tentation_n to_o such_o as_o take_v not_o diligent_a heed_n against_o they_o and_o many_o encouragement_n give_v as_o if_o the_o roman_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o they_o etc._n etc._n yet_o nothing_o take_v so_o great_a effect_n as_o the_o false_a christ_n and_o false_a prophet_n of_o turkey_n and_o rome_n have_v do_v who_o have_v by_o their_o deceit_n wonderful_o prevail_v with_o multitude_n to_o draw_v they_o away_o either_o from_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o true_a christ_n person_n or_o of_o his_o doctrine_n yea_o even_o from_o the_o truth_n of_o both_o and_o that_o also_o by_o lie_v sign_n and_o wonder_n as_o the_o apostle_n interprete_v these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n 2._o thes_n 2_o 9_o 10.11_o and_o second_o it_o may_v be_v perceive_v by_o those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n concern_v the_o manner_n of_o his_o come_n to_o wit_n in_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v spiritual_o as_o it_o be_v upon_o the_o wing_n of_o the_o gospel_n preach_v to_o all_o nation_n as_o well_o af●●r_v the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o before_o from_o the_o
time_n short_o ensue_v the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n up_o into_o heaven_n in_o thatch_n compare_v his_o come_n to_o the_o lightning_n which_o come_v out_o of_o the_o east_n shine_v into_o the_o west_n as_o it_o be_v apply_v luk_n 17.20.21.22.23.24_o like_a as_o also_o his_o come_n shall_v be_v bodily_a to_o the_o sight_n and_o view_v of_o all_o people_n in_o the_o cloud_n of_o the_o air_n descend_v from_o the_o high_a heaven_n when_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o world_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o text_n of_o matthew_n the_o use_n of_o which_o doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o it_o be_v double_a unto_o the_o believe_a jew_n before_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n partly_o for_o direction_n and_o partly_o for_o consolation_n and_o comfort_n world_n comfort_n read_v also_o luk_n 17.23.24_o etc._n etc._n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o ch_n where_o he_o plain_o extend_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n so_o it_o may_v well_o be_v and_o it_o be_v unto_o all_o true_a believe_a christian_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o even_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o end_n itself_o for_o instruction_n thus_o first_o for_o that_o insomuch_o as_o our_o saviour_n have_v sufficient_o confirm_v himself_o to_o be_v true_a messiah_n and_o his_o doctrine_n to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a doctrine_n of_o salvation_n by_o those_o miracle_n which_o he_o wrought_v first_o by_o himself_o among_o the_o jew_n and_o afterward_o by_o his_o holy_a apostle_n both_o among_o jew_n and_o gentile_n that_o therefore_o we_o be_v not_o to_o be_v draw_v away_o from_o he_o or_o from_o his_o doctrine_n under_o pretence_n of_o any_o other_o miraculous_a working_n whatsoever_o second_o this_o doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n serve_v for_o our_o instruction_n against_o all_o secret_a and_o heretical_a enticement_n of_o false_a prophet_n and_o heretic_n who_o manner_n be_v usual_a among_o many_o of_o they_o to_o draw_v disciple_n away_o from_o the_o public_a profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n even_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o liberty_n thereof_o to_o secret_a corner_n as_o if_o they_o be_v a_o company_n more_o holy_a than_o the_o rest_n and_o have_v a_o more_o perfect_a doctrine_n whereof_o we_o may_v take_v the_o family_n of_o love_n for_o one_o chief_a example_n among_o the_o rest_n but_o say_v our_o saviour_n though_o they_o say_v behold_v christ_n be_v in_o secret_a place_n believe_v it_o not_o our_o saviour_n will_v have_v his_o doctrine_n public_o preach_v and_o profess_v under_o good_a christian_a prince_n and_o he_o will_v have_v it_o public_o profess_v upon_o all_o just_a occasion_n under_o idolater_n and_o tyrannous_a prince_n though_o they_o will_v not_o suffer_v the_o gospel_n so_o long_o as_o they_o can_v hinder_v it_o to_o be_v public_o preach_v he_o can_v like_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v smother_v in_o corner_n it_o shall_v as_o he_o say_v break_v forth_o like_o lightning_n that_o be_v it_o shall_v be_v publish_v open_o and_o in_o the_o public_a view_n of_o the_o world_n and_o according_o he_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v public_o embrace_v and_o profess_v three_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o this_o part_n of_o his_o answer_n to_o his_o disciple_n serve_v to_o teach_v we_o now_o as_o well_o as_o it_o do_v to_o teach_v the_o believe_a jew_n before_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n that_o as_o they_o be_v not_o to_o tie_v themselves_o to_o jerusalem_n and_o to_o stay_v their_o flight_n from_o it_o as_o if_o then_o christ_n may_v no_o where_o else_o be_v find_v so_o neither_o be_v we_o to_o tie_v our_o faith_n to_o any_o place_n as_o many_o do_v their_o faith_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o to_o resort_v thither_o and_o to_o stay_v there_o where_o christ_n be_v true_o preach_v as_o well_o in_o one_o place_n as_o in_o another_o wheresoever_o and_o whether_o soever_o the_o lord_n shall_v call_v us._n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n he_o use_v the_o proverbial_a speech_n wheresoever_o the_o dead_a carcase_n be_v thither_o will_v the_o eagle_n resort_n albeit_o luke_n 17.37_o it_o seem_v that_o our_o saviour_n use_v the_o same_o proverbial_a speech_n at_o some_o other_o time_n in_o way_n of_o a_o promise_n that_o our_o saviour_n will_v gather_v all_o his_o elect_a at_o the_o last_o day_n into_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n where_o he_o himself_o shall_v be_v thus_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n serve_v for_o our_o instruction_n and_o for_o comfort_n it_o be_v likewise_o very_o notable_a in_o that_o he_o assure_v we_o that_o none_o of_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n shall_v be_v deceive_v by_o any_o false_a christ_n or_o false_a prophet_n though_o their_o come_n be_v never_o so_o deceitful_a and_o strong_a to_o delude_v the_o wicked_a not_o that_o they_o have_v any_o such_o wisdom_n of_o themselves_o that_o they_o can_v thereby_o discern_v their_o spiritual_a craft_n or_o any_o such_o strength_n that_o they_o shall_v in_o their_o own_o may_v withstand_v their_o delusion_n but_o because_o god_n who_o have_v elect_v they_o will_v also_o endue_v they_o both_o with_o wisdom_n and_o also_o with_o power_n from_o above_o so_o as_o his_o grace_n shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o preserve_v they_o according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n saint_n paul_n 2._o thes_n 2._o verse_n 13.14.15.16.17_o we_o ought_v to_o give_v thanks_n to_o god_n for_o you_o brethren_n etc._n etc._n these_o thing_n thus_o brief_o consider_v according_a to_o promise_v let_v we_o henceforth_o have_v to_o that_o which_o follow_v which_o be_v as_o be_v say_v the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o answer_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o do_v particular_o concern_v the_o time_n of_o his_o last_o judgement_n which_o shall_v be_v as_o he_o further_o declare_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n yet_o so_o as_o we_o shall_v again_o perceive_v as_o be_v say_v in_o the_o beginning_n that_o some_o part_n of_o the_o speech_n do_v more_o special_o concern_v the_o calamity_n and_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n than_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o we_o shall_v easy_o perceive_v when_o we_o come_v unto_o they_o this_o last_o part_n of_o the_o answer_n of_o our_o saviour_n concern_v the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v the_o time_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n it_o comprehend_v therewithal_o both_o the_o sign_n of_o his_o come_n and_o also_o the_o place_n from_o whence_o and_o whither_o he_o will_v come_v likewise_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o come_n and_o the_o person_n who_o he_o will_v judge_v with_o diverse_a other_o point_n which_o be_v propound_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o our_o inquiry_n into_o this_o place_n but_o let_v we_o proceed_v by_o degree_n and_o first_o concern_v the_o time_n when_o second_o the_o sign_n of_o his_o come_n and_o three_o the_o place_n from_o whence_o and_o whither_o he_o shall_v come_v four_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o come_n and_o therewithal_o the_o person_n who_o he_o will_v judge_v when_o he_o shall_v come_v for_o these_o four_o point_n be_v somewhat_o more_o near_o link_v together_o what_o be_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n question_n how_o do_v they_o follow_v in_o our_o text_n answer_n it_o follow_v thus_o from_o the_o 29_o verse_n unto_o the_o 32._o 29._o and_o immediate_o after_o the_o tribulation_n of_o those_o day_n shall_v the_o sun_n be_v darken_v and_o the_o moon_n shall_v not_o give_v her_o light_n and_o the_o star_n shall_v fall_v from_o heaven_n and_o the_o power_n of_o heaven_n shall_v be_v shake_v 30._o and_o then_o shall_v appear_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o heaven_n and_o then_o shall_v all_o the_o kindred_n of_o the_o earth_n mourn_v and_o they_o shall_v see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v in_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n with_o power_n and_o great_a glory_n 31._o and_o he_o shall_v send_v his_o angel_n with_o the_o great_a sound_n of_o a_o trumpet_n and_o they_o shall_v gather_v together_o his_o elect_a from_o the_o four_o wind_n and_o from_o the_o one_o end_n of_o the_o heaven_n to_o the_o other_o these_o word_n as_o we_o may_v evident_o perceive_v do_v proper_o belong_v to_o the_o second_o come_v of_o our_o saviour_n to_o execute_v his_o last_o judgement_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v likewise_o more_o proper_o belong_v to_o that_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o we_o do_v now_o inquire_v of_o nevertheless_o the_o former_a speech_n be_v not_o to_o be_v neglect_v of_o we_o see_v our_o saviour_n himself_o think_v good_a to_o speak_v of_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n as_o of_o a_o good_a inducement_n or_o preparative_n to_o the_o more_o reverend_a and_o profitable_a consideration_n of_o this_o and_o indeed_o what_o judgement_n of_o god_n may_v so_o fit_o be_v a_o representation_n or_o as_o a_o warn_a piece_n to_o stir_v we_o up_o to_o the_o due_a expectation_n
of_o it_o the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o temple_n thereof_o be_v by_o god_n special_a ordinance_n and_o appointment_n singular_o holy_a unto_o he_o and_o of_o great_a account_n even_o for_o his_o own_o name_n and_o mercy_n sake_n and_o so_o be_v the_o people_n also_o for_o many_o age_n of_o ancient_a time_n a_o peculiar_a people_n unto_o he_o and_o chief_o belove_v of_o he_o and_o yet_o all_o that_o can_v not_o hinder_v the_o due_a course_n of_o god_n vengeance_n after_o that_o the_o bountifulness_n of_o his_o mercy_n and_o long_o suffer_v be_v most_o notorious_o abuse_v by_o they_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a for_o the_o disciple_n to_o stand_v upon_o the_o goodlines_n &_o strength_n of_o the_o building_n or_o any_o such_o thing_n to_o dissuade_v or_o pity_v the_o destruction_n thereof_o so_o likewise_o whatsoever_o may_v be_v say_v concern_v the_o beauty_n of_o the_o heaven_n though_o they_o be_v honour_v by_o the_o name_n of_o his_o throne_n the_o fruitfulness_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o be_v call_v his_o footstool_n the_o stately_a building_n that_o be_v build_v upon_o it_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o man_n the_o pleasant_a orchyarde_n and_o garden_n the_o rich_a furniture_n of_o house_n the_o beautiful_a plate_n and_o jewel_n which_o be_v the_o delight_n of_o man_n all_o shall_v be_v in_o vain_a and_o of_o no_o force_n with_o god_n to_o stay_v that_o universal_a judgement_n which_o he_o have_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n when_o once_o they_o shall_v be_v full_a ripe_a determine_v to_o bring_v upon_o it_o moreover_o and_o beside_o his_o particular_a judgement_n wherewith_o he_o will_v every_o day_n visit_v the_o earth_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n wherefore_o also_o let_v nothing_o be_v able_a to_o hinder_v our_o heart_n from_o a_o dutiful_a attention_n towards_o the_o doctrine_n which_o our_o saviour_n vouchsafe_v to_o deliver_v unto_o we_o in_o this_o behalf_n and_o first_o concern_v the_o time_n of_o this_o last_o and_o great_a judgement_n of_o all_o other_o and_o therewithal_o concern_v the_o sign_n of_o it_o our_o saviour_n do_v first_o more_o general_o refer_v we_o to_o the_o tribulation_n before_o describe_v concern_v jerusalem_n or_o rather_o to_o the_o tribulation_n describe_v before_o that_o in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o answer_n of_o our_o saviour_n which_o as_o be_v say_v treat_v of_o the_o common_a trouble_n both_o of_o the_o world_n and_o also_o of_o the_o church_n which_o shall_v not_o only_o go_v before_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n but_o also_o follow_v after_o even_o to_o the_o near_o approach_v of_o the_o last_o judgement_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o then_o more_o particular_o according_a as_o he_o have_v tell_v his_o disciple_n that_o beside_o those_o before_o express_v sign_n they_o shall_v have_v no_o other_o special_a sign_n of_o the_o calamity_n to_o come_v upon_o jerusalem_n but_o the_o compass_v of_o the_o city_n by_o the_o roman_a army_n so_o he_o do_v proportionable_o tell_v his_o disciple_n or_o rather_o we_o by_o speak_v to_o they_o see_v upon_o we_o be_v come_v the_o day_n of_o the_o more_o near_o approach_v of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o other_o sign_n more_o particular_a than_o those_o which_o he_o have_v already_o mention_v until_o he_o shall_v by_o his_o very_a come_n declare_v real_o and_o indeed_o that_o the_o end_n itself_o be_v come_v so_o that_o then_o beside_o the_o general_a sign_n go_v before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n answerable_a to_o those_o which_o go_v before_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n we_o have_v here_o in_o the_o word_n of_o our_o present_a text_n a_o description_n of_o those_o sign_n which_o shall_v more_o immediate_o go_v before_o the_o come_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o then_o of_o the_o come_n of_o our_o saviour_n himself_o at_o the_o very_a end_n of_o the_o world_n from_o whence_o and_o whither_o he_o will_v come_v together_o with_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o come_n and_o the_o person_n who_o he_o will_v judge_v who_o also_o be_v describe_v by_o the_o effect_n which_o his_o come_n shall_v have_v in_o their_o heart_n though_o to_o a_o contrary_a end_n and_o purpose_n in_o diverse_a of_o they_o as_o we_o shall_v observe_v let_v we_o therefore_o weigh_v these_o thing_n in_o order_n and_o first_o concern_v the_o time_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v immediate_o after_o the_o tribulation_n before_o express_v the_o which_o word_n we_o must_v either_o understand_v of_o the_o common_a trouble_n general_o set_v down_o in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o answer_n of_o our_o saviour_n they_o be_v as_o well_o forerunner_n of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o of_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n or_o else_o we_o must_v understand_v this_o word_n immediate_o to_o be_v speak_v not_o so_o much_o in_o respect_n of_o our_o computation_n of_o time_n as_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o estimation_n of_o god_n with_o who_o a_o thousand_o year_n be_v but_o as_o one_o day_n as_o the_o apostle_n peter_n teach_v 2._o ep_v 3.8_o but_o see_v our_o saviour_n speak_v familiar_o to_o inform_v his_o church_n rather_o than_o to_o disclose_v the_o unsearchable_a mind_n of_o god_n therefore_o we_o may_v just_o understand_v it_o in_o the_o first_o sense_n nevertheless_o this_o be_v yield_v there_o arise_v a_o further_a question_n concern_v the_o darken_n of_o the_o sun_n whether_o our_o saviour_n do_v in_o these_o word_n speak_v proper_o and_o in_o the_o natural_a sense_n or_o tropological_o and_o in_o a_o borrow_a phrase_n or_o speech_n to_o the_o which_o we_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o the_o lord_n by_o his_o holy_a prophet_n have_v use_v these_o very_a same_o speech_n metaphorical_o to_o signify_v great_a trouble_n and_o public_a alteration_n of_o state_n and_o kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n as_o ezek_n 32_o 7_o 8._o to_o express_v that_o great_a distress_n which_o he_o will_v bring_v upon_o egypt_n by_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n when_o i_o shall_v put_v thou_o out_o i_o will_v cover_v the_o heaven_n say_v the_o lord_n and_o make_v the_o star_n thereof_o dark_a i_o will_v cover_v the_o sun_n with_o a_o cloud_n and_o the_o moon_n shall_v loose_v her_o light_n all_o the_o light_n of_o heaven_n i_o make_v dark_a for_o thou_o and_o bring_v darkness_n upon_o the_o land_n say_v the_o lord_n god_n i_o will_v also_o trouble_v the_o heart_n of_o many_o people_n and_o isai_n 13.9.10_o the_o same_o borrow_a speech_n be_v use_v to_o describe_v the_o fearful_a destruction_n of_o babylon_n by_o the_o mede_n and_o persian_n behold_v the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v cruel_a with_o wrath_n and_o fierce_a anger_n to_o lay_v the_o land_n waste_v and_o he_o shall_v destroy_v the_o sinner_n out_o of_o it_o for_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o planet_n thereof_o shall_v not_o give_v their_o light_n the_o son_n shall_v be_v darken_v in_o his_o go_v forth_o the_o moon_n shall_v not_o cause_v her_o light_n to_o shine_v and_o thus_o it_o be_v say_v amos._n 5.18_o wo_n unto_o you_o he_o speak_v to_o the_o wicked_a that_o desire_v the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o wit_n of_o his_o mercy_n what_o have_v you_o to_o do_v with_o it_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v of_o his_o u●sitation_n upon_o sinner_n be_v darkness_n and_o not_o light_a as_o if_o a_o man_n do_v flow_v from_o a_o lion_n and_o a_o bear_v meet_v he_o etc._n etc._n and_o ver_fw-la 20._o shall_v not_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v darkness_n and_o not_o light_a even_o darkness_n and_o no_o light_n in_o it_o likewise_o joel_n ch_n 2.2_o and_o in_o the_o same_o ch_n v._n 3●_n 31_o the_o same_o speech_n with_o a_o further_a allusion_n to_o some_o former_a strange_a work_n of_o god_n be_v use_v to_o note_v the_o strange_a effect_n which_o shall_v follow_v upon_o the_o first_o come_v of_o our_o saviour_n into_o the_o world_n and_o in_o the_o time_n succeed_v by_o the_o preach_a of_o his_o gospel_n i_o will_v show_v wonder_n in_o the_o heaven_n and_o in_o the_o earth_n say_v the_o lord_n blood_n and_o fire_n and_o pillar_n of_o smoke_n the_o sun_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o darkness_n and_o the_o moon_n into_o blood_n before_o the_o great_a and_o terrible_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v come_v thus_o i_o say_v these_o kind_n of_o speech_n as_o we_o see_v be_v use_v to_o note_v strange_a thing_n and_o alteration_n metaphorical_o read_v eccles_n have_v 5.16_o &_o ch_z 12.2_o and_o what_o can_v more_o significat_o express_v the_o same_o nevertheless_o this_o let_v not_o why_o we_o may_v not_o understand_v our_o saviour_n in_o these_o word_n not_o only_o to_o understand_v strange_a event_n by_o a_o figurative_a phrase_n of_o speech_n but_o also_o the_o very_a accomplishment_n
mighty_a &_o glorious_a manner_n the_o thousand_o of_o his_o angel_n attend_v upon_o he_o that_o be_v he_o shall_v come_v in_o most_o divine_a manner_n as_o we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o consider_v again_o cha_n 25.31_o in_o which_o respect_n our_o saviour_n call_v that_o glory_n in_o which_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v come_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n chap_n 16.27_o of_o the_o same_o our_o evangelist_n moreover_o it_o be_v evident_a from_o the_o same_o our_o text_n who_o they_o be_v who_o our_o saviour_n shall_v come_v to_o judge_v that_o be_v to_o say_v all_z the_o kindred_n of_o the_o earth_n not_o only_o the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n who_o have_v the_o law_n give_v they_o but_o also_o all_o other_o kindred_n and_o people_n who_o have_v sin_v without_o the_o law_n as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v rom_n 2._o ver_fw-la 12.16_o and_o also_o all_o that_o sin_n against_o the_o gospel_n the_o person_n to_o be_v judge_v at_o this_o general_a and_o most_o fearful_a assize_n be_v describe_v by_o that_o effect_n which_o the_o most_o mighty_a and_o glorious_a manner_n of_o the_o appear_v of_o this_o great_a and_o most_o high_a judge_n shall_v work_v in_o their_o heart_n namely_o that_o they_o shall_v mourn_v with_o a_o most_o doleful_a and_o deep_a mourning_n as_o be_v observe_v in_o a_o word_n before_o &_o as_o may_v further_o appear_v by_o that_o which_o our_o saviour_n speak_v concern_v the_o calamity_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o destruction_n thereof_o luke_n 23.30_o compare_v with_o revel_v 6.15.16.17_o when_o the_o king_n and_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n shall_v wish_v in_o their_o heart_n that_o the_o mountain_n and_o rock_n will_v fall_v upon_o they_o &_o hide_v they_o from_o the_o presence_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n and_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o the_o lamb_n because_o as_o s._n john_n say_v the_o great_a day_n of_o his_o wrath_n be_v come_v &_o who_o can_v stand_v and_o no_o marvel_n see_v his_o come_n shall_v be_v most_o terrible_a to_o all_o such_o as_o have_v evil_a conscience_n and_o be_v guilty_a to_o themselves_o of_o contempt_n &_o rebellion_n against_o this_o most_o high_a prince_n and_o just_a judge_n of_o all_o yea_o no_o doubt_n the_o very_a godly_a and_o believe_a christian_n shall_v at_o that_o day_n of_o this_o fearful_a assummons_n be_v at_o the_o first_o strike_v with_o a_o very_a great_a &_o reverend_a fear_n so_o that_o as_o the_o apostle_n peter_n admonish_v 2._o cp_n 3.11.12_o it_o behove_v all_o of_o we_o to_o be_v very_o careful_a that_o we_o may_v be_v find_v in_o holy_a conversation_n &_o godliness_n and_o that_o also_o with_o all_o expedition_n and_o watchfulness_n see_v the_o heaven_n shall_v pass_v away_o in_o a_o fearful_a manner_n and_o be_v dissolve_v with_o fire_n etc._n etc._n according_a be_v we_o read_v 2._o thessalon_n 1.8_o the_o which_o whosoever_o shall_v do_v though_o they_o do_v fear_n yet_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o comfort_v against_o the_o suddenness_n and_o extremity_n of_o their_o fear_n that_o they_o shall_v recover_v themselves_o out_o of_o it_o and_o find_v that_o to_o be_v a_o day_n of_o most_o sweet_a consolation_n to_o they_o for_o ever_o which_o shall_v be_v a_o day_n of_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o most_o woeful_a both_o terror_n and_o torment_n of_o all_o the_o wicked_a and_o ungodlie_a and_o therefore_o it_o be_v of_o purpose_n add_v by_o our_o saviour_n in_o this_o text_n of_o s._n matthew_n that_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o holy_a angel_n all_o the_o elect_v shall_v be_v gather_v together_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o their_o everlasting_a salvation_n with_o our_o saviour_n in_o heaven_n when_o as_o all_o the_o rest_n shall_v be_v leave_v to_o eternal_a destruction_n in_o hell_n according_a to_o those_o parable_n of_o our_o saviour_n which_o we_o read_v in_o the_o same_o evangelist_n chap_v 13.41.42.43_o and_o in_o the_o same_o verse_n 49.50_o and_o as_o we_o have_v further_a to_o consider_v chapter_n 25._o verse_n 34.41.46_o our_o saviour_n shall_v also_o at_o this_o day_n judge_n &_o condemn_v the_o devil_n and_o all_o his_o wicked_a angel_n as_o we_o be_v from_o that_o place_n of_o the_o 41._o verse_n of_o the_o 25._o of_o matthew_n to_o observe_v but_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o godly_a and_o to_o cheer_v up_o their_o heart_n saint_n luke_n report_v other_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n which_o we_o may_v not_o here_o omit_v insomuch_o as_o we_o read_v chap_v 21.28_o that_o our_o saviour_n speak_v thus_o also_o for_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o godly_a when_o these_o thing_n begin_v to_o come_v to_o pass_v then_o look_v you_o up_o and_o lift_v up_o your_o head_n for_o your_o redemption_n draw_v near_o yea_o even_o our_o full_a redemption_n as_o well_o of_o body_n as_o of_o soul_n according_a as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n interprete_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n rom_n 8.23_o these_o thing_n thus_o consider_v from_o the_o former_a word_n of_o our_o text_n let_v we_o now_o go_v forward_o to_o that_o which_o follow_v in_o the_o evangelist_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 32._o verse_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 41._o for_o these_o word_n also_o do_v concern_v the_o description_n of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o same_o his_o last_o come_n so_o far_o as_o be_v meet_v for_o we_o to_o know_v and_o also_o of_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o together_o with_o some_o intermix_a speech_n concern_v the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n question_n how_o do_v it_o follow_v in_o this_o portion_n of_o the_o text_n answer_n 32._o now_o say_v our_o saviour_n learn_v you_o a_o parable_n from_o the_o fig_n tree_n when_o her_o bough_n be_v yet_o tender_a &_o it_o bring_v forth_o leaf_n you_o know_v that_o summer_n be_v near_o 33._o so_o likewise_o when_o you_o see_v all_o these_o thing_n know_v you_o that_o it_o be_v near_o even_o at_o the_o door_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o time_n of_o the_o come_n of_o our_o saviour_n or_o he_o himself_o or_o as_o it_o may_v be_v supply_v from_o s._n luke_n his_o kingdom_n be_v very_o near_o 3●_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o this_o generation_n shall_v not_o pass_v till_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v 35._o heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v pass_v away_o but_o my_o word_n shall_v not_o pass_v away_o 36._o but_o of_o that_o day_n and_o hour_n know_v no_o man_n no_o not_o the_o angel_n of_o heaven_n but_o my_o father_n only_o 37._o but_o as_o the_o day_n of_o noah_n be_v so_o likewise_o shall_v the_o come_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v 38._o for_o as_o in_o the_o day_n before_o the_o flood_n they_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v marry_v and_o give_v in_o marriage_n unto_o the_o day_n that_o noah_n enter_v into_o the_o ark_n 39_o and_o know_v nothing_o till_o the_o flood_n come_v and_o take_v they_o all_o away_o piscator_fw-la in_o graeco_fw-la centextu_fw-la paralambanetai_fw-la assumitur_fw-la aphietai_fw-la relinquitur_fw-la enallage_n temporis_fw-la ducens_fw-la quasi_fw-la in_o rem_fw-la praesentem_fw-la sic_fw-la piscator_fw-la so_o shall_v also_o the_o come_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v 40._o then_o two_o man_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o field_n the_o one_o shall_v be_v receive_v &_o the_o other_o shall_v be_v refuse_v 41._o two_o woman_n shall_v be_v grind_v at_o the_o mill_n the_o one_o shall_v be_v receive_v the_o other_o shall_v be_v refuse_v proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n in_o this_o portion_n of_o our_o text_n our_o saviour_n add_v that_o which_o he_o think_v good_a to_o deliver_v concern_v the_o time_n &_o manner_n of_o his_o come_n to_o judgement_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n so_o far_o as_o be_v say_v it_o be_v meet_v for_o we_o to_o know_v with_o a_o certain_a recapitulation_n of_o all_o that_o which_o he_o have_v say_v before_o concern_v the_o sign_n both_o go_v before_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o also_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o last_o judgement_n thereof_o and_o he_o do_v it_o in_o this_o order_n first_o our_o saviour_n do_v general_o affirm_v the_o certainty_n of_o either_o part_n of_o this_o prophecy_n according_a to_o the_o precursorie_a sign_n which_o he_o have_v give_v thereof_o and_o that_o from_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o fig_n tree_n and_o as_o s._n luke_n add_v further_a from_o the_o similitude_n of_o all_o other_o tree_n chap._n 21._o verse_n 29.30.31_o for_o he_o speak_v to_o they_o a_o parable_n say_v the_o evangelist_n say_v behold_v the_o fig_n tree_n and_o all_o tree_n when_o they_o now_o shoot_v forth_o you_o see_v they_o know_v of_o your_o own_o self_n that_o summer_n be_v then_o near_o so_o likewise_o you_o when_o you_o see_v these_o thing_n come_v to_o pass_v that_o be_v to_o say_v when_o you_o for_o your_o part_n see_v jerusalem_n destroy_v and_o all_o the_o trouble_n that_o i_o have_v speak_v
feast_v at_o night_n but_o also_o that_o the_o bridegroom_n shall_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o bride_n by_o a_o train_n or_o company_n of_o maiden_n the_o daughter_n of_o his_o near_a friend_n yet_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o he_o do_v of_o purpose_n choose_v to_o give_v forth_o this_o parable_n under_o the_o name_n and_o example_n of_o womankind_n yea_o even_o of_o young_a and_o tender_a maid_n to_o admonish_v they_o as_o well_o as_o man_n that_o as_o they_o be_v appoint_v of_o god_n to_o be_v heir_n of_o the_o same_o grace_n and_o salvation_n so_o they_o may_v know_v that_o the_o same_o duty_n of_o watchfulness_n and_o constancy_n in_o the_o faith_n and_o in_o all_o good_a fruit_n thereof_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v of_o they_o in_o their_o place_n and_o calling_n as_o well_o as_o of_o man_n yea_o the_o young_a be_v hereby_o admonish_v as_o well_o as_o the_o elder_n young_a man_n and_o maid_n also_o old_a man_n and_o child_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o 148._o psalm_n no_o youth_n or_o tenderness_n of_o those_o that_o be_v of_o discretion_n must_v exempt_v we_o from_o use_v all_o good_a diligence_n and_o painfulness_n in_o seek_v after_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n we_o know_v the_o curse_n which_o the_o lord_n threaten_v whereof_o even_o the_o dainty_a and_o delicate_a both_o man_n and_o woman_n that_o will_v scarce_o set_v their_o foot_n on_o the_o ground_n shall_v be_v partaker_n as_o well_o as_o the_o rest_n for_o their_o want_n of_o care_n to_o obey_v the_o law_n and_o commandment_n of_o god_n deut_n 28._o verse_n 5●_n and_o 56._o let_v we_o therefore_o all_o without_o exception_n know_v that_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o watch_v diligent_o and_o careful_o to_o prepare_v ourselves_o against_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n judgement_n whensoever_o he_o shall_v come_v for_o otherwise_o as_o our_o saviour_n tell_v us._n the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n shall_v be_v liken_v to_o ten_o virgin_n to_o wit_n as_o touch_v this_o point_n of_o admit_v and_o receive_v those_o only_a tha●_n be_v careful_a to_o prepare_v themselves_o aright_o and_o of_o exclude_v and_o reject_v all_o the_o rest_n the_o particular_n of_o this_o parable_n be_v thus_o to_o be_v understand_v and_o apply_v the_o bridegroom_n signify_v our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o respect_n of_o that_o spiritual_a marriage_n which_o he_o mind_v eternal_o to_o celebrate_v and_o solemnize_v with_o his_o church_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o which_o he_o have_v already_o espouse_v to_o himself_o as_o it_o be_v most_o plentiful_o and_o delightful_o describe_v in_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o excellent_a song_n of_o song_n by_o king_n solomon_n in_o which_o respect_n also_o john_n baptist_n call_v our_o saviour_n the_o bridegroom_n and_o profess_v himself_o to_o be_v for_o his_o part_n a_o friend_n of_o the_o bridegroom_n john_n 3.29_o and_o our_o saviour_n call_v his_o twelve_o the_o child_n of_o the_o marriage_n chamber_n and_o himself_o as_o the_o bridegroom_n for_o the_o time_n he_o be_v present_a with_o they_o mat_n 9.14_o 15._o the_o ten_o virgin_n do_v represent_v the_o visible_a church_n of_o god_n here_o in_o this_o world_n of_o the_o which_o some_o regard_n only_o the_o external_a call_n and_o the_o outward_a profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o far_o as_o it_o have_v praise_n and_o allowance_n of_o man_n and_o these_o be_v but_o hypocrite_n other_o do_v not_o rest_v themselves_o in_o the_o outward_a call_n and_o profession_n but_o seek_v after_o inward_a truth_n &_o the_o power_n of_o godliness_n through_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o these_o alone_a be_v the_o true_a member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n insomuch_o as_o they_o only_o appertain_v to_o the_o secret_a election_n end_v internal_a call_n of_o god_n as_o touch_v the_o equal_a number_n of_o five_o of_o the_o one_o sort_n that_o be_v the_o wise_a and_o five_o of_o the_o other_o who_o be_v say_v to_o be_v foolish_a it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v stand_v upon_o as_o though_o that_o be_v intend_v by_o our_o saviour_n insomuch_o as_o we_o know_v what_o he_o have_v say_v other_o where_o to_o wit_n that_o many_o be_v call_v but_o few_o choose_v yet_o this_o be_v certain_a that_o every_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n be_v true_o wise_a seek_v after_o inward_a truth_n as_o be_v say_v and_o that_o all_o other_o be_v foolish_a how_o many_o soever_o they_o be_v who_o look_v no_o further_o then_o to_o a_o outward_a profession_n albeit_o they_o hear_v daily_o that_o god_n make_v no_o reckon_n of_o the_o outward_a man_n though_o that_o seem_v to_o be_v near_o when_o the_o heart_n be_v remove_v far_o from_o he_o the_o long_a stay_n of_o the_o bridegroom_n note_v the_o distance_n of_o time_n betwixt_o his_o ascension_n up_o into_o heaven_n and_o his_o come_n to_o judgement_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n which_o prove_v long_o than_o man_n will_v have_v think_v for_o so_o it_o fall_v out_o oftentimes_o in_o matter_n of_o great_a solemnity_n that_o many_o occasion_n breed_v delay_n above_o that_o the_o attendant_n do_v know_v off_o and_o very_o many_o great_a work_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v wrought_v betwixt_o our_o saviour_n leave_v of_o the_o world_n and_o his_o return_v to_o it_o again_o which_o require_v as_o we_o have_v experience_n a_o long_a tract_n of_o time_n and_o it_o be_v of_o the_o infinite_a mercy_n of_o god_n that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o delay_n to_o the_o end_n that_o none_o of_o his_o elect_a might_n perish_v but_o in_o his_o due_a time_n come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n and_o faith_n of_o their_o salvation_n the_o fail_v of_o the_o oil_n in_o the_o lamp_n of_o the_o foolish_a note_v the_o detection_n and_o discovery_n of_o their_o hypocrisy_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o ground_v and_o true_o root_v in_o christ_n they_o have_v a_o certain_a historical_a knowledge_n but_o not_o the_o grace_n and_o gift_n of_o sanctification_n neither_o seek_v they_o after_o they_o the_o full_a supply_n of_o oil_n which_o the_o wise_a furnish_v themselves_o withal_o as_o it_o be_v against_o a_o dear_a year_n note_v their_o inward_a truth_n and_o steadfastness_n of_o faith_n and_o godliness_n they_o have_v their_o lamp_n as_o it_o be_v under_o the_o two_o olive_n tree_n of_o god_n for_o the_o continual_a cherish_n and_o feed_v of_o the_o light_n thereof_o as_o we_o read_v zech_n 4.1.2_o yet_o not_o so_o but_o the_o wise_a have_v their_o infirmity_n and_o fail_n as_o if_o they_o be_v not_o better_o than_o the_o rest_n in_o inward_a truth_n who_o seem_v to_o be_v as_o good_a as_o they_o in_o outward_a show_n but_o their_o inward_a truth_n reviu_v all_o when_o as_o the_o best_a motion_n of_o the_o rest_n do_v quick_o vanish_v quite_o away_o the_o sudden_a come_n of_o the_o bridegroom_n note_v the_o sudden_a come_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o judgement_n when_o the_o time_n of_o his_o stay_n be_v once_o expire_v nevertheless_o that_o judgement_n which_o shall_v be_v the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o foolish_a it_o shall_v be_v the_o salvation_n of_o the_o wise_a for_o this_o as_o be_v say_v in_o the_o beginning_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o shut_n of_o the_o gate_n against_o the_o rest_n the_o which_o no_o noubt_n shall_v be_v as_o doleful_a to_o those_o which_o shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o this_o feast_n as_o it_o shall_v be_v joyful_a to_o those_o that_o shall_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o it_o according_a to_o that_o revel_v chap_n 19.7_o let_v we_o be_v glad_a and_o rejoice_v and_o give_v glory_n to_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n for_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o lamb_n it_o come_v and_o verse_n 9_o bless_a be_v they_o that_o be_v call_v to_o the_o lamb_n supper_n final_o in_o this_o parable_n it_o be_v most_o needful_o to_o be_v mark_v of_o we_o that_o when_o the_o opportunity_n of_o accompany_v this_o bridegroom_n to_o the_o marriage_n feast_n be_v once_o past_a that_o there_o be_v no_o recover_n of_o it_o for_o ever_o after_o and_o not_o to_o prepare_v and_o furnish_v ourselves_o thorough_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n all_o one_o as_o if_o we_o never_o set_v foot_n out_o of_o door_n wherefore_o as_o we_o begin_v so_o let_v we_o end_v take_v we_o heed_n that_o we_o be_v prepare_v and_o that_o we_o may_v be_v find_v watch_v always_o because_o we_o know_v not_o the_o day_n nor_o the_o hour_n when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n will_v come_v the_o last_o parable_n be_v yet_o behind_o tend_v to_o the_o same_o end_n with_o the_o former_a as_o it_o be_v plain_a by_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o infer_v or_o knit_v of_o it_o with_o the_o same_o as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o text_n question_n how_o be_v that_o 25._o how_o much_o a_o talon_n be_v according_a to_o our_o present_a coin_n thoug_a it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o oftimate_v
yet_o this_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o contain_v a_o great_a sumaie_n it_o may_v appear_v in_o that_o one_o talon_n of_o gold_n be_v sufficient_a in_o quantity_n to_o make_v that_o goodly_a branch_a &_o bowl_v candlestick_n f_o r_o the_o holy_a tabernacle_n with_o the_o snuffer_n and_o snuff_n dish_n for_o the_o same_o exod_a 25._o verse_n 31._o etc._n etc._n 3●_n this_o talon_n be_v indeed_o the_o talon_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n but_o the_o talon_n in_o common_a use_n among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v in_o quantity_n half_o so_o much_o that_o be_v about_o 60._o pound_n when_o the_o great_a be_v 120._o pound_n in_o weight_n vide_fw-la junij_fw-la annot_fw-mi in_o eum_fw-la locum_fw-la exod._n 25._o answer_n 14._o for_o say_v our_o saviour_n verse_n 14_o and_o so_o forth_o to_o the_o 31._o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n or_o the_o son_n of_o man_n or_o with_o a_o more_o short_a supply_n of_o word_n thus_o for_o so_o it_o be_v to_o wit_n in_o this_o case_n that_o as_o a_o man_n go_v into_o a_o strange_a country_n call_v his_o servant_n and_o deliver_v to_o they_o his_o good_n 15._o and_o unto_o one_o he_o give_v five_o talent_n and_o to_o another_o two_o and_o to_o another_o one_o to_o every_o one_o after_o his_o hability_n and_o straight_o way_n go_v from_o home_n 16._o then_o he_o that_o receive_v the_o five_o talent_n go_v and_o occupy_v with_o they_o and_o gain_v other_o five_o talent_n 17._o likewise_o also_o he_o that_o receive_v two_o he_o also_o gain_v other_o two_o 18._o but_o he_o that_o receive_v the_o one_o go_v and_o dig_v in_o the_o earth_n and_o hide_v his_o master_n money_n 19_o but_o after_o a_o long_a season_n the_o master_n of_o those_o servant_n come_v and_o reckon_v with_o they_o 20._o then_o come_v he_o that_o have_v receive_v five_o talent_n and_o bring_v forth_o other_o five_o talent_n say_v master_n thou_o deliver_v cast_v unto_o i_o five_o talent_n behold_v i_o have_v gain_v with_o they_o other_o five_o talent_n 21._o then_o his_o master_n say_v unto_o he_o it_o be_v well_o do_v good_a servant_n and_o faithful_a thou_o have_v be_v faithful_a in_o little_a i_o will_v make_v thou_o ruler_n over_o much_o enter_v into_o thy_o master_n joy_n 22._o also_o he_o that_o receive_v two_o talent_n come_v and_o say_v master_n thou_o deliver_v unto_o i_o two_o talent_n behold_v i_o have_v gain_v other_o two_o with_o they_o 23._o his_o master_n say_v unto_o he_o it_o it_o well_o do_v good_a servant_n and_o faithful_a thou_o have_v be_v faithful_a in_o little_a i_o will_v make_v thou_o ruler_n over_o much_o enter_v into_o thy_o master_n joy_n 24._o then_o he_o which_o have_v receive_v the_o one_o talon_n come_v and_o say_v master_n i_o know_v that_o thou_o be_v a_o hard_a man_n who_o reape_v where_o thou_o sow_v not_o and_o gather_v where_o thou_o straw_v not_o 25._o i_o be_v therefore_o afraid_a and_o go_v and_o hide_v my_o talon_n in_o the_o earth_n behold_v thou_o have_v thy_o own_o 26._o and_o his_o master_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o he_o thou_o evil_a servant_n and_o slothful_a thou_o know_v that_o i_o reap_v where_o i_o sow_v not_o and_o gather_v where_o i_o straw_v not_o 27._o thou_o ought_v therefore_o to_o have_v put_v my_o money_n to_o the_o exchanger_n and_o then_o at_o my_o come_n i_o shall_v have_v receive_v my_o own_o with_o advantage_n 28._o take_v therefore_o the_o talon_n from_o he_o and_o give_v it_o unto_o he_o which_o have_v ten_o talent_n 29._o for_o unto_o every_o man_n that_o have_v it_o shall_v be_v give_v and_o he_o shall_v have_v abundance_n and_o from_o he_o that_o have_v not_o even_o that_o which_o he_o have_v shall_v be_v take_v away_o 30._o cast_v therefore_o that_o unprofitable_a servant_n into_o utter_a darkness_n there_o shall_v be_v weep_v and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n explication_n explication_n before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o interpretation_n of_o this_o parable_n if_o we_o will_v see_v it_o more_o brief_o propound_v we_o may_v read_v it_o as_o it_o be_v contract_v by_o the_o evangelist_n mark._n ch_n 13.34.35.36.37_o with_o a_o short_a supply_n of_o word_n after_o this_o manner_n for_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v as_o a_o man_n go_v into_o a_o strange_a country_n &_o leave_v his_o house_n and_o give_v authority_n to_o his_o servant_n and_o to_o every_o man_n his_o work_n and_o command_v the_o porter_n to_o watch_v watch_z therefore_o for_o you_o know_v not_o when_o the_o master_n of_o the_o house_n will_v come_v at_o even_o or_o at_o midnight_n at_o the_o cockecrowing_a or_o in_o the_o dawn_a lest_o if_o he_o come_v sudden_o he_o shall_v find_v you_o sleep_v and_o those_o thing_n which_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o i_o say_v unto_o all_o see_v that_o you_o watch_v this_o as_o it_o seem_v be_v a_o brief_a contraction_n not_o only_o of_o this_o last_o parable_n set_v down_o at_o large_a by_o saint_n matthew_n but_o also_o of_o the_o other_o record_v both_o by_o matthew_n and_o luke_n and_o the_o general_a use_n of_o they_o all_o be_v here_o express_v most_o full_o at_o once_o which_o be_v to_o stir_v up_o all_o without_o exception_n to_o be_v watchful_a lest_o we_o or_o other_o shall_v be_v find_v unprepared_a when_o god_n shall_v call_v we_o to_o a_o account_n the_o evangelist_n luke_n set_v down_o the_o same_o parable_n in_o as_o large_a a_o discourse_n as_o matthew_n do_v use_v of_o our_o saviour_n to_o the_o same_o end_n though_o with_o some_o difference_n in_o certain_a circumstance_n and_o it_o may_v be_v also_o at_o another_o time_n before_o this_o most_o large_a speech_n of_o he_o concern_v his_o second_o come_v for_o it_o be_v before_o his_o last_o farewell_n to_o the_o temple_n as_o we_o may_v read_v 19_o chap_n from_o the_o 12._o verse_n to_o the_o 28._o nevertheless_o as_o touch_v the_o end_n and_o scope_n of_o the_o parable_n it_o be_v plain_a to_o be_v the_o same_o from_o the_o 11._o verse_n in_o these_o word_n while_o they_o hear_v these_o thing_n say_v the_o evangelist_n luke_n that_o be_v to_o say_v while_o the_o disciple_n hear_v those_o comfortable_a speech_n which_o our_o sa_o speak_v concern_v zaccheus_n that_o salvation_n be_v that_o day_n come_v to_o his_o house_n &c_n &c_n for_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v come_v to_o seek_v and_o to_o save_v that_o which_o be_v lose_v our_o saviour_n as_o saint_n luke_n say_v continue_v and_o speak_v a_o parable_n because_o he_o be_v near_o to_o jerusalem_n and_o because_o also_o they_o think_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v short_o appear_v he_o say_v therefore_o as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o 12._o verse_n a_o certain_a noble_a man_n go_v into_o a_o far_a country_n to_o receive_v for_o himself_o a_o kingdom_n and_o so_o to_o come_v again_o and_o he_o call_v his_o ten_o servant_n etc._n etc._n but_o of_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o circumstance_n we_o will_v speak_v afterward_o let_v we_o first_o consider_v of_o the_o substance_n and_o matter_n of_o the_o parable_n as_o it_o be_v contrive_v and_o dispose_v in_o the_o evangelist_n matthew_n by_o the_o go_n of_o the_o man_n the_o noble_a man_n as_o it_o be_v in_o luke_n into_o a_o far_a country_n our_o saviour_n represent_v himself_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o leave_v of_o this_o world_n and_o of_o his_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n and_o of_o his_o abode_n there_o till_o his_o come_n again_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o which_o though_o it_o shall_v be_v uncertain_a all_o way_n and_o sudden_a whensoever_o it_o shall_v be_v yet_o he_o do_v give_v to_o understand_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o soon_o as_o his_o disciple_n be_v ready_a to_o conceive_v and_o as_o our_o saviour_n know_v how_o the_o mind_n of_o some_o will_v overcarie_n they_o as_o we_o may_v perceive_v according_o how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v 2._o thes_n 2.1.2.3_o neither_o do_v our_o saviour_n so_o speak_v of_o his_o leave_v of_o the_o world_n as_o though_o he_o mean_v not_o after_o his_o departure_n to_o be_v any_o way_n present_a in_o it_o but_o he_o speak_v only_o of_o his_o bodily_a absence_n for_o by_o his_o spirit_n he_o be_v and_o so_o always_o intend_v to_o be_v present_a in_o his_o church_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n i_o will_v be_v with_o you_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o he_o speak_v a_o little_a before_o his_o ascension_n and_o likewise_o before_o that_o wheresoever_o two_o or_o three_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o my_o name_n there_o be_o i_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o and_o so_o do_v the_o effect_n itself_o declare_v and_o confirm_v diverse_a way_n in_o that_o since_o his_o ascension_n even_o short_o after_o and_o thenceforth_o to_o this_o day_n he_o have_v establish_v office_n and_o calling_n in_o his_o church_n furnish_v they_o with_o
but_o they_o do_v well_o to_o dispute_v the_o matter_n now_o provide_v they_o will_v speedy_o moderate_v and_o determine_v the_o question_n well_o before_o the_o time_n of_o the_o account_n here_o speak_v of_o do_v come_v for_o assure_o than_o the_o term_n will_v be_v out_o and_o no_o further_a day_n grant_v for_o any_o disputation_n about_o the_o matter_n and_o happy_a shall_v they_o be_v that_o shall_v turn_v all_o their_o care_n to_o practice_v that_o usury_n which_o our_o saviour_n have_v commend_v as_o be_v the_o only_a lawful_a and_o bless_a usury_n which_o bring_v sound_a and_o durable_a gain_n with_o it_o even_o to_o as_o great_a abundance_n may_v be_v desire_v for_o to_o he_o that_o have_v say_v our_o saviour_n shall_v be_v give_v and_o he_o shall_v have_v abundance_n when_o as_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o shall_v be_v take_v away_o which_o the_o unprofitable_a servant_n refuse_v to_o make_v any_o use_n of_o thus_o much_o of_o this_o parable_n as_o it_o be_v record_v by_o saint_n matthew_n whereunto_o as_o be_v say_v that_o other_o in_o the_o 19_o chap_n of_o s._n luke_n accord_v touch_v the_o substance_n and_o scope_n of_o it_o as_o for_o the_o circumstance_n often_o servant_n answerable_a to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o 10._o virgin_n in_o the_o former_a parable_n &_o of_o the_o mina_n or_o pound_n a_o great_a deal_n less_o sum_n of_o money_n give_v to_o every_o one_o in_o stead_n of_o the_o talent_n in_o diverse_a proportion_n deliver_v to_o the_o rest_n they_o do_v nothing_o prejudice_n the_o same_o substance_n and_o drift_n of_o either_o parable_n no_o more_o do_v the_o diverse_a proportion_n of_o the_o gain_n or_o diverse_a measure_n of_o the_o reward_n this_o only_a be_v to_o be_v material_o observe_v in_o luke_n which_o be_v not_o set_v down_o in_o matthew_n that_o the_o noble_a man_n go_v into_o a_o far_a country_n be_v hate_v of_o his_o citizen_n who_o after_o his_o departure_n rebel_v against_o he_o though_o all_o in_o vain_a for_o at_o his_o return_n the_o noble_a man_n do_v execution_n upon_o all_o those_o rebel_n even_o so_o shall_v it_o be_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n none_o of_o those_o that_o refuse_v to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o regency_n and_o government_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n here_o in_o this_o world_n shall_v escape_v his_o revenge_a hand_n according_a to_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o parable_n in_o these_o word_n moreover_o those_o my_o enemy_n which_o will_v not_o that_o i_o shall_v reign_v over_o they_o bring_v hither_o and_o slay_v they_o before_o i_o the_o lord_n jesus_n himself_o will_v see_v the_o execution_n do_v upon_o all_o those_o that_o rebel_n against_o he_o and_o his_o gospel_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o holy_a angel_n immediate_o upon_o his_o sentence_n &_o judgement_n pronounce_v against_o they_o at_o the_o last_o day_n mat_n 13.41_o 42._o and_o verse_n 49.50_o the_o consideration_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n must_v needs_o be_v of_o great_a force_n to_o awaken_v all_o that_o shall_v due_o weigh_v and_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o be_v faithful_a and_o true_a to_o be_v continual_o watchful_a that_o at_o the_o last_o judgement_n they_o may_v be_v find_v good_a and_o faithful_a servant_n to_o god_n and_o i_o do_v hearty_o pray_v god_n that_o the_o same_o good_a effect_n may_v be_v wrought_v in_o our_o heart_n who_o have_v hear_v these_o thing_n thus_o plentiful_o lay_v forth_o unto_o we_o and_o that_o also_o in_o so_o great_a variety_n of_o persuasion_n as_o our_o bless_a saviour_n have_v in_o wonderful_a desire_n of_o our_o salvation_n commend_v the_o same_o unto_o we_o that_o whether_o we_o die_v before_o his_o come_n or_o live_v till_o his_o come_n we_o may_v be_v find_v such_o as_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v for_o as_o have_v be_v often_o say_v it_o come_v all_o to_o one_o reckon_v in_o effect_n whether_o we_o live_v to_o that_o day_n or_o no._n for_o as_o we_o die_v now_o so_o shall_v we_o be_v find_v then_o either_o just_a or_o unjust_a true_a believer_n or_o hypocrite_n wherefore_o see_v our_o death_n be_v as_o uncertain_a to_o we_o how_o soon_o it_o shall_v be_v to_o every_o one_o of_o we_o for_o our_o part_n as_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n let_v not_o any_o of_o we_o stop_v our_o ear_n or_o harden_v our_o heart_n against_o the_o gracious_a warning_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o us._n and_o the_o rather_o because_o though_o the_o day_n of_o our_o death_n be_v not_o far_o off_o when_o it_o be_v at_o the_o further_a yet_o we_o have_v experience_n by_o the_o sudden_a death_n of_o many_o that_o it_o may_v be_v near_o than_o we_o can_v think_v for_o sometime_o as_o we_o see_v the_o summons_n and_o arrest_v and_o the_o execution_n of_o death_n come_v all_o at_o once_o upon_o other_o and_o why_o may_v not_o death_n use_v the_o like_a expedition_n in_o the_o cut_n off_o of_o our_o day_n it_o may_v fall_v out_o so_o for_o any_o thing_n that_o any_o of_o we_o do_v know_v let_v we_o therefore_o i_o pray_v you_o even_o all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o we_o let_v we_o i_o say_v watch_v that_o none_o of_o we_o may_v at_o any_o time_n be_v take_v unprepared_a to_o our_o destruction_n but_o that_o we_o may_v be_v in_o a_o readiness_n to_o meet_v the_o lord_n with_o comfort_n to_o our_o eternal_a salvation_n amen_n and_o thus_o far_o for_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n concern_v the_o come_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o judge_v both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a out_o of_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n both_o for_o the_o time_n thereof_o and_o concern_v the_o sign_n so_o far_o as_o they_o may_v be_v discern_v of_o we_o and_o also_o touch_v the_o place_n from_o whence_o and_o whither_o he_o shall_v come_v and_o in_o what_o manner_n he_o shall_v show_v himself_o and_o who_o they_o be_v who_o he_o shall_v judge_v moreover_o we_o have_v herewithal_o see_v diverse_a of_o those_o use_n both_o for_o comfort_n and_o also_o for_o duty_n which_o we_o be_v to_o make_v from_o the_o doctrine_n and_o faith_n of_o this_o article_n wherein_o though_o we_o have_v somewhat_o break_v our_o order_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v not_o break_v the_o course_n of_o our_o text_n which_o be_v more_o to_o be_v regard_v then_o our_o order_n yet_o if_o need_v be_v we_o shall_v very_o well_o salve_v it_o again_o because_o by_o how_o much_o we_o have_v as_o it_o be_v increase_v the_o burden_n here_o we_o shall_v go_v away_o the_o light_a and_o make_v the_o more_o expedition_n there_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n let_v we_o proceed_v to_o that_o which_o follow_v and_o that_o also_o in_o as_o good_a and_o commodious_a a_o course_n as_o we_o may_v attain_v unto_o touch_v the_o order_n of_o our_o saviour_n proceed_n in_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o last_o judgement_n even_o as_o he_o himself_o have_v likewise_o foretell_v and_o describe_v the_o same_o this_o follow_v in_o our_o text_n of_o the_o evangelist_n matthew_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 31._o verse_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chap_n let_v we_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n question_n which_o be_v they_o answer_n 31._o and_o when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v in_o his_o glory_n say_v our_o saviour_n and_o all_o the_o holy_a angel_n with_o he_o then_o shall_v he_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o glory_n 32._o and_o before_o he_o shall_v be_v gather_v all_o nation_n and_o he_o shall_v separate_v they_o one_o from_o another_o as_o a_o shepherd_n seperate_v his_o sheep_n from_o the_o goat_n 33._o and_o he_o shall_v set_v the_o sheep_n on_o his_o right_a hand_n and_o the_o goat_n on_o the_o left_a 34._o then_o shall_v the_o king_n say_v to_o they_o on_o his_o right_a hand_n come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n inherit_v the_o kingdom_n prepare_v for_o you_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n 35._o for_o i_o be_v a_o hunger_a and_o you_o go_v i_o meat_n i_o thirst_v and_o you_o give_v i_o drink_v i_o be_v a_o stranger_n and_o you_o lodge_v i_o 36._o i_o be_v naked_a and_o you_o clothe_v i_o i_o be_v sick_a and_o you_o visit_v i_o i_o be_v in_o prison_n and_o you_o come_v unto_o i_o 37._o then_o shall_v the_o righteous_a answer_v he_o say_v lord_n when_o see_v we_o thou_o a_o hunger_a and_o feed_v thou_o or_o a_o thirst_n and_o give_v thou_o drink_v 38._o and_o when_o see_v we_o thou_o a_o stranger_n and_o lodge_v thou_o or_o naked_a and_o clothe_v thou_o 39_o or_o when_o see_v we_o thou_o sick_a or_o in_o prison_n and_o come_v unto_o thou_o 40._o and_o the_o king_n shall_v answer_v and_o say_v unto_o they_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o have_v do_v
comfort_n of_o all_o true_a christian_n see_v they_o shall_v behold_v he_o to_o be_v ordain_v their_o judge_n who_o be_v before_o anoint_v to_o be_v their_o everlasting_a redeemer_n and_o saviour_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n these_o indeed_o be_v very_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o let_v we_o see_v why_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o and_o they_o be_v no_o other_o than_o such_o as_o have_v good_a warrant_n from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n like_v as_o you_o have_v allege_v concern_v the_o former_a three_o touch_v the_o last_o reason_n that_o be_v the_o comfort_n of_o the_o faithful_a we_o shall_v have_v further_a occasion_n to_o consider_v of_o it_o afterward_o nevertheless_o albeit_o the_o judgement_n be_v commit_v to_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n even_o in_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o the_o deity_n be_v exclude_v either_o of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o or_o of_o the_o father_n or_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o the_o judgement_n shall_v proceed_v from_o the_o whole_a trinity_n though_o the_o son_n only_o be_v the_o administratour_n and_o pronouncer_n of_o it_o let_v this_o suffice_v for_o the_o first_o point_n who_o the_o judge_n be_v question_n the_o manner_n of_o his_o come_n be_v next_o how_o be_v it_o describe_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v answer_n the_o son_n of_o man_n say_v our_o saviour_n shall_v come_v in_o glory_n and_o all_o the_o holy_a angel_n with_o he_o explication_n this_o glory_n which_o our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o most_o divine_a glory_n even_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o father_n as_o he_o himself_o speak_v before_o math._n 16.27_o for_o say_v he_o there_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n with_o his_o angel_n here_o in_o this_o place_n our_o saviour_n call_v it_o his_o own_o glory_n because_o it_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o even_o in_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n by_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o father_n who_o elsewhere_o be_v call_v the_o father_n of_o glory_n ephes_n 1.17_o and_o the_o god_n of_o glory_n act._n 7.2_o and_o the_o king_n of_o glory_n psal_n 24.7.8.9.10_o that_o be_v most_o glorious_a in_o himself_o and_o also_o the_o fountain_n of_o all_o true_a honour_n and_o glory_n to_o all_o other_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o perfect_a declaration_n of_o that_o glory_n which_o the_o disciple_n see_v some_o bright_a glimpse_n of_o as_o we_o read_v john_n 1.14_o math._n 17.2_o and_o 2._o pet._n 1.17_o it_o shall_v be_v that_o glory_n which_o our_o saviour_n pray_v for_o john_n 17.5_o now_o glorify_v i_o thou_o father_n with_o thy_o own_o self_n with_o the_o glory_n which_o i_o have_v with_o thou_o before_o the_o world_n be_v now_o according_a to_o this_o glory_n even_o the_o divine_a glory_n of_o our_o saviour_n shall_v that_o power_n be_v wherewith_o he_o shall_v come_v that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o shall_v be_v the_o very_a almighty_a power_n of_o god_n according_a as_o we_o have_v see_v before_o affirm_v by_o our_o saviour_n himself_o math._n 24.30_o and_o luke_n chap._n 21.27_o the_o same_o glory_n and_o power_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v further_a illustrate_v for_o a_o help_n of_o our_o weakness_n to_o conceive_v the_o more_o glorious_o of_o it_o from_o the_o attendance_n of_o the_o holy_a angel_n who_o shall_v at_o that_o time_n accompany_v he_o as_o his_o servant_n with_o all_o their_o glory_n and_o power_n to_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o his_o judgement_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n they_o be_v call_v his_o angel_n math._n 16.27_o like_v as_o the_o glory_n be_v in_o our_o present_a text_n call_v his_o own_o glory_n now_o very_o this_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a of_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o our_o saviour_n must_v needs_o be_v a_o exceed_o great_a glory_n which_o shall_v exceed_v all_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o thousand_o yea_o the_o myriade_n and_o ten_o thousand_o thousand_o of_o the_o angel_n which_o shall_v accompany_v he_o more_o no_o doubt_n than_o the_o sun_n excel_v all_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n in_o brightness_n and_o glory_n thus_o therefore_o as_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o assize_n when_o he_o come_v in_o his_o circuit_n to_o execute_v judgement_n from_o the_o prince_n be_v for_o honour_n sake_n accompany_v with_o the_o high_a sheriff_n and_o the_o honourable_a and_o worshipful_a of_o the_o country_n so_o yea_o by_o infinite_a odds_n shall_v our_o saviour_n christ_n come_v to_o execute_v this_o judgement_n of_o all_o judgement_n that_o we_o now_o speak_v of_o be_v accompany_v with_o such_o a_o glorious_a train_n as_o never_o any_o judge_n be_v or_o shall_v be_v accompany_v withal_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o same_o the_o use_n of_o this_o exceed_a glory_n shall_v be_v this_o even_o to_o procure_v the_o more_o reverend_a estimation_n from_o the_o godly_a and_o also_o to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o very_a wicked_a may_v be_v constrain_v to_o tremble_v before_o the_o same_o and_o in_o this_o respect_n also_o it_o be_v that_o according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n mention_v before_o math._n 24.31_o the_o holy_a apostle_n paul_n do_v likewise_o make_v mention_n of_o some_o other_o thing_n as_o sign_n and_o appurtenance_n to_o this_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n and_o glory_n as_o we_o read_v 1._o thess_n 4.16_o 1._o cor._n 15.52_o say_n the_o lord_n himself_o shall_v descend_v from_o heaven_n with_o a_o shout_n and_o with_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o archangel_n and_o with_o the_o trumpet_n of_o god_n yea_o and_o that_o no_o doubt_n in_o far_o more_o glorious_a and_o magnificent_a manner_n than_o it_o sound_v at_o the_o give_v of_o the_o law_n exod._n 19.19_o though_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o trumpet_n at_o that_o time_n be_v long_o wax_v loud_a and_o loud_o and_o though_o the_o law_n be_v give_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n gal._n 3.89_o yet_o it_o be_v with_o less_o appearance_n of_o glory_n then_o there_o shall_v be_v at_o the_o come_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o judge_v both_o by_o the_o law_n and_o also_o according_a to_o his_o gospel_n as_o the_o same_o apostle_n testify_v rom._n 2.12.16_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o appearance_n of_o our_o saviour_n when_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judgement_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n question_n now_o in_o the_o three_o place_n how_o shall_v he_o address_v and_o dispose_v of_o himself_o to_o the_o pronounce_v of_o this_o most_o reverend_a and_o glorious_a judgement_n answer_n then_o say_v our_o saviour_n the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o glory_n explication_n what_o manner_n of_o throne_n this_o throne_n of_o glory_n shall_v be_v it_o be_v better_a to_o suspend_v our_o judgement_n then_o to_o imagine_v any_o particular_a likeness_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o it_o in_o our_o mind_n till_o in_o due_a season_n we_o shall_v be_v the_o beholder_n of_o if_o with_o our_o bodily_a eye_n nevertheless_o this_o we_o may_v be_v as_o sure_a of_o before_o hand_n as_o if_o we_o see_v it_o present_o with_o our_o eye_n that_o it_o shall_v answer_v to_o that_o description_n of_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n whereof_o we_o read_v dan._n 7._o ver_fw-la 9.10_o and_o revel_v 20.11_o where_o the_o apostle_n john_n say_v that_o he_o see_v a_o great_a white_a throne_n and_o one_o that_o sit_v upon_o it_o from_o who_o face_n flee_v away_o both_o earth_n and_o heaven_n and_o their_o place_n be_v no_o more_o find_v which_o throne_n no_o doubt_n shall_v be_v infinite_o more_o glorious_a than_o the_o ynorie_a throne_n of_o k._n solomon_n not_o only_o white_a as_o that_o be_v but_o most_o bright_a answerable_a to_o the_o purity_n and_o righteousness_n of_o that_o judgement_n which_o shall_v be_v pronounce_v by_o the_o judge_n that_o shall_v sit_v down_o upon_o it_o according_a to_o that_o we_o read_v psal_n 45.6_o and_o heb._n 1.8_o o_o god_n thy_o throne_n be_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o the_o sceptre_n of_o thy_o kingdom_n be_v a_o sceptre_n of_o righteousness_n thou_o love_v righteousness_n and_o hate_v iniquity_n etc._n etc._n according_a also_o to_o the_o like_a testimony_n which_o have_v their_o final_a prospect_n towards_o this_o last_o judgement_n psal_n 5.4_o and_o psal_n 7.11_o and_o 9_o 7_o 8._o and_o 94_o 20._o read_v also_o gen._n 18_o 25._o rom._n 2_o 5_o 6_o and_o eccles_n 3_o 16_o 17._o and_o chap._n 5.7_o but_o there_o be_v yet_o another_o thing_n set_v down_o concern_v our_o saviour_n his_o address_v of_o himself_o to_o the_o pronounce_v of_o this_o his_o last_o sentence_n and_o that_o be_v that_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o holy_a angel_n he_o will_v gather_v all_o those_o who_o he_o will_v judge_v before_o he_o and_o separate_v
the_o good_a from_o the_o bad_a the_o which_o because_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o four_o branch_n of_o our_o inquiry_n let_v we_o consider_v both_o that_o &_o this_o together_o as_o they_o be_v link_v together_o in_o our_o text_n question_n in_o what_o word_n be_v that_o do_v answer_n before_o the_o son_n of_o man_n say_v our_o saviour_n shall_v be_v gather_v all_o nation_n and_o he_o shall_v separate_v they_o one_o from_o another_o as_o a_o shepherd_n seperate_v the_o sheep_n from_o the_o goat_n and_o he_o shall_v set_v the_o sheep_n on_o his_o right_a hand_n and_o the_o goat_n on_o the_o left_a explication_n explication_n here_o indeed_o be_v one_o part_n of_o the_o preparation_n to_o the_o judgement_n link_v with_o a_o declaration_n of_o the_o person_n who_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v of_o the_o which_o first_o that_o the_o angel_n shall_v be_v the_o instrument_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o gather_v all_o before_o he_o and_o to_o make_v the_o separation_n of_o the_o one_o sort_n from_o the_o other_o we_o have_v see_v before_o matth._n 13.49_o and_o chap._n 24.31_o and_o this_o show_v that_o by_o the_o swift_a ministry_n of_o the_o holy_a angel_n that_o this_o judgement_n of_o our_o saviour_n shall_v be_v with_o most_o singular_a expedition_n consider_v the_o main_a greatness_n of_o the_o judgement_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n 1._o cor._n 15.51_o 52._o behold_v i_o show_v you_o a_o secret_a thing_n we_o shall_v not_o all_o sleep_n but_o we_o shall_v all_o be_v change_v in_o a_o moment_n in_o the_o twinck_n of_o a_o eye_n at_o the_o last_o trumpet_n etc._n etc._n nevertheless_o though_o the_o holy_a angel_n shall_v do_v it_o yet_o because_o they_o do_v it_o as_o the_o servant_n of_o our_o saviour_n therein_o therefore_o our_o saviour_n do_v ascribe_v it_o to_o himself_o in_o which_o respect_n it_o be_v that_o as_o he_o be_v often_o compare_v to_o a_o shepherd_n in_o feed_v and_o prepare_v his_o slocke_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o elect_a of_o god_n against_o the_o day_n of_o his_o appearance_n so_o now_o he_o do_v likewise_o from_o the_o same_o similitude_n describe_v the_o separation_n which_o he_o will_v at_o that_o day_n make_v betwixt_o the_o sheep_n that_o be_v all_o that_o belong_v unto_o he_o and_o the_o goat_n that_o be_v the_o wicked_a and_o reprobate_a as_o they_o be_v compare_v ezekiel_n 34._o insomuch_o as_o these_o kind_n of_o cattle_n be_v very_o contrary_a in_o many_o thing_n as_o there_o appear_v the_o sheep_n be_v harmless_a the_o goat_n be_v harmful_a they_o be_v a_o more_o sweet_a kind_n of_o cattle_n this_o more_o stink_a and_o unclean_a etc._n etc._n thus_o much_o of_o the_o preparation_n to_o this_o most_o reverend_a judgement_n concern_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o holy_a angel_n touch_v in_o these_o last_o word_n of_o our_o text._n now_o second_o concern_v the_o person_n that_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v the_o which_o be_v the_o four_o point_n of_o our_o inquiry_n as_o be_v say_v question_n who_o do_v our_o text_n describe_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v answer_n all_o mankind_n without_o exception_n both_o high_a and_o low_a young_a and_o old_a rich_a and_o poor_a learned_a and_o unlearned_a jew_n and_o grecian_a barbarian_a and_o scythian_a english_a and_o french_a bond_n and_o free_a good_a and_o have_v prince_n and_o people_n inferior_a magistrate_n and_o all_o subject_n judge_n themselves_o and_o all_o upon_o who_o they_o have_v at_o any_o time_n give_v judgement_n minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o their_o several_a flock_n and_o charge_n apostle_n prophet_n evangelist_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n martyr_n and_o their_o persecutor_n captain_n and_o soldier_n husband_n and_o wife_n parent_n and_o child_n master_n and_o servant_n all_o whosoever_o have_v receive_v life_n move_v and_o be_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n in_o all_o generation_n from_o the_o first_o man_n adam_n to_o the_o last_o that_o shall_v be_v find_v live_v upon_o the_o whole_a face_n of_o the_o earth_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n explication_n explication_n this_o be_v plain_a from_o the_o general_a speech_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n concern_v this_o matter_n our_o present_a text_n say_v in_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n that_o all_o nation_n shall_v be_v gather_v before_o he_o and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n 2._o cor._n 5.10_o we_o must_v all_o appear_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n and_o again_o rom._n 14.10.11.12_o we_o shall_v all_o appear_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n for_o it_o be_v write_v i_o live_v say_v the_o lord_n he_o bind_v it_o with_o a_o sacred_a oath_n and_o every_o knee_n shall_v bow_v to_o i_o and_o all_o tongue_n shall_v confess_v unto_o god_n so_o then_o every_o one_o of_o we_o shall_v give_v account_n unto_o god_n and_o gal._n 6.5_o every_o man_n shall_v bear_v his_o own_o burden_n read_v also_o revel_v 1.7_o every_o eye_n shall_v see_v he_o and_o chap._n 20.12_o i_o see_v say_v s._n john_n the_o dead_a both_o great_a and_o small_a stand_n before_o god_n etc._n etc._n neither_o can_v any_o man_n appeal_v from_o this_o judge_n to_o another_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o place_n of_o sanctuary_n privilege_v to_o stay_v the_o course_n of_o it_o but_o it_o will_v be_v say_v of_o some_o how_o can_v this_o be_v see_v all_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o world_n from_o the_o begin_n thereof_o to_o that_o age_n wherein_o our_o saviour_n shall_v come_v to_o execute_v this_o judgement_n shall_v be_v dead_a and_o rot_a touch_v their_o body_n yea_o and_o many_o thousand_o of_o they_o drown_v and_o burn_v to_o ash_n question_n what_o shall_v we_o answer_v to_o this_o answer_n all_o that_o be_v already_o dead_a and_o all_o that_o shall_v henceforth_o die_v before_o that_o day_n shall_v be_v raise_v up_o again_o with_o the_o same_o body_n wherein_o they_o live_v and_o die_v proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n it_o be_v very_o true_a for_o so_o we_o read_v act._n 24.15_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a shall_v be_v both_o of_o just_a and_o unjust_a and_o john_n 5.28_o our_o saviour_n himself_o affirm_v that_o the_o hour_n shall_v come_v in_o the_o which_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o grave_n shall_v hear_v his_o voice_n and_o come_v forth_o yea_o and_o as_o it_o be_v show_v to_o s._n john_n by_o special_a revelation_n by_o the_o same_o our_o saviour_n revel_v 20.13_o the_o sea_n shall_v give_v up_o the_o dead_a that_o be_v in_o it_o and_o death_n and_o hell_n shall_v deliver_v up_o the_o dead_a that_o be_v in_o they_o and_o thus_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o our_o saivour_n shall_v judge_v both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a act._n 10.24_o rom._n 14.9_o 1._o pet._n 4.5_o neither_o let_v any_o out_o of_o his_o faithless_a heart_n give_v place_n to_o any_o contradictory_n speculation_n as_o though_o this_o be_v impossible_a that_o all_o shall_v be_v raise_v up_o &_o that_o they_o shall_v stand_v in_o any_o horizon_n or_o space_n of_o the_o heaven_n or_o of_o the_o earth_n determine_v our_o sight_n for_o god_n who_o have_v make_v the_o world_n of_o nothing_o and_o by_o his_o word_n have_v and_o will_v propagate_v the_o whole_a increase_n and_o offspring_n of_o all_o mankind_n from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n he_o both_o can_v and_o will_v by_o the_o same_o his_o almighty_a power_n raise_v up_o gather_v together_o and_o bring_v all_o to_o give_v a_o account_n before_o he_o he_o know_v also_o without_o we_o in_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n how_o to_o do_v it_o and_o what_o compass_n of_o the_o earth_n will_v contain_v the_o whole_a number_n so_o that_o we_o may_v well_o leave_v all_o our_o proportion_n either_o arithmetical_a or_o geometrical_a to_o measure_v &_o determine_v this_o matter_n which_o infinite_o exceed_v all_o humane_a reach_n and_o if_o the_o present_a compass_n of_o the_o earth_n will_v not_o suffice_v god_n can_v in_o a_o moment_n stretch_v it_o out_o &_o enlarge_v it_o to_o the_o full_a capacity_n ten_o fold_n more_o than_o it_o be_v but_o cast_v aside_o all_o such_o curious_a and_o faithless_a speculation_n let_v we_o proceed_v to_o those_o necessary_a point_n which_o be_v yet_o behind_o and_o namely_o that_o we_o may_v make_v way_n to_o the_o sentence_n of_o that_o judgement_n which_o our_o saviour_n will_v give_v question_n shall_v all_o arise_v from_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o same_o manner_n and_o to_o the_o same_o end_n answer_n nothing_o less_o question_n how_o then_o answer_n only_o the_o faithful_a such_o as_o be_v and_o shall_v be_v dead_a until_o the_o appear_v of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n shall_v rise_v again_o with_o body_n make_v glorious_a and_o spiritual_a and_o such_o of_o they_o as_o shall_v be_v find_v live_v at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o bless_a appear_v shall_v immediate_o be_v change_v into_o the_o like_a glory_n
they_o as_o hypocrite_n now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o reason_n or_o rule_v of_o this_o first_o part_n of_o the_o sentence_n or_o judgement_n of_o our_o saviour_n concern_v they_o of_o his_o right_a hand_n question_n which_o be_v that_o for_o as_o our_o saviour_n tell_v we_o he_o will_v say_v i_o be_v a_o hunger_a and_o you_o give_v i_o meat_n i_o thirst_v and_o you_o give_v i_o drink_v i_o be_v a_o stanger_n and_o you_o lodge_v i_o i_o be_v naked_a and_o you_o clothe_v i_o i_o be_v sick_a and_o you_o visit_v i_o i_o be_v in_o prison_n and_o you_o come_v unto_o i_o explication_n explication_n these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o be_v say_v even_o now_o contain_v a_o reason_n and_o therein_o also_o that_o rule_n or_o law_n according_a to_o the_o which_o our_o saviour_n frame_v his_o judgement_n let_v we_o therefore_o consider_v of_o they_o in_o either_o respect_n and_o first_o in_o what_o sense_n they_o be_v to_o be_v account_v a_o reason_n of_o that_o part_n of_o the_o judgement_n which_o our_o saviour_n have_v express_v question_n how_o be_v that_o answer_n they_o may_v well_o be_v so_o account_v in_o diverse_a respect_n first_o in_o that_o they_o argue_v from_o a_o special_a instance_n of_o the_o manifold_a effect_n and_o work_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o those_o who_o he_o call_v the_o bless_a of_o his_o father_n that_o they_o be_v so_o indeed_o and_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n it_o prepare_v for_o all_o such_o second_o in_o that_o they_o show_v that_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o our_o saviour_n himself_o do_v so_o great_o esteem_v mercifulnesse_n and_o the_o fruit_n thereof_o towards_o his_o needy_a and_o afflict_a one_o when_o they_o proceed_v of_o true_a faith_n and_o obedience_n to_o god_n that_o he_o will_v of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n reward_v such_o as_o yield_v and_o practice_v they_o with_o no_o less_o reward_n then_o eternal_a life_n three_o in_o that_o they_o contain_v a_o direction_n to_o the_o elect_a child_n of_o god_n what_o way_n they_o must_v take_v and_o walk_v in_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v first_o glorify_v god_n here_o in_o this_o world_n and_o then_o be_v partaker_n of_o this_o glory_n of_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n for_o ever_o afterward_o final_o in_o that_o they_o show_v the_o child_n of_o god_n how_o they_o may_v comfortable_o assure_v themselves_o from_o the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o their_o faith_n that_o they_o be_v true_a believer_n the_o very_a elect_a of_o the_o father_n and_o heir_n of_o his_o eternal_a kingdom_n prepare_v for_o they_o from_o the_o beginning_n expsi_fw-la in_o all_o these_o respect_n indeed_o well_o may_v these_o latter_a word_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v a_o reason_n of_o the_o former_a part_n of_o his_o sentence_n or_o judgement_n concern_v the_o godly_a as_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o many_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n but_o before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o particular_n of_o this_o respective_a reason_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v carry_v the_o matter_n more_o plain_o before_o we_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v in_o a_o few_o word_n both_o the_o kind_n of_o the_o work_v here_o mention_v by_o our_o saviour_n and_o also_o the_o kind_n of_o those_o person_n to_o who_o they_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v the_o kind_n of_o the_o work_n be_v of_o true_a christian_n mercy_n pity_n and_o compassion_n our_o saviour_n mention_v four_o particular_n first_o feed_v which_o may_v well_o comprehend_v the_o give_v both_o of_o meat_n and_o drink_v second_o lodging_n three_o clothing_n four_o visit_v the_o which_o agree_v both_o to_o the_o show_v of_o mercy_n upon_o the_o sick_a and_o also_o upon_o such_o as_o be_v in_o prison_n some_o make_v six_o of_o they_o 1._o give_v of_o meat_n 2._o give_v of_o drink_n 3._o lodging_n 4._o clothing_n 5._o visit_v of_o the_o sick_a 6._o visit_v of_o prisoner_n but_o we_o be_v not_o to_o stand_v much_o upon_o the_o number_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o our_o saviour_n himself_o stand_v not_o upon_o for_o whereas_o there_o be_v other_o duty_n of_o mercy_n beside_o these_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o he_o mean_v not_o to_o exclude_v any_o one_o of_o they_o by_o the_o rehearsal_n of_o some_o he_o point_v to_o all_o the_o rest_n make_v choice_n of_o those_o that_o be_v most_o sensible_a and_o familiar_a even_o such_o as_o be_v to_o be_v most_o general_o practise_v among_o his_o people_n the_o person_n to_o who_o these_o work_n of_o mercy_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v they_o be_v to_o speak_v general_o all_o such_o as_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o the_o relief_n and_o succour_n mention_v we_o may_v reduce_v they_o to_o three_o head_n first_o those_o that_o be_v ordinary_o in_o want_n to_o wit_n the_o poor_a which_o be_v every_o where_o disperse_v among_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n of_o who_o our_o saviour_n have_v say_v before_o the_o poor_a you_o shall_v always_o have_v with_o you_o and_o that_o also_o by_o the_o very_a appointment_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o holy_a proverb_n which_o say_v the_o poor_a and_o the_o rich_a meet_v together_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o maker_n of_o they_o all_o for_o as_o it_o be_v say_v elsewhere_o the_o lord_n make_v poor_a and_o he_o make_v rich_a he_o make_v high_a and_o he_o make_v low_a of_o these_o speak_v our_o saviour_n luke_n 14.12_o when_o thou_o make_v a_o dinner_n or_o supper_n call_v not_o thy_o friend_n nor_o thy_o brethren_n nor_o thy_o kinsman_n nor_o thy_o rich_a neighbour_n &c_n &c_n but_o call_v the_o poor_a the_o maim_a the_o lame_a and_o the_o blind_a and_o thou_o shall_v be_v bless_v because_o they_o can_v recompense_v thou_o for_o thou_o shall_v be_v recompense_v at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o just_a the_o second_o sort_n may_v be_v understand_v of_o those_o that_o through_o persecution_n be_v drive_v from_o house_n and_o home_n for_o christ_n &_o his_o gospel_n sake_n concern_v which_o sort_n our_o saviour_n speak_v say_v when_o they_o persecute_v you_o in_o one_o city_n flee_v to_o another_o he_o understand_v it_o of_o such_o as_o for_o who_o escape_n god_n so_o provide_v that_o they_o do_v not_o by_o their_o flight_n dishonour_v his_o name_n or_o discourage_v and_o daunt_v the_o weak_a brethren_n the_o three_o sort_n be_v of_o those_o to_o who_o god_n deni_v the_o opportunity_n of_o flee_v or_o in_o their_o flight_n or_o otherwise_o be_v apprehend_v by_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o cast_v into_o prison_n according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o our_o saviour_n luke_n 21.12_o they_o will_v deliver_v you_o into_o prison_n of_o the_o which_o three_o sort_n the_o first_o though_o they_o have_v house_n and_o lodging_n such_o as_o they_o be_v may_v easy_o suffer_v hunger_n and_o thirst_n and_o also_o want_v clothing_n for_o they_o and_o their_o child_n the_o second_o sort_n though_o they_o have_v clothing_n and_o it_o may_v be_v for_o a_o while_n money_n in_o their_o purse_n yet_o shall_v they_o want_v safe_a &_o comfortable_a lodging_n in_o their_o travel_n if_o good_a christian_n do_v not_o entertain_v they_o yea_o in_o short_a time_n they_o may_v grow_v into_o their_o tatter_n &_o want_v money_n also_o to_o pay_v for_o victual_n necessary_a for_o they_o the_o three_o sort_n though_o they_o can_v be_v lodge_v at_o home_n yet_o unless_o the_o case_n be_v very_o straight_o they_o may_v be_v visit_v and_o relieve_v with_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o want_v though_o they_o be_v shut_v up_o in_o prison_n final_o some_o of_o every_o sort_n be_v sometime_o sick_a and_o then_o have_v need_n of_o special_a visit_n and_o look_v unto_o and_o of_o all_o these_o stand_v the_o rither_o sort_v bind_v to_o have_v a_o christian_n care_n to_o minister_v unto_o they_o according_a to_o their_o necessity_n lest_o they_o shall_v faint_v and_o be_v discourage_v under_o their_o affliction_n yea_o so_o do_v the_o rich_a sort_n stand_v bind_v that_o without_o the_o practice_n of_o these_o duty_n they_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o stand_v with_o comfort_n before_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o great_a day_n of_o his_o judgement_n as_o we_o shall_v more_o full_o see_v afterward_o when_o we_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o sentence_n which_o contain_v the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o wicked_a now_o touch_v the_o particular_a consideration_n of_o the_o reason_n which_o our_o saviour_n annex_v to_o the_o present_a part_n of_o his_o judgement_n for_o the_o acquit_v of_o the_o godly_a first_o that_o the_o duty_n of_o compassion_n and_o mercy_n which_o he_o mention_v be_v special_a testimony_n declare_v who_o be_v the_o bless_a of_o god_n for_o who_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v prepare_v even_o from_o the_o effect_n or_o work_v of_o god_n holy_a
do_v persecute_v the_o true_a faithful_a christian_n or_o at_o the_o least_o do_v neglect_v they_o be_v persecute_v let_v we_o therefore_o be_v careful_a to_o show_v ourselves_o while_o we_o be_v at_o liberty_n member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n in_o pity_v and_o relieve_n those_o that_o be_v in_o want_n and_o in_o trouble_n according_a to_o this_o excellent_a doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o as_o we_o be_v admonish_v heb._n 13.2.3_o let_v brotherlie_a love_n continue_v be_v not_o forgetful_a to_o lodge_v stranger_n etc._n etc._n remember_v they_o that_o be_v in_o bond_n as_o if_o you_o be_v bind_v with_o they_o and_o they_o that_o be_v in_o affliction_n as_o if_o you_o be_v also_o afflict_v in_o the_o body_n yea_o let_v we_o be_v prepare_v to_o suffer_v ourselves_o if_o so_o god_n shall_v show_v it_o to_o be_v his_o good_a will_n by_o callng_v of_o we_o forth_o thereunto_o but_o in_o no_o wise_a let_v we_o be_v like_o they_o that_o give_v themselves_o to_o pleasure_n without_o all_o fellow-feeling_n of_o the_o affliction_n of_o joseph_n according_a to_o that_o reproof_n of_o the_o prophet_n amos_n chap_v 6._o verse_n 1.2.3.4.5.6.7_o but_o yet_o one_o thing_n more_o insomuch_o as_o our_o saviour_n in_o all_o his_o speech_n of_o mercy_n may_v seem_v to_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o any_o to_o who_o that_o mercy_n which_o he_o will_v reward_v be_v show_v but_o of_o such_o as_o be_v christian_n even_o such_o as_o he_o call_v his_o brethren_n question_n do_v we_o not_o stand_v bind_v to_o relieve_v any_o other_o but_o such_o or_o if_o we_o do_v be_v there_o no_o promise_n of_o reward_n belong_v thereunto_o answer_n the_o apostle_n saint_n paul_n who_o both_o speak_v and_o write_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v plain_o that_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o do_v good_a unto_o all_o but_o special_o to_o they_o of_o the_o household_n of_o faith_n as_o we_o read_v gai_n chap_n 6._o the_o 10._o verse_n explication_n explication_n it_o be_v true_a all_o be_v to_o be_v succour_v yea_o even_o our_o enemy_n according_a to_o every_o man_n ability_n and_o as_o just_a cause_n be_v offer_v with_o such_o caution_n always_o as_o it_o must_v be_v to_o win_v they_o to_o the_o lord_n and_o so_o as_o the_o faithful_a in_o like_a necessity_n already_o gain_v and_o win_v must_v have_v as_o it_o be_v the_o double_a portion_n but_o to_o speak_v full_o of_o the_o right_a manner_n of_o exercise_v the_o fruit_n of_o mercy_n and_o beneficence_n it_o will_v require_v a_o large_a treatise_n beneficence_n a_o treatise_n of_o christian_n beneficence_n than_o now_o be_v meet_v to_o be_v stand_v upon_o i_o will_v refer_v you_o therefore_o to_o that_o treatise_n which_o be_v already_o write_v of_o this_o argument_n and_o publish_v to_o be_v read_v of_o you_o at_o your_o best_a leisure_n only_o this_o let_v we_o brief_o put_v ourselves_o in_o mind_n of_o that_o for_o want_v of_o due_a discretion_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o these_o duty_n the_o mercy_n of_o many_o be_v of_o no_o reckon_n before_o the_o lord_n as_o for_o example_n when_o of_o blind_a devotion_n or_o ignorance_n any_o be_v beneficial_a to_o papist_n and_o other_o heretic_n or_o of_o a_o fond_a pity_n to_o vagrant_a and_o vagabond_o person_n as_o though_o such_o be_v commend_v to_o our_o care_n by_o our_o saviour_n and_o so_o they_o be_v indeed_o but_o to_o such_o a_o care_n as_o wherein_o it_o be_v of_o late_a year_n well_o provide_v for_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v because_v to_o leave_v their_o wander_a life_n and_o to_o live_v so_o as_o they_o may_v in_o a_o better_a course_n and_o order_n be_v provide_v for_o in_o which_o course_n god_n of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n grant_v that_o they_o may_v be_v due_o look_v unto_o and_o as_o touch_v the_o present_a instruction_n of_o our_o saviour_n we_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o they_o be_v no_o such_o disorder_a person_n who_o relief_n from_o door_n to_o door_n he_o will_v so_o high_o commend_v and_o reward_n at_o the_o last_o day_n wherefore_o that_o we_o deceive_v not_o ourselves_o in_o mistake_v the_o work_n of_o mercy_n which_o our_o saviour_n according_a to_o this_o his_o holy_a doctrine_n will_v then_o reward_v these_o thing_n hereafter_o follow_v be_v very_o requisite_a first_o that_o they_o themselves_o who_o do_v show_v mercy_n be_v true_a believer_n and_o not_o loose_a and_o carnal_a professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o the_o work_n of_o mercy_n either_o of_o heathen_a man_n or_o of_o hypocritical_a christian_n come_v not_o into_o this_o high_a reckon_n before_o god_n second_o that_o they_o have_v special_a regard_n of_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o mercy_n and_o that_o of_o love_n which_o they_o bear_v not_o so_o much_o to_o they_o as_o to_o our_o saviour_n himself_o who_o profess_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o hunger_a when_o they_o be_v hungry_a etc._n etc._n three_o that_o they_o be_v not_o weary_a of_o well_o do_v for_o one_o or_o a_o few_o good_a work_n as_o our_o saviour_n give_v to_o understand_v by_o his_o multiply_v of_o many_o work_n together_o neither_o that_o we_o stay_v in_o the_o duty_n express_v neglect_v the_o rest_n but_o that_o we_o join_v all_o other_o of_o like_a kind_n with_o these_o such_o as_o be_v instruction_n to_o the_o ignorant_a counsel_n to_o the_o unstable_a consolation_n to_o the_o feeble_a mind_v remit_v of_o debt_n to_o those_o that_o have_v not_o to_o pay_v lend_v to_o preserve_v those_o from_o debt_n &_o the_o danger_n thereof_o who_o be_v ready_a to_o fall_v into_o it_o preservation_n out_o of_o any_o other_o danger_n as_o of_o imprisonment_n if_o we_o may_v by_o any_o lawful_a mean_n deliver_v any_o that_o they_o fall_v not_o unjust_o into_o it_o final_o prayer_n that_o alone_o if_o we_o can_v be_v otherwise_o helpful_a four_o that_o they_o be_v not_o only_o beneficial_a to_o the_o christian_n of_o great_a note_n and_o common_a estimation_n in_o the_o church_n but_o also_o even_o to_o the_o mean_a and_o least_o among_o they_o for_o so_o say_v our_o saviour_n express_o five_o that_o they_o put_v no_o confidence_n in_o their_o work_n how_o many_o or_o how_o great_a so_o ever_o they_o be_v in_o their_o own_o privity_n or_o in_o the_o eye_n and_o judgement_n of_o any_o other_o man_n and_o such_o a_o disposition_n do_v our_o saviour_n seem_v to_o respect_n when_o he_o describe_v they_o say_v when_o see_v we_o thou_o a_o hunger_a and_o feed_v thou_o etc._n etc._n six_o that_o they_o do_v not_o think_v that_o these_o work_n of_o mercy_n do_v privilege_n they_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v negligent_a and_o careless_a in_o any_o other_o duty_n of_o true_a christian_a love_n and_o godliness_n for_o as_o we_o read_v math._n 5.19.20_o whosoever_o break_v any_o of_o the_o least_o commandment_n of_o god_n he_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o least_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n final_o that_o we_o do_v no_o way_n misconstrue_v this_o description_n of_o our_o saviour_n last_o judgement_n we_o may_v not_o think_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o long_a time_n grant_v for_o man_n to_o plead_v for_o themselves_o after_o the_o manner_n use_v here_o below_o in_o earthly_a assize_n and_o judgement_n for_o all_o thing_n shall_v doubtless_o be_v both_o begin_v and_o also_o finish_v with_o singular_a celerity_n and_o expedition_n insomuch_o as_o the_o separation_n as_o we_o have_v see_v be_v so_o make_v before_o hand_n that_o the_o judgement_n of_o one_o sort_n shall_v be_v the_o common_a judgement_n of_o all_o of_o the_o same_o sort_n as_o well_o touch_v the_o godly_a as_o the_o wicked_a only_o the_o order_n be_v describe_v by_o our_o saviour_n touch_v certain_a of_o the_o circumstance_n in_o such_o manner_n as_o may_v best_o serve_v for_o the_o instruction_n of_o those_o that_o belong_v unto_o he_o how_o they_o be_v even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n to_o prepare_v themselves_o that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v at_o his_o appear_v and_o how_o in_o substance_n and_o effect_n it_o shall_v be_v accomplish_v though_o otherwise_o for_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o glorious_a and_o reverend_a as_o now_o we_o can_v full_o conceive_v of_o it_o no_o more_o than_o we_o be_v able_a to_o look_v upon_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o brightness_n thereof_o and_o thus_o far_o be_v it_o speak_v concern_v the_o former_a part_n of_o the_o sentence_n of_o our_o saviour_n for_o the_o acquit_v of_o the_o faithful_a as_o well_o touch_v the_o sentence_n itself_o as_o the_o reason_n or_o law_n and_o rule_v and_o also_o concern_v the_o clear_n of_o that_o doubt_n which_o our_o saviour_n see_v may_v arise_v from_o the_o same_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o judgement_n be_v yet_o behind_o question_n which_o be_v that_o answer_n then_o say_v
our_o saviour_n shall_v he_o that_o be_v the_o king_n say_v unto_o they_o on_o the_o left_a hand_n depart_v from_o i_o you_o curse_v into_o everlasting_a fire_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n for_o i_o be_v a_o hunger_a and_o you_o give_v i_o no_o meat_n i_o thirst_v and_o you_o give_v i_o no_o drink_n i_o be_v a_o stranger_n and_o you_o lodge_v i_o not_o i_o be_v naked_a and_o you_o clothe_v i_o not_o sick_a and_o in_o prison_n and_o you_o visit_v i_o not_o then_o shall_v they_o also_o answer_v he_o say_v lord_n when_o see_v we_o thou_o a_o hunger_a or_o a_o thirst_n or_o a_o stranger_n or_o naked_a or_o sick_a or_o in_o prison_n and_o do_v not_o minister_v unto_o thou_o then_o shall_v he_o answer_v they_o and_o say_v very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o do_v it_o not_o to_o one_o of_o the_o least_o of_o these_o you_o do_v it_o not_o to_o i_o explication_n explication_n our_o saviour_n have_v finish_v the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o judgement_n he_o do_v in_o these_o word_n in_o like_a order_n describe_v the_o second_o first_o set_v down_o the_o sentence_n or_o judgement_n itself_o second_o the_o reason_n or_o rule_v of_o it_o and_o three_o the_o explication_n of_o the_o reason_n to_o the_o justify_n of_o the_o sentence_n against_o the_o excuse_n or_o plea_n of_o the_o wicked_a but_o before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o word_n of_o this_o part_n of_o our_o text_n two_o thing_n may_v not_o unprofitable_o be_v observe_v of_o us._n first_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o order_n why_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v first_o judge_n that_o be_v to_o say_v absolve_v and_o acquire_v yea_o pronounce_v the_o sentence_n of_o perfect_a salvation_n and_o glory_n concern_v the_o godly_a before_o he_o will_v come_v to_o give_v sentence_n of_o condemnation_n against_o the_o wicked_a and_o second_o to_o what_o end_n our_o saviour_n shall_v thus_o diligent_o set_v forth_o and_o describe_v this_o latter_a part_n of_o his_o judgement_n see_v the_o godly_a be_v free_a from_o the_o condemnation_n of_o it_o and_o as_o for_o the_o wicked_a they_o will_v not_o regard_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v say_v to_o move_v they_o to_o take_v the_o way_n to_o escape_v it_o question_n first_o therefore_o what_o may_v be_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o order_n which_o our_o saviour_n use_v answer_n this_o it_o a_o real_a demonstration_n that_o the_o lord_n delight_v more_o in_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o godly_a then_o in_o the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o wicked_a simple_o consider_v proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n it_o be_v so_o indeed_o and_o therefore_o do_v the_o lord_n profess_v by_o his_o holy_a prophet_n that_o he_o do_v not_o delight_n in_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n but_o rather_o desire_v that_o he_o may_v repent_v and_o be_v save_v as_o we_o read_v ezeck_n 18._o this_o also_o do_v the_o lord_n account_v the_o perfection_n of_o his_o glory_n to_o be_v a_o god_n of_o infinite_a mercy_n to_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o such_o as_o shall_v believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o his_o son_n and_o unfeigned_o repent_v they_o of_o their_o sin_n as_o ephes_n 1.6_o god_n the_o father_n have_v predestinate_v we_o to_o be_v adopt_v through_o jesus_n christ_n unto_o himself_o according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o will_n to_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o beside_o this_o insomuch_o as_o the_o lord_n have_v appoint_v in_o his_o counsel_n that_o his_o elect_a as_o a_o part_n of_o their_o advancement_n shall_v judge_v the_o world_n the_o apostle_n to_o sit_v upon_o twelve_o throne_n to_o judge_v the_o 12._o tribe_n of_o israel_n as_o we_o read_v mat_n 19.28_o and_o all_o other_o of_o the_o faithful_a in_o their_o measure_n and_o degree_n as_o 1._o cor_n 6_o 2_o 3_o and_z revel_v 3.21_o to_o he_o that_o overcom_v will_v i_o grant_v to_o sit_v with_o i_o in_o my_o throne_n even_o as_o i_o overcome_v and_o sit_v with_o my_o father_n in_o his_o throne_n nevertheless_o this_o judge_a of_o the_o world_n by_o the_o holy_a apostle_n and_o all_o other_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n it_o be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o if_o either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o shall_v communicate_v with_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o our_o saviour_n which_o be_v only_o proper_o &_o entire_o belong_v to_o himself_o but_o that_o they_o shall_v after_o a_o sort_n judge_v and_o condemn_v the_o world_n by_o their_o acknowledge_v &_o consent_v to_o the_o righteousness_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n execute_v therein_o thus_o much_o concern_v the_o first_o point_n now_o second_o to_o what_o end_n do_v our_o saviour_n describe_v his_o proceed_n which_o shall_v be_v against_o the_o wicked_a as_o well_o as_o he_o have_v do_v that_o which_o shall_v be_v on_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o godly_a see_v as_o be_v say_v the_o godly_a be_v free_a from_o it_o and_o the_o wicked_a reprobate_n will_v not_o be_v reclaim_v or_o make_v careful_a to_o avoid_v it_o by_o any_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v say_v question_n to_o what_o end_n therefore_o may_v our_o saviour_n be_v think_v to_o do_v it_o answer_n though_o it_o be_v certain_a and_o true_a that_o there_o be_v no_o condemnation_n to_o the_o godly_a rom_n 8.1_o neither_o will_n the_o wicked_a by_o any_o mean_n grow_v to_o be_v wise_a as_o we_o read_v isai_n 26.10.11_o prou_z 27.22_o yet_o it_o be_v of_o very_o good_a use_n in_o respect_n of_o either_o of_o they_o question_n how_o may_v that_o be_v answer_n first_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o godly_a who_o have_v great_a need_n both_o to_o be_v holpen_v against_o that_o security_n and_o carelessness_n which_o be_v ready_a to_o creep_v upon_o they_o if_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v awake_v by_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o fearful_a judgment_n of_o god_n and_o special_o by_o the_o consideration_n of_o his_o last_o judgement_n who_o also_o have_v like_o need_n to_o be_v comfort_v against_o the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o wicked_a here_o in_o this_o life_n by_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o most_o contrary_a state_n and_o condition_n wherein_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v for_o one_o contrary_n be_v make_v more_o lightsome_a and_o clear_a by_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o other_o as_o if_o white_a and_o black_a be_v lay_v together_o and_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o wicked_a there_o be_v likewise_o very_o good_a use_n of_o the_o publish_n of_o this_o their_o last_o judgement_n for_o although_o they_o will_v not_o learn_v hereby_o to_o repent_v that_o happy_o they_o may_v escape_v it_o yet_o it_o do_v some_o thing_n restrain_v they_o from_o extremity_n of_o wickedness_n which_o otherwise_o they_o will_v the_o rather_o run_v into_o and_o if_o it_o have_v not_o this_o effect_n yet_o shall_v they_o be_v the_o rather_o leave_v without_o all_o colour_n of_o excuse_n these_o thing_n be_v so_o plain_o agreeable_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o we_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o allege_v any_o particular_a proof_n thereof_o at_o this_o time_n none_o can_v by_o any_o colour_n of_o reason_n deny_v these_o use_n of_o the_o description_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n concern_v the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o beside_o that_o which_o be_v already_o say_v it_o be_v furthermore_o profitable_a to_o those_o of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n who_o be_v lie_v yet_o in_o their_o sin_n to_o the_o end_n their_o conversion_n may_v be_v the_o more_o speedy_o and_o effectual_o further_v thereby_o for_o who_o hear_v and_o believe_v at_o any_o time_n how_o woeful_a the_o state_n of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v be_v and_o that_o also_o to_o continue_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o will_v not_o if_o there_o be_v any_o the_o least_o grace_n from_o this_o so_o fearful_a a_o admonition_n begin_v to_o withdraw_v himself_o from_o the_o way_n of_o the_o wicked_a that_o he_o may_v be_v deliver_v from_o the_o partake_n of_o their_o most_o terrible_a torment_n but_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n wherein_o first_o concern_v the_o sentence_n itself_o let_v we_o ob_v rue_v the_o contrariety_n betwixt_o it_o and_o the_o former_a in_o the_o several_a branch_n of_o it_o for_o in_o that_o he_o call_v and_o incourage_v the_o godly_a to_o come_v unto_o he_o say_v come_v unto_o i_o he_o e_o he_o abandon_v the_o wicked_a from_o he_o say_v depart_v from_o i_o there_o he_o call_v the_o godly_a the_o bless_a of_o his_o father_n here_o he_o call_v the_o wicked_a curse_v once_o there_o he_o say_v that_o the_o kingdom_n be_v prepare_v before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n for_o the_o child_n of_o god_n here_o he_o affirm_v that_o hell_n fire_n be_v prepare_v for_o the_o wicked_a there_o he_o give_v to_o understand_v that_o the_o godly_a shall_v have_v their_o communion_n
then_o sure_o it_o can_v not_o be_v but_o the_o serious_a meditation_n &_o remembrance_n of_o it_o will_v have_v these_o bless_a effect_n and_o working_n in_o our_o heart_n which_o you_o have_v speak_v of_o now_o therefore_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v help_v ourselves_o this_o way_n let_v we_o consider_v some_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o do_v call_v upon_o we_o to_o make_v such_o use_n as_o have_v be_v mention_v from_o the_o reverend_a meditation_n &_o expectation_n of_o it_o and_o first_o of_o all_o touch_v the_o leave_v and_o forsake_v of_o sin_n by_o reason_n of_o this_o judgement_n of_o our_o saviour_n which_o be_v to_o come_v let_v we_o read_v and_o consider_v act_n 3.18.19_o amend_v your_o life_n therefore_o say_v the_o apostle_n and_o turn_v that_o your_o sin_n may_v be_v put_v away_o when_o the_o time_n of_o refresh_v shall_v come_v from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o shall_v send_v jesus_n christ_n who_o before_o be_v preach_v unto_o you_o read_v also_o ch_n 17.30.31_o where_o the_o apostle_n paul_n endeavour_v by_o this_o argument_n to_o move_v the_o athenian_n to_o repent_v of_o their_o former_a gross_a superstition_n and_o idolatry_n and_o ch_z 24._o v._n 26._o where_o he_o use_v the_o same_o argument_n to_o persuade_v unhappy_a foelix_n if_o possible_o it_o may_v have_v be_v to_o repent_v of_o his_o unjust_a and_o voluptuous_a life_n the_o which_o most_o weighty_a persuasion_n because_o both_o the_o athenian_n and_o also_o foelix_n despise_v nothing_o can_v prevail_v to_o do_v they_o good_a we_o read_v not_o of_o any_o christian_n church_n flourish_a at_o athens_n in_o the_o apostle_n day_n as_o be_v in_o many_o other_o city_n to_o who_o they_o direct_v their_o epistle_n &_o namely_o in_o thessalonica_n of_o which_o it_o be_v testify_v that_o the_o citizen_n thereof_o harken_v to_o this_o doctrine_n turn_v to_o god_n from_o idol_n to_o serve_v the_o love_a and_o true_a god_n and_o to_o look_v for_o his_o son_n from_o heaven_n who_o he_o raise_v from_o the_o dead_a even_o jesus_n who_o deliver_v we_o from_o the_o wrath_n to_o come_v 1._o ep_n 1.9.10_o and_o so_o become_v one_o of_o the_o most_o famous_a church_n in_o all_o the_o world_n and_o for_o the_o leave_v of_o the_o whole_a vanity_n of_o this_o world_n even_o to_o this_o purpose_n that_o we_o may_v set_v our_o heart_n unfeigned_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o princely_a preacher_n infer_v upon_o the_o whole_a discourse_n go_v before_o in_o the_o book_n call_v ecclesiastes_n be_v very_o notable_a from_o the_o weight_n of_o this_o argument_n let_v we_o hear_v the_o end_n of_o all_o say_v k._n solomon_n fear_v god_n &_o keep_v his_o commandment_n for_o this_o be_v all_o that_o pertain_v to_o man_n for_o god_n will_v bring_v everyworke_n unto_o judgement_n with_o every_o secret_a thing_n whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o evil_n read_v also_o heb._n 1._o v._o 10.11.12_o &_o 1._o ep_n of_o john_n ch_n 2._o verse_n 15.16.17_o &_o philip_n 3_o 7_o 8_o 9_o 10_o 11._o wherefore_o that_o we_o may_v effectual_o awaken_v ourselves_o out_o of_o our_o natural_a security_n it_o be_v to_o singular_a purpose_n that_o every_o one_o of_o we_o do_v bethink_v ourselves_o earnest_o of_o the_o come_n of_o this_o judge_n who_o be_v privy_a to_o all_o our_o way_n in_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o our_o life_n childhood_n youth_n man_n age_n middle_a age_n and_o old_a age_n &_o that_o both_o in_o our_o single_a life_n &_o also_o in_o our_o marry_a estate_n whether_o in_o magistracy_n or_o in_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n &c_n &c_n who_o also_o judge_v righteous_a judgement_n without_o respect_n of_o person_n etc._n etc._n it_o the_o malefactor_n will_v due_o think_v of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o earthly_a judge_n to_o go_v his_o circuit_n of_o assize_n how_o he_o shall_v come_v with_o the_o power_n &_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n accompany_v with_o all_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o shire_n &c_n &c_n to_o assist_v he_o in_o do_v of_o justice_n special_o if_o he_o do_v know_v before_o that_o he_o can_v not_o escape_v but_o must_v be_v apprehend_v and_o bring_v before_o he_o it_o will_v sure_o cause_v he_o to_o take_v heed_n of_o break_v the_o king_n peace_n much_o more_o will_v the_o due_a meditation_n of_o the_o most_o glorious_a &_o fearful_a appearance_n of_o the_o most_o high_a k_o of_o king_n our_o lo_o jesus_n at_o the_o last_o day_n be_v effectual_a to_o stay_v we_o from_o sin_v against_o the_o divine_a majesty_n of_o god_n see_v we_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o none_o shall_v possible_o escape_v this_o universal_a judgement_n of_o he_o for_o what_o be_v the_o greatness_n of_o any_o earthly_a prince_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o heavenly_a majesty_n of_o this_o our_o divine_a judge_n such_o as_o it_o shall_v be_v at_o that_o time_n what_o be_v their_o company_n of_o justice_n &c_n &c_n to_o the_o train_n of_o infinite_a thousand_o of_o the_o holy_a angel_n and_o how_o little_a be_v their_o temporal_a penalty_n in_o comparison_n of_o god_n infinite_a and_o eternal_a judgement_n wherefore_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v take_v the_o right_a course_n to_o escape_v this_o most_o fearful_a judgement_n of_o god_n let_v we_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n every_o one_o of_o we_o for_o our_o part_n make_v our_o profitable_a use_n of_o all_o those_o judgement_n of_o god_n which_o he_o bring_v forth_o daily_o in_o that_o he_o send_v war_n plague_n famine_n &c_n &c_n for_o all_o of_o they_o be_v send_v as_o admonitor_n remembrancer_n and_o forerunner_n of_o that_o great_a and_o last_o judgement_n for_o so_o as_o we_o have_v see_v before_o do_v our_o saviour_n give_v to_o understand_v in_o his_o description_n of_o the_o forego_n sign_n of_o his_o come_n to_o this_o judgement_n and_o it_o be_v that_o which_o god_n have_v after_o a_o sort_n common_o imprint_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n for_o when_o thing_n fall_v out_o any_o thing_n strange_o every_o one_o be_v ready_a to_o say_v all_o thing_n grow_v so_o ill_o that_o i_o think_v the_o world_n be_v near_o to_o a_o end_n etc._n etc._n final_o we_o must_v well_o consider_v concern_v this_o first_o point_n that_o we_o must_v leave_v and_o forsake_v our_o sin_n past_a with_o godly_a sorrow_n for_o they_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v escape_v this_o judgement_n for_o we_o know_v who_o tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v godly_a sorrow_n which_o cause_v true_a and_o unfeigned_a repentance_n now_o touch_v the_o second_o point_n that_o be_v to_o say_v watchfulness_n against_o sin_n for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v we_o may_v read_v how_o it_o be_v persuade_v from_o the_o consideration_n of_o this_o last_o judgement_n namely_o from_o the_o uncertain_a certainty_n of_o it_o mark_v chap_n 13._o verse_n 32._o for_o like_a as_o the_o death_n of_o every_o man_n be_v most_o certain_a but_o the_o point_n of_o the_o time_n thereof_o unknown_a so_o be_v the_o day_n of_o the_o general_a judgement_n yea_o so_o uncertain_a that_o as_o our_o saviour_n himself_o say_v in_o that_o place_n of_o saint_n mark_v not_o only_o the_o angel_n of_o heaven_n but_o also_o the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o in_o that_o he_o be_v man_n be_v before_o his_o resurrection_n ignorant_a of_o the_o day_n and_o hour_n of_o it_o and_o that_o the_o father_n only_o and_o no_o creature_n beside_o be_v to_o that_o time_n privy_a to_o it_o though_o we_o shall_v grant_v that_o our_o saviour_n since_o his_o glorification_n do_v know_v it_o even_o in_o that_o he_o be_v man_n all_o other_o remain_v as_o ignorant_a of_o it_o still_o as_o ever_o before_o whereupon_o our_o saviour_n warn_v and_o exhort_v all_o that_o they_o do_v watch_v lest_o they_o shall_v be_v find_v unprepared_a as_o we_o read_v from_o the_o 33._o verse_n to_o the_o end_n of_o that_o chapter_n &_o as_o we_o have_v see_v at_o large_a before_o and_o luke_n 21.34_o take_v heed_n to_o yourselves_o say_v our_o saviour_n lest_o your_o heart_n shall_v be_v oppress_v etc._n etc._n for_o as_o a_o snare_n shall_v it_o come_v etc._n etc._n watch_z therefore_o and_o pray_v continual_o that_o you_o may_v be_v vouchsafe_v worthy_a to_o escape_v all_o these_o thing_n furthermore_o touch_v watchfulness_n against_o sin_n from_o this_o argument_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n read_v also_o 1._o thes_n 5._o verse_n 6.7_o therefore_o let_v we_o not_o sleep_v as_o do_v other_o but_o let_v we_o watch_v and_o be_v sober_a etc._n etc._n and_o revel_v 14.9.10.11_o and_o ch_z 16.15_o behold_v i_o come_v as_o a_o thief_n bless_a be_v he_o that_o watch_v and_o keep_v his_o garment_n lest_o he_o walk_v naked_a and_o man_n see_v his_o filthiness_n three_o for_o diligent_a study_n and_o constant_a practice_n of_o godliness_n in_o the_o fear_n
of_o god_n how_o this_o be_v urge_v from_o the_o force_n of_o the_o same_o argument_n read_v 1._o joh_n 2.28.29_o little_o child_n say_v the_o apostle_n abide_v you_o in_o he_o that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o may_v be_v bold_a and_o not_o be_v ashamed_a before_o he_o at_o his_o come_n if_o you_o know_v that_o he_o be_v righteous_a know_v you_o that_o he_o which_o do_v righteous_o be_v bear_v of_o he_o and_o chap_n 3._o verse_n 2.3_o dear_o belove_v now_o be_v we_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o yet_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v what_o we_o shall_v be_v &_o we_o know_v that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o shall_v be_v like_o he_o for_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v and_o every_o man_n that_o have_v this_o hope_n in_o he_o purge_v himself_o even_o as_o he_o be_v pure_a read_v also_o 1._o tim_n 6.13.14_o and_o 2._o ep_v 4.1.2_o where_o a_o most_o earnest_a charge_n be_v lay_v upon_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o they_o be_v faithful_a in_o their_o office_n as_o they_o will_v answer_v it_o at_o the_o appear_v of_o our_o saviour_n to_o judge_v all_o flesh_n this_o move_v the_o apostle_n themselves_o to_o be_v careful_a in_o the_o discharge_n of_o their_o duty_n in_o their_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n 2._o cor_n 5.9_o 10._o and_o general_o it_o ought_v to_o move_v all_o to_o the_o like_a care_n in_o the_o duty_n of_o their_o several_a calling_n 2._o pet_n 3.11.12.13.14_o to_o this_o end_n also_o tend_v all_o the_o parable_n of_o our_o saviour_n whereof_o we_o have_v hear_v before_o mat_n ch_n 24._o &_o 25._o and_o luke_n 12.35_o 36._o etc._n etc._n and_o in_o other_o place_n of_o the_o evangelist_n touch_v constancy_n in_o godliness_n the_o holy_a apostle_n do_v earnest_o pray_v for_o it_o on_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o christian_n to_o who_o they_o write_v even_o from_o this_o consideration_n as_o philip_n 1_o 9_o etc._n etc._n and_o 1._o thes_n 3_o 12.13_o and_o chap_n 5_o 23.24_o for_o the_o obtain_n of_o which_o grace_n of_o constancy_n they_o give_v all_o encouragement_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v partaker_n of_o it_o whosoever_o will_v cheerful_o seek_v after_o it_o according_a to_o that_o 1_o cor_n 1_o 8_o 9_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v confirm_v you_o to_o the_o end_n that_o you_o may_v be_v blameless_a in_o his_o day_n god_n be_v faithful_a etc._n etc._n and_o in_o the_o epistle_n of_o jude_n verse_n 24._o god_n be_v able_a to_o keep_v we_o that_o we_o fall_v not_o and_o to_o present_v we_o faultless_a before_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o glory_n with_o joy_n and_o 1._o thes_n 5_o 9_o 10._o of_o the_o duty_n of_o love_n and_o mercy_n towards_o christian_n be_v in_o outward_a want_n and_o distress_n how_o they_o be_v persuade_v from_o the_o description_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n by_o our_o saviour_n himself_o we_o have_v see_v before_o and_o that_o it_o be_v mighty_a to_o move_v we_o to_o pity_v poor_a sinner_n that_o lie_v in_o their_o sin_n to_o their_o extreme_a peril_n without_o repentance_n whether_o they_o be_v our_o child_n or_o servant_n or_o friend_n or_o even_o our_o very_a enemy_n we_o may_v consider_v from_o the_o exhortation_n of_o the_o apostle_n jude_n verse_n 20_o 21_o 22_o 23._o but_o you_o belove_v edisie_v yourselves_o in_o your_o most_o holy_a faith_n etc._n etc._n and_o have_v compassion_n of_o some_o in_o put_v difference_n and_o other_o save_v which_o fear_n pull_v they_o out_o of_o the_o fire_n etc._n etc._n we_o may_v consider_v it_o also_o from_o the_o example_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o mention_v a_o little_a before_o 2._o cor_n 5._o we_o know_v the_o terror_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v paul_n do_v persuade_v man_n etc._n etc._n and_o colos_n 1.28_o we_o preach_v christ_n say_v the_o same_o apostle_n who_o in_o the_o verse_n before_o he_o call_v the_o hope_n of_o glory_n admonish_v every_o man_n and_o teach_v every_o man_n in_o all_o wisdom_n that_o we_o may_v present_v every_o man_n perfect_a in_o christ_n jesus_n etc._n etc._n and_o who_o i_o pray_v you_o can_v but_o rue_v to_o think_v in_o his_o heart_n that_o either_o his_o wife_n or_o his_o child_n or_o his_o friend_n yea_o or_o his_o enemy_n as_o be_v say_v shall_v through_o any_o default_n or_o negligence_n on_o his_o part_n be_v throw_v into_o endless_a easeles_a and_o remediless_a extremity_n of_o unspeakable_a torment_n among_o other_o duty_n it_o may_v not_o be_v forget_v of_o we_o that_o we_o do_v stand_v bind_v to_o be_v very_o careful_a to_o celebrate_v most_o grateful_o the_o memorial_n of_o the_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n by_o our_o often_o resort_v to_o the_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n from_o time_n to_o time_n in_o every_o generation_n even_o till_o his_o come_n again_o as_o we_o be_v admonish_v 1._o cor_n ch_n 11.26_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n the_o care_n of_o perform_v these_o duty_n faithful_o and_o constant_o in_o our_o several_a calling_n with_o regardful_a remembrance_n of_o this_o come_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o judgement_n it_o do_v cause_n exceed_v joy_n to_o the_o conscience_n of_o every_o christian_a as_o may_v appear_v from_o the_o example_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n and_o of_o other_o christian_n for_o they_o have_v care_n to_o have_v a_o good_a conscience_n in_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n act_n 24_o 15_o 16._o they_o do_v likewise_o obtain_v exceed_v peace_n and_o joy_n to_o the_o same_o their_o conscience_n in_o hope_n of_o the_o same_o at_o the_o last_o day_n according_a to_o that_o which_o we_o read_v further_o phi_n 3.20.21_o 1._o thes_n 2.19.20_o for_o what_o be_v our_o hope_n or_o joy_n or_o crown_n of_o rejoice_v be_v not_o you_o even_o it_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n at_o his_o come_n yes_o you_o be_v our_o glory_n and_o joy_n and_o 2._o tim._n 4._o verse_n 6_o 7.8_o a_o like_a notable_a place_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n now_o four_o concern_v patience_n with_o joyfulness_n in_o all_o present_a trouble_n from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o same_o argument_n beside_o the_o example_n of_o paul_n last_o allege_v 2._o tim_n 4.5_o etc._n etc._n wherein_o the_o same_o be_v evident_a let_v we_o hearken_v to_o the_o exhortation_n of_o the_o apostle_n james_n ch_n 5._o five_o 7._o be_v you_o patient_a therefore_o say_v he_o unto_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n behold_v the_o husbandman_n wait_v for_o the_o precious_a fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n etc._n etc._n read_v also_o heb_fw-mi 10.32.35.36_o and_o 1._o pet_n 1.3.4.5.6.7.8.9_o and_o ch_z 4_o 12.13_o moreover_o we_o have_v the_o promise_n that_o if_o we_o suffer_v with_o our_o saviour_n christ_n we_o shall_v be_v glorify_v with_o he_o rom_n 8_o 17_o 18._o and_o 2._o tim_n 2.11.12_o it_o be_v a_o true_a say_n etc._n etc._n and_o luke_n 22._o verse_n 28.29.30_o you_o be_v they_o say_v our_o saviour_n who_o continue_v with_o i_o in_o my_o tentation_n therefore_o i_o appoint_v unto_o you_o a_o kingdom_n as_o my_o father_n have_v appoint_v to_o i_o that_o you_o may_v eat_v and_o drink_v at_o my_o table_n in_o my_o kingdom_n and_o fit_a on_o seat_n and_o judge_v the_o twelve_o tribe_n of_o israel_n five_o that_o the_o reverend_a consideration_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n aught_o to_o restrain_v we_o from_o rash_a &_o unaduised_a judge_v of_o other_o the_o apostle_n paul_n teach_v we_o rom_n 14._o v._n 10._o etc._n etc._n why_o say_v the_o holy_a apostle_n do_v thou_o judge_v thy_o brother_n or_o why_o do_v thou_o despise_v thy_o brother_n for_o we_o shall_v all_o appear_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ._n for_o it_o be_v write_v i_o live_v say_v the_o lord_n &_o every_o knee_n shall_v bow_v to_o i_o and_o all_o tongue_n shall_v confess_v unto_o god_n so_o then_o every_o one_o of_o we_o shall_v give_v account_n of_o himself_o unto_o god_n let_v we_o not_o therefore_o judge_v one_o another_o any_o more_o but_o use_v your_o judgement_n rather_o in_o this_o that_o no_o man_n put_v a_o occasion_n to_o fall_v or_o a_o stumble_a block_n before_o his_o brother_n and_o james_n chap_v 4.12_o there_o be_v one_o lawgiver_n which_o be_v able_a to_o save_v &_o to_o destroy_v who_o be_v thou_o that_o iudge_v another_o man_n &_o 1_o cor_n 4.5_o judge_n nothing_o before_o the_o time_n until_o the_o lord_n come_v who_o will_v lighten_v thing_n that_o be_v in_o darkness_n &_o make_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o heart_n manifest_a &_o then_o shall_v every_o man_n have_v praise_n of_o god_n it_o be_v the_o same_o precept_n which_o our_o saviour_n himself_o give_v matth_n 7.1_o judge_v not_o that_o you_o be_v not_o judge_v etc._n etc._n &_o luk_n 6.37_o judge_v not_o &_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v
try_v and_o examine_v his_o doctrine_n to_o be_v a_o mere_a impostor_n and_o a_o most_o dangerous_a seducer_n final_o the_o true_a come_n of_o our_o bless_a lord_n and_o saviour_n be_v yet_o to_o come_v the_o come_n of_o that_o false_a christ_n which_o h._n n._n teach_v be_v as_o he_o say_v already_o at_o this_o day_n neither_o if_o we_o give_v he_o any_o credit_n that_o be_v if_o we_o will_v believe_v a_o most_o false_a and_o fantastical_a heretic_n be_v there_o any_o other_o day_n to_o be_v look_v for_o as_o he_o both_o write_v and_o affirm_v express_o in_o that_o his_o book_n which_o he_o call_v the_o joyful_a message_n the_o true_a come_n of_o our_o most_o bless_a saviour_n therefore_o be_v not_o that_o come_n which_o the_o most_o accurse_a h._n n._n will_v have_v we_o to_o believe_v without_o any_o further_a expectation_n or_o wait_v for_o let_v we_o therefore_o bouldlie_o reject_v n._n h._n with_o all_o his_o false_a and_o heretical_a doctrine_n but_o we_o be_v not_o to_o reject_v he_o alone_o but_o diverse_a other_o also_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o false_a conceit_n against_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o article_n in_o any_o branch_n of_o it_o either_o concern_v the_o bless_a estate_n of_o the_o godly_a or_o the_o curse_a and_o woeful_a estate_n of_o the_o wicked_a for_o ever_o and_o ever_o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o judgement_n for_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o vain_a to_o dream_v with_o the_o chiliast_n as_o if_o after_o a_o thousand_o year_n the_o damn_a shall_v be_v deliver_v from_o their_o torment_n or_o with_o those_o that_o be_v call_v misericordes_fw-la who_o under_o pretence_n of_o god_n mercy_n imagine_v that_o he_o will_v condemn_v none_o to_o be_v punish_v eternal_o but_o will_v after_o a_o certain_a time_n release_v they_o wherein_o they_o make_v themselves_o more_o merciful_a than_o god_n they_o do_v thereby_o also_o destroy_v his_o most_o glorious_a and_o eternal_a justice_n of_o which_o sort_n of_o false_a interpreter_n of_o this_o last_o judgement_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n we_o may_v read_v in_o augustine_n in_o his_o 21._o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la cap_n 8_o 9_o 10._o and_o 17_o 18_o 19_o 20_o 21_o 22._o unto_o who_o also_o do_v the_o popish_a sort_n approach_v in_o their_o fancy_n about_o limbus_n and_o their_o purgatory_n fire_n as_o if_o sin_n can_v be_v otherwise_o satisfy_v for_o then_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n or_o otherwise_o be_v apprehend_v then_o by_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n to_o perfect_a justification_n while_o man_n live_v here_o in_o this_o world_n neither_o be_v they_o to_o be_v regard_v that_o vain_o dispute_v of_o that_o everlasting_a fire_n which_o be_v threaten_v for_o the_o punishment_n of_o wicked_a man_n and_o of_o the_o wicked_a angel_n as_o though_o no_o spirit_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o feel_n of_o fire_n etc._n etc._n for_o god_n know_v well_o enough_o to_o verify_v every_o judgement_n that_o he_o have_v denounce_v neither_o will_v he_o be_v fail_v in_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o the_o last_o of_o all_o which_o shall_v be_v as_o a_o perpetual_a seal_v up_o and_o ratify_v of_o all_o the_o rest_n final_o most_o damnable_a be_v those_o mocker_n which_o the_o apostle_n peter_n have_v prophesy_v of_o even_o all_o they_o in_o who_o the_o same_o pprophecy_n be_v at_o this_o day_n fulfil_v who_o account_v this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o come_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o judgement_n no_o better_o than_o a_o fable_n and_o therefore_o do_v despise_v all_o whatsoever_o be_v speak_v of_o it_o but_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o shall_v one_o day_n find_v to_o their_o endless_a terror_n and_o woe_n that_o god_n will_v in_o good_a earnest_n be_v avenge_v of_o all_o their_o mock_n for_o he_o will_v sure_o come_v and_o he_o will_v bring_v his_o wage_n with_o he_o as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v teach_v at_o what_o time_n the_o full_a payment_n of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v be_v no_o more_o delay_v than_o the_o reward_n of_o the_o godly_a shall_v according_a to_o that_o which_o we_o read_v isai_n ch_n 40_o 10._o and_o ch_n 62_o 11._o and_o revel_v 22.12_o yea_o both_o holy_a scripture_n and_o also_o reason_n and_o the_o conscience_n of_o every_o one_o not_o sear_v as_o it_o be_v with_o a_o hot_a iron_n and_o harden_v do_v evict_n that_o it_o shall_v and_o must_v be_v so_o touch_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o testimony_n thereof_o we_o have_v see_v it_o so_o plentiful_o avouch_v before_o that_o we_o need_v not_o now_o stand_v to_o produce_v they_o again_o and_o that_o it_o stand_v upon_o good_a reason_n every_o man_n that_o will_v not_o put_v out_o his_o own_o eye_n may_v easy_o see_v for_o see_v god_n be_v just_a it_o can_v be_v but_o it_o must_v one_o day_n go_v thenceforth_o perfect_o well_o with_o those_o who_o he_o love_v and_o favour_v and_o who_o he_o have_v persit_o justify_v in_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o likewise_o it_o can_v be_v but_o perfect_a justice_n must_v one_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o be_v execute_v upon_o the_o wicked_a according_a to_o their_o demerit_n the_o which_o because_o it_o be_v not_o in_o this_o world_n which_o be_v a_o time_n of_o the_o long_a suffering_n of_o god_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o a_o other_o and_o so_o the_o apostle_n paul_n reason_v and_o teach_v we_o to_o reason_n to_o our_o comfort_n even_o as_o he_o teach_v the_o thessalonian_o 2._o ep_v chap_n 1._o verse_n 4_o 5_o 6_o 7_o 8.9_o 10_o 11_o 12._o your_o patient_a endure_v of_o affliction_n and_o tribulation_n which_o you_o suffer_v say_v he_o be_v a_o token_n of_o the_o righteous_a judgement_n of_o god_n that_o you_o may_v be_v account_v worthy_a of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n for_o the_o which_o you_o also_o suffer_v for_o it_o be_v a_o righteous_a thing_n with_o god_n to_o recompense_v tribulation_n to_o they_o that_o trouble_v you_o and_o to_o you_o that_o be_v trouble_v rest_n with_o we_o when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v show_v himself_o from_o heaven_n with_o his_o mighty_a angel_n in_o flame_a fire_n render_v vengeance_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o 1._o cor_n 15.19_o if_o in_o this_o life_n only_o we_o have_v hope_n in_o christ_n we_o be_v of_o all_o man_n the_o most_o miserable_a but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o and_o therefore_o shall_v that_o be_v general_o accomplish_v concern_v all_o afflict_a christian_n and_o against_o all_o the_o wicked_a which_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o rich_a man_n and_o lazarus_n you_o in_o your_o life_n time_n will_n god_n say_v receive_v pleasure_n and_o the_o godly_a pain_n now_o therefore_o be_v they_o comfort_v and_o you_o be_v torment_v it_o be_v true_a that_o as_o we_o read_v 1_o pet_n 4_o 17_o 18_o 19_o judgement_n begin_v at_o the_o house_n of_o god_n but_o as_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v further_o if_o it_o first_o begin_v at_o we_o what_o shall_v be_v the_o end_n of_o they_o that_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n of_o god_n and_o if_o the_o righteous_a be_v scarce_o save_v where_o shall_v the_o ungodly_a and_o sinner_n appear_v justice_n also_o be_v account_v among_o man_n to_o have_v the_o due_a course_n though_o the_o full_a judgement_n and_o execution_n of_o those_o that_o be_v commit_v to_o prison_n be_v defer_v till_o the_o day_n appoint_v for_o the_o session_n &_o assize_n and_o therefore_o why_o shall_v we_o not_o much_o rather_o esteem_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n to_o be_v effectual_a though_o the_o final_a and_o full_a judgement_n day_n which_o shall_v be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o general_a assize_n for_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v defer_v until_o the_o dissolution_n and_o end_n thereof_o and_o final_o the_o conscience_n no_o doubt_n of_o every_o man_n that_o be_v not_o gross_o harden_v seel_v a_o kind_n of_o smmon_n in_o himself_o concern_v this_o last_o judgement_n as_o be_v say_v according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n rom_n 2_o 15._o their_o conscience_n bear_v witness_n and_o their_o thought_n accuse_v one_o a_o other_o or_o excuse_v wherefore_o belove_v in_o the_o lord_n howsoever_o it_o be_v with_o any_o mocker_n or_o mis-interpreter_n of_o this_o holy_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n let_v we_o undoubted_o believe_v it_o in_o that_o true_a sense_n which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n themselves_o do_v report_n and_o teach_v the_o same_o unto_o us._n yea_o let_v we_o believe_v it_o as_o that_o which_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o establish_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o for_o the_o confirm_v of_o the_o whole_a fruit_n and_o benefit_n of_o they_o unto_o we_o for_o ever_o and_o in_o the_o hope_n thereof_o let_v we_o i_o beseech_v you_o careful_o prepare_v ourselves_o that_o we_o may_v be_v find_v such_o as_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v walk_v in_o the_o holy_a duty_n above_o specify_v and_o namely_o let_v
they_o all_o tend_v to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v bring_v the_o corinthian_n to_o see_v and_o consider_v with_o themselves_o that_o whither_o soever_o they_o turn_v their_o eye_n either_o to_o one_o kind_n of_o grace_n or_o to_o another_o that_o all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o be_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o which_o very_a cause_n it_o be_v that_o in_o his_o particular_a rehearsal_n of_o the_o diverse_a kind_n of_o they_o he_o do_v make_v often_o mention_n of_o that_o spirit_n which_o give_v all_o according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o will_n and_o the_o same_o also_o to_o the_o end_n the_o whole_a church_n and_o every_o member_n thereof_o may_v be_v edify_v and_o build_v up_o in_o the_o sound_a knowledge_n and_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o all_o mutual_o knit_v together_o in_o one_o heart_n and_o mind_n &_o not_o that_o any_o shall_v be_v puff_v up_o thereby_o as_o we_o be_v afterward_o to_o consider_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o mean_a while_n this_o do_v very_o well_o follow_v upon_o the_o present_a consideration_n that_o insomuch_o as_o all_o the_o gift_n and_o grace_n which_o god_n bestow_v on_o his_o church_n be_v the_o gift_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o he_o distribute_v they_o several_o as_o he_o will_v to_o some_o one_o to_o some_o another_o to_o one_o more_o to_o another_o less_o etc._n etc._n and_o see_v the_o apostle_n speak_v indifferent_o of_o they_o to_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n &_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n therefore_o we_o see_v just_a cause_n and_o very_o sufficient_a reason_n why_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o this_o will_v yet_o more_o full_o and_o plain_o appear_v article_n the_o meaning_n of_o the_o article_n after_o that_o we_o have_v examine_v the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n according_a to_o our_o order_n observe_v hitherto_o in_o all_o the_o former_a article_n i_o will_v therefore_o that_o in_o the_o next_o place_n you_o do_v show_v what_o you_o have_v learned_a to_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o article_n i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o from_o hence_o may_v we_o well_o take_v the_o occasion_n both_o to_o make_v all_o thing_n the_o more_o plain_a and_o also_o to_o gather_v all_o mere_a proof_n question_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o same_o say_v therefore_o what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o it_o answer_n this_o article_n teach_v i_o and_o all_o christian_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o glorious_a trinity_n as_o be_v in_o person_n true_o distinct_a from_o the_o person_n both_o of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n very_o true_a god_n coessential_a and_o eternal_a and_o in_o all_o infinite_a majesty_n wisdom_n power_n and_o glory_n coequal_a with_o they_o proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o personal_a subsistence_n distinct_a from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v one_o have_v his_o eternity_n and_o be_v and_o in_o his_o be_v eternity_n of_o omnipotence_n infinitenes_n of_o wisdom_n etc._n etc._n consider_v both_o more_o simple_o in_o himself_o and_o also_o by_o relation_n in_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o person_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o most_o simple_a and_o entiere_fw-fr unity_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o godhead_n wherein_o every_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n do_v equal_o consist_v it_o be_v evident_a from_o very_a many_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o first_o that_o he_o be_v a_o personal_a subsistence_n and_o the_o same_o also_o distinct_a from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n he_o himself_o have_v declare_v it_o by_o his_o manifest_v of_o himself_o at_o the_o baptism_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o the_o bodily_a shape_n of_o a_o dove_n math._n 3._o and_o likewise_o by_o his_o represent_v of_o himself_o in_o the_o vision_n of_o cleave_a tongue_n over_o the_o head_n of_o the_o apostle_n act._n 2._o for_o never_o do_v any_o quality_n or_o affection_n either_o of_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n or_o of_o any_o angel_n appear_v in_o any_o bodily_a shape_n or_o external_a representation_n it_o be_v furthermore_o evident_a by_o that_o form_n of_o baptism_n which_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v prescribe_v and_o command_v to_o his_o church_n for_o it_o be_v absurd_a that_o any_o creature_n shall_v be_v baptize_v into_o the_o name_n of_o that_o which_o be_v no_o person_n moreover_o what_o reason_n or_o shadow_n of_o reason_n be_v there_o why_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o god_n if_o he_o have_v not_o a_o personal_a be_v but_o that_o this_o be_v so_o it_o have_v be_v declare_v before_o the_o which_o also_o will_v yet_o further_o appear_v when_o we_o come_v to_o show_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v the_o searcher_n of_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n yea_o even_o of_o the_o deep_a thing_n of_o god_n which_o none_o can_v do_v but_o god_n himself_o for_o who_o have_v know_v his_o mind_n or_o who_o be_v his_o counsellor_n but_o he_o himself_o to_o himself_o it_o will_v i_o say_v further_o appear_v that_o he_o be_v a_o personal_a subsistence_n when_o we_o shall_v come_v to_o show_v that_o all_o the_o divine_a work_n of_o the_o godhead_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o father_n &_o to_o the_o son_n as_o be_v touch_v in_o a_o word_n before_o the_o distinction_n of_o this_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v likewise_o evident_a by_o that_o his_o distinct_a manifest_v of_o himself_o by_o descend_v from_o heaven_n at_o the_o baptism_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o our_o humane_a nature_n when_o as_o the_o father_n utter_v his_o voice_n as_o remain_v still_o in_o heaven_n the_o same_o be_v evident_a also_o by_o the_o distinct_a rehearsal_n of_o he_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o baptism_n and_o that_o he_o be_v the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o holy_a trinity_n the_o order_n of_o the_o same_o rehearsal_n do_v make_v it_o plain_a and_o likewise_o that_o place_n of_o the_o apostle_n john_n in_o his_o 1._o ep_v ch_n 5._o where_o he_o be_v in_o like_a manner_n rehearse_v in_o the_o three_o place_n yet_o so_o as_o we_o must_v understand_v that_o neither_o the_o father_n be_v first_o nor_o the_o son_n second_o nor_o the_o holy_a ghost_n three_o in_o precedence_n of_o time_n or_o in_o dignity_n of_o divine_a honour_n but_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o incomprehensible_a order_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o existence_n or_o be_v of_o the_o divine_a nature_n as_o be_v observe_v before_o in_o the_o general_a doctrine_n of_o the_o whole_a trinity_n wherefore_o also_o it_o be_v true_o affirm_v here_o that_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v coessential_a with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n as_o the_o apostle_n john_n testify_v in_o the_o chapter_n before_o allege_v say_v these_o three_o be_v one_o so_o be_v he_o every_o way_n coequal_a and_o coeternall_a both_o in_o wisdom_n and_o power_n &c_n &c_n as_o by_o the_o more_o full_a open_n of_o this_o article_n will_v clearelie_o appear_v question_n show_v you_o therefore_o what_o this_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n do_v furthermore_o teach_v we_o in_o this_o behalf_n how_o have_v you_o be_v further_o instruct_v answer_n i_o have_v learn_v from_o the_o interpretation_n of_o this_o article_n that_o i_o myself_o and_o every_o christian_a do_v stand_v bind_v to_o believe_v that_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v always_o without_o begin_v heretofore_o and_o even_o to_o this_o present_a have_v his_o jointe-worke_n or_o as_o we_o may_v say_v copartenership_n with_o the_o father_n &_o the_o son_n both_o in_o purpose_v and_o decree_a &_o also_o in_o order_v and_o effect_v all_o the_o mighty_a work_n of_o creation_n and_o government_n not_o only_o in_o the_o whole_a world_n general_o or_o universal_o consider_v but_o also_o more_o special_o in_o the_o new_a creation_n as_o it_o be_v &_o government_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o sanctification_n of_o every_o particular_a member_n of_o it_o yea_o &_o that_o he_o have_v the_o same_o joint-worke_n and_o counsel_n for_o ever_o hereafter_o to_o the_o perfect_a of_o all_o the_o counsel_n and_o work_n of_o god_n both_o in_o mercy_n and_o in_o judgement_n world_n without_o end_n i_o have_v learn_v also_o that_o i_o for_o my_o part_n do_v stand_v bind_v to_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o he_o be_v my_o sanctifier_n as_o well_o as_o the_o sanctifier_n of_o any_o other_o of_o the_o elect_a people_n of_o god_n proof_n
extraordinary_a for_o the_o communicate_v of_o his_o grace_n to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n as_o isay_n 48.16_o the_o lord_n god_n say_v the_o prophet_n and_o his_o spirit_n have_v send_v i_o so_o act_v 13.2_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v separate_a i_n barnabas_n &_o saul_n for_o the_o work_n whereunto_o i_o have_v call_v they_o and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n act_n 16.6_o 7._o it_o be_v write_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n forbid_v they_o to_o preach_v the_o word_n in_o asia_n and_o that_o he_o suffer_v they_o not_o to_o go_v into_o bythinia_n read_v also_o 1._o pet._n 1.12_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o rest_n preach_v the_o gospel_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o 1._o cor._n 2.9_o etc._n etc._n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n and_o 2._o epist_n 3.6_o they_o be_v therefore_o call_v minister_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o not_o of_o the_o letter_n and_o revel_v chapter_n first_o second_o and_o three_o st._n john_n be_v in_o the_o spirit_n do_v by_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n even_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n write_v to_o the_o seven_o church_n in_o asia_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o that_o often_o repeat_v and_o most_o grave_a admonition_n let_v he_o that_o have_v a_o ear_n hear_v what_o the_o spirit_n say_v to_o the_o church_n and_o act._n 20.28_o s._n paul_n direct_v his_o speech_n to_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n and_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n charge_v they_o to_o take_v heed_n to_o themselves_o and_o to_o all_o the_o slocke_n whereof_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v they_o overseer_n to_o feed_v the_o church_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o more_o particular_o to_o come_v to_o every_o of_o ourselves_o as_o our_o first_o and_o natural_a live_n move_a and_o be_v be_v from_o god_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o we_o have_v see_v from_o the_o creation_n so_o and_o in_o more_o special_a manner_n be_v our_o new_a creation_n and_o our_o spiritual_a life_n move_v and_o be_v in_o the_o same_o for_o all_o whatsoever_o both_o entrance_n into_o the_o church_n and_o kingdom_n of_o god_n here_o in_o this_o life_n and_o all_o increase_n of_o grace_n therein_o by_o the_o mean_n either_o of_o word_n prayer_n and_o sacrament_n or_o any_o other_o holy_a way_n appoint_v of_o god_n even_o to_o the_o full_a prepare_v and_o make_v of_o we_o meet_v for_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o life_n and_o glory_n to_o come_v all_o be_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o we_o have_v the_o plain_a testimony_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n himself_o john_n 3._o except_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v of_o water_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o can_v neither_o see_v nor_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n for_o the_o natural_a man_n perceive_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n 1._o cor._n 2.14_o according_a also_o as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v to_o peter_n matth_n 16.17_o flesh_n and_o blood_n have_v not_o reveal_v it_o unto_o thou_o so_o necessary_a be_v it_o that_o the_o same_o spirit_n which_o be_v a_o witness_n in_o heaven_n together_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n shall_v also_o be_v a_o witness_n on_o the_o earth_n with_o that_o water_n &_o blood_n which_o flow_v out_o of_o the_o side_n yea_o even_o from_o the_o very_a heart_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n 1._o john_n 5.7_o 8._o and_o chap._n 2._o of_o the_o same_o epistle_n it_o be_v the_o anoint_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v saint_n john_n which_o teach_v faithful_a christian_n and_o lead_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n as_o christ_n have_v promise_v that_o he_o will_v send_v he_o to_o that_o end_n and_o chap._n 4.4_o great_a be_v he_o that_o be_v in_o you_o than_o he_o that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n also_o saint_n peter_n say_v 1._o epist_n 1.2_o we_o be_v elect_v according_a to_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o god_n to_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o verse_n 23._o our_o soul_n be_v purify_v in_o obey_v the_o truth_n through_o the_o spirit_n to_o love_v brotherly_a without_o fein_v etc._n etc._n be_v bear_v a_o new_a not_o of_o mortal_a seed_n but_o of_o immortal_a by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n who_o live_v for_o ever_o and_o colos_n 1.8_o the_o love_n of_o christian_n be_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o verse_n 9_o and_o ephes_n 1.17_o 18._o the_o knowledge_n of_o christian_n be_v call_v spiritual_a knowledge_n and_o touch_v faith_n we_o read_v gal._n 5.5_o that_o through_o the_o spirit_n we_o wait_v for_o the_o hope_n of_o righteousness_n through_o faith_n yea_o general_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v love_n joy_n and_o peace_n &c_n &c_n as_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n verse_n 22_o 23._o and_o ephes_n 5.9_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v in_o all_o goodness_n and_o righteousness_n and_o truth_n read_v also_o rom._n 14_o 17._o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o meat_n and_o drink_v but_o righteousness_n and_o peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o all_o this_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o by_o it_o do_v the_o spirit_n give_v the_o spiritual_a life_n 2._o cor._n 3.6_o and_o verse_n 17_o 18._o where_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v there_o be_v liberty_n and_o we_o be_v change_v into_o the_o image_n of_o the_o lord_n from_o glory_n to_o glory_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o touch_v prayer_n it_o be_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o spirit_n only_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o which_o the_o spirit_n teach_v sanctifi_v &_o enable_v we_o unto_o which_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o spirit_n that_o he_o help_v our_o infirmity_n &_o teach_v we_o to_o pray_v etc._n etc._n rom._n 8.26_o 27._o whence_o it_o be_v also_o that_o saint_n jude_n exhort_v christian_n to_o pray_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o the_o edify_n of_o themselves_o in_o their_o most_o holy_a faith_n as_o verse_n 20._o of_o his_o epistle_n and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n i_o will_v pray_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o sing_v in_o the_o spirit_n 1._o cor._n 14._o that_o be_v i_o will_v both_o pray_v and_o also_o praise_n god_n as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v teach_v i_o and_o ephes_n 6.18_o likewise_o concern_v the_o sacrament_n first_o baptism_n the_o very_a form_n of_o the_o institution_n show_v that_o it_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o must_v give_v that_o effect_n which_o it_o signify_v according_a to_o that_o which_o be_v say_v to_o note_v the_o true_a circumcision_n phi._n 3.3_o we_o be_v say_v s._n paul_n the_o circumcision_n which_o worship_n god_n in_o spirit_n and_o christ_n be_v say_v in_o this_o respect_n to_o baptize_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n though_o he_o baptize_v none_o with_o the_o outward_a element_n of_o water_n and_o 1._o cor_n chap_n 12_o verse_n 13._o by_o one_o spirit_n we_o be_v all_o baptize_v into_o one_o body_n second_o concern_v the_o lord_n supper_n our_o saviour_n christ_n note_v in_o the_o use_n of_o it_o the_o nature_n of_o faith_n which_o feed_v upon_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n both_o which_o be_v present_v by_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n of_o that_o sacrament_n he_o himself_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n only_o which_o quicken_v and_o that_o otherwise_o the_o flesh_n and_o therefore_o much_o rather_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o john_n 6._o and_o again_o 1._o cor_n 12.13_o we_o have_v be_v all_o make_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n thus_o every_o way_n it_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v from_o god_n the_o father_n &_o that_o also_o by_o the_o mediation_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o only_a immediate_a beginner_n and_o perfiter_n of_o all_o grace_n in_o us._n and_o it_o be_v the_o rather_o to_o be_v thorough_o weigh_v of_o we_o because_o as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v flesh_n and_o blood_n can_v inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 1._o cor._n 15.50_o to_o he_o therefore_o both_o faith_n hope_n and_o love_n invocation_n and_o thanksgiving_n fear_n and_o obedience_n be_v due_a as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o duty_n this_o be_v the_o true_a christian_a faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n &_o of_o every_o true_a member_n thereof_o touch_v the_o holy_a ghost_n how_o many_o soever_o have_v believe_v aright_o though_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o have_v not_o be_v so_o full_o &_o clear_o reveal_v till_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o most_o holy_a anoint_v to_o the_o take_n of_o our_o nature_n unto_o he_o god_n give_v his_o people_n of_o israel_n his_o good_a spirit_n to_o instruct_v they_o in_o former_a time_n as_o neh_n 9.20_o &_o isai_n 63.11.12_o 13.14_o read_v also_o ezek_n ch_n 2._o v._o 2_o etc._n
5.9_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v in_o all_o goodness_n and_o righteousness_n and_o truth_n and_o gal_n 5._o verse_n 22_o 23_o the_o same_o apostle_n make_v mention_n of_o nine_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n say_v he_o be_v love_n joy_n peace_n long-suffering_a gentleness_n goodness_n faith_n meekness_n temperance_n for_o the_o interpretation_n and_o distinction_n of_o which_o grace_n see_v master_n perkins_n upon_o this_o article_n in_o his_o exposition_n of_o the_o creed_n the_o way_n both_o of_o entertain_v and_o also_o of_o retain_v this_o our_o best_a friend_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o chamber_n of_o our_o heart_n be_v by_o give_v ourselves_o to_o the_o exercise_n of_o prayer_n of_o read_v hear_v and_o meditate_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o the_o further_a of_o our_o knowledge_n faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o by_o careful_a use_v of_o the_o present_a measure_n of_o grace_n which_o we_o have_v receive_v to_o the_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o way_n to_o loose_v this_o so_o honourable_a a_o guest_n and_o the_o comfort_n of_o his_o abode_n in_o our_o heart_n be_v by_o the_o neglect_n of_o these_o holy_a duty_n wherewith_o only_o he_o be_v delight_v and_o therefore_o say_v the_o holy_a apostle_n counsel_v we_o for_o our_o own_o singular_a benefit_n quench_v not_o the_o spirit_n &_o to_o the_o same_o end_n that_o we_o do_v in_o no_o wise_a despise_v prophesy_v but_o that_o we_o pray_v continual_o etc._n etc._n 1._o thes_n 5.17.18_o 19.20_o and_o that_o we_o stir_v up_o the_o gift_n which_o be_v already_o give_v we_o by_o the_o spirit_n 2._o tim_n 1.6.7_o it_o be_v the_o conclusion_n of_o every_o epistle_n which_o our_o saviour_n send_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o angel_n and_o the_o apostle_n john_n to_o the_o 7_o church_n of_o asia_n let_v he_o that_o have_v a_o ear_n hear_v what_o the_o spirit_n say_v to_o the_o church_n revel_v ch_n 2._o and_o ch_n 3._o to_o the_o which_o end_n according_a to_o the_o four_o point_n of_o the_o answer_n let_v we_o consider_v further_o that_o god_n require_v to_o be_v worship_v in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n john_n 4.24_o and_o philip._n chap._n 3._o verse_n 3._o and_o rom._n 8.1_o where_o it_o be_v general_o require_v that_o christian_n do_v in_o all_o thing_n walk_v after_o the_o spirit_n and_o not_o after_o the_o flesh_n and_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n that_o they_o do_v savour_n the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o mortify_v the_o deed_n of_o the_o flesh_n by_o the_o spirit_n etc._n etc._n likewise_o gal._n 5.25.26_o if_o we_o live_v in_o the_o spirit_n say_v the_o same_o apostle_n let_v we_o also_o walk_v in_o the_o spirit_n let_v we_o not_o be_v desirous_a of_o vain_a glory_n provoke_v one_o another_o envy_v one_o another_o and_o chap._n 6._o verse_n 1_o he_o call_v such_o as_o be_v more_o firm_o settle_v in_o godliness_n spiritual_a man_n and_o verse_n 8._o if_o we_o will_v have_v it_o go_v well_o with_o we_o and_o that_o we_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o a_o good_a harvest_n we_o must_v sow_v to_o the_o spirit_n and_o ephes_n 6.17_o we_o must_v fight_v with_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n we_o must_v pray_v in_o the_o spirit_n verse_n 18._o and_o for_o the_o spirit_n that_o it_o may_v be_v give_v and_o continue_v unto_o us._n psalm_n 51.10.11.12_o and_o psalm_n 143.10_o final_o touch_v the_o duty_n of_o divine_a worship_n and_o honour_n that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v yield_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n it_o may_v appear_v first_o concern_v faith_n insomuch_o as_o we_o be_v baptize_v into_o his_o name_n together_o with_o they_o for_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v in_o he_o into_o who_o name_n we_o be_v baptize_v and_o math._n 10.20_o our_o saviour_n incourage_v his_o disciple_n to_o be_v without_o fear_n of_o their_o adversary_n and_o not_o to_o be_v distrustful_o careful_a what_o to_o answer_v unto_o they_o because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v be_v present_a with_o they_o and_o luk._n ch_n 12._o ver_fw-la 12._o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v teach_v you_o in_o the_o same_o hour_n what_o you_o ought_v to_o say_v second_o concern_v the_o duty_n of_o love_n it_o may_v be_v evident_a from_o that_o which_o have_v be_v allege_v concern_v our_o duty_n of_o not_o grieve_v the_o spirit_n etc._n etc._n for_o we_o will_v never_o have_v this_o care_n unless_o we_o shall_v bear_v a_o dutiful_a love_n and_o affection_n towards_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o regard_v not_o to_o grieve_v they_o who_o we_o love_v not_o three_o concern_v reverence_n or_o fear_n it_o may_v easy_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v due_a article_n the_o danger_n of_o not_o believe_v this_o article_n yeat_v that_o it_o stand_v we_o in_o hand_n so_o to_o do_v leave_v we_o provoke_v his_o most_o fearful_a wrath_n against_o we_o as_o ananias_n &_o sapphira_n do_v as_o judas_n do_v &_o as_o all_o those_o shall_v do_v whosoever_o rise_v up_o in_o contempt_n and_o rebellion_n against_o he_o moreover_o baptise_v into_o the_o name_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o invocation_n and_o call_n upon_o his_o name_n and_o so_o be_v the_o desire_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v remain_v with_o the_o corinthian_n 2._o epist_n chap._n 13._o verse_n 13._o and_o insomuch_o as_o ingratitude_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v worthy_o condemn_v for_o a_o most_o grievous_a sin_n heb._n 10.29_o just_o be_v thankfulness_n to_o be_v esteem_v a_o special_a duty_n belong_v unto_o he_o neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v neglect_v that_o the_o apostle_n make_v divine_a and_o honourable_a mention_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o take_v a_o religious_a oath_n rom._n 9.1_o i_o say_v the_o truth_n in_o christ_n i_o lie_v not_o my_o conscience_n bear_v i_o witness_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n thus_o the_o same_o duty_n of_o divine_a worship_n and_o honour_n be_v due_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n insomuch_o as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n very_o true_a god_n together_o with_o they_o now_o therefore_o have_v hitherto_o see_v so_o plentiful_a and_o sure_a a_o ground_n and_o warrant_v for_o this_o article_n and_o also_o what_o the_o meaning_n of_o it_o be_v and_o what_o a_o gracious_a promise_n we_o have_v for_o it_o and_o of_o how_o singular_a a_o use_n it_o be_v both_o for_o comfort_n &_o also_o to_o move_v unto_o all_o obedience_n now_o that_o we_o may_v at_o the_o last_o conclude_v the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o it_o question_n what_o be_v the_o danger_n of_o not_o believe_v and_o so_o consequent_o of_o not_o yield_v that_o obedience_n which_o it_o require_v of_o all_o christian_n answer_n whosoever_o do_v not_o right_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n nor_o unfeigned_o obey_v he_o they_o have_v no_o true_a knowledge_n nor_o faith_n which_o be_v according_a to_o godliness_n neither_o do_v they_o neither_o can_v they_o possible_o yield_v any_o true_a honour_n and_o obedience_n either_o to_o the_o father_n or_o to_o the_o son_n and_o therefore_o also_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o all_o such_o shall_v abide_v in_o the_o corruption_n of_o their_o profane_a nature_n and_o perish_v for_o ever_o therein_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v so_o insomuch_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n according_a as_o it_o have_v be_v true_o affirm_v sundry_a time_n before_o be_v of_o all_o the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n the_o only_a immediate_a worker_n of_o all_o grace_n from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n in_o every_o one_o that_o shall_v find_v any_o favour_n before_o the_o divine_a majesty_n of_o god_n for_o without_o his_o illumination_n and_o sanctification_n we_o can_v but_o remain_v in_o darkness_n and_o profaneness_n according_a to_o the_o express_a testimony_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o have_v be_v also_o allege_v before_o out_o of_o the_o 3._o chapter_n of_o john_n say_v except_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o can_v see_v nor_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o according_a to_o the_o testimony_n of_o paul_n the_o apostle_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o natuarall_a man_n understand_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n 1._o cor._n 2.14_o and_o rom._n verse_n 9_o if_o any_o man_n have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n the_o same_o be_v not_o he_o etc._n etc._n and_o ephes_n 1.18_o we_o can_v have_v no_o entrance_n to_o the_o father_n but_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o as_o no_o entrance_n so_o no_o continuance_n but_o only_o by_o continuance_n in_o that_o grace_n &_o faith_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n once_o give_v whence_o it_o be_v that_o
regard_n of_o the_o stability_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o every_o true_a member_n thereof_o according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o same_o apostle_n 2._o tim_n 2.19_o the_o foundation_n of_o god_n remain_v sure_a and_o have_v this_o seal_n the_o lord_n know_v who_o be_v he_o and_o thus_o as_o it_o be_v write_v heb_fw-mi 6.18.19_o the_o stableness_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n aford_v we_o strong_a consolation_n upon_o the_o which_o the_o ancre_fw-fr of_o our_o soul_n that_o be_v the_o hope_n which_o be_v set_v before_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a and_o steadfast_a in_o heaven_n against_o all_o the_o storm_n and_o tempest_n which_o we_o shall_v meet_v withal_o while_o we_o sail_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o uncomfortable_a and_o dangerous_a sea_n of_o this_o wicked_a &_o troublesome_a world_n read_v also_o mat_n 16.18_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o overcome_v the_o church_n there_o be_v likewise_o many_o comfortable_a testimony_n in_o the_o holy_a prophet_n as_o psal_n 46.5_o etc._n etc._n god_n be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o it_o therefore_o shall_v it_o not_o be_v move_v and_o ps_n 125_o 1._o they_o that_o trust_v in_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v as_o mount_v zion_n etc._n etc._n isai_n 54.17_o all_o the_o weapon_n that_o be_v make_v against_o thou_o shall_v not_o prosper_v &c_n &c_n joel_n 2_o 32._o in_o mount_n zion_n and_o in_o jerusalem_n shall_v be_v deliverance_n and_o chap_n 3_o 20._o likewise_o obad_n verse_n 17._o and_o micah_n 7.20_o god_n will_v perform_v his_o truth_n to_o jaakob_n and_o mercy_n to_o abraham_n etc._n etc._n but_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v have_v our_o part_n in_o this_o so_o singular_a a_o comfort_n how_o may_v we_o be_v assure_v question_n that_o we_o be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n and_o consequent_o true_a member_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n of_o god_n hereby_o may_v we_o know_v that_o we_o be_v the_o elect_a of_o god_n answer_n if_o so_o be_v we_o have_v receive_v his_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n and_o sanctification_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n we_o may_v do_v so_o indeed_o for_o so_o say_v the_o apostle_n john_n 1_o ep_v ch_n 4_o 13._o hereby_o we_o know_v that_o we_o dwell_v in_o god_n and_o god_n in_o we_o because_o he_o have_v give_v we_o of_o his_o spirit_n the_o which_o spirit_n also_o as_o we_o have_v see_v before_o be_v as_o the_o earnest_n or_o seal_n of_o our_o election_n to_o salution_n and_o therefore_o it_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n etc._n etc._n question_n but_o that_o we_o fail_v not_o nor_o be_v deceive_v in_o this_o our_o comfort_n how_o may_v we_o know_v that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o of_o his_o spirit_n and_o that_o we_o be_v seal_v thereby_o unto_o redemption_n and_o salvation_n answer_n we_o may_v know_v it_o certain_o by_o the_o inward_a effect_n which_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n work_v in_o we_o and_o by_o the_o outward_a effect_n of_o holiness_n which_o the_o same_o spirit_n enable_v we_o to_o perform_v and_o cause_v our_o spirit_n to_o take_v delight_n and_o pleasure_n therein_o from_o a_o pure_a heart_n with_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o through_o faith_n unfeigned_a proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n you_o answer_v true_o and_o well_o for_o so_o do_v the_o apostle_n john_n mention_v even_o now_o teach_v we_o 1_o ep_v ch_z 2_o v._o 3._o hereby_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o we_o know_v he_o if_o we_o keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o ch_z 3_o 23.24_o this_o be_v his_o commandment_n that_o we_o believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n and_o love_v one_o another_o as_o he_o give_v commandment_n for_o he_o that_o keep_v his_o commandment_n dwell_v in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o he_o hereby_o we_o know_v that_o he_o abide_v in_o we_o even_o by_o the_o spirit_n which_o he_o have_v give_v us._n now_o this_o spirit_n lead_v we_o into_o the_o obedience_n of_o god_n commandment_n whereby_o also_o it_o be_v discern_v to_o be_v in_o us._n provide_v always_o that_o our_o obedience_n be_v as_o be_v answer_v out_o of_o a_o pure_a heart_n and_o of_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o of_o faith_n unfeigned_a according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n 1_o tim_n 1_o 5._o moreover_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n whereby_o his_o abide_n in_o we_o may_v be_v assure_v unto_o we_o be_v in_o many_o particular_n reckon_v up_o by_o the_o apostle_n paul_n gal_n 5_o 22_o 23_o and_o eph_n 5._o v._n 9_o &_o in_o many_o other_o place_n wherein_o if_o we_o take_v delight_n with_o care_n to_o practice_v they_o in_o our_o life_n we_o may_v assure_v ourselves_o that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o his_o spirit_n and_o namely_o duty_n the_o duty_n if_o we_o shall_v be_v careful_a to_o acquaint_v ourselves_o with_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n to_o god_n for_o the_o increase_n of_o these_o his_o good_a gift_n and_o grace_n for_o this_o be_v a_o special_a property_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n and_o sanctification_n as_o the_o same_o apostle_n teach_v we_o rom_n 8_o 15._o whereby_o and_o by_o the_o other_o fruit_n of_o sanctification_n before_o mention_v the_o apostle_n do_v in_o the_o same_o place_n verses_z 14_o and_o 16.17_o assure_v we_o that_o we_o be_v such_o as_o belong_v to_o god_n and_o to_o who_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n do_v belong_v for_o say_v he_o as_o many_o as_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n they_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o you_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n to_o fear_v again_o but_o you_o have_v receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n whereby_o we_o cry_v abba_n father_n the_o same_o spirit_n bear_v witness_v with_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n if_o we_o be_v child_n we_o be_v also_o heir_n even_o heir_n annex_v with_o christ_n if_o so_o be_v that_o we_o suffer_v with_o he_o that_o ●ee_n may_v also_o be_v glorify_v with_o he_o and_o mark_v this_o well_o that_o among_o many_o other_o thing_n the_o holy_a apostle_n show_v we_o that_o our_o willing_a suffering_n with_o christ_n that_o be_v while_o we_o walk_v in_o the_o holy_a way_n of_o god_n be_v a_o sure_a token_n that_o we_o be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o elect_a child_n of_o god_n for_o as_o he_o say_v further_a verse_n 29._o of_o the_o same_o chapter_n those_o who_o god_n know_v before_o he_o also_o predestinate_v to_o be_v make_v like_o to_o the_o image_n of_o his_o son_n to_o wit_n even_o in_o the_o endure_a of_o affliction_n etc._n etc._n and_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n of_o comfort_v and_o encourage_v of_o all_o such_o that_o they_o be_v the_o undoubted_a child_n of_o god_n tend_v all_o that_o which_o follow_v even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o that_o most_o comfortable_a chapter_n whereunto_o also_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o apostle_n peter_n serve_v notable_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o his_o 2._o epistle_n verse_n 5_o 6_o 7_o 8.9_o 10_o 11._o therefore_o give_v all_o diligence_n thereunto_o join_v moreover_o virtue_n with_o your_o faith_n and_o with_o virtue_n knowledge_n and_o with_o knowledge_n temperance_n and_o with_o temperance_n patience_n and_o with_o patience_n godliness_n and_o with_o godliness_n brotherly_a kindness_n and_o with_o brotherly_a kindness_n love_n etc._n etc._n for_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v hereby_o we_o shall_v make_v our_o call_n and_o election_n sure_a and_o he_o assure_v we_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o if_o we_o do_v these_o thing_n we_o shall_v never_o fall_v but_o that_o a_o entrance_n shall_v be_v minister_v unto_o we_o abundant_o into_o the_o everlasting_a kingdom_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n read_v also_o ps_n 15._o where_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o his_o holy_a prophet_n make_v the_o same_o conclusion_n from_o a_o rehearsal_n of_o sundry_a like_o virtue_n in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o the_o psalm_n and_o thus_o we_o see_v that_o the_o comfort_n of_o faith_n concern_v the_o article_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n of_o god_n be_v very_o great_a and_o manifold_a in_o respect_n both_o of_o the_o universality_n and_o holiness_n of_o it_o and_o chief_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o holy_a election_n of_o god_n hitherto_o therefore_o of_o the_o use_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o article_n for_o the_o comfort_n of_o faith_n we_o be_v now_o to_o inquire_v likewise_o after_o the_o use_n of_o it_o touch_v the_o fruit_n of_o obedience_n and_o that_o in_o the_o same_o order_n wherein_o we_o have_v inquire_v of_o the_o comfort_n question_n first_o therefore_o what_o be_v the_o duty_n belong_v to_o the_o comfort_n of_o faith_n concern_v the_o universality_n of_o the_o church_n answer_n insomuch_o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o church_n of_o god_n and_o that_o without_o it_o here_o
appropriation_n of_o it_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n though_o as_o we_o willing_o confess_v it_o be_v then_o for_o a_o long_a time_n one_o of_o the_o true_a particular_a church_n of_o christ_n neither_o arrogate_a this_o title_n of_o catholic_a church_n to_o itself_o thus_o therefore_o the_o popish_a doctrine_n concern_v this_o article_n be_v in_o all_o these_o point_n to_o be_v avoid_v of_o we_o as_o erroneous_a and_o heretical_a against_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o it_o yea_o their_o exposition_n of_o the_o word_n belief_n as_o it_o be_v refer_v by_o they_o to_o the_o church_n as_o though_o the_o meaning_n shall_v be_v this_o that_o christian_n do_v thereby_o profess_v that_o they_o give_v religious_a credit_n to_o all_o that_o their_o church_n teach_v without_o any_o further_a examination_n and_o trial_n by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n it_o be_v utter_o a_o false_a interpretation_n of_o it_o likewise_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o donatist_n or_o of_o any_o other_o who_o contend_v that_o the_o church_n must_v be_v perfect_o holy_a here_o in_o this_o world_n and_o therefore_o do_v separate_v themselves_o from_o christian_a assembly_n if_o so_o be_v all_o thing_n be_v not_o reform_v according_a to_o their_o mind_n and_o condemn_v they_o as_o if_o they_o be_v no_o true_a church_n this_o both_o their_o doctrine_n and_o also_o their_o practice_n be_v careful_o to_o be_v avoid_v of_o we_o as_o contrary_a to_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o this_o article_n see_v god_n have_v describe_v his_o church_n in_o this_o life_n whether_o general_o in_o the_o whole_a or_o in_o particular_a congregation_n to_o be_v a_o mix_a company_n of_o true_a christian_n with_o hypocrite_n as_o tear_n among_o wheat_n as_o good_a fish_n with_o bad_a etc._n etc._n math._n 13._o on_o the_o contrary_a they_o be_v to_o be_v avoid_v and_o condemn_v as_o go_v against_o the_o true_a belief_n of_o this_o article_n who_o because_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o every_o member_n thereof_o be_v certain_a therefore_o will_v have_v no_o care_n of_o a_o godly_a life_n such_o as_o be_v the_o heretic_n call_v prodestinat●_n and_o many_o libertine_n even_o to_o this_o day_n saint_n belief_n that_o in_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n of_o god_n there_o be_v a_o communion_n of_o saint_n final_o no_o person_n void_a of_o the_o care_n of_o a_o godly_a and_o holy_a life_n article_n the_o ground_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o article_n be_v to_o be_v account_v a_o member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n which_o be_v always_o in_o some_o measure_n holy_a in_o every_o member_n of_o it_o even_o here_o in_o this_o world_n nevertheless_o we_o may_v not_o peremptory_o exclude_v any_o profane_a person_n from_o the_o holy_a election_n of_o god_n because_o of_o his_o present_a profaneness_n but_o use_v the_o mean_n we_o be_v to_o hope_v still_o with_o patience_n that_o many_o such_o may_v in_o due_a time_n be_v convert_v to_o god_n and_o so_o declare_v to_o be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o those_o who_o he_o have_v appoint_v to_o eternal_a life_n though_o for_o a_o long_a time_n they_o lay_v hide_v from_o our_o knowledge_n in_o this_o respect_n belief_n that_o in_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n of_o god_n there_o be_v a_o communion_n of_o saint_n proof_n question_n answer_n explication_n and_o proof_n let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o the_o next_o article_n of_o our_o belief_n what_o be_v that_o it_o follow_v thus_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n the_o word_n i_o believe_v be_v here_o to_o be_v understand_v again_o as_o in_o the_o former_a article_n and_o so_o they_o be_v in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o article_n follow_v this_o as_o though_o they_o be_v express_v thus_o i_o believe_v the_o communion_n of_o saint_n that_o be_v to_o say_v i_o believe_v that_o in_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n of_o god_n there_o be_v a_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o that_o to_o they_o belong_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n &c_n &c_n as_o we_o shall_v further_o consider_v hereafter_o question_n for_o the_o present_a article_n what_o ground_n of_o holy_a scripture_n have_v you_o to_o warrant_v we_o that_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v it_o answer_n even_o that_o which_o follow_v in_o the_o former_a text_n of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n from_o the_o 14._o verse_n of_o that_o 12._o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o ep._n to_o the_o corinthian_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n explication_n explication_n this_o may_v well_o be_v the_o ground_n and_o warrant_v of_o it_o in_o deed_n yea_o and_o so_o forth_o also_o throughout_o the_o next_o chapter_n and_o in_o the_o 16._o ch_z of_o the_o same_o epistle_n verse_n 1._o ●_o etc._n etc._n but_o because_o it_o may_v seem_v over_o long_o to_o go_v through_o so_o long_a a_o text_n of_o scripture_n let_v we_o stay_v ourselves_o for_o the_o ground_n of_o ●●ns_n ar●_n cle_n upon_o that_o which_o remain_v of_o the_o 12._o chapter_n question_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o you_o read_v they_o there_o answer_n 14_o thus_o it_o follow_v for_o the_o body_n also_o say_v s._n paul_n be_v not_o one_o member_n but_o many_o 15._o i●_n the_o foot_n will_v say_v because_o i_o be_o not_o the_o hand_n i_o be_o not_o of_o the_o body_n be_v it_o therefore_o not_o of_o the_o body_n 16_o and_o if_o the_o ear_n will_v say_v because_o i_o be_o not_o the_o eye_n i_o be_o not_o of_o the_o body_n be_v it_o therefore_o not_o of_o the_o body_n 17._o if_o the_o whole_a body_n be_v a_o eye_n where_o be_v the_o hear_n if_o the_o whole_a be_v hear_v where_o be_v the_o smell_v 18._o but_o now_o have_v god_n dispose_v the_o member_n every_o one_o of_o they_o in_o the_o body_n at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n 19_o for_o if_o they_o be_v all_o one_o member_n where_o be_v the_o body_n 20._o but_o now_o there_o be_v many_o member_n yet_o but_o one_o body_n 21._o and_o the_o eye_n can_v say_v to_o the_o hand_n i_o have_v no_o need_n of_o thou_o nor_o the_o head_n again_o to_o the_o foot_n i_o have_v no_o need_n of_o you_o 22._o yea_o much_o rather_o those_o member_n of_o the_o body_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v more_o feeble_a be_v necessary_a 23._o and_o upon_o those_o member_n of_o the_o body_n which_o we_o think_v most_o unhonest_a or_o more_o base_a we_o put_v more_o honesty_n or_o as_o we_o may_v read_v it_o more_o honour_n thereon_o and_o our_o uncomely_a part_n have_v more_o comeliness_n on_o perissoteran_v atimotera_n timen_n perissoteran_v 24._o for_o our_o comely_a part_n need_v it_o not_o but_o god_n have_v temper_v the_o body_n together_o and_o have_v give_v the_o more_o honour_n to_o that_o part_n which_o lack_v 25._o lest_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o division_n in_o the_o body_n but_o that_o the_o member_n shall_v have_v the_o same_o care_n one_o for_o another_o 26._o therefore_o if_o one_o member_n suffer_v all_o suffer_v with_o it_o if_o one_o member_n be_v have_v in_o honour_n all_o the_o member_n rejoice_v with_o it_o 27._o now_o you_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o member_n in_o part_n touch_v this_o text_n before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o rehearsal_n of_o the_o doctrine_n deliver_v in_o the_o sermon_n make_v upon_o it_o let_v we_o observe_v that_o it_o fall_v out_o very_o well_o and_o commodious_o for_o we_o that_o according_a to_o the_o divine_a wisdom_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o who_o direction_n the_o apostle_n write_v these_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o be_v of_o so_o near_a affinity_n proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n be_v so_o near_o and_o successive_o conjoin_v and_o knit_v together_o in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o chapter_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o he_o holy_a ghost_n show_v the_o immediate_a caller_n and_o sanctifier_n both_o of_o the_o church_n and_o also_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n again_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v as_o we_o may_v say_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n be_v a_o further_a explication_n &_o unfolding_n of_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v here_o consider_v more_o particular_o in_o the_o distinct_a member_n of_o it_o now_o therefore_o in_o the_o former_a text_n i_o mean_v in_o the_o 12._o and_o 13._o verse_n of_o this_o chapter_n the_o apostle_n as_o we_o have_v already_o see_v have_v show_v that_o the_o church_n though_o it_o have_v many_o member_n be_v yet_o but_o one_o body_n and_o so_o have_v a_o holy_a and_o mystical_a or_o spiritual_a union_n with_o our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o head_n of_o it_o in_o our_o present_a text_n the_o same_o our_o apostle_n declare_v further_a that_o though_o it_o be_v one_o only_o yet_o it_o have_v many_o member_n and_o that_o the_o diverse_a member_n have_v diverse_a faculty_n and_o according_o diverse_a
either_o sort_n of_o these_o duty_n do_v belong_v hereunto_o and_o first_o as_o touch_v the_o former_a sort_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o they_o do_v so_o even_o from_o that_o similitude_n of_o the_o body_n which_o s._n paul_n have_v use_v as_o may_v well_o be_v observe_v from_o the_o near_a knit_n of_o the_o member_n in_o the_o natural_a body_n and_o from_o their_o mutual_a tenderness_n each_o to_o other_o answerable_a to_o the_o same_o their_o near_a connexion_n and_o according_a to_o that_o sweet_a law_n which_o god_n have_v set_v in_o nature_n for_o see_v as_o have_v be_v declare_v already_o all_o christian_n be_v most_o near_o link_v together_o in_o christ_n jesus_n even_o by_o the_o bond_n of_o that_o spirit_n of_o he_o which_o be_v the_o worker_n of_o all_o good_a and_o holy_a conjunction_n and_o likewise_o see_v that_o spiritual_a head_n to_o wit_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n from_o the_o which_o every_o member_n of_o his_o body_n receive_v life_n be_v more_o lively_a and_o mighty_a in_o operation_n by_o infinite_a degree_n then_o be_v the_o natural_a head_n of_o the_o natural_a body_n therefore_o ought_v all_o christian_n to_o be_v most_o hearty_a tender_a and_o faithful_a in_o their_o mutual_a love_n to_o the_o cherish_n and_o heart_v on_o of_o one_o another_o in_o the_o way_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o for_o the_o very_a same_o cause_n do_v our_o apostle_n s._n paul_n in_o the_o 13._o chap._n immediate_o after_o this_o doctrine_n of_o our_o most_o near_a conjunction_n with_o our_o saviour_n christ_n contain_v in_o our_o text_n treat_v of_o christian_a love_n as_o be_v in_o respite_n of_o some_o fifteen_o or_o sixteen_o property_n which_o he_o there_o rehearse_v the_o way_n of_o all_o perfection_n and_o as_o else_o where_o he_o term_v it_o the_o bond_n of_o perfection_n and_o that_o which_o we_o ought_v to_o grow_v up_o and_o increase_v in_o continual_o colos_n 3.14_o and_o ephes_n 4_o 15._o as_o touch_v the_o apostle_n own_o example_n and_o practice_n what_o it_o be_v we_o have_v see_v before_o rom._n 1.11.12.1_o cor._n 9.19_o etc._n etc._n read_v also_o 2._o ep._n 11.28.29_o now_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o this_o every_o one_o according_a to_o that_o which_o have_v likewise_o be_v set_v down_o before_o be_v to_o have_v due_a regard_n what_o member_n he_o for_o his_o part_n be_v in_o the_o body_n whether_o a_o eye_n to_o foresee_v or_o a_o ear_n to_o hearken_v after_o thing_n as_o a_o good_a intelligencer_n concern_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n or_o a_o hand_n to_o help_v the_o poor_a or_o a_o foot_n to_o be_v command_v and_o employ_v about_o any_o mean_a service_n etc._n etc._n and_o according_o every_o one_o be_v to_o do_v the_o proper_a office_n of_o such_o or_o such_o a_o member_n as_o he_o be_v to_o the_o which_o end_n &_o purpose_n here_o call_v again_o to_o mind_n rom._n ch_n 12._o verse_n 3.4_o ●_o etc._n etc._n and_o ephes_n ch_n 4._o verse_n 4.11.12.13.14.15.16_o and_o verse_n 25_o read_v also_o job_n ch_n 25.15_o where_o we_o may_v see_v how_o he_o for_o his_o part_n be_v a_o eye_n to_o the_o blind_a etc._n etc._n and_o 1._o john_n 1.6.7_o if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v fellowship_n with_o god_n say_v the_o apostle_n and_o walk_v in_o darkness_n we_o lie_v and_o do_v not_o true_o but_o if_o we_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o light_n we_o have_v fellowship_n one_o with_o another_o and_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n his_o son_n cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o regard_n of_o spiritual_a grace_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o gather_n of_o manna_n all_o bring_v that_o which_o they_o gather_v to_o one_o heap_n and_o all_o have_v their_o meet_a portion_n from_o the_o same_o heap_n again_o and_o so_o there_o be_v find_v sufficient_a for_o every_o man_n so_o it_o ought_v also_o to_o be_v in_o the_o communicate_v of_o bodily_a relief_n and_o succour_n according_a to_o the_o excellent_a doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n in_o that_o behalf_n 2._o cor_fw-la 8.13.14.15_o and_o hereof_o we_o have_v the_o church_n of_o corinth_n and_o other_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n notable_a example_n for_o the_o best_a order_v and_o most_o charitable_a communion_n act._n 4.32_o etc._n etc._n as_o the_o sea_n fill_v all_o river_n and_o all_o river_n run_v again_o into_o the_o sea_n so_o shall_v it_o be_v among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n every_o one_o ought_v to_o love_v and_o tender_v all_o and_o all_o again_o every_o one_o the_o minister_n the_o people_n and_o the_o people_n their_o minister_n etc._n etc._n 1_o thess_n 2.7.8.11.19.20_o and_o cha_n 5.12.13.14.15_o heb._n 13._o verse_n 17.18_o philip._n 2.1_o 2.3.4_o the_o love_n of_o the_o saint_n one_o towards_o another_o and_o towards_o the_o whole_a church_n it_o must_v be_v a_o holy_a love_n that_o be_v a_o more_o excellent_a love_n their_o that_o which_o be_v natural_a or_o civil_a &_o philosophical_a insomuch_o as_o the_o corporation_n whereof_o we_o be_v memeber_n in_o the_o church_n be_v not_o a_o natural_a or_o civil_a body_n but_o a_o sacred_a and_o holy_a body_n as_o we_o have_v see_v before_o for_o the_o precept_n of_o which_o love_n read_v rom._n 12.9.10_o etc._n etc._n gal._n 6.1.2_o heb._n 13.1.2.3_o 1._o pet._n 1.23_o whereof_o we_o have_v david_n for_o one_o notable_a example_n psal_n 16.3_o all_o my_o delight_n say_v he_o be_v in_o the_o saint_n etc._n etc._n hitherto_o of_o the_o first_o sort_n of_o the_o duty_n more_o general_o consider_v now_o touch_v the_o second_o sort_n more_o particular_o mention_v in_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o answer_n first_o for_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v use_v as_o a_o mean_n to_o bring_v we_o and_o to_o settle_v we_o in_o this_o holy_a communion_n read_v 1._o joh._n 1.3_o that_o which_o we_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v declare_v we_o unto_o you_o that_o you_o may_v have_v also_o fellowship_n with_o we_o and_o that_o our_o fellowship_n also_o may_v be_v with_o the_o father_n and_o with_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n in_o which_o respect_n also_o it_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n paul_n do_v hearty_o praise_n god_n for_o that_o fellowship_n which_o the_o philippian_n have_v in_o the_o gospel_n by_o the_o preach_v thereof_o as_o we_o read_v chap._n 1._o verse_n 3._o and_o 5._o of_o that_o epistle_n which_o he_o write_v unto_o they_o that_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n be_v to_o be_v use_v to_o the_o same_o end_n remember_v what_o the_o apostle_n paul_n have_v write_v in_o our_o text_n by_o one_o spirit_n say_v he_o we_o be_v baptize_v into_o one_o body_n etc._n etc._n and_o likewise_o in_o the_o same_o place_n we_o be_v cause_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o sparke_n rit_fw-fr let_v we_o consider_v also_o his_o earnest_a assertion_n in_o the_o same_o epistle_n chap._n 10.16.17_o the_o cup_n of_o blessing_n which_o we_o bless_v be_v it_o not_o the_o communion_n that_o be_v a_o true_a sign_n and_o pledge_n of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v it_o not_o the_o communion_n that_o be_v a_o true_a sign_n etc._n etc._n as_o before_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n that_o be_v to_o say_v have_v not_o we_o that_o true_o believe_v in_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o who_o do_v by_o a_o true_a faith_n eat_v the_o bread_n and_o drink_v the_o wine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n have_v we_o not_o i_o say_v our_o very_a true_a communion_n with_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n though_o in_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n yea_o with_o the_o whole_a humane_a nature_n yea_o and_o thereby_o even_o with_o whole_a christ_n both_o god_n and_o man_n as_o though_o the_o apostle_n shall_v earnest_o affirm_v that_o we_o have_v our_o communion_n with_o he_o assure_o and_o as_o we_o have_v it_o with_o our_o saviour_n so_o also_o we_o have_v it_o by_o he_o as_o certain_o among_o ourselves_o as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n say_v for_o we_o that_o be_v many_o be_v one_o bread_n and_o one_o body_n because_o we_o be_v all_o partaker_n of_o one_o bread_n and_o all_o through_o one_o and_o the_o same_o spirit_n work_v in_o we_o all_o call_v also_o to_o mind_n here_o again_o act._n 2.42_o etc._n etc._n and_o ch_n 4.32_o and_o ephes_n 4.3.4.5.6_o and_o for_o prayer_n read_v in_o the_o same_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n cha_n 6.18_o pray_v always_o with_o all_o manner_n of_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n in_o the_o spirit_n and_o watch_v thereunto_o with_o all_o perseverance_n and_o supplication_n for_o all_o saint_n and_o 2._o cor._n 1.11_o and_o philip._n 1.19_o for_o i_o know_v say_v the_o apostle_n that_o this_o shall_v turn_v to_o my_o salvation_n through_o your_o prayer_n and_o by_o
soul_n belief_n that_o to_o every_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n belong_v the_o bless_a immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n quest._n now_o what_o follow_v next_o in_o the_o article_n of_o our_o belief_n it_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o answ_n i_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n expli_v in_o the_o former_a article_n of_o this_o second_o part_n of_o our_o belief_n which_o be_v concern_v the_o church_n of_o god_n we_o have_v see_v one_o special_a privilege_n or_o prerogative_n of_o it_o to_o wit_n the_o high_a benefit_n of_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n the_o which_o as_o we_o have_v see_v make_v every_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n bless_v and_o happy_a even_o here_o in_o this_o present_a life_n the_o privilege_n or_o prerogative_n now_o follow_v do_v belong_v to_o the_o life_n to_o come_v to_o wit_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n now_o last_v rehearse_v after_o the_o which_o follow_v in_o the_o article_n of_o our_o belief_n everlasting_a life_n beyond_o the_o which_o nothing_o can_v furthermore_o be_v believe_v or_o expect_v of_o us._n of_o these_o thing_n therefore_o we_o be_v henceforth_o to_o inquire_v and_o so_o will_v we_o do_v if_o god_n permit_v nevertheless_o in_o so_o much_o as_o we_o enjoy_v one_o special_a benefit_n by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n after_o this_o life_n end_v before_o that_o our_o body_n shall_v rise_v again_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o happy_a estate_n of_o our_o soul_n in_o the_o bless_a immortality_n thereof_o even_o from_o the_o time_n that_o they_o leave_v the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o mortal_a body_n i_o hold_v it_o very_o expedient_a that_o for_o more_o plain_a and_o full_a explication_n sake_n we_o do_v here_o insert_v something_o concern_v this_o point_n before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o article_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n which_o shall_v not_o be_v till_o the_o last_o day_n when_o both_o body_n and_o soul_n reunite_v together_o shall_v be_v partaker_n of_o that_o everlasting_a life_n which_o the_o soul_n be_v partaker_n of_o immediate_o after_o this_o life_n belief_n that_o to_o every_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n belong_v the_o bless_a immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n question_n first_o therefore_o what_o ground_n of_o holy_a scripture_n have_v you_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a be_v in_o happy_a and_o bless_a estate_n even_o from_o the_o time_n that_o they_o leave_v this_o mortal_a and_o sinful_a body_n in_o the_o 5._o chap._n of_o the_o 2._o ep_v to_o the_o corinthian_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o chapter_n answer_n and_o so_o forth_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 5._o verse_n 1._o we_o say_v the_o apostle_n paul_n know_v that_o if_o our_o earthly_a house_n of_o this_o tabernacle_n be_v destroy_v we_o have_v a_o building_n give_v of_o god_n that_o be_v a_o house_n not_o make_v with_o hand_n but_o eternal_a in_o the_o heaven_n 2._o for_o therefore_o we_o sigh_v desire_v to_o be_v clothe_v with_o our_o house_n which_o be_v from_o heaven_n 3._o because_o that_o if_o we_o clothe_v we_o shall_v not_o be_v find_v naked_a 4._o for_o in_o deed_n we_o that_o be_v in_o this_o tabernacle_n sigh_n and_o be_v burden_a not_o because_o we_o will_v be_v unclothe_v but_o will_v be_v clothe_v upon_o that_o mortality_n may_v be_v swallow_v up_o of_o life_n 5._o and_o he_o that_o have_v create_v we_o for_o this_o thing_n be_v god_n who_o also_o have_v give_v unto_o we_o the_o earnest_n of_o the_o spirit_n proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n these_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n as_o m._n caluin_n that_o holy_a interpreter_n well_o observe_v do_v not_o only_o concern_v the_o glorious_a restore_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o faithful_a at_o the_o resurrection_n but_o also_o that_o bless_a estate_n of_o their_o soul_n which_o they_o shall_v enjoy_v in_o bless_a immortality_n all_o the_o mean_a while_n even_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o natural_a death_n of_o the_o body_n whensoever_o that_o shall_v be_v for_o though_o he_o make_v some_o question_n at_o the_o first_o whether_o they_o shall_v be_v restrain_v to_o the_o one_o or_o to_o the_o other_o yet_o he_o choose_v rather_o to_o understand_v the_o apostle_n as_o intend_v to_o treat_v of_o they_o both_o first_o of_o the_o bless_a immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o then_o of_o the_o glorious_a resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n his_o word_n be_v these_o in_o utrovis_fw-la sensu_fw-la nihil_fw-la est_fw-la incommodi_fw-la quanquam_fw-la malo_fw-la ita_fw-la accipere_fw-la ut_fw-la initium_fw-la huius_fw-la aedificij_fw-la sit_fw-la beatus_fw-la status_fw-la post_fw-la mortem_fw-la consummatio_fw-la antem_fw-la sit_fw-la gloria_fw-la ultimae_fw-la resurrectionis_fw-la there_o be_v say_v he_o no_o inconvenience_n in_o either_o of_o these_o interpretation●_n yet_o i_o have_v rather_o understand_v the_o apostle_n word_n so_o as_o the_o bless_a estate_n of_o the_o soul_n after_o death_n shall_v be_v the_o beginning_n of_o this_o build_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n at_o the_o last_o to_o be_v the_o perfiting_a of_o it_o and_o this_o exposition_n as_o he_o say_v further_o will_v the_o course_n of_o the_o apostle_n text_n rather_o approve_v hanc_fw-la expositionem_fw-la melius_fw-la comprobabit_fw-la apostoli_fw-la contextus_fw-la he_o say_v also_o that_o the_o epitheta_n or_o addition_n of_o word_n whereby_o the_o apostle_n set_v out_o the_o building_n which_o he_o speak_v of_o serve_v more_o fit_o to_o confirm_v the_o perpetuity_n of_o it_o epitheta_n inquit_fw-la quae_fw-la adiungit_fw-la huic_fw-la aedificio_fw-la faciunt_fw-la ad_fw-la perpetuitatem_fw-la melius_fw-la confirmandan_n this_o therefore_o be_v the_o apostle_n scope_n in_o general_a let_v we_o a_o little_a more_o particular_o consider_v the_o course_n of_o his_o speech_n and_o first_o let_v we_o well_o observe_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o this_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n as_o of_o a_o point_n certain_o know_v i_o mean_v this_o article_n of_o the_o bless_a immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n which_o be_v our_o present_a argument_n beside_o the_o glorious_a resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o which_o we_o will_v defer_v to_o speak_v for_o a_o while_n yea_o let_v we_o observe_v that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o it_o as_o of_o a_o matter_n not_o know_v of_o he_o alone_o by_o particular_a revelation_n but_o also_o of_o other_o the_o apostle_n and_o minister_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o of_o his_o church_n as_o one_o chief_a principle_n of_o the_o religion_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o common_a belief_n of_o his_o faithful_a people_n this_o knowledge_n and_o persuasion_n of_o faith_n may_v well_o arise_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o faithful_a at_o this_o time_n which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o from_o that_o light_n which_o our_o saviour_n give_v both_o by_o his_o doctrine_n &_o promise_n &_o also_o by_o his_o practice_n by_o doctrine_n in_o the_o parable_n of_o lazarus_n who_o soul_n as_o our_o saviour_n there_o teach_v be_v carry_v by_o angel_n into_o abraham_n bosom_n so_o soon_o as_o it_o leave_v the_o body_n luk._n 16.22_o and_o in_o that_o also_o he_o teach_v further_a concern_v abraham_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o faithful_a that_o they_o be_v &_o be_v ever_o since_o their_o natural_a death_n live_v in_o soul_n and_o so_o shall_v be_v for_o ever_o &_o ever_o insomuch_o as_o god_n who_o be_v &_o be_v for_o ever_o their_o god_n be_v not_o the_o god_n of_o the_o dead_a but_o of_o the_o live_n mat._n 22.32_o whence_o also_o our_o saviour_n prove_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n hereafter_o to_o follow_v see_v god_n be_v not_o the_o god_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a only_o but_o of_o their_o body_n also_o &_o therefore_o will_v undoubted_o raise_v they_o up_o again_o for_o these_o be_v so_o link_v together_o in_o the_o counsel_n &_o purpose_n of_o god_n that_o grant_v the_o one_o &_o you_o grant_v the_o other_o deny_v either_o of_o they_o &_o you_o deny_v both_o as_o we_o shall_v further_o perceive_v by_o the_o apostle_n paul_n reason_n 1._o cor._n 15.19_o when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o article_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n in_o the_o mean_a season_n we_o see_v that_o our_o saviour_n have_v by_o doctrine_n confirm_v the_o bless_a immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a after_o this_o life_n and_o touch_v his_o promise_n he_o have_v thereby_o confirm_v it_o to_o the_o thief_n that_o repent_v of_o his_o sin_n and_o believe_v in_o he_o on_o the_o cross_n say_v today_o shall_v thou_o be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n and_o by_o practice_n also_o he_o confirm_v the_o same_o in_o that_o at_o his_o own_o death_n he_o commend_v his_o own_o soul_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o father_n luk._n 23.43.46_o the_o same_o be_v testify_v concern_v stephen_n who_o faithful_o commend_v his_o spirit_n that_o
love_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n thus_o then_o saint_n john_n pronounce_v all_o the_o faithful_a bless_a he_o have_v show_v also_o wherein_o they_o be_v bless_v yea_o so_o bless_v that_o they_o do_v know_v and_o be_v ioyous_o affect_v with_o the_o sweetness_n of_o the_o same_o their_o blessing_n comfort_n the_o comfort_n far_o above_o al●_n earthly_a blessing_n which_o they_o ever_o taste_v of_o before_o the_o solemn_a manner_n of_o the_o pronounce_v of_o this_o blessing_n in_o that_o it_o be_v deliver_v to_o john_n from_o heaven_n testify_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o command_v to_o be_v write_v and_o keep_v in_o holy_a record_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n all_o make_v this_o blessing_n so_o much_o the_o more_o comfortable_a to_o every_o one_o to_o who_o it_o belong_v that_o be_v to_o every_o one_o that_o apprehend_v it_o by_o faith_n and_o that_o not_o only_o because_o they_o know_v they_o shall_v rest_v from_o their_o labour_n but_o also_o for_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v therewithal_o set_v out_o of_o the_o danger_n of_o all_o their_o adversary_n both_o satan_n and_o his_o instrument_n for_o ever_o yea_o for_o that_o they_o shall_v enjoy_v there_o far_o more_o excellent_a comfort_n than_o they_o shall_v leave_v behind_o they_o here_o on_o earth_n whether_o wife_n child_n dear_a friend_n house_n and_o land_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o for_o all_o these_o be_v small_a in_o comparison_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o of_o the_o most_o bless_a fellowship_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n with_o freedom_n from_o all_o motion_n of_o sin_n and_o with_o sweet_a liberty_n to_o rejoice_v and_o praise_v the_o lord_n continual_o and_o so_o our_o saviour_n comfort_v his_o disciple_n matth._n 19.29_o where_o he_o show_v that_o everlasting_a life_n weigh_v down_o all_o these_o consideration_n do_v make_v death_n also_o which_o be_v in_o itself_o very_o grievous_a and_o horrible_a to_o be_v rather_o welcome_o then_o otherwise_o when_o once_o the_o time_n appoint_v be_v come_v and_o that_o the_o heart_n be_v due_o prepare_v according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n in_o the_o 1._o chapter_n to_o the_o philippian_n verse_n 21_o 22_o 23._o for_o say_v he_o christ_n be_v to_o i_o both_o in_o life_n and_o in_o death_n advantage_n etc._n etc._n i_o desire_v to_o be_v loose_v a●d_n to_o be_v with_o christ_n which_o be_v best_a of_o all_o and_o chap._n 2._o verse_n 17_o 18._o though_o i_o be_v offer_v up_o upon_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o service_n of_o your_o faith_n i_o be_o glad_a and_o rejoice_v with_o you_o all_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n also_o be_v you_o glad_a and_o rejoice_v with_o i_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o faithful_a christian_n have_v seek_v out_o many_o pleasant_a similitude_n to_o abate_v the_o fear_n of_o death_n yea_o to_o help_n to_o raise_v up_o the_o heart_n in_o a_o holy_a triumph_n against_o it_o in_o that_o they_o compare_v it_o to_o a_o serpent_n that_o have_v lose_v both_o poison_n and_o sting_v or_o to_o a_o serpent_n that_o be_v paint_v and_o hang_v up_o for_o a_o sign_n at_o the_o gate_n of_o some_o goodly_a inn_n or_o to_o the_o land_n at_o a_o haven_n after_o that_o a_o man_n have_v for_o a_o long_a time_n be_v dangerous_o toss_v upon_o the_o troublesome_a sea_n or_o to_o the_o new_a cast_n of_o a_o precious_a vessel_n to_o make_v it_o more_o beautiful_a and_o glorious_a then_o before_o etc._n etc._n as_o they_o have_v be_v heretofore_o more_o full_o allege_v in_o the_o comfort_n of_o faith_n touch_v the_o fatherly_a providence_n of_o god_n 1._o book_n page_n 247_o 248._o and_o very_o the_o cause_n why_o we_o have_v oftentimes_o the_o less_o comfort_n and_o holy_a confidence_n against_o death_n be_v for_o that_o we_o have_v not_o so_o earnest_o instruct_v our_o soul_n in_o the_o persuasion_n of_o this_o bless_a immortality_n immediate_o after_o this_o life_n be_v end_v but_o do_v suspend_v our_o comfort_n and_o put_v it_o too_o far_o off_o when_o we_o will_v apprehend_v no_o comfort_n till_o our_o thought_n come_v at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n i_o fear_v i_o the_o psychopannychie_n or_o soule-sleeping_a after_o the_o natural_a death_n deceive_v many_o that_o be_v not_o profess_v anabaptist_n because_o they_o be_v not_o in_o their_o life_n time_n wake_v enough_o to_o meditate_v of_o this_o most_o sweet_a and_o comfortable_a doctrine_n of_o the_o bless_a immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n immediate_o after_o the_o bodily_a death_n but_o the_o knowledge_n of_o this_o say_v master_n caluin_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o that_o calm_a and_o quiet_a trust_n which_o we_o repose_v in_o god_n haec_fw-la cognitio_fw-la nostrae_fw-la tranquillitatis_fw-la &_o fiduciae_fw-la causa_fw-la est_fw-la and_o will_v to_o god_n that_o we_o can_v better_o consider_v of_o it_o for_o assure_o it_o be_v a_o most_o inestimable_a benefit_n that_o god_n have_v make_v our_o soul_n such_o a_o part_n of_o his_o creation_n as_o no_o earthly_a wight_n or_o cruel_a tyrant_n no_o nor_o any_o power_n of_o hell_n can_v destroy_v it_o so_o that_o it_o need_v be_v afraid_a of_o nothing_o save_v only_o to_o sin_n and_o so_o to_o offend_v the_o majesty_n of_o god_n who_o make_v it_o and_o yet_o behold_v for_o our_o comfort_n in_o that_o respect_n also_o how_o inestimable_a god_n mercy_n be_v in_o that_o he_o have_v prepare_v for_o our_o soul_n a_o most_o sovereign_a remedy_n in_o that_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o shall_v true_o repent_v that_o they_o have_v sin_v the_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v a_o most_o bless_a counter-poison_n against_o all_o the_o contagion_n and_o peril_n of_o it_o hitherto_o therefore_o of_o the_o use_n of_o this_o article_n for_o comfort_n duty_n the_o duty_n the_o use_n for_o duty_n be_v next_o qu._n what_o ought_v they_o to_o be_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o comfort_n of_o this_o so_o great_a and_o inestimable_a a_o benefit_n an._n as_o the_o benefit_n be_v great_a than_o we_o can_v esteem_v and_o value_n so_o the_o duty_n which_o belong_v unto_o it_o be_v in_o due_a proportion_n great_a than_o we_o can_v perform_v expli_v it_o be_v true_a that_o you_o say_v we_o can_v perform_v any_o duty_n or_o duty_n answerable_a to_o the_o greatness_n and_o worthiness_n of_o the_o benefit_n nevertheless_o this_o must_v not_o make_v we_o the_o more_o negligent_a or_o slack_v but_o we_o ought_v rather_o hereby_o to_o provoke_v and_o stir_v up_o ourselves_o to_o be_v more_o earnest_n in_o the_o performance_n of_o the_o best_a duty_n of_o thankfulness_n to_o god_n that_o we_o may_v question_n go_v on_o therefore_o which_o be_v the_o duty_n which_o we_o ought_v to_o perform_v with_o the_o best_a endeavour_n that_o we_o can_v answer_n it_o be_v our_o bind_a duty_n so_o long_o as_o we_o live_v here_o to_o endeavour_v to_o the_o uttermost_a of_o our_o power_n to_o serve_v and_o glorify_v god_n with_o all_o the_o power_n of_o our_o soul_n both_o with_o our_o understanding_n and_o judgement_n and_o also_o with_o our_o will_n and_o affection_n &_o with_o all_o whatsoever_o be_v within_o we_o which_o we_o have_v receive_v of_o god_n it_o be_v our_o duty_n likewise_o to_o the_o same_o end_n to_o be_v always_o instant_a with_o god_n by_o prayer_n that_o it_o may_v please_v he_o above_o all_o thing_n to_o sanctify_v we_o in_o our_o soul_n and_o spirit_n unto_o he_o we_o ourselves_o also_o aught_o to_o be_v very_o careful_a to_o keep_v our_o soul_n pure_a and_o chaste_a unto_o god_n lest_o at_o any_o time_n they_o shall_v fall_v away_o or_o decline_v from_o he_o moreover_o we_o be_v from_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o bless_a immortality_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o encourage_v ourselves_o against_o all_o the_o malice_n and_o violence_n of_o our_o adversary_n not_o only_o of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o also_o of_o such_o as_o be_v spiritual_a final_o we_o be_v in_o all_o our_o danger_n and_o at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n with_o good_a comfort_n to_o commend_v our_o soul_n and_o spirit_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o most_o gracious_a and_o merciful_a god_n proof_n explication_n &_o proof_n these_o duty_n do_v indeed_o belong_v to_o the_o comfort_n of_o this_o article_n whereof_o let_v we_o see_v some_o proof_n to_o the_o stir_v up_o of_o ourselves_o to_o make_v more_o conscience_n in_o the_o performance_n of_o they_o and_o first_o touch_v the_o first_o branch_n of_o the_o answer_n insomuch_o as_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o we_o stand_v bind_v with_o all_o holy_a care_n to_o glorify_v god_n with_o our_o body_n and_o with_o all_o the_o member_n thereof_o as_o we_o shall_v have_v just_a occasion_n to_o observe_v more_o purposed_o hereafter_o we_o must_v needs_o acknowledge_v that_o much_o rather_o ought_v we_o to_o do_v it_o with_o our_o soul_n because_o from_o thence_o flow_v forth_o all_o the_o action_n
any_o one_o of_o they_o but_o he_o may_v just_o be_v say_v in_o effect_n to_o deny_v they_o all_o and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o apostle_n be_v so_o earnest_a in_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o article_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v the_o apostle_n own_o word_n quest_n and_o first_o which_o be_v his_o word_n concern_v his_o apostolical_a authority_n answ_n verse_n 3._o first_o of_o all_o say_v he_o i_o deliver_v unto_o you_o that_o which_o i_o receive_v how_o that_o christ_n arise_v the_o three_o day_n etc._n etc._n expli_v here_o be_v a_o plain_a proof_n in_o deed_n from_o his_o apostolical_a authority_n confirm_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n himself_o who_o put_v he_o into_o the_o office_n of_o apostleship_n and_o deliver_v unto_o he_o the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o have_v preach_v question_n in_o the_o next_o place_n which_o be_v his_o word_n of_o confirmation_n from_o former_a scripture_n answer_n verse_n 4._o he_o say_v to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o preach_v the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n he_o do_v so_o in_o deed_n and_o namely_o in_o the_o 4._o verse_n and_o he_o may_v well_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n for_o as_o we_o have_v see_v in_o the_o handle_n of_o the_o article_n of_o our_o saviour_n rise_v the_o three_o day_n from_o the_o dead_a that_o it_o be_v often_o prophesy_v of_o and_o foretell_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n both_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o psalm_n and_o also_o in_o other_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n question_n now_o three_o how_o do_v the_o apostle_n reason_n by_o his_o argument_n of_o parity_n or_o equal_a comparison_n answer_n 4._o to_o this_o purpose_n he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v preach_v the_o resurrection_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n as_o well_o as_o he_o have_v do_v the_o death_n and_o burial_n of_o our_o saviour_n explication_n explication_n it_o be_v true_a and_o herein_o he_o put_v the_o corinthian_n well_o in_o mind_n that_o they_o ought_v by_o good_a reason_n constant_o to_o believe_v this_o article_n from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o well_o as_o either_o of_o they_o and_o the_o rather_o also_o because_o this_o be_v as_o certain_o confirm_v by_o historical_a testimony_n of_o sufficient_a and_o authentical_a eye-witness_n as_o either_o of_o the_o other_o be_v as_o the_o apostle_n show_v further_a by_o six_o several_a appearance_n of_o our_o saviour_n after_o that_o he_o be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o come_v out_o of_o his_o grave_n as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o text_n verse_n 5.6.7.8_o let_v we_o hear_v the_o apostle_n word_n question_n which_o be_v they_o answer_n 5._o he_o be_v see_v of_o cephas_n that_o be_v of_o peter_n then_o of_o the_o twelve_o 6_o after_o that_o he_o be_v see_v of_o more_o than_o five_o hundred_o brethren_n at_o once_o whereof_o many_o say_v the_o apostle_n remain_v unto_o this_o present_a and_o some_o also_o be_v a_o sleep_n 7._o after_o that_o he_o be_v see_v of_o james_n then_o of_o all_o the_o apostle_n 8._o and_o last_o of_o all_o say_v s._n paul_n he_o be_v see_v also_o of_o i_o as_o of_o one_o bear_v out_o of_o time_n explication_n explication_n here_o be_v very_o great_a evidence_n in_o deed_n and_o a_o undoubted_a certainty_n from_o historical_a proof_n touch_v the_o fulfil_n of_o all_o former_a prophecy_n in_o this_o behalf_n as_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v acknowledge_v and_o these_o manifold_a appearance_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n be_v not_o only_o so_o many_o proof_n and_o confirmation_n of_o his_o own_o resurrection_n as_o we_o have_v see_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o open_n of_o that_o article_n but_o they_o be_v also_o as_o many_o proof_n and_o assurance_n to_o we_o that_o if_o we_o believe_v in_o our_o saviour_n christ_n our_o body_n shall_v likewise_o be_v raise_v up_o again_o to_o glory_v at_o the_o last_o day_n as_o the_o apostle_n in_o this_o place_n give_v we_o further_a to_o understand_v and_o let_v we_o herewithal_o well_o consider_v also_o that_o in_o so_o much_o as_o the_o holy_a apostle_n s_o paul_n do_v by_o diligent_a and_o earnest_a preach_n deliver_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o witness_n here_o mention_v concern_v the_o sundry_a and_o often_o appearance_n of_o our_o saviour_n after_o that_o he_o be_v rise_v that_o therefore_o they_o be_v to_o be_v esteem_v of_o necessary_a use_n and_o profit_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v preach_v and_o according_o that_o all_o whatsoever_o diligence_n and_o care_n which_o be_v use_v both_o in_o preach_v and_o hear_v and_o study_v of_o they_o be_v so_o authorise_v by_o the_o holy_a apostle_n that_o we_o need_v not_o account_v our_o former_a labour_n therein_o to_o be_v repent_v of_o but_o rather_o that_o we_o be_v great_o to_o bless_v and_o praise_n god_n with_o all_o our_o heart_n for_o his_o gracious_a direction_n and_o assistance_n therein_o &_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o have_v often_o recourse_n to_o the_o same_o doctrine_n and_o to_o be_v as_o ready_a to_o preach_v and_o hear_v it_o again_o when_o just_a occasion_n shall_v be_v offer_v as_o we_o be_v before_o thus_o much_o concern_v the_o historical_a warrant_n and_o confirmation_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n according_a to_o the_o prophetical_a prediction_n &_o foretelling_n of_o the_o same_o where_o this_o be_v in_o no_o wise_a to_o be_v neglect_v touch_v the_o apostle_n own_o testimony_n which_o he_o have_v give_v unto_o it_o upon_o his_o own_o certain_a knowledge_n in_o that_o he_o see_v our_o saviour_n after_o his_o ascension_n which_o he_o can_v not_o have_v do_v if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v rise_v again_o that_o though_o he_o do_v after_o his_o wont_a manner_n confess_v and_o bewail_v his_o sin_n and_o utter_v his_o unworthines_n to_o be_v a_o apostle_n yet_o he_o do_v it_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o be_v with_o such_o holy_a skill_n and_o dexterity_n that_o he_o do_v so_o much_o the_o rather_o magnify_v the_o credit_n of_o his_o apostleship_n and_o of_o this_o his_o present_a testimony_n by_o how_o much_o he_o do_v more_o high_o extol_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o that_o he_o of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n have_v vouchsafe_v to_o appoint_v he_o though_o most_o unworthy_a to_o that_o so_o high_a a_o office_n but_o let_v fall_v all_o comparison_n and_o leave_v the_o matter_n indifferent_o to_o be_v consider_v he_o conclude_v after_o this_o manner_n that_o whosoever_o be_v the_o instrument_n of_o god_n to_o preach_v the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o corinthian_n can_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o they_o have_v hear_v it_o preach_v yea_o so_o effectual_o that_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o blessing_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n they_o be_v confirm_v in_o their_o heart_n to_o believe_v the_o undoubted_a truth_n thereof_o and_o thus_o he_o make_v a_o notable_a transition_n to_o the_o dispute_v of_o the_o first_o question_n question_n in_o what_o word_n do_v the_o holy_a apostle_n contrive_v this_o artificial_a part_n of_o his_o speech_n answer_n 8._o last_o of_o all_o say_v he_o as_o we_o read_v verse_n 8.9_o 10.11_o he_o be_v see_v also_o of_o i_o as_o of_o one_o bear_v out_o of_o time_n 9_o for_o i_o be_o the_o least_o of_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_o not_o meet_v to_o be_v call_v a_o apostle_n because_o i_o persecute_v the_o church_n of_o god_n 10._o but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n i_o be_o that_o i_o be_o &_o his_o grace_n which_o be_v in_o i_o be_v not_o in_o vain_a but_o i_o labour_v more_o abundant_o than_o they_o all_o yet_o not_o i_o but_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v with_o i_o 11._o wherefore_o whether_o it_o be_v i_o or_o they_o so_o we_o preach_v and_o so_o have_v you_o believe_v explication_n explication_n thus_o then_o in_o these_o word_n the_o divine_a art_n and_o skill_n of_o that_o holy_a wisdom_n which_o god_n give_v to_o his_o bless_a apostle_n be_v very_o plain_a both_o for_o the_o uphold_v of_o his_o apostolical_a credit_n in_o his_o unfeigned_a abase_v of_o himself_o and_o also_o in_o his_o most_o commodious_a transition_n from_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o question_n to_o the_o disputation_n itself_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v further_o by_o the_o word_n which_o follow_v in_o the_o 12._o verse_n question_n which_o be_v they_o answer_n 12._o now_o say_v saint_n paul_n upon_o the_o premise_n if_o it_o be_v preach_v that_o christ_n be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a how_o say_v some_o among_o you_o that_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a explication_n explication_n here_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o holy_a apostle_n enter_v to_o dispute_v the_o first_o question_n from_o the_o former_a ground_n of_o our_o saviour_n resurrection_n
of_o honour_n chain_n bracelet_n etc._n etc._n to_o the_o dignity_n of_o be_v the_o son_n and_o daughter_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n and_o heir_n of_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n what_o be_v this_o present_a life_n which_o be_v but_o as_o a_o vapoure_n full_a of_o all_o labour_n and_o sorrow_n etc._n etc._n to_o this_o everlasting_a and_o most_o bless_a life_n let_v we_o read_v the_o book_n of_o the_o preacher_n with_o due_a attention_n and_o we_o shall_v confess_v with_o king_n solomon_n that_o it_o be_v so_o read_v also_o mat_n 6_o 19_o etc._n etc._n where_o our_o saviour_n who_o be_v great_a than_o king_n solomon_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o moth_n and_o cancer_n do_v fret_v and_o consume_v all_o earthly_a treasure_n and_o therefore_o counsel_v we_o with_o most_o wise_a counsel_n to_o lay_v up_o treasure_n for_o ourselves_o in_o heaven_n that_o our_o heart_n may_v be_v fix_v there_o read_v also_o luke_n 12.32.33.34_o and_o chap_n 16_o 8_o 9_o make_v you_o friend_n say_v our_o saviour_n of_o the_o riches_n of_o iniquity_n etc._n etc._n and_o john_n 6_o 27._o labour_v not_o for_o the_o meat_n which_o perish_v but_o for_o the_o meat_n which_o endure_v to_o everlasting_a life_n which_o the_o son_n of_o man_n will_v give_v unto_o you_o for_o he_o have_v god_n the_o father_n seal_v to_o the_o which_o purpose_n consider_v also_o and_o meditate_v diligent_o upon_o the_o example_n of_o saint_n paul_n philip_n 3_o 7._o &c_n &c_n and_o verse_n 20.21_o and_o upon_o the_o example_n of_o moses_n heb_fw-mi 11.24_o etc._n etc._n and_o upon_o that_o instruction_n which_o saint_n paul_n give_v timotheus_n 2._o ep_v chap_n 2_o verses_z 1.2_o etc._n etc._n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 13._o verse_n and_o second_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o second_o branch_n of_o the_o answer_n the_o same_o example_n may_v likewise_o well_o serve_v consider_v furthermore_o the_o often_o exhortation_n contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n where_o this_o chief_a benefit_n of_o everlasting_a life_n be_v use_v for_o a_o chief_a reason_n to_o move_v every_o estate_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n both_o rich_a and_o poor_a magistrate_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n etc._n etc._n to_o the_o duty_n both_o of_o their_o several_a calling_n and_o also_o to_o those_o that_o belong_v to_o they_o in_o common_a in_o that_o they_o be_v christian_n as_o for_o example_n gal_n chap_n 6._o verse_n 7.8_o 9.10_o be_v not_o deceive_v say_v the_o holy_a apostle_n god_n be_v not_o mock_v for_o whatsoever_o a_o man_n sow_v that_o shall_v he_o also_o reap_v for_o he_o that_o sow_v to_o his_o flesh_n shall_v of_o the_o flesh_n reap_v corruption_n but_o he_o that_o sow_v to_o the_o spirit_n shall_v of_o the_o spirit_n reap_v life_n everlasting_a let_v we_o not_o therefore_o be_v weary_a of_o welldoing_a for_o in_o due_a season_n we_o shall_v reap_v if_o we_o faint_v not_o while_o therefore_o we_o have_v time_n let_v we_o do_v good_a to_o all_o man_n but_o special_o to_o they_o that_o be_v of_o the_o household_n of_o faith_n and_o 1._o tim_n chap_n 6._o verse_n 17_o 18.19_o charge_v they_o that_o be_v rich_a in_o this_o world_n etc._n etc._n that_o they_o do_v good_a and_o be_v rich_a in_o good_a work_n and_o ready_a to_o distribute_v and_o communicate_v lay_v up_o in_o store_n for_o themselves_o a_o good_a foundation_n against_o the_o time_n to_o come_v that_o they_o may_v obtain_v eternal_a life_n and_o touch_v the_o duty_n of_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n read_v 1._o pet_n 5.1.2.3.4_o the_o elder_n which_o be_v among_o you_o i_o beseech_v who_o be_o also_o a_o elder_a and_o a_o witness_n of_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n and_o also_o a_o partaker_n of_o the_o glory_n that_o shall_v be_v reveal_v feed_v the_o flock_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n and_o when_o the_o chief_a shepherd_n shall_v appear_v you_o shall_v receive_v a_o incorruptible_a crown_n of_o glory_n and_o 1_o tim_n 6.12_o fight_v the_o good_a fight_n of_o faith_n say_v saint_n paul_n to_o timotheus_n lay_v thou_o hold_v of_o eternal_a life_n whereunto_o thou_o be_v also_o call_v etc._n etc._n now_o more_o general_o concern_v all_o christian_n read_v 1._o thes_n 5.8.9.10_o etc._n etc._n let_v we_o which_o be_v of_o the_o day_n be_v sober_a etc._n etc._n for_o god_n have_v not_o appoint_v we_o unto_o wrath_n but_o to_o obtain_v salvation_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o die_v for_o we_o etc._n etc._n wherefore_o exhort_v you_o one_o another_o etc._n etc._n read_v also_o titus_n 2_o 11._o etc._n etc._n the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o bring_v salvation_n unto_o all_o man_n have_v appear_v and_o teach_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v deny_v ungodliness_n etc._n etc._n and_o 1._o john_n chap_n 3_o verse_n 3_o every_o man_n that_o have_v this_o hope_n purge_v himself_o etc._n etc._n and_o in_o the_o epistle_n of_o jude_n verse_n 20.21_o belove_a edify_v yourselves_o etc._n etc._n look_v for_o the_o mercy_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o eternal_a life_n from_o these_o and_o such_o like_a place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n we_o see_v plain_o what_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o scope_n of_o every_o man_n natural_a life_n and_o of_o all_o the_o study_n and_o action_n thereof_o and_o that_o even_o because_o god_n have_v ordain_v we_o to_o this_o everlasting_a life_n and_o not_o without_o very_o just_a &_o weighty_a reason_n see_v as_o be_v touch_v before_o if_o we_o look_v to_o have_v our_o entrance_n and_o eternal_a abide_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n we_o must_v of_o necessity_n have_v first_o of_o all_o a_o entrance_n and_o some_o continuance_n also_o and_o proceed_v in_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n and_o that_o even_o from_o the_o first_o time_n of_o our_o call_n so_o long_o as_o god_n shall_v of_o his_o goodness_n prolong_v our_o life_n read_v eccles_n 12_o 1._o etc._n etc._n remember_v thy_o creator_n in_o the_o day_n of_o thy_o youth_n etc._n etc._n and_o luke_n 13._o verse_n 24._o strive_v to_o enter_v in_o at_o the_o straight_a gate_n &c_n &c_n heb_fw-mi 3_o 12.13_o 14._o and_o 2._o pet_n chap_n 2._o verse_n 5.6.7_o 10_o 11._o but_o how_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v this_o perform_v or_o mind_v of_o we_o do_v we_o not_o see_v the_o clean_a contrary_n among_o all_o sort_n and_o estate_n of_o people_n every_o man_n almost_o seek_v after_o worldly_a riches_n and_o honour_n how_o money_n may_v come_v merry_o in_o that_o they_o may_v live_v in_o pleasure_n and_o build_v their_o nest_n on_o high_a etc._n etc._n everlasting_a life_n be_v the_o least_o part_n of_o the_o thought_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n very_o few_o study_n and_o labour_n to_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n will_v to_o god_n we_o will_v better_o bethink_v ourselves_o of_o the_o holy_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n concern_v the_o vanity_n of_o riches_n the_o uncertainty_n of_o life_n and_o the_o fearful_a event_n of_o all_o inordinate_a joy_n and_o endeavour_n after_o the_o vain_a thing_n of_o this_o transitory_a world_n read_v the_o parable_n of_o the_o secure_a and_o voluptuous_a rich_a man_n luke_n 12_o 15_o 16._o thou_o fool_n say_v our_o saviour_n this_o night_n will_v they_o take_v away_o thy_o soul_n etc._n etc._n read_v also_o chap_n 16_o 19_o etc._n etc._n the_o rich_a man_n die_v and_o be_v cast_v down_o to_o hell_n torment_v and_o as_o our_o saviour_n say_v else_o where_o what_o shall_v it_o profit_v a_o man_n to_o win_v the_o whole_a world_n if_o he_o lose_v his_o soul_n very_o the_o benefit_n of_o our_o natural_a life_n aught_o to_o be_v of_o great_a weight_n with_o we_o to_o move_v we_o to_o glorify_v god_n the_o giver_n of_o it_o as_o psal_n 95_o verse_n 6._o and_o ps_n 100_o but_o infinite_o much_o more_o ought_v the_o promise_n and_o assurance_n of_o everlasting_a life_n to_o provoke_v we_o hereunto_o thus_o much_o concern_v the_o second_o branch_n of_o the_o answer_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o three_o branch_n read_v rom_n 8_o 18._o i_o count_v say_v the_o apostle_n that_o the_o affliction_n of_o this_o present_a time_n be_v not_o worthy_a of_o the_o glory_n which_o shall_v be_v show_v unto_o us._n likewise_o 2._o cor_n 4.16_o 17_o 18._o and_o 1_o pet_n 4_o 12_o 13_o 14_o and_o 19_o read_v also_o the_o encouragement_n which_o our_o saviour_n give_v unto_o all_o his_o disciple_n luke_n 6_o 20_o 23._o bless_a be_v you_o when_o man_n hate_v you_o etc._n etc._n rejoice_v in_o that_o day_n and_o be_v glad_a for_o great_a be_v your_o reward_n in_o heaven_n david_n have_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n wait_v for_o it_o with_o patience_n endure_v many_o affliction_n and_o fight_v many_o a_o battle_n that_o it_o may_v be_v establish_v unto_o he_o
repentance_n come_v from_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n our_o eternal_a saviour_n we_o have_v a_o entrance_n into_o this_o everlasting_a life_n while_o we_o be_v here_o in_o this_o world_n we_o shall_v never_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o full_a and_o perfect_a fruition_n of_o it_o article_n the_o danger_n of_o not_o believe_v this_o article_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n expl._n it_o be_v true_a according_a to_o that_o which_o our_o saviour_n christ_n affirm_v very_o earnest_o to_o nicodemus_n in_o the_o 3_o chap._n of_o john_n verse_n 3.5_o say_n very_o very_o except_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o he_o can_v see_v nor_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n much_o less_o therefore_o can_v he_o attain_v to_o the_o full_a and_o perfect_a fruition_n of_o it_o read_v also_o rom._n 6.21.22_o what_o fruit_n say_v the_o apostle_n have_v you_o then_o in_o those_o thing_n whereof_o you_o be_v now_o ashamed_a for_o the_o end_n of_o those_o thing_n be_v death_n but_o now_o be_v free_v from_o sin_n and_o make_v servant_n unto_o god_n you_o have_v your_o fruit_n in_o holiness_n and_o the_o end_n everlasting_a life_n likewise_o chap._n 8.1.2_o etc._n etc._n there_o be_v no_o condemnation_n to_o they_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n which_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n etc._n etc._n but_o verse_n 6._o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v death_n and_o verse_n 13._o if_o you_o live_v after_o the_o flesh_n you_o shall_v die_v wherefore_o as_o the_o same_o apostle_n write_v 2._o cor._n 5.17_o if_o any_o man_n be_v in_o christ_n let_v he_o be_v a_o new_a creature_n etc._n etc._n and_o 2._o tim._n 2.19.20.21_o the_o foundation_n of_o god_n remain_v sure_a and_o have_v this_o seal_n the_o lord_n know_v who_o be_v his_o and_o let_v every_o one_o that_o call_v or_o name_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n no_o onomazoon_n to_o onoma_fw-mi christou_n depart_v from_o iniquity_n notwithstanding_o in_o a_o great_a house_n be_v not_o only_a vessel_n of_o gold_n and_o of_o silver_n but_o also_o of_o wood_n and_o of_o earth_n and_o some_o for_o honour_n and_o some_o unto_o dishonour_n if_o any_o man_n therefore_o purge_v himself_o from_o these_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o vessel_n unto_o honour_n &c_n &c_n read_v also_o 1._o john_n 3.14_o he_o that_o love_v not_o his_o brother_n abide_v in_o death_n and_o verse_n 15._o whosoever_o hate_v his_o brother_n he_o be_v a_o manslay_a and_o you_o know_v that_o no_o manslay_a have_v eternal_a life_n abide_v in_o he_o very_o not_o to_o believe_v this_o article_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a effect_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v in_o effect_n as_o much_o as_o to_o deny_v faith_n to_o all_o the_o former_a article_n both_o concern_v god_n himself_o and_o also_o concern_v his_o church_n so_o that_o the_o misery_n of_o all_o such_o must_v needs_o be_v most_o grievous_a and_o infinite_a as_o we_o shall_v see_v further_o when_o we_o come_v to_o consider_v of_o the_o general_a danger_n of_o not_o believe_v wherefore_o belove_v in_o the_o lord_n i_o speak_v to_o all_o both_o young_a and_o old_a we_o may_v all_o of_o we_o easy_o perceive_v the_o necessity_n of_o believe_v and_o obey_v the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o article_n yea_o and_o that_o in_o a_o special_a respect_n and_o reference_n to_o all_o the_o rest_n insomuch_o as_o according_a to_o that_o which_o be_v say_v in_o the_o beginning_n this_o article_n be_v the_o end_n and_o scope_n of_o all_o to_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o glorious_a riches_n of_o the_o most_o free_a grace_n and_o infinite_a mercy_n of_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n to_o who_o be_v all_o praise_n and_o glory_n ascribe_v as_o most_o due_a for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n the_o error_n and_o heresy_n to_o be_v avoid_v which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o true_a belief_n of_o this_o last_o article_n be_v such_o as_o hereafter_o do_v follow_v first_o the_o heretical_a opinion_n of_o the_o corinthian_n nepotian_o chiliast_n and_o of_o those_o that_o be_v call_v aeternals_n who_o be_v record_v to_o have_v hold_v that_o the_o eternal_a life_n which_o shall_v be_v after_o the_o resurrection_n consist_v in_o bodily_a pleasure_n to_o be_v have_v here_o on_o earth_n and_o the_o same_o to_o continue_v only_o for_o the_o space_n of_o one_o thousand_o of_o year_n second_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o popuzians_n who_o say_v that_o eternal_a life_n and_o the_o celestial_a jerusalem_n be_v here_o on_o earth_n and_o like_v to_o this_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o pelagian_o and_o celestian_o who_o be_v say_v to_o affirm_v that_o eternal_a life_n be_v without_o the_o kingdom_n and_o paradise_n of_o god_n moreover_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o adamite_n who_o have_v teach_v that_o the_o congregation_n or_o company_n of_o the_o church_n here_o on_o earth_n be_v the_o true_a paradise_n all_o which_o though_o they_o seem_v not_o to_o define_v eternal_a life_n so_o gross_o as_o the_o former_a yet_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o do_v great_o err_v from_o the_o truth_n teach_v we_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o therefore_o be_v just_o to_o be_v condemn_v of_o we_o and_o of_o all_o true_a christian_n h._n n._n also_o and_o his_o family_n what_o fair_a show_n so_o ever_o they_o make_v be_v just_o to_o be_v condemn_v in_o this_o point_n as_o well_o as_o in_o many_o other_o because_o they_o hold_v everlasting_a life_n to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o their_o imagine_a perfection_n in_o the_o embrace_v and_o hold_v of_o their_o commonalty_n of_o love_n according_a to_o the_o pretend_a gracious_a word_n and_o doctrine_n of_o h._n n._n for_o so_o he_o interprete_v this_o article_n in_o the_o 7._o chap._n of_o his_o first_o exhortation_n in_o the_o 44._o section_n that_o everlasting_a life_n be_v a_o true_a light_n of_o man_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n he_o allege_v that_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o evangelist_n john_n where_o the_o evangelist_n speak_v of_o our_o saviour_n call_v he_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o true_a light_n so_o that_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o h._n n._n the_o deity_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o the_o everlasting_a life_n of_o the_o same_o h._n n._n and_o his_o scholar_n be_v all_o one_o he_o make_v the_o eternal_a and_o uncreated_a and_o beginningle_v life_n of_o god_n and_o the_o create_v or_o regenerate_v life_n of_o the_o saint_n to_o be_v the_o same_o and_o that_o his_o meaning_n be_v so_o blasphemous_a and_o absurd_a he_o make_v it_o very_o plain_a in_o his_o 15._o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o his_o exhortation_n sect._n 1._o in_o these_o word_n of_o he_o the_o true_a light_n understand_v it_o my_o son_n say_v he_o be_v the_o everlasting_a life_n itself_o and_o by_o they_o to_o who_o it_o be_v come_v and_o manifest_v in_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o gracious_a word_n and_o his_o service_n of_o love_n it_o be_v to_o a_o light_n of_o man_n to_o the_o preservation_n in_o the_o godliness_n to_o all_o such_o as_o believe_v therein_o and_o this_o be_v that_o allegorical_a propagation_n of_o h._n n._n his_o christ_n to_o a_o blessing_n of_o all_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o earth_n as_o he_o often_o speak_v he_o proceed_v in_o a_o further_a description_n of_o the_o same_o his_o true_a light_n and_o say_v that_o it_o have_v his_o original_a forthcoming_a out_o of_o the_o lovely_a be_v and_o true_a mind_n of_o the_o eternal_a life_n itself_o yea_o he_o say_v further_o sect._n 3._o that_o this_o true_a light_n and_o eternal_a life_n bring_v with_o he_o the_o mercy-seat_n of_o the_o kingly_a majesty_n which_o be_v god_n christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n itself_o also_o all_o spiritual_a treasure_n and_o heavenly_a riches_n and_o all_o love_n and_o peace_n in_o the_o godliness_n thus_o h._n n._n run_v on_o in_o his_o spiritual_a frenzy_n most_o unskilful_o and_o absurd_o confound_v all_o thing_n clean_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o he_o pretend_v to_o make_v a_o most_o distinct_a declaration_n but_o let_v all_o such_o as_o desire_v not_o to_o be_v seduce_v and_o lead_v aside_o from_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n neither_o in_o this_o article_n nor_o in_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n take_v heed_n of_o h._n n._n as_o of_o a_o most_o dangerous_a and_o deep_a deceiver_n as_o that_o faithful_a servant_n of_o god_n master_n knewstub_n have_v notable_o discover_v he_o to_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n so_o to_o be_v to_o who_o godly_a and_o learned_a writing_n i_o will_v willing_o send_v such_o as_o shall_v stand_v in_o any_o special_a need_n of_o help_n against_o his_o most_o deceivable_a and_o heretical_a doctrine_n thus_o much_o shall_v suffice_v at_o this_o time_n for_o a_o warning_n against_o his_o pervert_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o present_a article_n and_o thus_o also_o a_o
the_o law_n yet_o because_o the_o law_n to_o take_v it_o in_o the_o more_o strict_a signification_n do_v not_o teach_v repentance_n in_o so_o much_o as_o it_o offer_v no_o grace_n or_o mercy_n to_o the_o transgressor_n therefore_o we_o will_v resume_v it_o &_o handle_v it_o more_o purposed_o here_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o the_o gospel_n only_o and_o not_o the_o law_n as_o it_o be_v a_o member_n divident_fw-la from_o it_o give_v hope_n and_o comfort_n of_o forgiveness_n to_o the_o poor_a sinner_n through_o the_o righteousness_n &_o obedience_n of_o christ_n how_o unworthy_a soever_o he_o be_v in_o himself_o of_o any_o mercy_n yea_o though_o he_o be_v most_o worthy_a of_o all_o plague_n and_o punishment_n from_o the_o just_a deserve_a wrath_n of_o god_n the_o doctrine_n therefore_o of_o repentance_n and_o of_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v proper_o belong_v to_o the_o gospel_n yea_o and_o all_o allowance_n of_o repentance_n to_o the_o sinner_n as_o it_o be_v a_o board_n to_o relieve_v his_o poor_a sea-beaten_a soul_n against_o the_o most_o dangerous_a ship-wreck_n that_o may_v be_v it_o be_v a_o special_a gratuity_n belong_v to_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v true_a in_o deed_n that_o moses_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prophet_n do_v every_o where_fw-mi move_v to_o repentance_n and_o also_o give_v comfortable_a hope_n of_o mercy_n to_o the_o repentant_a and_o to_o that_o end_n allege_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n but_o all_o this_o they_o do_v have_v a_o respect_n to_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o gospel_n and_o not_o by_o virtue_n of_o any_o naked_a promise_n of_o the_o law_n as_o we_o now_o speak_v of_o it_o wherefore_o see_v as_o be_v say_v we_o have_v only_o touch_v the_o doctrine_n of_o repentance_n in_o our_o entrance_n to_o the_o former_a doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n so_o far_o only_a as_o it_o may_v give_v some_o light_n of_o interpretation_n thereunto_o let_v we_o now_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o in_o the_o more_o proper_a &_o due_a place_n be_v what_o repentance_n be_v inquire_v more_o full_o into_o it_o acknowledge_v nevertheless_o that_o although_o the_o law_n strict_o take_v do_v not_o teach_v repentance_n or_o encourage_v the_o sinner_n to_o repent_v but_o only_o leave_v he_o convict_v in_o his_o former_a sin_n and_o present_a corruption_n yet_o according_a to_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n to_o teach_v we_o what_o our_o sin_n be_v whereof_o we_o be_v to_o repent_v and_o also_o which_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n wherein_o we_o be_v to_o walk_v and_o please_v god_n for_o both_o the_o gospel_n &_o also_o the_o law_n forbid_v the_o same_o false_a worship_n the_o same_o profaneness_n the_o same_o blasphemy_n etc._n etc._n likewise_o the_o same_o disobedience_n to_o parent_n the_o same_o cruelty_n the_o same_o filthiness_n of_o fornication_n etc._n etc._n and_o on_o the_o contrary_a they_o teach_v one_o and_o the_o same_o true_a spiritual_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o the_o same_o duty_n of_o love_n belong_v from_o man_n to_o man_n as_o it_o be_v evident_a mat._n ch_z 5._o and_o ch_n 15_o 4._o etc._n etc._n &_o ch_n 22_o 37_o 38_o 39_o 40._o rom._n 13_o 8_o 9_o 10._o ephes_n 6_o 1_o etc._n etc._n 1._o tim._n 1_o 5._o yea_o &_o the_o law_n in_o the_o most_o strict_a acceptation_n of_o it_o howsoever_o it_o do_v not_o teach_v or_o encourage_v the_o sinner_n to_o repentance_n as_o the_o immediate_a and_o proper_a cause_n thereof_o yet_o it_o be_v no_o weak_a or_o small_a occasion_n or_o mean_n as_o well_o for_o the_o further_a of_o it_o as_o for_o prepare_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o sinner_n unto_o it_o question_n now_o therefore_o i_o ask_v here_o in_o this_o place_n what_o repentance_n be_v according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n answer_n repentance_n a_o fruit_n all_o way_n attend_v upon_o true_a iustfy_a faith_n to_o speak_v of_o it_o in_o the_o most_o general_a signification_n it_o comprehend_v all_o particular_a grace_n of_o our_o spiritual_a regeneration_n and_o new_a birth_n faith_n only_o except_v whereby_o the_o erroneous_a mind_n and_o understanding_n as_o also_o the_o vain_a and_o wicked_a memory_n together_o with_o the_o corrupt_a and_o sinful_a will_n and_o affection_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n be_v inward_o more_o and_o more_o alter_v and_o change_v from_o that_o which_o they_o be_v by_o natural_a birth_n and_o make_v more_o and_o more_o conformable_a to_o the_o spiritual_a image_n and_o likeness_n of_o god_n whereby_o also_o the_o word_n and_o outward_a action_n of_o their_o life_n and_o conversation_n be_v likewise_o more_o and_o more_o alter_v &_o change_v from_o the_o fation_n &_o course_n of_o this_o wicked_a world_n unto_o the_o fruit_n of_o true_a righteousness_n and_o holiness_n in_o obedience_n to_o the_o most_o holy_a will_n and_o word_n of_o god_n proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n that_o this_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o repentance_n and_o that_o in_o the_o general_a signification_n of_o it_o it_o carry_v so_o large_a a_o compass_n as_o have_v be_v describe_v we_o may_v understand_v first_o by_o the_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a word_n whereby_o it_o be_v note_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n both_o of_o the_o old_a and_o also_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o then_o by_o the_o doctrine_n itself_o which_o do_v more_o joint_o open_a and_o declare_v the_o full_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o all_o the_o same_o word_n the_o hebrew_n word_n whereby_o repentance_n be_v signify_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v these_o first_o chacam_n which_o signify_v to_o be_v wise_a as_o deut._n 32_o 28_o 29_o they_o be_v a_o nation_n say_v moses_n void_a of_o counsel_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o understanding_n in_o they_o oh_o that_o they_o be_v wise_a etc._n etc._n likewise_o pro._n 23_o 19_o o_o thou_o my_o son_n say_v wise_a king_n solomon_n hear_v and_o be_v wise_a and_o guide_v thy_o heart_n in_o the_o way_n and_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n though_o the_o holy_a prophet_n do_v use_v a_o other_o word_n sacal_a not_o that_o sacal_a who_o first_o letter_n be_v samech_v which_o signify_v to_o be_v foolish_a but_o that_o which_o begin_v with_o the_o letter_n shin_n and_o signify_v provident_a and_o prudent_a wariness_n or_o circumspection_n in_o a_o man_n affair_n and_o deal_n be_v wise_a now_o you_o king_n haschiln_n say_v the_o prophet_n david_n be_v you_o learn_v that_o be_v receive_v you_o instruction_n to_o wit_n from_o the_o holy_a word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o faithful_a ministry_n and_o preach_v thereof_o o_o you_o judge_n of_o the_o earth_n &_o c_o in_o this_o respect_n also_o repentance_n be_v note_v by_o this_o other_o phrase_n of_o speech_n to_o return_v to_o a_o man_n heart_n that_o be_v to_o grow_v more_o wise_a and_o better_o advise_v than_o he_o be_v before_o as_o deut._n chap._n 30.1_o and_o 1._o king_n 8.47_o if_o they_o turn_v again_o to_o their_o heart_n etc._n etc._n likewise_o when_o the_o lord_n will_v note_v the_o turn_n of_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o gentile_n unto_o he_o by_o true_a repentance_n he_o express_v it_o by_o that_o abundance_n of_o knowledge_n which_o he_o intend_v to_o power_n down_o upon_o they_o isay_n 11.9_o jeremy_n 31_o 34._o according_a to_o that_o also_o prou._n 9.12_o if_o thou_o be_v wise_a thou_o shall_v be_v wise_a for_o thyself_o and_o if_o thou_o be_v a_o scorner_n thou_o alone_o shall_v suffer_v and_o psal_n 90_o 12_o teach_v we_o say_v moses_n so_o to_o number_v our_o day_n that_o we_o may_v apply_v our_o heart_n unto_o wisdom_n thus_o repentance_n to_o begin_v withal_o be_v signify_v synecdochical_o the_o part_n put_v for_o the_o whole_a by_o attain_v to_o true_a wisdom_n and_o understanding_n from_o the_o advice_n and_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a word_n of_o god._n and_o that_o in_o very_o good_a consideration_n see_v if_o there_o be_v true_a wisdom_n in_o the_o mind_n the_o will_n and_o affection_n will_v be_v the_o better_o order_v and_o guide_v and_o consequent_o also_o both_o the_o tongue_n the_o hand_n and_o the_o foot_n and_o likewise_o the_o memory_n will_v store_v itself_o with_o good_a and_o holy_a thing_n for_o meditation_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o god_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o note_v repentance_n by_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n it_o may_v be_v discern_v from_o that_o which_o be_v contrariwise_o set_v down_o concern_v folly_n for_o usual_o in_o the_o same_o scripture_n man_n yet_o lie_v in_o their_o sin_n without_o all_o care_n or_o regard_n to_o repent_v they_o be_v call_v fool_n even_o such_o as_o want_v all_o holy_a judgement_n and_o good_a discretion_n who_o call_v light_a darkness_n and_o darkness_n light_n good_a evil_n and_o evil_a
good_a as_o we_o read_v isay_n ch._n 1_o 3._o &_o ch._n 5.20_o 21_o &_o ch_z 42.16_o 17._o &_o so_o forth_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n and_o jer._n 4.22_o my_o people_n say_v the_o lord_n be_v foolish_a they_o have_v not_o know_v i_o they_o be_v foolish_a child_n and_o have_v no_o understanding_n they_o be_v wise_a to_o do_v evil_a but_o to_o do_v well_o they_o have_v no_o knowledge_n and_o prou._n 27.22_o king_n solomon_n speak_v of_o the_o obstinate_a and_o impenitent_a sinner_n though_o say_v he_o thou_o shall_v bray_v a_o fool_n in_o a_o mortar_n etc._n etc._n yet_o will_v not_o his_o foolishness_n depart_v from_o he_o the_o ground_n of_o this_o wicked_a folly_n be_v selfe-conceitednes_a in_o a_o man_n own_o carnal_a and_o corrupt_a wisdom_n and_o therefore_o be_v the_o wicked_a man_n note_v to_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o walk_v after_o his_o own_o imagination_n as_o gen._n 6.5_o and_o prou._n 6.14_o the_o wicked_a man_n imagine_v evil_a at_o all_o time_n and_o therefore_o verse_n 18._o god_n be_v say_v to_o abhor_v such_o and_o chap._n 12.2_o he_o will_v condemn_v the_o man_n of_o wicked_a imagination_n read_v also_o jer._n 18._o verse_n 12.13_o etc._n etc._n and_o very_o there_o be_v very_o great_a reason_n why_o the_o lord_n shall_v deal_v thus_o severe_o against_o the_o man_n of_o wicked_a imagination_n because_o according_a as_o the_o imagination_n be_v conceit_v both_o will_n and_o word_n and_o deed_n itself_o be_v carry_v all_o headlong_a as_o it_o be_v upon_o swift_a run_a wheel_n to_o work_v all_o mischief_n wherefore_o we_o may_v true_o say_v that_o god_n in_o his_o holy_a justice_n punish_v no_o sin_n more_o grievous_o nor_o more_o often_o and_o manifold_o than_o he_o do_v that_o proud_a conceit_n which_o every_o man_n have_v of_o himself_o and_o his_o own_o way_n for_o by_o reason_n hereof_o or_o rather_o for_o want_v of_o sound_a reason_n they_o do_v not_o only_o magnify_v their_o own_o imagine_a and_o counterfeit_a virtue_n obtrude_a they_o to_o god_n as_o it_o be_v for_o good_a and_o currant_n coin_n but_o also_o in_o a_o presumption_n thereof_o they_o do_v easy_o dispense_v with_o themselves_o touch_v those_o sin_n whereof_o their_o own_o conscience_n convict_v they_o as_o if_o they_o be_v few_o and_o small_a in_o comparison_n of_o their_o virtue_n and_o therefore_o that_o god_n shall_v easy_o bear_v with_o they_o etc._n etc._n the_o which_o wicked_a and_o devilish_a presumption_n it_o can_v be_v but_o god_n must_v most_o just_o abhor_v and_o severe_o plague_v and_o punish_v they_o for_o wherefore_o as_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n exhort_v so_o let_v all_o such_o as_o mind_v the_o way_n to_o true_a wisdom_n forsake_v their_o own_o way_n and_o imagination_n and_o return_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n upon_o they_o and_o to_o our_o god_n for_o he_o be_v very_o ready_a to_o forgive_v chap._n 55.7_o moreover_o in_o a_o like_o contrary_a respect_n as_o touch_v this_o word_n wisdom_n sin_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o error_n to_o wit_n such_o error_n as_o come_v of_o ignorance_n or_o want_v of_o true_a understanding_n and_o wisdom_n as_o psal_n 19.12_o who_o can_v understand_v his_o error_n or_o fault_n to_o wit_n such_o as_o he_o commit_v ignorant_o or_o unaduised_o etc._n etc._n whereupon_o well_o say_v a_o learned_a interpreter_n humanum_fw-la est_fw-la errare_fw-la &_o ignorare_fw-la errorem_fw-la suum_fw-la it_o be_v a_o thing_n very_o usual_a with_o man_n to_o err_v and_o yet_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o their_o error_n and_o therefore_o great_a need_n have_v we_o all_o to_o pray_v to_o god_n with_o the_o holy_a prophet_n as_o we_o read_v psal_n 119.10_o with_o my_o whole_a heart_n have_v i_o seek_v thou_o let_v i_o not_o err_v or_o wander_v from_o thy_o commandment_n and_o as_o the_o prophet_n moses_n teach_v we_o to_o pray_v psal_n 90.8_o as_o be_v allege_v before_o hitherto_o of_o the_o first_o word_n chacam_n which_o as_o be_v say_v signify_v to_o be_v wise_a from_o whence_o true_a repentance_n be_v note_v second_o the_o same_o repentance_n be_v note_v by_o the_o word_n nacham_n which_o be_v a_o word_n belong_v to_o affection_n and_o signify_v proper_o the_o alteration_n and_o change_n thereof_o by_o sorrow_n for_o some_o thing_n rash_o commit_v after_o that_o a_o man_n have_v better_a bethink_v and_o advise_v himself_o as_o may_v appear_v by_o that_o reprehension_n of_o the_o prophet_n jere._n chap._n 8.6_o no_o man_n say_v he_o repent_v he_o of_o his_o wickedness_n say_v what_o have_v i_o do_v where_o the_o word_n which_o the_o prophet_n use_v be_v nicham_n but_o as_o it_o follow_v every_o one_o say_v he_o turn_v to_o their_o race_n as_o the_o horse_n rush_v to_o the_o battle_n the_o want_n of_o this_o change_n of_o affection_n upon_o better_a advice_n from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n make_v way_n to_o hardness_n of_o heart_n and_o utter_a impenitency_n if_o it_o be_v not_o mature_o prevent_v as_o the_o same_o prophet_n give_v to_o understand_v both_o here_o and_o elsewhere_o as_o chap._n 3_o 17._o and_o zech._n 7.11.12_o and_o ezek._n 36.26_o the_o which_o if_o it_o once_o take_v place_n it_o be_v vehement_o accurse_a and_o condemn_v by_o the_o lord_n deut_n 29._o verse_n 18.19.20.21_o the_o three_o hebrew_n word_n whereby_o repentance_n be_v note_v be_v shobh_n which_o be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o to_o return_v and_o it_o may_v well_o note_v these_o three_o thing_n unto_o us._n fi●st_n a_o cease_n of_o the_o former_a evil_a course_n of_o life_n secondlie_o a_o turn_n or_o alienate_v of_o a_o man_n heart_n from_o sin_n three_o a_o return_v to_o god_n with_o ca●e_n of_o lead_v a_o godly_a life_n for_o it_o be_v a_o metaphor_n or_o borrow_a speech_n take_v fr●m_o a_o man_n bodily_a go_n and_o namely_o from_o that_o his_o go_n whereby_o he_o carry_v himself_o more_o &_o more_o out_o of_o the_o right_a way_n until_o he_o return_v quite_o back_o again_o so_o it_o be_v with_o the_o wicked_a soul_n of_o man_n for_o all_o of_o we_o have_v natural_o perverse_a and_o crooked_a mind_n we_o be_v of_o ourselves_o bend_v to_o practice_v perverse_a and_o crooked_a thing_n walk_v as_o it_o be_v in_o crooked_a &_o wrong_a way_n so_o that_o until_o we_o mend_v our_o life_n it_o may_v true_o be_v say_v of_o we_o that_o we_o walk_v altogether_o from_o god_n as_o if_o we_o turn_v our_o back_n and_o not_o our_o face_n towards_o he_o according_a to_o the_o complaint_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o the_o prophet_n jer._n ch_z 2.27_o and_o herein_o there_o be_v no_o cease_v but_o a_o continual_a proceed_n &_o increase_v in_o manifold_a rebellion_n against_o god_n so_o long_o as_o we_o be_v leave_v unto_o ourselves_o as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o same_o pprophecy_n of_o jer._n ch_z 3.5_o thou_o do_v evil_a even_o more_o and_o more_o and_o ch_n 8.4.5_o whereupon_o it_o be_v that_o the_o exhortation_n to_o repentance_n be_v often_o renew_v to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n under_o this_o word_n of_o return_v as_o in_o the_o same_o prophet_n chap._n 3._o verse_n 1.7.12.14.22_o &_o ch_z 36.7_o likewise_o ezek._n ch_z 18._o &_o ch_n 33._o by_o a_o often_o repetition_n and_o hos_n 14._o v._n 2.5_o in_o this_o respect_n also_o and_o to_o the_o same_o end_n the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v often_o exhort_v to_o seek_v the_o lord_n as_o isay_n 55.6.7_o likewise_o amos._n ch_z 5._o five_o 4.5.6_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n to_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n seek_v you_o i_o and_o you_o shall_v live_v but_o seek_v not_o bethel_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o v._o 14._o seek_v good_a &_o not_o evil_a that_o you_o may_v live_v and_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o host_n shall_v be_v with_o you_o etc._n etc._n yea_o for_o more_o plainness_n and_o evidence_n of_o speech_n we_o be_v exhort_v to_o seek_v his_o face_n ps_n 27.8_o hence_o also_o be_v that_o often_o metaphor_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o the_o law_n &_o commandment_n of_o god_n be_v call_v the_o way_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o licentious_a course_n which_o wicked_a man_n do_v rush_v into_o and_o whereby_o they_o wander_v &_o go_v astray_o from_o the_o lord_n be_v call_v their_o own_o way_n isay_n 35.6_o &_o ch_z 63.17_o thus_o therefore_o by_o this_o word_n shobh_n which_o signify_v to_o return_v or_o to_o change_v a_o man_n outward_a course_n or_o trade_n of_o life_n the_o change_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o inward_a return_v of_o the_o heart_n to_o god_n be_v also_o understand_v neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v forget_v here_o that_o a_o wicked_a and_o unrepentant_a course_n of_o life_n be_v note_v also_o by_o a_o forgetfulness_n of_o god_n as_o deut_n 32.18_o psal_n 9.17_o and_o psal_n 50.22_o and_z jer_z chap_a 2.32_o and_o chap_n 3.21_o read_v also_o amos._n ch_z 6.10_o
life_n yea_o and_o for_o the_o better_a declaration_n of_o this_o excellent_a doctrine_n i_o desire_v that_o you_o show_v which_o they_o be_v as_o each_z succeed_v other_o in_o either_o of_o the_o same_o respect_n question_n first_o therefore_o which_o be_v the_o former_a sort_n of_o those_o grace_n that_o belong_v to_o mortification_n so_o far_o as_o for_o some_o order_n sake_n we_o may_v for_o the_o present_a discern_v of_o they_o answer_n they_o be_v these_o which_o follow_v first_o a_o true_a knowledge_n and_o earnest_a meditation_n of_o sin_n yea_o of_o that_o original_a fountain_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v in_o our_o wicked_a nature_n how_o infinite_a also_o in_o number_n and_o how_o heinous_a in_o offence_n our_o sin_n be_v and_o always_o have_v be_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n how_o grievous_a to_o the_o child_n of_o god_n who_o have_v already_o begin_v to_o repent_v so_o far_o as_o they_o have_v break_v forth_o to_o god_n dishonour_n ad_fw-la how_o dangerous_a and_o deadly_a they_o be_v even_o against_o our_o own_o soul_n second_o shame_n and_o confusion_n of_o face_n and_o conscience_n both_o before_o god_n and_o the_o holy_a angel_n and_o also_o if_o need_v so_o require_v before_o all_o good_a and_o godly_a man_n three_o remorse_n and_o prick_n of_o conscience_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o guiltiness_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n just_a wrath_n and_o vengeance_n due_a to_o they_o four_o godly_a sorrow_n and_o mourning_n even_o with_o salt_n tear_n of_o repentance_n from_o the_o bitterness_n of_o a_o man_n soul_n in_o contrition_n as_o it_o be_v and_o brokennes_n of_o heart_n before_o the_o lord_n five_o a_o willing_a suffering_n and_o endure_v of_o all_o rebuke_n and_o chastisement_n which_o god_n send_v at_o any_o time_n to_o the_o tame_n and_o subdue_a of_o our_o unruly_a and_o rebellious_a nature_n but_o above_o all_o and_o in_o all_o a_o most_o near_a application_n of_o the_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o our_o wound_a soul_n and_o conscience_n the_o which_o only_o be_v a_o most_o sovereign_a plaster_n to_o mortify_v and_o kill_v as_o it_o be_v the_o proud_a flesh_n of_o sin_n and_o also_o to_o heal_v and_o quiet_v every_o soul_n that_o be_v trouble_v and_o distress_a for_o the_o same_o proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n these_o indeed_o do_v most_o immediate_o go_v before_o in_o the_o work_n of_o god_n grace_n to_o the_o mortification_n of_o sin_n concern_v the_o first_o whereof_o that_o be_v the_o knowledge_n of_o sin_n etc._n etc._n it_o come_v as_o we_o have_v already_o learned_a from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n which_o god_n have_v for_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o child_n make_v as_o it_o be_v a_o servant_n to_o the_o gospel_n though_o to_o the_o obstinate_a it_o be_v arm_v as_o a_o judge_n to_o their_o condemnation_n and_o further_o for_o the_o meditation_n of_o the_o greatness_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o infinite_a number_n of_o they_o even_o from_o our_o youth_n yea_o from_o our_o original_a corruption_n of_o nature_n consider_v the_o example_n of_o david_n psal_n 25.7_o and_o 38.4_o and_o 40.12_o and_o 51.4.5_o and_o psal_n 19.12_o and_o of_o job._n cha._n 9.2.3_o and_o chap._n 13.26_o and_o of_o ezra_n chap._n 9_o 6._o and_o for_o the_o grief_n which_o we_o put_v the_o godly_a unto_o by_o our_o sin_n consider_v it_o from_o the_o example_n of_o lot_n 2._o pet._n 2.8_o of_o david_n psal_n 119._o verse_n 136.158_o of_o jer_n chap._n 9.1_o and_o paul_n 2._o cor._n 12.21_o and_o phil_n 3.18_o second_o for_o shame_n and_o confusion_n read_v in_o the_o same_o ch_z of_o ezra_n and_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o same_o verse_n where_o note_n that_o when_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n be_v ashamed_a and_o confound_v for_o the_o sin_n wherein_o other_o have_v chief_o trespass_v how_o much_o more_o then_o ought_v every_o one_o to_o be_v ashamed_a of_o his_o own_o for_o the_o which_o read_v further_a jeremy_n 3.25_o we_o lie_v down_o in_o our_o confusion_n and_o our_o shame_n cover_v we_o for_o we_o have_v sin_v against_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n we_o and_o our_o father_n from_o our_o youth_n even_o unto_o this_o day_n and_o have_v not_o obey_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n read_v also_o ezek._n chap._n 16.68_o thou_o shall_v remember_v thy_o way_n and_o be_v ashamed_a etc._n etc._n and_o i_o will_v establish_v my_o covenant_n with_o thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n that_o thou_o may_v remember_v and_o be_v ashamed_a and_o never_o open_v thy_o mouth_n any_o more_o because_o of_o thy_o shame_n when_o i_o be_o pacify_v towards_o thou_o for_o all_o that_o thou_o have_v do_v say_v the_o lord_n god_n and_o rom._n 6.21_o what_o fruit_n have_v you_o then_o in_o those_o thing_n whereof_o you_o be_v now_o ashamed_a for_o the_o end_n of_o those_o thing_n be_v death_n mark_v here_o the_o just_a cause_n why_o we_o shall_v be_v ashamed_a of_o sin_n namely_o that_o we_o shall_v ever_o be_v so_o foolish_a as_o to_o addict_v our_o mind_n to_o follow_v so_o greedy_o and_o to_o delight_v so_o excessive_o as_o we_o have_v do_v in_o that_o which_o without_o repentance_n will_v be_v our_o utter_a destruction_n for_o want_v of_o this_o shame_n for_o sin_n read_v a_o vehement_a rebuke_n jer._n 3_o 3._o thou_o have_v a_o whore_n forehead_n and_o will_v not_o be_v ashamed_a and_o chap._n 6.15_o be_v they_o ashamed_a when_o they_o have_v commit_v abomination_n nay_o they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a no_o neither_o can_v they_o have_v any_o shame_n therefore_o shall_v they_o fall_v among_o the_o slay_a etc._n etc._n the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o a_o godly_a shame_n for_o otherwise_o by_o the_o conviction_n of_o their_o conscience_n that_o they_o do_v ill_o in_o the_o commit_n of_o sin_n the_o very_a wicked_a have_v a_o certain_a shame_n though_o it_o profit_v they_o not_o as_o chap._n 2.26_o as_o the_o thief_n be_v ashamed_a when_o he_o be_v find_v so_o be_v the_o house_n of_o israel_n ashamed_a they_o their_o king_n and_o their_o prince_n and_o their_o prophet_n say_v to_o a_o tree_n thou_o be_v my_o father_n and_o to_o a_o stone_n thou_o have_v beget_v i_o etc._n etc._n there_o be_v none_o in_o the_o world_n who_o if_o they_o have_v not_o by_o custom_n of_o sin_n and_o hardness_n of_o heart_n as_o it_o be_v fear_v their_o conscience_n with_o a_o hot_a iron_n as_o the_o apostle_n write_v but_o they_o have_v akinde_a of_o shame_n and_o blush_v in_o their_o face_n when_o their_o sin_n be_v find_v out_o according_a to_o the_o proverbial_a say_n the_o good_a blood_n lie_v not_o but_o the_o shame_n of_o those_o that_o be_v in_o the_o way_n of_o repentance_n be_v a_o other_o manner_n of_o shamefastness_n for_o they_o do_v willing_o shame_v themselves_o and_o that_o even_o as_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o from_o their_o very_a heart_n in_o a_o dislike_n of_o their_o sin_n etc._n etc._n three_o for_o remorse_n and_o prick_n of_o conscience_n read_v gen._n 42.21.22_o we_o have_v very_o sin_v against_o our_o brother_n say_v the_o brethren_n of_o joseph_n etc._n etc._n read_v also_o 2._o sam._n chap._n 24.10_o david_n heart_n smite_v he_o after_o he_o have_v number_v the_o people_n and_o david_n say_v to_o the_o lord_n i_o have_v sin_v exceed_o in_o that_o i_o have_v do_v therefore_o now_o lord_n i_o beseech_v thou_o take_v away_o the_o trespass_n of_o thy_o servant_n for_o i_o have_v do_v very_o foolish_o and_o acts._n 2.37_o now_o when_o they_o hear_v it_o to_o wit_n how_o grievous_a a_o sin_n they_o ●ad_v commit_v in_o crucify_a the_o son_n of_o god_n they_o be_v prick_v in_o their_o heart_n etc._n etc._n four_o concern_v godly_a sorrow_n and_o mourning_n the_o holy_a apostle_n paul_n write_v that_o godly_a sorrow_n cause_v repentance_n to_o salvation_n never_o to_o be_v repent_v of_o 2._o cor._n 7.10_o the_o apostle_n mean_v that_o this_o be_v one_o help_v cause_n among_o the_o rest_n through_o the_o work_n of_o god_n grace_n though_o not_o the_o only_a cause_n it_o cause_v repentance_n because_o it_o do_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n provoke_v it_o not_o only_o to_o begin_v but_o also_o more_o and_o more_o to_o work_v forth_o the_o own_o work_n for_o when_o a_o man_n be_v true_o sorry_a for_o sin_n he_o indevour_v to_o leave_v it_o and_o to_o take_v a_o better_a course_n in_o which_o respect_n king_n solomon_n eccles_n 7.4_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o go_v to_o the_o house_n of_o mourning_n then_o to_o go_v to_o the_o house_n of_o feast_v because_o this_o be_v the_o end_n of_o all_o man_n and_o the_o live_a will_v lay_v it_o to_o his_o heart_n likewise_o he_o say_v that_o anger_n be_v better_a than_o laughter_n he_o speak_v of_o that_o anger_n which_o a_o man_n
just_o conceive_v against_o himself_o for_o sin_n because_o by_o a_o sad_a look_v the_o heart_n be_v make_v better_a and_o again_o in_o the_o same_o respect_n verse_n 7._o it_o be_v better_a say_v he_o to_o hear_v the_o rebuke_n of_o a_o wise_a man_n then_o that_o a_o man_n shall_v hear_v the_o song_n of_o fool_n this_o sorrow_n be_v very_o fit_o to_o be_v put_v before_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n and_o as_o a_o mean_n tend_v to_o the_o mortification_n of_o it_o for_o there_o be_v no_o sorrow_n at_o all_o to_o be_v take_v for_o the_o death_n and_o die_v of_o sin_n but_o joy_n and_o comfort_n yea_o a_o triumph_n of_o spirit_n we_o be_v only_o to_o sorrow_n that_o sin_n have_v live_v and_o bear_v the_o sway_n so_o long_o in_o we_o and_o that_o we_o have_v take_v so_o great_a pleasure_n in_o it_o already_o etc._n etc._n this_o kind_n of_o godly_a sorrow_n breed_v the_o death_n of_o sin_n for_o sin_n can_v prosper_v where_o it_o be_v not_o delight_v in_o sin_n must_v be_v make_v a_o wanton_a or_o else_o it_o will_v have_v no_o joy_n to_o stay_v it_o will_v take_v no_o like_n of_o cold_a and_o grim_a entertainment_n this_o godly_a sorrow_n whereby_o the_o soul_n mourn_v for_o nothing_o so_o much_o as_o because_o god_n our_o most_o kind_a father_n be_v thereby_o displease_v with_o we_o co_fw-la gualan_n super_fw-la hoc_fw-la trem_fw-la inn_n in_o gen_fw-la newt_n &_o paulo_fw-la post_fw-la in_o cadem_fw-la sententia_fw-la gualan_n de_fw-fr co_fw-la it_o be_v a_o gracious_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n according_a to_o that_o we_o read_v zech._n 12.10_o etc._n etc._n in_o that_o day_n that_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n say_v the_o lord_n i_o will_v power_n upon_o the_o house_n of_o david_n and_o upon_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n that_o be_v upon_o all_o true_a christian_n both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o supplication_n and_o they_o shall_v look_v upon_o i_o who_o they_o have_v pierce_v and_o they_o shall_v lament_v *_o for_o this_o as_o one_o mourn_v for_o a_o only_a son_n and_o be_v sorry_a *_o for_o it_o as_o one_o shall_v mourn_v for_o his_o first_o bear_v tear_n be_v oftentimes_o join_v with_o this_o mourning_n as_o judge_n 2.4.5_o as_o we_o have_v see_v before_o ezra_n chap_n 10.1_o luke_n 7_o 38._o psal_n 56_o 8._o joel._n 2.17_o mat._n 26_o 75._o and_o in_o many_o other_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n not_o that_o godly_a sorrow_n can_v be_v in_o some_o measure_n without_o tear_n or_o not_o in_o great_a measure_n but_o there_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v abundance_n of_o tear_n for_o some_o be_v less_o apt_a to_o weep_v then_o other_o even_o by_o constitution_n of_o nature_n but_o not_o the_o less_o apt_a to_o sorrow_n by_o that_o but_o subject_a rather_o to_o more_o deep_a and_o pensive_a sorrow_n even_o because_o they_o can_v so_o easy_o feel_v their_o heart_n to_o melt_v for_o the_o easy_a melt_v of_o the_o heart_n and_o the_o break_n forth_o of_o tear_n be_v a_o dissolve_v and_o loosen_a of_o sorrow_n the_o which_o without_o tear_n be_v both_o to_o body_n and_o soul_n of_o a_o constringent_a and_o bind_a nature_n the_o heart_n be_v contrite_a and_o break_a with_o this_o godly_a sorrow_n insomuch_o as_o hereby_o as_o it_o be_v with_o a_o hammer_n all_o vain_a confidence_n be_v batter_v down_o and_o the_o soul_n make_v fit_a to_o be_v suppliant_a to_o god_n for_o his_o tender_a mercy_n and_o grace_n it_o be_v more_o account_v of_o before_o god_n than_o all_o outward_a and_o legal_a sacrifice_n be_v ever_o unto_o he_o for_o as_o we_o read_v psal_n 51_o 17._o the_o sacrifice_n of_o god_n be_v a_o contrite_a spirit_n a_o contrite_a and_o break_a heart_n o_o god_n thou_o will_v not_o despise_v and_o as_o we_o read_v ps_n 34_o 18._o the_o lord_n be_v near_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v of_o a_o contrite_a hart_n and_o he_o will_v save_v such_o as_o be_v afflict_v in_o spirit_n read_v also_o isay_n chap._n 57.15_o thus_o say_v he_o that_o be_v high_a and_o excellent_a he_o that_o inhabit_v the_o eternity_n who_o name_n be_v the_o holy_a one_o i_o dwell_v in_o the_o high_a and_o holy_a place_n with_o he_o also_o that_o be_v of_o a_o contrite_a and_o humble_a spirit_n to_o revive_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o humble_a and_o to_o give_v light_n to_o they_o that_o be_v of_o a_o contrite_a heart_n for_o i_o will_v not_o contend_v for_o ever_o neither_o will_v i_o be_v always_o wroth_a for_o the_o spirit_n shall_v fail_v before_o i_o and_o the_o soul_n which_o i_o have_v make_v and_o again_o chap._n 66.2_o to_o he_o will_v i_o look_v even_o to_o he_o that_o be_v poor_a and_o of_o a_o contrite_a spirit_n and_o tremble_v at_o my_o word_n come_v unto_o i_o all_o you_o that_o be_v weary_a and_o lade_v and_o i_o will_v ease_v you_o say_v our_o saviour_n christ_n mat._n 11.28_o the_o same_o in_o sense_n though_o in_o other_o word_n where_o note_n with_o singular_a thankfulness_n to_o god_n our_o saviour_n this_o his_o sweet_a promise_n whereby_o he_o releeve_v the_o poor_a oppress_a soul_n assure_v all_o such_o that_o he_o will_v ease_v they_o and_o isay_n 61.1_o and_o luke_n 4.18_o he_o will_v bind_v up_o and_o heal_v the_o break_a heart_a and_o the_o rather_o consider_v of_o it_o with_o exceed_a thankfulness_n to_o god_n because_o all_o that_o will_v not_o mourn_v and_o break_v their_o heart_n in_o a_o bless_a practice_n of_o repentance_n now_o shall_v one_o day_n howl_v when_o it_o will_v be_v too_o late_a and_o wish_v that_o the_o high_a mountain_n may_v fall_v upon_o they_o to_o crush_v they_o to_o piece_n that_o they_o may_v not_o appear_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o now_o they_o despise_v neither_o be_v the_o holy_a proverb_n unfit_a to_o be_v consider_v of_o we_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n chap._n 29.1_o in_o that_o it_o be_v say_v he_o that_o harden_v his_o neck_n have_v be_v often_o rebuke_v shall_v sudden_o be_v destroy_v so_o that_o he_o can_v be_v cure_v and_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n also_o let_v we_o willing_o practice_v that_o which_o be_v answer_v in_o the_o five_o place_n concern_v the_o endure_a of_o all_o god_n fatherly_a chastisement_n to_o the_o break_n of_o our_o stout_a and_o sturdy_a heart_n and_o to_o the_o weaken_n of_o that_o sin_n which_o be_v so_o strong_o settle_v in_o our_o nature_n that_o be_v let_v we_o harken_v to_o the_o admonitorie_a precept_n of_o the_o apostle_n james._n chap._n 4.9.10_o cleanse_v your_o hand_n you_o sinner_n and_o purge_v your_o heart_n you_o waver_v mind_v suffer_v you_o affliction_n and_o sorrow_n and_o weep_v let_v your_o laughter_n be_v turn_v into_o mourning_n and_o your_o joy_n into_o heaviness_n cast_v down_o yourselves_o before_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o will_v lift_v you_o up_o for_o this_o be_v one_o bless_a use_n and_o benefit_n of_o affliction_n that_o they_o do_v humble_a and_o meeken_fw-ge the_o heart_n as_o we_o may_v remember_v from_o the_o example_n of_o manasses_n and_o as_o we_o read_v job_n 33.17_o 18_o etc._n etc._n that_o god_n may_v cause_v man_n to_o turn_v away_o from_o his_o enterprise_n and_o that_o he_o may_v hide_v the_o pride_n of_o man_n etc._n etc._n for_o to_o this_o end_n as_o it_o follow_v he_o be_v strike_v with_o sorrow_n upon_o his_o bed_n and_o the_o grief_n of_o his_o bone_n be_v sore_a etc._n etc._n and_o levit._n 26_o 41._o their_o uncircumcised_a heart_n shall_v be_v humble_v and_o then_o they_o shall_v willing_o bear_v the_o punishment_n of_o their_o iniquity_n let_v we_o therefore_o in_o all_o time_n of_o our_o affliction_n lay_v our_o hand_n upon_o our_o mouth_n and_o bear_v they_o patient_o according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o 39_o psal_n verse_n 9_o i_o shall_v have_v be_v dumb_a and_o not_o have_v open_v my_o mouth_n because_o thou_o do_v it_o let_v we_o say_v as_o we_o read_v psal_n 119_o 15._o i_o know_v lord_n that_o thy_o judgement_n be_v right_a and_o that_o thou_o have_v afflict_v i_o just_o read_v also_o 1._o sam._n 3_o 18_o and_o 2_o sam._n 15_o 26_o etc._n etc._n chap._n 16_o 10_o 11_o 12._o and_o eccles_n 7.16_o yea_o we_o ought_v to_o entreat_v the_o lord_n to_o correct_v we_o that_o we_o may_v not_o continue_v in_o our_o sin_n as_o the_o holy_a prophet_n pray_v correct_v we_o o_o lord_n but_o yet_o in_o mercy_n yea_o and_o to_o desire_v that_o the_o righteous_a may_v smite_v we_o with_o their_o wholesome_a rebuke_n the_o property_n whereof_o be_v to_o supple_a and_o heal_v like_o precious_a oil_n and_o not_o violent_o to_o crush_v and_o break_v psal_n 141.5_o but_o above_o all_o as_o it_o be_v answer_v in_o the_o last_o branch_n the_o application_n of_o the_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n
o_o my_o god_n take_v i_o not_o away_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o my_o day_n thy_o year_n endure_v from_o generation_n to_o generation_n thou_o have_v aforetime_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n &_o the_o heaven_n be_v the_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n they_o shall_v perish_v but_o thou_o shall_v endure_v they_o shall_v even_o all_o wax_n old_a as_o do_v a_o garment_n as_o a_o vesture_n shall_v thou_o change_v they_o &_o they_o shall_v be_v change_v but_o thou_o be_v the_o same_o and_o thy_o year_n shall_v not_o fail_v and_o ps_n 35.10_o lord_n who_o be_v like_a unto_o thou_o who_o deliver_v the_o poor_a from_o he_o that_o be_v too_o strong_a for_o he_o &_o c_o these_o be_v the_o second_o sort_n of_o duty_n show_v now_o in_o the_o three_o place_n which_o those_o duty_n be_v which_o faith_n yield_v fr●m_v the_o comfort_n of_o this_o that_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n be_v of_o a_o most_o spiritual_a nature_n infinite_a &_o every_o where_o present_a unmeasurable_a invisible_a and_o incomprehensible_a which_o be_v they_o question_n a●●●●●●_n a●●●●●●_n from_o the_o consideration_n say_v do_v withdraw_v the_o thought_n of_o our_o mind_n from_o think_v god_n to_o be_v like_o any_o bodily_a creature_n in_o outward_a form_n or_o shape_n much_o more_o the_o hand_n f●●m_v make_v and_o set_v up_o any_o bodily_a representation_n of_o he_o most_o of_o all_o the_o heart_n from_o yield_v any_o divine_a worship_n to_o any_o creature_n the_o which_o it_o do_v acknowledge_v to_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n pr●●●e_n explication_n and_o pr●●●e_n this_o indeed_o be_v one_o special_a duty_n of_o faith_n touch_v the_o spiritual_a nature_n of_o god_n in_o that_o he_o be_v infinite_a and_o every_o where_o present_a etc._n etc._n accord_v to_o that_o we_o re●d_v isay_n 4●_n 18._o jer._n 16_o 6._o deut._n 4_o 15_o 16_o 17_o 18_o 19_o and_o act._n 17_o v._o 24_o etc._n etc._n 29_o what_o other_o duty_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o same_o comfort_n of_o faith_n question_n answer_v it_o require_v of_o every_o true_a believer_n that_o he_o be_v wise_a unto_o sobriety_n without_o all_o curious_a search_n into_o the_o divine_a nature_n of_o god_n the_o which_o may_v so_o only_o be_v know_v as_o it_o be_v always_o to_o be_v acknowledge_v infinite_o exceed_v all_o that_o our_o weak_a knowledge_n and_o understanding_n can_v reach_v unto_o it_o teach_v we_o to_o worship_n god_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n it_o warn_v we_o to_o beware_v of_o all_o hypocr●●●ie_n and_o to_o take_v heed_n that_o we_o do_v in_o no_o wise_n pervert_v or_o corrupt_v the_o most_o holy_a and_o pure_a doctrine_n of_o his_o truth_n these_o and_o such_o like_a be_v the_o duty_n belong_v to_o the_o former_a comfort_n of_o faith_n proole_n explication_n an●_n proole_n they_o be_v so_o in_o very_a deed_n as_o may_v appear_v first_o from_o that_o general_a admonition_n which_o we_o read_v rom._n 12_o 3._o let_v no_o man_n understand_v above_o that_o which_o be_v meet_v to_o understand_v but_o let_v h●m_n understand_v accord_v to_o sobriety_n as_o god_n have_v deal_v to_o every_o man_n the_o measure_n of_o faith_n for_o if_o we_o may_v not_o in_o thing_n reveal_v boast_v of_o a_o great_a measure_n of_o knowledge_n they_o god_n have_v give_v much_o less_o may_v we_o pry_v curious_o into_o his_o unsearchable_a secret_n read_v also_o deut._n 29._o v._o 29._o pro._n 25_o 1_o 2_o 1●_n 2d_o and_o judge_n ch_n 13_o 18_o 22._o there_o be_v also_o a_o wise_a admonition_n though_o apocryphal_a to_o the_o same_o purpose_n eccles_n ch_n 3_o 22._o seek_v not_o out_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v too_o hard_a for_o thou_o neither_o search_v the_o thing_n rash_o that_o be_v to_o mighty_a for_o thou_o second_o call_v ag●ine_n to_o mind_n herein_o this_o place_n that_o excellent_a example_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n john_n 4_o 24._o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n &_o they_o that_o worship_v he_o must_v worship_v he_o in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n for_o such_o as_o god_n be_v such_o also_o must_v his_o worship_n be_v three_o read_v ps_n 44_o ●●_o ●1_n if_o we_o have_v forget_v the_o name_n of_o our_o god_n and_o hold_v up_o our_o hand_n to_o a_o strange_a god_n shall_v not_o god_n search_v this_o out_o for_o he_o know_v the_o secret_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o ps_n 1_o 29._o o_o lord_n thou_o have_v try_v and_o know_v thou_o know_v my_o sittin●_n &_o my_o rise_n etc._n etc._n the_o whole_a psal_n be_v of_o exceed_v good_a use_n to_o this_o purpose_n final_o read_v jer._n 23_o v._o 23_o 24_o 25._o be_o i_o a_o god_n at_o hand_n say_v the_o lord_n and_o not_o a_o god_n far_o oft_o can_v any_o hide_v himself_o in_o secret_a place_n that_o i_o shall_v not_o see_v he_o say_v the_o lord_n do_v not_o i_o file_v heaven_n and_o hearth_n say_v the_o lord_n i_o have_v hear_v what_o the_o prophet_n say_v that_o pprophecy_n lie_v in_o my_o name_n say_v i_o have_v dream_v i_o have_v dream_v etc._n etc._n and_o ps_n 119_o verse_n 168._o i_o have_v keep_v thy_o precept_n and_o thy_o testimony_n for_o all_o my_o way_n be_v before_o thou_o hitherto_o of_o the_o three_o sort_n of_o duty_n question_n let_v u●●●me_n to_o the_o four_o what_o duty_n belong_v to_o this_o comfort_n of_o faith_n that_o although_o all_o creature_n shall_v forsake_v we_o yet_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n will_v not_o leave_v or_o 〈◊〉_d we_o answer_n th●●_n ought_v to_o cause_v we_o to_o prefer_v the_o lord_n our_o god_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o to_o love_n and_o embrace_v he_o infinity_n above_o all_o creature_n so_o that_o every_o one_o of_o we_o shall_v resolute_o say_v in_o ●●m_fw-la else_o as_o we_o read_v ps_n ●●_o ●●_o who_o have_v ●●n_fw-la heaven_n but_o thou_o and_o i_o have_v desire_v none_o to_o the_o earth_n with_o thou_o and_o so_o forth_o as_o it_o follow_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o psalm_n ●●ought_v to_o cause_v we_o to_o do_v so_o indeed_o ●●●●ion_n ●●●●ion_n and_o what_o be_v the_o duty_n belong_v likewise_o to_o this_o comfort_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n be_v the_o most_o worthy_a and_o excellent_a yea_o even_o infinite_o worst_o high_a and_o excellent_a above_o all_o an●●●●_n an●●●●_n we_o ought_v for_o this_o to_o reverence_v he_o with_o most_o high_a reverence_n above_o all_o as_o much_o as_o we_o may_v p●●●bly_o attain_v unto_o according_a to_o that_o in_o the_o 89._o ps_n v._o 6._o &_o 7._o who_o be_v equal_a to_o the_o lord_n in_o heaven_n and_o who_o be_v like_o the_o lord_n among_o the_o son_n of_o the_o mighty_a god_n be_v great_o to_o be_v fear_v in_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o to_o be_v reverence_v above_o all_o that_o be_v about_o he_o this_o also_o be_v very_o right_a and_o meet_v and_o our_o bind_a duty_n question_n now_o what_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o faith_n in_o respect_n of_o this_o comfort_n that_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n be_v infinite_a in_o his_o divine_a wisdom_n and_o that_o according_o he_o do_v rule_v and_o govern_v all_o thing_n answer_v the_o duty_n hereof_o be_v these_o first_o that_o we_o deny_v our_o own_o natural_a and_o fleshly_a or_o worldly_a wisdom_n condemn_v it_o as_o mere_a folly_n and_o enmity_n against_o god_n second_o that_o we_o make_v it_o our_o wisdom_n to_o be_v wise_a in_o the_o lord_n and_o according_a to_o the_o instruction_n limit_n and_o bound_n of_o his_o holy_a word_n three_o that_o we_o judge_v reverendly_a of_o all_o those_o counsel_n and_o way_n and_o work_n of_o god_n whereof_o we_o can_v sound_v the_o reason_n four_o that_o while_o we_o walk_v in_o his_o holy_a way_n yea_o or_o have_v err_v from_o they_o do_v unfeigned_o return_v and_o repent_v and_o seek_v the_o lord_n we_o do_v hope_n for_o a_o bless_a issue_n out_o of_o the_o most_o intricate_a and_o confuse_a temptation_n fear_n and_o danger_n and_o even_o out_o of_o death_n itself_o and_o therefore_o also_o as_o a_o further_a fruit_n hereof_o that_o touch_v all_o such_o deliverance_n and_o blessing_n we_o submit_v even_o our_o most_o holy_a prayer_n desire_n &_o endeavour_n herein_o to_o the_o most_o gracious_a wisdom_n of_o god_n as_o to_o he_o that_o know_v best_a both_o what_o and_o when_o and_o how_o every_o thing_n may_v prove_v best_a for_o we_o and_o according_o will_v most_o gracious_o dispose_v of_o the_o same_o final_o that_o we_o acknowledge_v all_o wisdom_n whatsoever_o be_v in_o man_n or_o angel_n or_o in_o any_o creature_n else_o according_a to_o their_o kind_n to_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o our_o only_a wise_a god_n and_o that_o we_o glorify_v he_o in_o this_o behalf_n use_v our_o wit_n &_o all_o other_o his_o good_a gift_n only_o to_o that_o end_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o first_o of_o these_o duty_n read_v rom._n 8.7_o the_o wisdom_n
of_o glory_n as_o you_o have_v see_v i_o to_o have_v go_v before_o you_o what_o master_n among_o we_o will_v take_v it_o well_o at_o his_o servant_n hand_n if_o when_o we_o shall_v send_v he_o to_o require_v some_o debt_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o we_o or_o upon_o any_o other_o lawful_a message_n and_o service_n if_o he_o shall_v refuse_v to_o go_v unless_o he_o know_v before_o what_o success_n he_o shall_v have_v &_o c_o our_o saviour_n therefore_o give_v his_o disciple_n to_o understand_v that_o it_o be_v their_o part_n lay_v aside_o all_o curious_a inquisition_n about_o such_o thing_n as_o belong_v not_o unto_o they_o to_o bend_v their_o mind_n in_o hope_n of_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o father_n to_o be_v his_o witness_n and_o to_o preach_v his_o gospel_n in_o all_o place_n whether_o he_o shall_v disperse_v and_o send_v they_o from_o jerusalem_n into_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n both_o far_o and_o near_o for_o so_o our_o saviour_n say_v you_o shall_v be_v witness_n unto_o i_o both_o in_o jerusalem_n and_o in_o judea_n and_o in_o samaria_n and_o unto_o the_o uttermost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o this_o they_o must_v do_v whatsoever_o entertainment_n they_o find_v whether_o good_a or_o bad_a in_o all_o place_n whether_o so_o ever_o he_o shall_v send_v they_o thus_o our_o saviour_n most_o wise_o draw_v the_o mind_n of_o his_o disciple_n from_o their_o vain_a speculation_n to_o mind_v those_o thing_n which_o god_n will_v have_v they_o mind_n and_o thus_o also_o we_o may_v see_v to_o our_o own_o notable_a instruction_n even_o from_o this_o most_o wise_a and_o gracious_a instruction_n of_o our_o saviour_n if_o we_o have_v any_o grace_n to_o see_v that_o howsoever_o our_o mind_n will_v glad_o be_v wander_v and_o gad_v after_o our_o own_o vain_a imagination_n yet_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v earnest_o rebuke_v and_o call_v home_o from_o such_o conceit_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o care_n of_o the_o duty_n which_o he_o require_v at_o our_o hand_n yea_o we_o may_v see_v it_o be_v most_o profitable_a that_o the_o same_o word_n of_o god_n i_o mean_v the_o same_o instruction_n of_o the_o word_n shall_v be_v often_o inculcate_v unto_o we_o to_o the_o end_n all_o other_o strange_a conceit_n though_o never_o so_o please_a may_v be_v utterlie_o chase_v away_o the_o last_o speech_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o be_v answer_v be_v his_o word_n utter_v in_o blessing_n of_o his_o apostle_n for_o when_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o lift_v up_o his_o hand_n and_o bless_v they_o we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o it_o be_v a_o dumb_a blessing_n in_o gesture_n or_o in_o sign_n and_o ceremony_n only_o but_o with_o word_n of_o mouth_n also_o and_o this_o as_o be_v also_o answer_v before_o be_v that_o holy_a farewell_n which_o our_o saviour_n give_v to_o his_o apostle_n when_o he_o leave_v they_o and_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o which_o his_o farewell_n we_o may_v not_o unprofitable_o call_v to_o mind_n that_o the_o word_n of_o blessing_n be_v take_v sundry_a way_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n according_a unto_o the_o sundry_a kind_n of_o person_n who_o be_v say_v either_o to_o bless_v or_o to_o be_v bless_v for_o not_o only_o be_v god_n say_v to_o bless_v man_n but_o man_n also_o be_v say_v to_o bless_v god_n and_o one_o man_n to_o bless_v and_o to_o be_v bless_v of_o another_o superior_n be_v say_v to_o bless_v inferior_n and_o inferior_n their_o superior_n and_o more_o usual_o one_o familiar_a friend_n and_o neighbour_n another_o but_o not_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n or_o manner_n as_o we_o will_v now_o brief_o consider_v when_o one_o familiar_a friend_n and_o neighbour_n be_v say_v to_o bless_v a_o other_o in_o a_o usual_a and_o as_o we_o may_v say_v a_o salutatorie_n or_o a_o greeting_n manner_n ac-according_a to_o that_o gen_n 24_o 31._o come_v in_o thou_o bless_v of_o the_o lord_n and_o ruth_n 2.4_o boaz_n say_v to_o his_o reaper_n the_o lord_n be_v with_o you_o and_o they_o say_v to_o he_o the_o lord_n bless_v thou_o read_v also_o psalm_n 129.8_o in_o such_o use_n of_o this_o word_n to_o bless_v be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o mutual_a testimony_n of_o love_n by_o wish_v well_o one_o to_o a_o other_o when_o inferior_n be_v say_v to_o bless_v superior_n whether_o it_o be_v that_o child_n be_v say_v to_o bless_v their_o natural_a parent_n or_o subject_n their_o civil_a prince_n and_o magistrate_n or_o people_n their_o spiritual_a pastor_n and_o teacher_n the_o word_n blessing_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v as_o note_v a_o more_o dutiful_a affection_n in_o wish_v and_o pray_v all_o good_a unto_o they_o with_o a_o honourable_a and_o thankful_a regard_n of_o those_o special_a blessing_n which_o god_n have_v and_o do_v vouchsafe_v unto_o we_o by_o they_o as_o by_o his_o bless_a instrument_n appoint_v thereunto_o thus_o the_o people_n bless_a king_n solomon_n as_o a_o figure_n of_o christ_n their_o king_n 1._o king_n 8.66_o according_a also_o to_o that_o psam_fw-la 20_o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5._o and_o psalm_n 21_o 6._o thou_o have_v set_v he_o as_o blessing_n for_o ever_o and_o psalm_n 72_o 17._o where_o likewise_o there_o be_v a_o prophetical_a reference_n to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n all_o nation_n shall_v bless_v he_o and_o be_v bless_v in_o he_o and_o thus_o congregation_n may_v and_o aught_o to_o bless_v their_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n and_o child_n their_o parent_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o both_o may_v and_o also_o aught_o to_o pray_v for_o they_o that_o god_n will_v bless_v and_o prosper_v they_o according_a to_o that_o colos_n 4.3_o pray_v also_o for_o we_o etc._n etc._n and_o 2._o thes_n 3_o 1_o 2._o and_o heb_fw-mi 13.18_o and_o in_o this_o respect_n do_v david_n as_o one_o succour_v against_o temptation_n by_o abigaill_n though_o a_o woman_n as_o a_o prophetisse_n of_o god_n send_v unto_o he_o bless_v she_o and_o god_n for_o she_o and_o her_o counsel_n most_o hearty_o 1._o sam_n 25._o 32.33_o but_o when_o superior_n do_v bless_v their_o inferiors_n whether_o prince_n or_o natural_a parent_n when_o as_o they_o do_v it_o in_o faith_n or_o by_o prophetical_a instinct_n they_o do_v not_o only_o pray_v for_o blessing_n but_o also_o pronounce_v and_o assure_v blessing_n from_o god_n to_o such_o both_o child_n and_o subject_n as_o shall_v walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o god_n and_o believe_v the_o promise_n which_o he_o have_v make_v according_a to_o that_o ephesian_n chapter_n 6._o verse_n 2._o and_o thus_o isaak_n bless_v his_o son_n jaakob_n genesis_n chapter_n 27._o verse_n 25_o 26_o 27_o 28_o 29._o and_o verse_n 33_o 34_o 35._o and_o thus_o jaakob_n bless_v the_o two_o son_n of_o joseph_n manasset_n and_o ephraim_n chap._n 48._o verse_n 8_o 9_o etc._n etc._n 20_o 21_o 22._o and_o all_o his_o own_o son_n the_o principal_a father_n of_o the_o twelve_o tribe_n chapter_n 49.1_o etc._n etc._n verse_n 28._o and_o moses_n deuteronomy_n chapter_n 33.1_o etc._n etc._n and_o king_n solomon_n his_o subject_n 1._o king_n 8.14_o and_o king_n hezekiah_n 31.8_o the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v say_v concern_v minister_n of_o the_o word_n in_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o their_o ministry_n according_a to_o that_o number_n chapter_n 6._o verse_n 22_o 23_o etc._n etc._n thus_o shall_v you_o bless_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n and_o say_v unto_o they_o the_o lord_n bless_v thou_o etc._n etc._n and_o deuteronomy_n 10._o v._o 8._o the_o lord_n separate_v they_o to_o bless_v in_o his_o name_n and_o 2._o chronicle_n chapter_n 30._o verse_n 27._o the_o priest_n and_o the_o levite_n arise_v and_o bless_v the_o people_n etc._n etc._n and_o psalm_n 118.26_o bless_a be_v he_o that_o come_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n we_o have_v bless_v you_o out_o of_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n read_v also_o psal_n 128._o neither_o be_v there_o any_o doubt_n but_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v as_o effectual_a as_o ever_o be_v the_o blessing_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o law_n according_a to_o that_o promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n matth._n 16.19_o and_o chap._n 18.18_o and_o john_n 20.23_o read_v also_o cor._n 1._o chap._n 16.23_o 24._o and_o epistle_n 2._o chap._n 13._o verse_n 13._o yea_o so_o that_o this_o grace_n be_v not_o commit_v to_o the_o apostle_n that_o it_o shall_v die_v with_o they_o but_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o minister_n of_o christ_n to_o derive_v it_o to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o the_o successive_a hand_n of_o all_o faithful_a minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o all_o aught_o in_o special_a manner_n to_o regard_v the_o blessing_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n
in_o their_o ordinary_a ministry_n above_o any_o other_o instrumental_a or_o ministerial_a blessing_n of_o god_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n it_o be_v say_v heb._n 7._o verse_n 7._o without_o all_o contradiction_n the_o lesser_a be_v bless_v of_o the_o great_a after_o this_o manner_n therefore_o do_v man_n bless_v man_n and_o one_o man_n be_v bless_v of_o another_o though_o in_o a_o diverse_a sort_n as_o we_o have_v now_o see_v now_o further_o whenas_o man_n be_v say_v to_o bless_v god_n whether_o he_o that_o bless_v be_v inferior_a or_o superior_a among_o man_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v that_o he_o either_o pray_v or_o pronounce_v blessing_n upon_o god_n but_o only_o that_o he_o do_v most_o humble_o profess_v and_o acknowledge_v all_o glory_n praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n as_o most_o due_a unto_o he_o as_o king_n david_n do_v 1._o chro._n 29.10_o 11_o 12_o 13._o and_o so_o he_o exhort_v the_o people_n to_o do_v verse_n 20._o and_o so_o do_v king_n solomon_n 2._o chro._n 6.4_o read_v also_o psal_n 41.13_o bless_a be_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n world_n without_o end_n amen_n amen_n and_o psal_n 72.18_o 19_o and_o psal_n 100.4_o praise_v he_o and_o bless_v his_o name_n some_o translate_v it_o thus_o praise_v he_o and_o speak_v good_a of_o his_o name_n for_o to_o bless_v be_v indeed_o to_o speak_v good_a of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o to_o extol_v and_o lift_v it_o up_o above_o every_o name_n etc._n etc._n and_o psal_n 145._o verse_n 21._o read_v also_o james_n chap._n 3._o verse_n 9_o final_o when_o god_n be_v say_v to_o bless_v man_n whether_o private_o and_o particular_o or_o public_o and_o more_o common_o we_o be_v to_o understand_v it_o to_o signify_v that_o he_o do_v special_o favour_n and_o advance_v such_o a_o person_n as_o judge_n 5.24_o and_o luke_n 1._o verse_n 28._o bless_a be_v thou_o among_o woman_n and_o prou._n 10.7_o the_o memorial_n of_o the_o just_a shall_v be_v bless_v or_o such_o a_o people_n as_o psal_n 32.1.2_o and_o 89_o 15._o and_o 144.15_o bless_a be_v the_o people_n who_o god_n be_v the_o lord_n in_o which_o respect_n prioris_fw-la comment_fw-fr cen_n cap._n 2._o verse_n ●_o secundum_fw-la verbum_fw-la exegeti_fw-la cum_fw-la est_fw-la prioris_fw-la m●ster_n caluin_n worthy_o observe_v that_o to_o bless_v and_o to_o sanctify_v or_o to_o set_v apart_o from_o common_a use_n be_v use_v for_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o that_o the_o latter_a be_v a_o interpretation_n of_o the_o former_a diem_fw-la ergo_fw-la septimum_fw-la deus_fw-la sanctificat_fw-la dum_fw-la eximium_fw-la reddit_fw-la ut_fw-la singulari_fw-la jure_fw-la excellat_fw-la inter_fw-la alios_fw-la god_n say_v he_o sanctifi_v the_o seven_o day_n in_o that_o he_o make_v it_o notable_a and_o of_o singular_a dignity_n among_o the_o rest_n and_o this_o say_v he_o be_v that_o which_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o former_a word_n of_o blessing_n it_o now_o therefore_o as_o blessing_n note_v the_o special_a favour_n of_o god_n so_o all_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n both_o spiritual_a and_o belong_v to_o this_o life_n as_o fruit_n of_o his_o favour_n they_o be_v all_o comprehend_v under_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n gen._n 1.28_o god_n bless_a mankind_n and_o say_v unto_o they_o bring_v you_o forth_o fruit_n and_o multiply_v and_o fill_v the_o earth_n and_o subdue_v it_o etc._n etc._n and_o prou._n 10.22_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o lord_n make_v rich_a and_o psal_n 29.11_o the_o lord_n will_v bless_v his_o people_n with_o peace_n and_o psal_n 37.22_o such_o as_o be_v bless_v of_o god_n shall_v inherit_v the_o land_n and_o psal_n 128._o read_v also_o deut._n 28._o but_o they_o be_v the_o chief_a blessing_n which_o be_v belong_v to_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o which_o read_v act._n 3.25.26_o you_o be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o of_o the_o covenant_n which_o god_n have_v make_v unto_o our_o father_n say_v to_o abraham_n even_o in_o thy_o seed_n shall_v all_o the_o kindred_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v bless_v first_o unto_o you_o have_v god_n raise_v his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n and_o he_o he_o have_v send_v to_o bless_v you_o in_o turn_v every_o one_o of_o you_o from_o your_o iniquity_n and_o ephes_n 1.3_o bless_a be_v god_n even_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v bless_v we_o with_o all_o spiritual_a blessing_n in_o heavenly_a thing_n in_o christ._n and_o thus_o it_o be_v say_v every_o where_o that_o they_o be_v bless_v that_o do_v fear_v the_o lord_n which_o trust_v in_o he_o which_o wait_v upon_o he_o which_o be_v poor_a in_o spirit_n which_o mourn_n which_o be_v meek_a which_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n after_o righteousness_n etc._n etc._n all_o such_o be_v bless_v that_o be_v they_o be_v in_o a_o excellent_a estate_n and_o have_v receive_v bless_v gift_n and_o grace_n from_o the_o special_a favour_n of_o god_n these_o thing_n thus_o consider_v it_o be_v now_o the_o more_o easy_a to_o understand_v in_o what_o sense_n our_o saviour_n be_v say_v to_o bless_v his_o disciple_n namely_o in_o the_o most_o special_a manner_n above_o all_o other_o whether_o king_n or_o prophet_n or_o priest_n can_v bless_v in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o chief_a minister_n yea_o a_o mediator_n betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n so_o that_o he_o do_v not_o only_o wish_v blessing_n or_o pronounce_v blessing_n by_o a_o authority_n or_o call_v commit_v to_o he_o of_o god_n but_o even_o in_o pronounce_v he_o give_v also_o his_o blessing_n to_o his_o apostle_n that_o be_v article_n the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o article_n all_o fitness_n for_o their_o ministerial_a service_n first_o and_o afterward_o all_o meet_a gift_n &_o prosperous_a success_n that_o so_o they_o may_v be_v instrument_n of_o his_o blessing_n not_o only_o for_o their_o own_o time_n but_o even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n in_o this_o blessing_n of_o the_o apostle_n our_o saviour_n lift_v up_o his_o hand_n to_o give_v to_o understand_v that_o all_o blessing_n come_v from_o heaven_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n james_n chap._n 1.17_o and_o thus_o much_o shall_v suffice_v concern_v this_o last_o appearance_n of_o our_o saviour_n here_o upon_o earth_n for_o the_o full_a and_o sufficient_a proof_n and_o confirmation_n of_o his_o holy_a resurrection_n yea_o that_o which_o hitherto_o have_v be_v say_v shall_v suffice_v for_o the_o present_a concern_v all_o the_o appearance_n of_o our_o saviour_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o be_v record_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o testify_v unto_o we_o by_o sufficient_a witness_n even_o from_o the_o time_n that_o he_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a by_o the_o space_n of_o whole_a sortie_a day_n until_o the_o time_n wherein_o he_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n we_o have_v indeed_o two_o appearance_n more_o record_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o one_o to_o stephen_n the_o first_o martyr_n next_o after_o our_o saviour_n himself_o act._n 7.55_o and_o the_o other_o to_o paul_n at_o his_o miraculous_a conversion_n act._n 9.3_o etc._n etc._n and_o chap._n 22.6_o and_o chap._n 26.13_o etc._n etc._n and_o 1._o cor._n 15.8_o but_o these_o be_v not_o in_o that_o space_n of_o time_n wherein_o he_o be_v here_o upon_o earth_n as_o all_o the_o former_a be_v but_o from_o heaven_n after_o he_o be_v ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n and_o so_o belong_v rather_o to_o his_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n his_o father_n then_o to_o this_o present_a article_n of_o his_o resurrection_n as_o we_o be_v here_o after_o further_a to_o consider_v nevertheless_o they_o be_v very_o excellent_a and_o glorious_a proof_n not_o only_o that_o our_o saviour_n be_v in_o our_o nature_n rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o ascend_v up_o once_o into_o heaven_n but_o also_o that_o he_o be_v still_o resident_a abide_n and_o live_v there_o in_o heaven_n even_o in_o the_o same_o his_o humane_a nature_n which_o do_v once_o rise_v again_o and_o now_o have_v good_a trust_n that_o upon_o these_o so_o manifold_a sure_a testimony_n and_o confirmation_n of_o this_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n none_o of_o we_o do_v stand_v in_o doubt_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o let_v we_o in_o the_o next_o place_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o our_o inquiry_n come_v to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n of_o this_o article_n wherein_o we_o profess_v that_o we_o do_v believe_v that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n from_o the_o dead_a question_n what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o they_o answer_n the_o word_n of_o this_o article_n teach_v i_o to_o believe_v that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n our_o heavenly_a father_n do_v by_o his_o own_o divine_a power_n work_v together_o with_o the_o father_n quicken_z and_o raise_v up_o the_o same_o his_o holy_a body_n which_o be_v before_o crucify_v dead_a bury_v
god_n as_o if_o they_o be_v already_o perfect_o accomplish_v according_a to_o the_o more_o full_a description_n thereof_o matth_n 8.11.12_o and_o luke_n 13._o verse_n 23.24.25.26.27.28.29.30_o where_o by_o occasion_n that_o one_o say_v to_o our_o saviour_n lord_n be_v there_o few_o that_o shall_v he_o save_v he_o say_v to_o they_o that_o be_v to_o he_o that_o ask_v the_o question_n and_o to_o the_o rest_n that_o be_v present_a strive_v to_o enter_v in_o at_o the_o straight_a gate_n for_o many_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o will_v seek_v to_o enter_v in_o and_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a when_o the_o good_a man_n of_o the_o house_n be_v rise_v up_o and_o have_v shut_v to_o the_o door_n and_o you_o begin_v to_o stand_v without_o and_o to_o knock_v at_o the_o door_n say_v lord_n lord_n open_a to_o we_o and_o he_o shall_v answer_v and_o say_v unto_o you_o i_o know_v you_o not_o whence_o you_o be_v then_o shall_v you_o begin_v to_o say_v we_o have_v eat_v and_o drink_v in_o thy_o presence_n and_o thou_o have_v teach_v in_o our_o street_n but_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o tell_v you_o i_o know_v you_o not_o whence_o you_o be_v depart_v from_o i_o all_o you_o worker_n of_o iniquite_v there_o shall_v be_v weep_v and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n when_o you_o shall_v ●ee_n abraham_n and_o isaak_n and_o jacob_n and_o all_o the_o prophet_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o yourselves_o thrust_v out_o of_o door_n then_o shall_v come_v many_o from_o the_o east_n and_o from_o the_o west_n and_o from_o the_o north_n and_o from_o the_o south_n and_o shall_v sit_v at_o table_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o again_o matth_n 13_o 41.42_o 43._o the_o wicked_a shall_v be_v cast_v into_o a_o furnace_n of_o fire_n there_o shall_v be_v wail_v and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n then_o shall_v the_o just_a man_n shine_v as_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o their_o father_n he_o that_o have_v ear_n to_o hear_v let_v he_o hear_v likewise_o john_n chap_n 5.29_o and_o 2._o thes_n 1_o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o 10._o according_a also_o to_o the_o holy_a prophecy_n of_o daniel_n chap_n 12.2_o 3._o and_o thus_o we_o see_v that_o there_o be_v diverse_a testimony_n for_o the_o further_a confirmation_n of_o the_o full_a execution_n of_o either_o part_n of_o this_o last_o sentence_n and_o judgement_n to_o be_v pronounce_v by_o our_o saviour_n but_o let_v we_o weigh_v they_o several_o and_o a_o part_n and_o first_o whereas_o our_o saviour_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v most_o sure_a that_o the_o wicked_a shall_v go_v into_o everlasting_a pain_n yea_o even_o into_o the_o furnace_n of_o fire_n and_o therewithal_o also_o into_o shame_n and_o perpetual_a contempt_n as_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n have_v foretell_v where_o shall_v be_v weep_v and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n where_o also_o beside_o that_o the_o fire_n shall_v never_o be_v quench_v as_o our_o saviour_n affirm_v mark_v 9.43_o the_o worm_n to_o wit_n of_o a_o guilty_a and_o convict_v conscience_n never_o die_v but_o lie_v always_o gnaw_v as_o it_o be_v and_o nip_a or_o sting_v as_o a_o ferpent_n in_o the_o bosom_n according_a to_o that_o isai_n chap_n 66_o 24._o where_o shall_v be_v no_o rest_n either_o day_n or_o night_n revel_v chap_n 14.11_o where_o also_o as_o we_o have_v see_v before_o shall_v be_v the_o most_o woeful_a and_o hideous_a company_n and_o fellowship_n of_o the_o devil_n where_o also_o death_n and_o torment_n shall_v bear_v their_o full_a sway_n revel_v chap_n 20.10_o and_o verse_n 14_o 15._o o_o therefore_o in_o all_o these_o respect_n how_o heavy_a and_o fearful_a shall_v this_o execution_n be_v heavy_a and_o fearful_a i_o say_v first_o in_o that_o it_o be_v a_o separation_n of_o the_o wicked_a from_o he_o in_o who_o favourable_a presence_n only_o stand_v the_o comfort_n and_o happiness_n of_o life_n it_o be_v a_o uncomfortable_a thing_n for_o a_o subject_a to_o be_v banish_v for_o ever_o from_o the_o presence_n of_o a_o gracious_a prince_n here_o upon_o earth_n as_o we_o may_v take_v the_o example_n from_o absalon_n 2._o sam_n 14.32_o concern_v the_o bitterness_n of_o his_o banishment_n from_o the_o court_n of_o the_o king_n his_o father_n but_o what_o be_v this_o in_o comparison_n of_o that_o the_o anger_n of_o a_o earthly_a king_n be_v as_o the_o messenger_n of_o death_n proverb_n 16.14_o how_o much_o more_o then_o he_o indignation_n of_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n we_o may_v fear_v the_o anger_n of_o any_o earthly_a king_n more_o sometime_o then_o there_o be_v cause_n but_o our_o fear_n can_v at_o no_o time_n exceed_v the_o anger_n of_o god_n whensoever_o it_o be_v kindle_v against_o we_o according_a to_o the_o psalm_n 7_o 6_o 7._o thou_o even_o thou_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v and_o who_o shall_v stand_v in_o thy_o sight_n when_o thou_o be_v angry_a and_o psalm_n 90_o 11._o thy_o anger_n be_v according_a to_o thy_o fear_n but_o special_o in_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o last_o judgement_n yea_o though_o we_o shall_v consider_v it_o but_o in_o this_o first_o degree_n of_o it_o in_o that_o the_o wicked_a shall_v for_o ever_o be_v abandon_v from_o everlasting_a life_n and_o from_o the_o glory_n thereof_o but_o it_o be_v yet_o more_o fearful_a in_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v punish_v with_o vexation_n and_o torment_n both_o body_n and_o soul_n not_o for_o a_o certain_a space_n of_o time_n and_o so_o to_o end_v but_o for_o ever_o and_o ever_o world_n without_o end_n not_o to_o endure_v vexation_n and_o torment_n in_o some_o small_a measure_n but_o in_o all_o extremity_n easeless_a and_o remediless_a as_o well_o as_o perpetual_a and_o endless_a for_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o it_o be_v compare_v to_o fire_n yea_o to_o everlasting_a fire_n and_o the_o same_o also_o so_o violent_a that_o it_o shall_v make_v the_o mighty_a devil_n to_o bewail_v their_o estate_n under_o the_o revenge_a hand_n of_o god_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o it_o as_o we_o may_v perceive_v by_o that_o which_o we_o read_v matth_n 8.29_o and_o in_o the_o 6._o verse_n of_o the_o epistle_n of_o jude_n as_o be_v allege_v before_o it_o be_v such_o a_o fire_n as_o though_o it_o have_v a_o consume_a nature_n yet_o shall_v it_o never_o consume_v and_o devour_v this_o fuel_n of_o god_n wrath_n which_o shall_v be_v once_o cast_v into_o it_o a_o long_a linger_a grief_n as_o we_o know_v though_o it_o be_v not_o exceed_v sharp_a yet_o it_o be_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o continuance_n very_o tedious_a much_o more_o tedious_a therefore_o must_v it_o needs_o be_v if_o it_o be_v both_o grievous_a and_o also_o of_o long_a durance_n when_o king_n saul_n have_v his_o death_n wound_n he_o account_v his_o misery_n the_o great_a because_o his_o armour-bearer_n refuse_v to_o kill_v he_o out_o of_o hand_n 1._o sam_n 31.4_o and_o deut_n 28.65.66.67_o it_o be_v threaten_v as_o a_o heavy_a punishment_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o israelity_n if_o they_o will_v not_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o rest_n but_o be_v cumber_v with_o a_o tremble_a heart_n both_o night_n and_o day_n so_o that_o in_o the_o morning_n they_o shall_v say_v world_n god_n it_o be_v evening_n and_o at_o evening_n will_v god_n it_o be_v morning_n for_o the_o fear_n of_o thy_o heart_n which_o thou_o shall_v fear_v and_o for_o the_o sight_n of_o thy_o eye_n which_o thou_o shall_v see_v but_o what_o be_v all_o this_o and_o all_o the_o most_o grievous_a disease_n and_o torment_n of_o this_o life_n though_o they_o be_v continual_a by_o the_o colic_n or_o gout_n or_o any_o other_o yea_o though_o they_o meet_v altogether_o in_o one_o man_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o eternal_a torment_n and_o dolour_n of_o hell_n wherefore_o dear_a brethren_n let_v we_o by_o all_o mean_n take_v warning_n by_o this_o doctrine_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n that_o we_o may_v be_v careful_a to_o avoid_v they_o very_o the_o misery_n shall_v be_v above_o all_o our_o understanding_n so_o woeful_a that_o we_o may_v just_o account_v ourselves_o happy_a and_o bless_v of_o god_n if_o we_o may_v escape_v if_o whatsoever_o fiery_a affliction_n we_o endure_v here_o in_o this_o world_n yea_o though_o it_o shall_v be_v all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n and_o the_o same_o also_o prolong_v never_o so_o many_o year_n neither_o let_v any_o wicked_a man_n abide_v in_o his_o sin_n flatter_v himself_o when_o he_o hear_v these_o fearful_a thing_n say_v god_n forbid_v as_o the_o wicked_a pharisy_n say_v to_o our_o saviour_n when_o he_o speak_v to_o they_o of_o this_o judgement_n of_o god_n luke_n 20.16_o for_o this_o part_n of_o the_o judgement_n shall_v be_v as_o certain_o execute_v as_o that_o other_o which_o follow_v in_o the_o next_o place_n concern_v the_o everlasting_a and_o most_o happy_a life_n of_o the_o godly_a wherefore_o to_o the_o
end_n we_o do_v not_o weaken_v the_o comfort_n of_o our_o faith_n concern_v the_o eternity_n of_o the_o bless_a life_n let_v we_o in_o no_o wise_n give_v place_n to_o any_o doubt_v or_o lessen_v of_o the_o terror_n and_o torment_n of_o the_o eternal_a and_o curse_a death_n for_o doubtless_o the_o doubt_v of_o the_o one_o will_v undermine_v and_o weaken_v the_o assurance_n of_o the_o other_o if_o any_o ask_v when_o this_o execution_n shall_v be_v he_o may_v easy_o learn_v from_o this_o description_n of_o our_o saviour_n that_o it_o shall_v follow_v immediate_o upon_o the_o pronounce_v of_o the_o sentence_n by_o he_o whensoever_o that_o shall_v be_v the_o go_v of_o the_o wicked_a into_o that_o everlasting_a pain_n which_o our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o shall_v not_o be_v with_o their_o good_a will_n but_o no_o doubt_n altogether_o against_o their_o will_n like_v as_o the_o thief_n or_o traitor_n go_v to_o the_o gallow_n or_o to_o any_o other_o place_n of_o execution_n or_o rather_o infinite_o more_o unwilling_o than_o they_o go_v though_o they_o be_v most_o just_o adjudge_v unto_o it_o for_o they_o may_v be_v yet_o in_o some_o hope_n that_o god_n will_v at_o the_o last_o have_v mercy_n upon_o they_o but_o these_o can_v have_v no_o hope_n all_o time_n of_o mercy_n be_v utter_o expire_v and_o end_v with_o they_o let_v this_o suffice_v touch_v the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o execution_n concern_v the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o wicked_a the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o execution_n which_o be_v the_o first_o of_o the_o sentence_n or_o judgement_n that_o be_v now_o to_o be_v weigh_v of_o we_o in_o that_o our_o saviour_n say_v that_o the_o righteous_a shall_v as_o certain_o go_v into_o life_n eternal_a as_o the_o wicked_a shall_v go_v into_o everlasting_a pain_n but_o they_o shall_v not_o go_v unwilling_o as_o be_v say_v even_o now_o of_o the_o wicked_a but_o most_o willing_o and_o ioyous_o and_o thankful_o to_o god_n for_o so_o inestimable_a a_o advancement_n as_o revel_v 19.7_o 8_o 9_o the_o time_n when_o they_o shall_v go_v shall_v be_v immediate_o after_o the_o sentence_n give_v that_o be_v to_o say_v before_o the_o sentence_n shall_v be_v give_v against_o the_o wicked_a whereby_o it_o may_v be_v evident_a that_o our_o saviour_n do_v not_o here_o speak_v of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o execution_n but_o of_o the_o certainty_n of_o it_o and_o the_o reason_n why_o he_o mention_v the_o execution_n of_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o sentence_n first_o be_v only_o according_a to_o that_o method_n or_o order_n of_o a_o hysterosis_n very_o familiar_a in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o leave_v these_o point_n of_o circumstance_n let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o matter_n itself_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v conceive_v aright_o of_o the_o excellency_n of_o god_n eternal_a mercy_n towards_o the_o godly_a in_o this_o inestimable_a blessing_n of_o eternal_a life_n to_o this_o purpose_n it_o shall_v be_v good_a for_o we_o to_o know_v first_o of_o all_o that_o it_o be_v a_o distinct_a blessing_n from_o that_o life_n of_o god_n which_o he_o communicate_v unto_o we_o in_o this_o world_n though_o it_o please_v he_o to_o give_v we_o a_o taste_n of_o eternal_a life_n by_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n according_a to_o that_o heb._n 6.4.5_o for_o that_o which_o the_o unregenerate_a and_o unsanctified_a have_v only_o in_o taste_n the_o child_n of_o god_n have_v not_o only_o in_o taste_n but_o also_o as_o we_o may_v say_v in_o sound_n and_o nourishable_a digestion_n in_o some_o measure_n to_o their_o preservation_n and_o strengthen_v to_o the_o full_a fruition_n of_o everlasting_a life_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o this_o everlasting_a life_n be_v call_v the_o life_n to_o come_v to_o put_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o present_a life_n yea_o even_o betwixt_o it_o and_o that_o part_n of_o it_o which_o we_o do_v live_v here_o after_o that_o we_o be_v bear_v again_o and_o regenerate_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o newness_n of_o life_n as_o we_o read_v 1._o tim._n 4.8_o and_o chap._n 6.19_o read_v also_o mark_v chap_n 10.29.30_o and_o therefore_o also_o it_o be_v say_v that_o although_o christ_n do_v live_v in_o we_o to_o wit_n by_o his_o spirit_n gal._n 2_o 20._o rom._n 8._o verse_n 9.10.11_o and_o 2._o cor._n 5.17_o yet_o as_o we_o read_v colos_n 3._o verse_n 3.4_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v again_o our_o life_n be_v hide_v with_o god_n in_o christ._n yea_o so_o as_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v full_o reveal_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o it_o until_o the_o same_o our_o saviour_n christ_n shall_v appear_v in_o glory_n and_o chap._n 1.5_o he_o call_v it_o the_o hope_n which_o be_v lay_v up_o in_o heaven_n heb._n 6.18_o according_a also_o to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n john_n 1._o epistle_n 3.2_o dear_o belove_v now_o be_v we_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o yet_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v what_o we_o shall_v be_v and_o we_o know_v that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o shall_v be_v like_o he_o for_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v final_o 1._o cor._n 15.19_o if_o in_o this_o life_n only_o say_v the_o apostle_n paul_n we_o have_v hope_n in_o christ_n we_o be_v of_o all_o man_n the_o most_o miserable_a thus_o then_o we_o be_v to_o distinguish_v betwixt_o the_o present_a life_n which_o we_o now_o enjoy_v yea_o that_o part_n of_o it_o which_o we_o live_v here_o in_o the_o spirit_n and_o betwixt_o that_o eternal_a life_n which_o our_o saviour_n will_v perfect_o perform_v to_o the_o godly_a at_o the_o last_o day_n nevertheless_o the_o distinction_n be_v rather_o in_o the_o measure_n and_o degree_n of_o the_o happiness_n and_o glory_n of_o it_o then_o in_o the_o nature_n and_o kind_n of_o it_o and_o yet_o again_o it_o be_v as_o much_o differ_v in_o the_o excellency_n of_o it_o as_o a_o thing_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n and_o quality_n may_v be_v so_o that_o as_o we_o say_v of_o a_o man_n that_o be_v grow_v up_o from_o mean_a estate_n and_o small_a gift_n to_o a_o high_a degree_n and_o to_o great_a learning_n that_o he_o be_v now_o another_o man_n than_o he_o be_v before_o in_o like_a manner_n may_v we_o say_v of_o eternal_a life_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o present_a life_n yea_o even_o of_o the_o life_n of_o the_o most_o godly_a that_o it_o be_v another_o life_n the_o which_o that_o we_o may_v yet_o the_o more_o clear_o perceive_v we_o be_v further_a to_o understand_v that_o beside_o our_o natural_a life_n which_o be_v no_o better_a than_o a_o death_n in_o sin_n and_o trespass_n and_o so_o of_o a_o clean_a contrary_a nature_n there_o be_v three_o degree_n of_o that_o spiritual_a life_n which_o god_n bestow_v upon_o his_o child_n first_o that_o life_n which_o they_o live_v in_o this_o world_n after_o that_o he_o have_v regenerate_v and_o bear_v they_o again_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o yet_o be_v always_o unpersit_a and_o fail_v in_o godliness_n and_o consequent_o in_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a comfort_n second_o the_o life_n of_o the_o soul_n separate_v from_o the_o body_n by_o the_o natural_a death_n which_o be_v thenceforth_o perfect_o free_v from_o sin_n and_o from_o the_o combrance_n of_o the_o corrupt_a body_n and_o enjoy_v some_o measure_n of_o a_o glorious_a and_o perfect_a rest_n heb._n 12.23_o three_o the_o life_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n reunite_v again_o at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n at_o the_o last_o day_n and_o this_o life_n shall_v be_v most_o perfect_o glorious_a and_o happy_a and_o be_v that_o which_o our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o in_o this_o place_n for_o as_o the_o soul_n shall_v at_o that_o time_n be_v perfect_o glorify_v so_o also_o shall_v the_o body_n be_v and_o therefore_o shall_v it_o be_v no_o hindrance_n to_o the_o perpetual_a and_o full_a comfort_n and_o joy_n of_o the_o soul_n as_o it_o be_v always_o here_o in_o this_o life_n through_o the_o distemperature_n thereof_o like_v as_o the_o soul_n itself_o be_v not_o perfect_o cleanse_v and_o sanctify_v so_o long_o as_o it_o remain_v in_o the_o corrupt_a body_n furthermore_o that_o we_o may_v yet_o help_v ourselves_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o eternal_a life_n what_o it_o be_v in_o some_o measure_n though_o in_o the_o perfection_n of_o it_o it_o exceed_v all_o our_o knowledge_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v of_o it_o as_o consist_v in_o these_o three_o head_n first_o in_o the_o perfect_a knowledge_n of_o the_o most_o gracious_a wisdom_n and_o holy_a will_n and_o counsel_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n jesus_n so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v meet_v for_o the_o creature_n to_o know_v and_o to_o be_v make_v privy_a unto_o it_o according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o john_n 17.3_o this_o be_v life_n eternal_a that_o be_v
of_o their_o soul_n and_o therefore_o as_o they_o live_v immortality_n in_o their_o soul_n which_o be_v one_o part_n of_o his_o creation_n so_o shall_v they_o also_o in_o their_o body_n but_o of_o this_o more_o in_o the_o promise_n this_o second_o reason_n thus_o conclude_v from_o a_o absurdity_n which_o must_v needs_o follow_v upon_o the_o denial_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n insomuch_o as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v oftentimes_o most_o cruel_o persecute_v here_o in_o this_o world_n where_o they_o be_v as_o stranger_n while_o the_o wicked_a be_v at_o ease_n and_o prosper_v grow_v as_o it_o be_v in_o their_o natural_a soil_n the_o apostle_n also_o have_v before_o note_v many_o other_o absurdity_n which_o may_v just_o make_v all_o the_o adversary_n of_o this_o artiticle_n ashamed_a of_o their_o part_n now_o henceforth_o he_o do_v as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o text_n call_v the_o adversary_n thereof_o back_o again_o to_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o truth_n call_v by_o they_o into_o question_n and_o he_o affirm_v against_o they_o that_o there_o be_v most_o certain_o a_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n to_o come_v for_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o faithful_a insomuch_o as_o our_o saviour_n be_v out_o of_o all_o doubt_n bodily_a rise_v again_o the_o which_o ground_n of_o the_o question_n have_v be_v before_o so_o prove_v by_o he_o he_o do_v furthermore_o illustrate_v the_o same_o by_o two_o notable_a similitude_n or_o comparison_n the_o former_a whereof_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o 20._o verse_n question_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n answer_n 20._o they_o be_v these_o but_o now_o say_v the_o apostle_n be_v christ_n rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o be_v make_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o they_o that_o sleep_v explication_n explication_n this_o first_o similitude_n or_o comparison_n be_v take_v from_o a_o certain_a ordinance_n of_o god_n prescribe_v as_o we_o know_v in_o his_o holy_a law_n to_o illustrate_v &_o clear_v the_o matter_n in_o question_n after_o this_o manner_n for_o like_a as_o when_o according_a to_o the_o appointment_n of_o god_n the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o yearly_a renew_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v due_o offer_v as_o a_o homage_n or_o rather_o as_o a_o religious_a profession_n of_o spiritual_a allegiance_n and_o subjection_n due_a unto_o he_o then_o all_o the_o whole_a crop_n of_o their_o corn_n or_o increase_v of_o their_o vineyeard_n or_o of_o the_o flock_n of_o their_o sheep_n etc._n etc._n be_v sanctify_v to_o the_o free_a use_n and_o benefit_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n so_o also_o yea_o much_o rather_o insomuch_o as_o god_n have_v ordain_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n shall_v enjoy_v the_o benefit_n of_o bodily_a resurrection_n by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n it_o can_v be_v as_o the_o apostle_n give_v to_o understand_v but_o see_v our_o saviour_n who_o be_v as_o the_o first_o fruit_n or_o a_o sacred_a pawn_n and_o pledge_v of_o the_o resurrection_n be_v rise_v again_o the_o faithful_a also_o shall_v do_v so_o when_o the_o time_n thereunto_o appoint_v of_o god_n be_v come_v this_o therefore_o be_v the_o former_a of_o the_o two_o similitude_n question_n now_o which_o be_v the_o second_o answer_n it_o follow_v in_o the_o 21._o and_o 22._o verse_n in_o these_o word_n 21._o for_o since_o by_o man_n come_v death_n by_o man_n come_v also_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a 22._o for_o as_o in_o adam_n all_o dye_n even_o so_o in_o christ_n shall_v all_o be_v make_v alive_a explication_n explication_n the_o holy_a apostle_n have_v as_o we_o say_v lay_v a_o sure_a foundation_n before_o observe_v now_o a_o good_a proportion_n in_o this_o his_o second_o comparison_n for_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n through_o his_o righteousness_n and_o obedience_n and_o therewithal_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o satisfaction_n for_o our_o sin_n must_v needs_o be_v of_o as_o great_a virtue_n and_o grace_n if_o not_o of_o great_a to_o give_v life_n and_o resurrection_n to_o the_o body_n of_o his_o saint_n after_o death_n then_o adam_n sin_n be_v to_o bring_v death_n upon_o the_o body_n of_o all_o mankind_n according_a to_o that_o which_o this_o same_o our_o apostle_n write_v rom_n 5_o verse_n 17._o for_o as_o he_o say_v there_o if_o by_o the_o offence_n of_o one_o death_n reign_v through_o one_o much_o more_o shall_v they_o which_o receive_v the_o abundance_n of_o grace_n &_o of_o the_o gift_n of_o righteousness_n reign_n in_o life_n through_o one_o that_o be_v jesus_n christ_n and_o again_o verse_n 21._o that_o as_o sin_n have_v reign_v unto_o death_n so_o may_v grace_v also_o reign_v by_o righteousness_n unto_o eternal_a life_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n in_o the_o which_o word_n though_o the_o direct_a purpose_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v to_o prove_v and_o illustrate_v the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o justification_n by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n yet_o the_o force_n of_o his_o reason_n and_o of_o that_o comparison_n which_o he_o make_v do_v extend_v themselves_o as_o far_o as_o do_v the_o present_a question_n which_o we_o have_v in_o hand_n insomuch_o as_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n be_v a_o fruit_n of_o that_o justification_n which_o our_o saviour_n have_v procure_v unto_o we_o and_o to_o all_o that_o do_v true_o believe_v in_o he_o yet_o let_v we_o mark_v that_o be_v as_o in_o our_o text_n the_o apostle_n say_v general_o that_o as_o in_o adam_n all_o dye_n even_o so_o in_o christ_n all_o shall_v be_v make_v alive_a we_o must_v restrain_v his_o word_n answerable_a to_o the_o limit_n of_o the_o question_n in_o hand_n that_o be_v to_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o faithful_a for_o notwithstanding_o the_o body_n of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v rise_v again_o also_o yet_o because_o that_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o proper_o a_o effect_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o of_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n to_o take_v vengeance_n of_o their_o sin_n in_o their_o body_n as_o well_o as_o in_o their_o soul_n therefore_o we_o be_v to_o disburden_v this_o question_n of_o that_o consideration_n at_o this_o time_n now_o therefore_o that_o we_o may_v proceed_v whereas_o it_o may_v be_v object_v and_o demand_v why_o then_o do_v we_o not_o see_v the_o body_n of_o the_o faithful_a to_o rise_v again_o as_o the_o body_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v rise_v the_o holy_a apostle_n do_v prudent_o prevent_v that_o objection_n as_o we_o may_v perceive_v by_o his_o word_n immediate_o follow_v to_o wit_n in_o the_o 23._o verse_n question_n which_o be_v those_o word_n of_o he_o answer_n 23._o they_o follow_v thus_o but_o every_o man_n in_o his_o own_o order_n the_o first_o fruit_n be_v christ_n afterward_o they_o that_o be_v of_o christ_n at_o his_o come_n proof_n explication_n and_o proof_n that_o be_v to_o say_v howsoever_o the_o faithful_a do_v not_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n after_o that_o they_o die_v as_o our_o saviour_n do_v no_o nor_o the_o three_o year_n no_o nor_o many_o hundreth_n of_o year_n after_o as_o we_o have_v have_v experience_n by_o the_o space_n almost_o of_o sixteen_o hundred_o of_o year_n already_o since_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n yet_o the_o body_n of_o every_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v certain_o be_v raise_v up_o at_o the_o time_n appoint_v and_o determine_v of_o god_n to_o that_o end_n which_o time_n all_o the_o faithful_a be_v with_o patience_n to_o wait_v for_o yea_o even_o with_o this_o mind_n that_o it_o may_v abundant_o suffice_v we_o all_o that_o we_o have_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n for_o our_o assure_a resurrection_n at_o the_o last_o day_n and_o this_o patient_a wait_a for_o it_o by_o faith_n be_v necessary_o to_o be_v observe_v of_o we_o lest_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o proud_a and_o presumptuous_a heretic_n we_o go_v about_o ambitious_o to_o prevent_v the_o lord_n to_o our_o utter_a destruction_n for_o very_o the_o want_n hereof_o be_v no_o small_a cause_n that_o many_o will_v needs_o have_v their_o heaven_n here_o and_o that_o therefore_o they_o willing_o imagine_v that_o the_o resurrection_n be_v pass_v already_o etc._n etc._n and_o so_o both_o destroy_v their_o own_o faith_n and_o the_o faith_n of_o so_o many_o as_o will_v be_v lead_v by_o they_o as_o we_o shall_v have_v further_a occasion_n to_o consider_v hereafter_o hitherto_o of_o the_o two_o former_a reason_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n for_o proof_n of_o the_o first_o question_n with_o the_o illustration_n and_o comparison_n belong_v unto_o they_o the_o three_o reason_n now_o follow_v and_o that_o by_o occasion_n of_o the_o mention_n of_o the_o time_n when_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o faithful_a shall_v be_v to_o wit_n at_o the_o come_n of_o our_o saviour_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o it_o follow_v
verse_n 24.25.26.27.28_o of_o the_o which_o word_n because_o we_o have_v consider_v before_o in_o the_o article_n of_o our_o saviour_n come_v to_o judge_n the_o world_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o concern_v the_o diverse_a manner_n of_o the_o government_n of_o his_o kingdom_n after_o that_o day_n from_o that_o which_o be_v now_o we_o will_v not_o stand_v upon_o it_o here_o only_o let_v we_o for_o the_o present_a consider_v how_o the_o apostle_n do_v conclude_v that_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n and_o of_o the_o body_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a that_o shall_v then_o be_v find_v dead_a shall_v be_v at_o that_o day_n question_n what_o be_v his_o reason_n answer_n if_o all_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o faithful_a who_o god_n account_v his_o enemy_n also_o shall_v at_o the_o come_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o give_v judgement_n at_o the_o last_o day_n be_v utter_o and_o for_o ever_o subdue_v by_o he_o then_o doubtless_o death_n which_o be_v one_o capital_a and_o chief_a enemy_n and_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v the_o last_o enemy_n of_o the_o rest_n shall_v be_v subdue_v but_o all_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o faithful_a shall_v be_v subdue_v say_v the_o apostle_n yea_o even_o from_o the_o first_o to_o the_o last_o and_o therefore_o death_n also_o together_o with_o they_o explication_n explication_n it_o be_v true_a and_o consequent_o it_o follow_v thereupon_o that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o faithful_a shall_v rise_v again_o to_o everlasting_a life_n for_o otherwise_o if_o their_o body_n be_v overthrow_v by_o death_n shall_v never_o be_v raise_v up_o again_o then_o shall_v death_n reign_v still_o or_o rather_o tyrannize_v over_o they_o but_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v the_o enemy_n so_o to_o do_v for_o see_v sin_n shall_v be_v utter_o abolish_v which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o death_n to_o the_o body_n death_n itself_o shall_v also_o one_o day_n cease_v touch_v the_o body_n of_o the_o faithful_a as_o well_o as_o their_o soul_n have_v already_o escape_v the_o second_o death_n and_o so_o according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o our_o text_n god_n shall_v be_v all_o in_o all_o insomuch_o as_o he_o raise_v up_o the_o body_n of_o his_o servant_n to_o glory_n shall_v cause_v his_o most_o glorious_a power_n and_o the_o most_o rich_a grace_n of_o his_o gospel_n to_o shine_v forth_o as_o well_o in_o their_o body_n as_o in_o their_o soul_n when_o they_o shall_v whole_o live_v together_o in_o eternal_a glory_n with_o he_o and_o when_o he_o shall_v vouchsafe_v together_o with_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o live_v most_o perfect_o and_o full_o in_o they_o all_o according_a to_o the_o prayer_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n make_v in_o that_o behalf_n in_o the_o 17._o chap_n of_o the_o evangelist_n john_n this_o be_v the_o apostle_n three_o reason_n let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o the_o four_o as_o it_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o 29._o verse_n question_n which_o be_v his_o word_n answer_n 29._o else_o say_v saint_n paul_n what_o shall_v they_o do_v who_o be_v baptize_v for_o dead_a if_o the_o dead_a rise_v not_o at_o all_o why_o be_v they_o then_o baptize_v for_o dead_a explication_n explication_n in_o these_o word_n saint_n paul_n reason_v from_o that_o use_n and_o end_n whereunto_o our_o saviour_n christ_n ordain_v his_o sacrament_n of_o holy_a baptism_n in_o the_o outward_a wash_n of_o the_o body_n of_o those_o that_o shall_v believe_v in_o his_o name_n the_o which_o be_v no_o doubt_n as_o well_o to_o assure_v the_o baptize_v of_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o their_o sin_n in_o respect_n both_o of_o soul_n and_o also_o of_o body_n as_o to_o teach_v they_o both_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n to_o die_v unto_o sin_n and_o so_o consequent_o to_o assure_v everlasting_a blessing_n and_o glorious_a salvation_n to_o they_o both_o which_o can_v not_o be_v perform_v unless_o the_o body_n shall_v rise_v again_o this_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o very_a true_a meaning_n and_o intent_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n direct_o serve_v to_o the_o purpose_n which_o he_o have_v in_o hand_n as_o though_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v thus_o if_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n why_o shall_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n the_o seal_n of_o the_o lord_n covenant_n of_o salvation_n be_v apply_v unto_o it_o what_o fruit_n either_o have_v the_o faithful_a by_o it_o to_o wit_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o body_n who_o be_v already_o dead_a or_o what_o fruit_n may_v the_o live_a look_n to_o find_v by_o it_o in_o the_o same_o respect_n when_o they_o shall_v be_v dead_a if_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o resurrection_n be_v not_o assure_v unto_o they_o thereby_o and_o whereas_o the_o adversary_n may_v peradventure_o allege_v that_o it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a use_n of_o baptism_n to_o assure_v the_o faithful_a of_o the_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n though_o the_o body_n have_v no_o fruit_n by_o it_o beside_o that_o this_o be_v a_o ignorant_a restraint_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o gracious_a covenant_n of_o god_n the_o apostle_n have_v sufficient_o prevent_v this_o objection_n see_v if_o any_o deny_v the_o one_o part_n of_o it_o he_o can_v have_v no_o true_a faith_n to_o believe_v the_o other_o as_o in_o this_o his_o disputation_n he_o give_v plain_o to_o understand_v as_o we_o have_v partly_o observe_v already_o and_o shall_v further_o observe_v it_o to_o be_v so_o by_o the_o reason_n that_o follow_v when_o we_o shall_v come_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n we_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o some_o word_n of_o the_o present_a text_n be_v diverse_o translate_v and_o according_o diverse_o interpret_v as_o though_o the_o apostle_n shall_v reason_v from_o some_o other_o ground_n then_o from_o that_o which_o we_o have_v allege_v but_o upon_o due_a consideration_n it_o will_v be_v find_v as_o i_o very_o suppose_v that_o no_o other_o ground_n will_v sufficient_o uphold_v it_o to_o the_o purpose_n which_o be_v in_o hand_n and_o therefore_o whereas_o these_o word_n oi_o baptizomenoi_fw-fr huper_fw-fr toon_n necroon_fw-mi be_v translate_v of_o some_o thus_o baptize_v over_o the_o dead_a as_o though_o it_o have_v be_v even_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o manner_n of_o some_o to_o baptize_v over_o the_o grave_n of_o the_o dead_a this_o sure_o be_v very_o unlikely_a i_o mean_v that_o the_o apostle_n will_v ground_v his_o reason_n upon_o such_o a_o groundless_a or_o fond_a use_n if_o any_o such_o be_v and_o therefore_o this_o read_n can_v well_o agree_v to_o express_v the_o apostle_n meaning_n neither_o yet_o do_v that_o translation_n well_o agree_v which_o have_v a_o respect_n to_o the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o faithful_a jew_n in_o that_o to_o the_o nourish_a of_o their_o hope_n touch_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n they_o use_v to_o wash_v the_o body_n of_o their_o dead_a and_o then_o to_o embalm_v they_o before_o they_o bury_v they_o as_o though_o the_o apostle_n word_n be_v to_o be_v translate_v thus_o else_o what_o do_v they_o which_o use_v wash_v over_o the_o dead_a and_o therefore_o that_o from_o this_o custom_n the_o apostle_n will_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n see_v otherwise_o this_o wash_n shall_v be_v in_o vain_a for_o this_o also_o though_o it_o be_v of_o more_o weight_n than_o the_o former_a as_o touch_v the_o matter_n allege_v yet_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_o agreeable_a to_o the_o phrase_n or_o construction_n of_o the_o word_n which_o the_o apostle_n use_v wherefore_o we_o may_v rather_o hold_v ourselves_o to_o the_o first_o translation_n and_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n understand_v the_o greek_a huper_n to_o be_v use_v by_o saint_n paul_n as_o the_o latin_a pro_fw-la be_v use_v in_o this_o latin_a phrase_n habere_fw-la pro_fw-la derelicto_fw-la as_o master_n caluin_n well_o observe_v so_o that_o he_o who_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v baptize_v for_o dead_a that_o be_v as_o one_o in_o a_o manner_n dead_a even_o to_o die_v more_o and_o more_o to_o sin_n but_o to_o live_v more_o and_o more_o unto_o god_n nevertheless_o in_o that_o master_n caluin_n interprete_v the_o apostle_n word_n as_o though_o he_o shall_v reason_v from_o the_o custom_n of_o such_o converte_n as_o neglect_v baptism_n overlong_o be_v yet_o at_o the_o last_o provoke_v in_o conscience_n to_o seek_v after_o it_o when_o they_o do_v see_v death_n any_o way_n approach_v unto_o they_o lest_o they_o shall_v be_v prevent_v of_o that_o benefit_n and_o comfort_n which_o they_o hope_v to_o find_v by_o it_o though_o the_o interpretation_n be_v not_o light_o to_o be_v pass_v by_o yet_o for_o my_o part_n i_o can_v rest_v in_o it_o as_o in_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n will_v make_v the_o ground_n of_o his_o reason_n and_o master_n caluin_n himself_o worthy_o condemn_v it_o for_o a_o great_a fault_n in_o they_o that_o shall_v so_o